'%. #^% sJi %3L; * LIBRARY OF CONGRESS, i <£?%. ¥ SSsso! rtAt ^=/S 7 12k? I -MTED STATES OF AMERICA.! m mmj ISP, m m mi. .".' fl^tZ-t^i^J^fj of /Sh-nt^-<~+ < f)ljrlCtfj "fff-~^G &~7 771^ T^ ILLUSTRATED HISTORY OF THE HOLY BIBLE : BEING A CONNECTED ACCOUNT OF THE REMARKABLE EVENTS AND DISTINGUISHED CHARACTERS CONTAINED IN THE OLD AND NEW TESTAMENTS, AND IN Jewish History during the Four Hundred Years, INTERVENING BETWEEN THE TIME OF MALAGHI AND THE BIRTH OF CHRIST, INCLUDING ALSO THE LIFE OF CHRIST AND HIS APOSTLES: THE WHOLE EMBRACING A PERIOD OF FOUR THOUSAND YEARS, WITH NOTES CRITICAL, TOPOGRAPHICAL AND EXPLANATORY. JOHN KTTTO, D. D., F. S. A., AUTHOR OF "CYCLOPEDIA OF BIBLICAL LITERATURE," "HISTORY OF PALESTINE," AC. EDITED BY ALVAN BOND, D. D. EMBELLISHED AND ILLUSTRATED BY OVER 100 FULL PAGE ENGRAVINGS AND MAPS. NOKWICH, CONN.: PUBLISHED BY HENRY BILL. 18 6 8. #*> Pa Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1866, By HENRY BILL, In the Clerk's Office of the District Court of the United States for the District of Connecticut. cp PEEFACE. " Bible History," says Dr. Lange, " differs from the general history of the ^- kingdom of God, in that it delineates only the foundation of this kingdom by *— means of and during the course of revelation. It traces, in historical succession, the narrative contained in the Scriptures in all its essential features. In the Old Testament it shows us all the elements of the life of faith, and sets before us many a precious example of faith and patience for our imitation; while in the New Testament it exhibits the history of faith and salvation ' made perfect,' both in the miracles and triumphs of the Lord, and in the deeds of His apostles. Thus Bible history forms the basis of Church history." As a department of useful knowledge, it possesses an intrinsic value and in- terest, surpassing whatever can be claimed for any other history. It covers a long period in the age of human society, whose chronicles, in an authentic form, have been nowhere else preserved. It runs back to the eventful epoch whence the creation of the world, in its present organic state, dates its existence ; and furnishes the only reliable record of the origin of man, of his primitive condi- tion, his fall, his subsequent development, and the fortunes of his family. Biblical history is the source of all we know of the antediluvian period, and subsequent ages of the world down to the time of Herodotus, the father of his- tory. It contains the only truthful account of the ancient and long since vanished civilizations. Herodotus was a contemporary of Ezra and Neheniiah, the last of the Old Testament historians. The antediluvian period, and that intervening between the Noachiau deluge and the times of Nehemiah, embrace an era o± about three thousand five hundred years, the history of which is nowhere found but in the Old Testament. True, there are fabulous legends and cosmogonies in which may be found a confused intermingling of traditional lore and the in- ventions of the imagination, but they are wanting in all the essential elements of authentic history. It has been said by Dr. Kitto, that " Amidst the various profane authors who have written more or less in detail on Egypt, the Bible remains our best and fullest authority for the early history of this country. * * * * The Bible supplies, either by express statement or obvious implication, facts and principles which constitute genuine history, and go far to give the past all the value which it can possess for the men of these times. The history of the pre-Christian era embraces, 1. The primeval ages till the deluge, and the re-settlement of Noah and his family in Armenia. 2. The dis- persion of the posterity of Noah's three sons till the calling of Abraham. 3. The origin and establishment of the Hebrew Theocracy, and its relations to the ancient empires of the world, comprising the period from Moses to David — the period of the kings from David to the Babylonian exile — the period of sacer- dotal rule under the Maccabeean administration, or what is called the middle period. 4. Primitive Christianity to the close of the first century. Thus surveyed, it appears that Biblical history covers a period of four thou- sand years — from the morning of creation to the establishment of Christianity in all parts of the Roman empire. When considered in respect to the infallible sources whence it is derived, and the long flight of ages which it embraces, it must be regarded as possessing the highest claims to our careful study. ir PREFACE. u Viewed merely as a literary production, the Bible," says the able and learned editcr of Dr. Lange's Commentary on the Holy Scriptures, '* is a marvellous book, and without a rivaL All the libraries of theology, philosophy, history, antiquities, poetry, law. and policy would not furnish material enough for a rich a treasure of the choicest gems of human genius, wisdom, and experience. It embraces works of about forty authors, representing the extremes of society. from the throne of the king to the boat of the fisherman ; it was written during a long period of sixteen centuries, on the banks of the Nile, in the desert of Arabia, in the land of promise, in Asia Minor, in classical Greece, and in im- perial Borne ; it commences with the creation, and ends with the final glorifica- tion, after describing all the intervening stages in the revelation of God and the spiritual development of man ; it uses all forms of literary composition : it ri s e to the highest heights, and descends to the lowest depths of humanity ; it measures all states and conditions of life; it is acquainted with every grief and every woe; it touches every chord of sympathy; it contains the spiritual biography of every human heart; it is suited to every class ot ^society, and can be read with the same interest and profit by the king and the beggar, by the philosopher and the child ; it is as universal as the race, and reaches beyond the limits of time into the boundless regions of eternity." "Tiir ZZtstrooei History of :Zr Zi Lie is :•: Le i: mZteZ :: tLe lit :rs of Si::-. who has contributed several valuable and voluminous works to the cause of biblical learning. For the numerous notes introduced, recourse has been had to the most reliable authors, and especially to the later researches in the depart- zifz: :f soo-noi Liters fire. As sito-r reoiers 003,7 ': r Lotereste I in i brie: ZZrropZitol notice of tie distingtZsLeZ CLristion soLZor referrei :: : ": :~ - tie: ii — z is Lore insert-:. Z:zv Xini- — is : it- in ?i.~::i:l. EoZin : I'e:. 4 I* ".4. Z- :::i:. -;i ■ sommon laborer, in humbk srcumstanoes. Being addicted to intemperance, he soooniere: Lis eirnioos in ZeZnses, on 1 Lis fonoilj ~:s sZZeiteo to ttvertj ill norrti:: :ooi:n. His soo. Z:Ln. "is :;nse:oeot> removed :o tZe L:noe :: Lis nnteroZ grondtottLer. -*Loere Le v.-^ tenierlj cored fir oni Lostrnioei. ^erj eorlj Le nonnested. str 00 iesZe for ont^leire. 10 1 =-:t:zZ: :Ze so oZ:j :f :L:se ~L: ~: Zi ri:::::.:: Z : . stories or Zoo Lin : : Z-;s. In his grandmother's fifarary he found a family Bible, containing many pictorial ZiostrotZns :: stents in s acred Listory, which afforded him much -.::e :ol Loioted Lin :: reod toe Soriptores, TLe ::o:se ::' :o e-eotfol life is n:: on:re:oen:l7 sZooed :y sone sZorle iniident :n tLe exoerieote : 1 In the sase :: " ZZtt ..it s vet 7 evident that there was a connection between his interest in the old family Bible, with its pictures, and his subse- n toe 700: 1S17. :Le :Lirteen:L ::' Lis ore. 70:7.0 Kit:: -offered _o wLi:L :os: i Zs'oeorteoioi; :Zol :~e: Lis fotore :: s:e::s. Zr ~is ::.. in :i"-izz slotes to tLe no:' :f i Liose v.-Li:L Lis fotoer ~:s re: Zriro. "Leo. Kizz':iz zz : no toe er :: tZe r: :f. Lis :;ot slitoeZ :o 1 o ir.. : : tLe :o~e- PREFACE. v of this time he opened his eyes and consciousness returned. His first thoughts were directed to his books, his mind reverting to the subject with which it was occupied at the time of the casualty. He seemed greatly surprised to find him- self weak and helpless. As yet he was not aware that, in consequence of the injury he had received, he had become entirely deaf. On inquiring for a book which he was reading just before he fell, he heard no answer. " Why do you not speak?" he asked with some impatience. The painful information was given to him, in writing, that he was deaf. The fact of his deafness, depressing as it was, and unfitting him as it did for most kinds of business, did not extinguish his thirst for knowledge. He resorted to a variety of resources and expedients for earning small sums of money, which he expended in the purchase of cheap books. But his scanty earnings were not sufficient for the purchase of such books as he now craved, and for procuring food and clothing, which his parents in their poverty could no longer provide for him. Consequently, in the fifteenth year of his age, the poor deaf boy was sent to the poor-house. This stern, humiliating necessity seemed intolerable to his noble and sensitive spirit. After a while, however, he became resigned to this hard lot, and conducted himself in a manner that won the sympathy and kindness of the overseer. In the latter part of the year 1821, John Kitto was apprenticed to a shoe- maker, who proved to be an unreasonable and cruel master. But in these circumstances, trying as they were, and though required to work sixteen or eighteen hours a day, he redeemed time from sleep for the pursuit of knowledge. His was a mind that rose above the pressure of the most depressing adversity. The promising abilities of this unfortunate youth were at last brought to the notice of several gentlemen in Plymouth. Measures were proposed by them in 1823, with a view to procuring for him a situation favorable to the attainment of that knowledge and culture on which he was so intent. As the result of these humane efforts, he was removed from the work-house to the position of sub-librarian in the Plymouth Public Library. Having triumphed over discouragements and difficulties which would have utterly disheartened a less brave and resolute spirit, he found himself on the upward career of success- ful literary culture and achievement. Two grand ideas now impressed and affected his mind, viz. : that Tie must make himself, and that usefulness should be the ruling purpose in the prosecu- tion of his literary labors and attainments. The eventful history of his life affords abundant evidence that these noble ideas were not theoretical elements, but practical forces, the influence of which was signally manifested in the strength and affluence of a cultivated intellect, and in the widely appreciated usefulness resulting from his manifold and elaborate contributions to the department of Biblical learning. There were other elements of character which contributed to his masterly activity and signal success. These were singleness of aim, thoroughness of execution, rigid system, personal independence, and strong faith in God. The friends of Kitto advised him to engage in the work of a printing-office, for the purpose of qualifying himself to superintend a mission press. He did so, and in 1827 he received from the Church Missionary Society the appoint- ment of lay missionary. In this capacity he sailed for the Island of Malta, where he engaged in the department of labor for which he had been set apart. ri PREFACE. On finding that his work was less favorable to intellectual and spiritual growth than he had expected, he resigned the situation. As a missionary company was about to be sent to Bagdad, he readily accepted an invitation to join the same. The voyage to that oriental city occupied six months, which time he improved in careful observations on men, customs, and places. "While residing in that city, it was visited by the plague, the terrific ravages of which swept off more than one-half the inhabitants in two months. Amidst this fearful desolation he remained calm and active at his post. His connection with this mission continued about three and a half years. On returning to England, he settled near London, and engaged in literary pursuits. About this time he was married to a very excellent woman, who aided him in his labors. His first work was a book of travels in the East. Soon he commenced his great work, the " Pictorial Bible,*' in three volumes. His "Pictorial History of Palestine and the Holy Land" followed. Then another great work, the " The Cyclopaedia of Biblical Literature," was published in two very large volumes. Another work was the "Gallery of Scripture Engravings and Landscape," in three volumes. Among his last productions may be mentioned the " Daily Bible Illustrations," in two series of four volumes each, designed for morning and evening reading. Other works, besides numer- ous contributions to magazines, were among his literary productions. They have, as a whole, greatly enriched the department of Biblical Literature, and been regarded as valuable helps in the explanation and illustration of the Sacred Scriptures. Their acknowledged value has secured for them a wide circulation among Bible students in England and in our own country. The religious change in the experience of Dr. Kitto, which occurred at the age of twenty-two, is referred to by him in a manner showing fhat it was deep and thorough. He speaks of it as the rising of "the day-spring from on high" upon his soul, through the grace of God. His intense and unremitting application to literary labors impaired his health, so that, when fifty years of age, he was compelled to suspend his labors, and resort to measures for recruiting his overtasked constitution. He visited Germany for this purpose, but without any benefit. He rapidly declined, and died at Caanstadt, near Stuttgardt. His wife, who was with him, has furnished a beautiful record of his last days, which shows that his end was peace. It has been the special care of the editor, in preparing this work, to verify references, to review, and, in some instances, revise the marginal notes, and to eliminate doubtful and irrelevant matter. As an humble contribution to the department of Bible history, this work is offered to Christian readers, and espe- cially to the young, with the prayer and the hope that it may not only contrib- ute something towards a popular and attractive illustration of the Historical Scriptures, but create an increased interest in the sacred book given of God for the edification, enlightenment, and spiritual benefit of all nations and all ages. Norwich, Conn., May, 1866. A. B. TABLE OF CONTENTS HISTORIC AND LITERARY INTRODUCTION. Authorship of the Bible. The several books. Their divisions. Hebrew manuscripts* The Hebrew language. Integrity of the text. Various readings. Ancient versions. Schism between the Jews and Samaritans. The Septuagint, The Septuagint and Vulgate. Modern foreign versions. Eng- lish versions. The Apocrypha. HISTORY OF THE OLD TESTAMENT. CHAPTER I. The Creation. The Bible account consistent with Geology. Opinions of distinguished writers. The Firmament. Orde* M" Crea- tion. Adam. Eve. The Seventh Day. Site of the Garden of Eden. The Tempta- tion. The Fall. Expulsion from Eden. CHAPTER II. Birth of Cain and Abel. Their Sacrifices. Murder of Abel. Genealogy of Cain. Birth of Seth. His Posterity. Great depravity of the race. Noah ordered to build the ark. Description of it. The Deluge. Mount Ararat. Noah's intoxication. Ca- naan's curse. CHAPTER III. The Tower of Babel. Description of Babylon. Language. Its origin. Different dialects. Genealogy of Noah's sons. Countries pos- sessed by their descendants. Description of Nineveh. Modern discoveries of its ruins by Botta and Layard. They con- firm the prophecies. Important results to Biblical history. The posterity of Shem. Terah, the father of Abraham. His re- moval from Ur to Haran, in Mesopotamia. His death. CHAPTER IV. The call of Abram. Description of Ur. Abram removes, with Lot and Sarai, to the land of Canaan. Description of Canaan. Fam- ine. Abram's removal to Esrypt He calls his wife his sister. Abram's'return to Ca- naan. Friendly separation of Abram and Lot. Lot chooses the plain of Sodom and Gomorrah. The Jordan. Abram settles in the plain of Mamre. He rescues Lot. Melchisedek. God's promise to Abram of a numerous posterity. Hagar. Ishmael. Change of name to Abraham. Promise of a son to Sarah. Circumcision. CHAPTER V. Sodom and Gomorrah. Abraham warned of their destruction. His petitions for their salvation. Lot warned to flee. Lot's wife. Description of the Dead Sea. Destruction of the cities of the plain. Wickedness of Lot's daughters. Abraham's removal to Gerar. His second equivocation in regard to his wife. The Talmudical story of it. Primitive longevity and vigor. Birth of Isaac. Hagar and Ishmael banished. A- nalogy of Hebrew and Druidical worship. Abraham commanded to sacrifice Isaac. His rescue. Death of Sarah. Her burial 50 58 in the cave of Machpelah. Marriage of Isaac and Rebecca. Eastern customs. Death of Abraham. Account of the Ish- maelites. 74 CHAPTER VI. Birth of Esau and Jacob. Esau sells his birth- right. Explanation of the birthright. Isaac iemoves from Beersheba to Gerar. His prosperity. Enmity of the Philistines. Wells. Isaac returns to Beersheba. lie calls his wife his sister. Description of Beersheba. Stratagem of Rebecca to ob- tain the parental benediction for Jacob. The Edomites. Jacob's departure to find a wife. His dream. Bethel. He meets Rachel at the well. He marries Leah and Rachel. Leah's sons. Birth of Joseph. Jacob's prosperity. His flight from La- ban. Laban's pursuit. Treaty of alliance. Images. List of idols mentioned in Scrip- ture. Meeting of Esau and Jacob. Tents Dinah's disgrace. The revenge of her bro- thers. Slaughter of the Shechemites. Jacob's return to Bethel. Birth of Benja- min, and death of Rachel. Jacob visits his father at Mamre. Death of Isaac. 00 CHAPTER VII. Joseph. His parti-colored coat. Eastern fab- rics. Jealousy of Joseph's brethren. His two dreams. He is sent to Shechem. De- scription of Dothan. Ishmaelites. Midian- ites. Cnravans. Account of the com- merce of Eastern nations. Joseph sold to the Ishmaelites. The plot to deceive his father. Joseph sold to Potiphar. He is made chief manager of his master's affairs. His temptation and triumph. His false accusation and imprisonment. His inter- pretation of the dreams of the cup-bearer and baker. Pharaoh's dreams. Joseph's interpretation, and his wise advice. His deliverance from prison. He is appointed chief deputy of the king. The Nile. Famine. Visit of Joseph's brethren to Egypt. Joseph discovers himself to them. His father removes to Egypt. Jacob's dying words. His death. He is buried in the cave of Machpelah. Joseph's death. His character. Ill CHAPTER VIII. Oppression of the Hebrews. Pharaoh's order to drown all their male children. Birth of Moses. He is hidden in the ark of rushes. Found, adopted, and educated by the King's daughter. He avenges his breth- ren. He flees to Midian— helps the women at the well— is invited to the house of \111 TABLE OF CONTENTS. Jethro — marries his daughter, and becomes his shepherd. The Lord appears to him in the burning bush. Commissions him to deliver his people. Aaron accompanies him to Pharaoh. Pharaoh refuses to let the people go. Moses performs a miracle before Pharaoh. The ten plagues. The borrowed jewels. The departure from Egypt The column of fire and cloud. Pursuit of the Egyptians. The Israelites pass the Red Sea. The Egyptians over- whelmed. The sons of triumph. Egypt — its learning, language, religion, and idola- try. 12 CHAPTER IX. Journey of the Israelites. They are miracu- lously supplied with quails and manna. The palm-tree. Smiting of the rock. De- feat of the Amalekites. Mount Sinai. Giving of the Decalogue. Description of the Tabernacle. The golden calf. Pun- ishment of the idolaters. Table of Hebrew months and sacred festivals. The sacri- fices explained. Aaron constituted High Priest 16 CHAPTER X. Census of the people. Plan of the Israelitish encampment. Mode of marching. Mur- murings of the people. Jealousy of Aaron and Miriam against Moses. Miriam pun- ished with leprosy. God pardons and heals her upon the prayer of Moses. Spies are sent to Canaan. The people desire to return to Egypt. Rebellion of Korah, Dathan, and Abiram. They are swallowed up by a miraculous opening of the earth. Death of Miriam at Kadesh. Second smi- ting of the rock for water. Death of Aaron. Eleazer, his son, succeeds him in the priesthood. 1& CHAPTER XL Mount Hor. Murmnrings of the people. Pun- ishment by fiery serpents. The brazen serpent. Victories over the Ammonites. Balaam is called to curse Israel, lie is met in the way by an angel. His ass speaks to him in reproof. Balaam pronounces a bless- ing instead of a curse. Israel's idolatry and punishment. Successful expedition against the Midianites. Slaughter of five kings. Balaam is slain. The Israelites draw near to Canaan. The tribes of Reu- ben and Gad settle upon the east of Jordan, with the half tribe of Manasseh. Moses appoints the division of Canaan by lot. Cities of refuge. Farewell address of Moses to the tribes. Urim and Thummim. Death of Moses. Mount Pisgah. 196 CHAPTER XII. The Conquest. Joshua succeeds Moses. Spies sent to Jericho. Rahab conceals them. Crossing of the Jordan. Joshua is informed in a vision how to take Jericho. The walls of the city fall down. Description of Jeri- cho. A chan's theft. Its consequences. Achan stoned. Capture of Ai. Sacrifices and reading of the" law upou Mount Ebal. Treaty with the Gideonites. Joshua routs and slays the confederate kings. The sun stands still. The whole country subdued. Death of Joshua and Eleazer. Burial of the bones of Joseph at Shechem. 20S CHAPTER XIII. The Hebrews become corrupted by their idola- trous neighbors. Idolatry prevails. They are subdued and become tributary to the king of Mesopotamia Othniel delivers them. Asain subdued by the MoaHtes. Ehud is their deliverer. Eighty years of rest, b. c. 1426. Story of Ruth. "War with the Canaanites. The great victory of Deb- orah and Barak ovcr^Sisera Sisera slain by Jael. the wife of Heber. Son-; of Debo- rah. Incursionsof the Midianites". Gideon, the deliverer. His great victory with three hundred men. The Israelites offer to make him king. He refuses. His death. CHAPTER XIV. Abimelech, spurious son of Gideon, murders all his brothers except Jotham. He takes the government He oppresses the people. They expel him. He is killed by a woman. Tola and Jair govern Israel. Jephtha de- feats the Ammonites. Jephtha's vow. He judges Israel six years, 1247 n. c. Idolatry and subjection of the Israelites. Birth of Samson. His strength. His capture by the Philistines. He carries off the gates of Gaza He pulls down the temple, and kills great numbers of his enemies, with himself, 1222 b. c. CHAPTER XV. Eli. His neglect of family government Pun- ishment denounced upon him. The Israel- ites defeated by the Philistines. The Ark taken. Death of Eli. Samuel judges Is- rael. Israel renounces idolatry. Great victory over the Philistines. Wickedness of Samuel's sons. The people demand a king. Jahn's estimate of the causes that led the nation to this demand. Samuel endeavors to dissuade them. Saul the first king. Chosen by lot 1110 b. c. Jahn's account of the times and the office of the judges. CHAPTER XVI. Saul's reign. His victory over the Ammonites at Jabesh Gilead. He conquers the Ama- lekites. His sinful neglect to destroy King Agag and the booty. The prophet Samuel's rebuke of Saul. Samuel anoints David to be king. Saul's mental malady. He is soothed by David's harp. "War with the Philistines. Story of David and Goliah. Glory of David. Jealousy of Saul. His efforts to kill David. Friendship of David and Jonathan. Death of Samuel. Saul's continued hostility. David's gener- ous forbearance. Saul consults the witch of Endor, and hears his doom. Israel is overcome by the Philistines. Death of Saul's three sons. Saul's suicide. CHAPTER XVII. David reigns at Hebron. His lamentation over the (leath of Saul. Wars between the houses of David and Saul. Description of Hebron. Death of Abner. The inaugura- tion of David. He takes possession of Mount Zion. He prepares to build a tem- ple to .Jehovah. His victories over East- ern nations. His fall, and his murder of Uriah. The reproof of Xathan. the prophet The rebellion of Absalom. Battle iu the forest of Ephraim. Absalom slain. Absa- lom's sepulchre. The famine. Revolt of Adonijah. The anointing of Solomon. David's last counsel to Solomon. Death of David. His burial on Mount Zion. CHAPTER XVIII. Solomon comes to the throne. 1030 b. c. His great wealth and power. Plot of Adonijah to gain the kingdom. Adonijah and Joab are put to death. Solomon marries the daughter of Pharaoh. Building of the 234 24 ti 251 TABLE OF CONTENTS. IX Temple on Mount Moriah. Description of it. Solomon's pools. His splendid palaces. Account of the commerce and revenues of his kingdom. Solomon reigns forty years. His death. CHAPTER XIX. Kehoboam succeeds Solomon. Eevolt of the ten tribes under Jeroboam. Judah and Benjamin adhere to Kehoboam. Jeroboam establishes other places of worship besides Jerusalem, and a new priesthood. Jero- boam's death, 96S it. c. He is followed by Nadab, Baasha, Zimri, and Oinri. Omri builds Samaria. He dies, 931 u. c. De- scription of Samaria. Judah, from B. c.990 to b. c. 929. Rehoboam soon falls into idolatry. He is con- quered, and Jerusalem plundered by Shi- shak, king of Kgypt. Kehoboam dies, 973 b. c. Abijah succeeds him. Asa follows, a pious and prosperous king. Israel, from b. c. 931 to B.C. 895. Ahab succeeds Omri. Evil influence of Je- zabel. Idolatry becomes prevalent. Eli- jah announces famine. He confounds the prophets of Baal, whom the people slay, and acknowledge Jehovah. Great victory of Israel over Ben Hadad. Doom of Ahab pronounced by Elijah. Ahab slain, 909 b. c. Ahaziah. Jehoram. Elisha raises the Shunamite , s son. Story of Naaman. Fam- ine. Panic and flight of the Syrian host. Jehu anointed king by Elisha. Jehoram, Ahaziah, and Jezabel slain. Destruction of the family of Ahab. Jehu destroys the temple of Baal, and roots out idolatry. CHAPTER XX. . udah, from b. c. 929 to b. c. 725. Jehoshaphat begins to reign, 929 b. c. — one of the best of the Hebrew kings. He contin- ues to root out idolatry. One million one hundred and sixty thousand men enrolled to bear arms. Judges are placed in all the principal cities. Jehoshaphat's admirable charge to them. Death of Jehoshaphat. Jehorarjj c>mes to the throne, 904 b. c. His wife was Athaliah, daughter of Jezebel. Jehoram murders his six brothers. Idol- atry again established. Judgu^nts de- nounced by Elisha. Death and disgrace of the king. Ahaziah succeeds to the throne. A bad uian. Reigns one year. Athaliah slays all her grandsons except Joash. Joash hidden in the temple. The people rise and slay Athaliah, and make Joash king. Jehoiada, the chief priest, is regent. Joash repairs the temple. His apostacy and n?urder. Amaziah reigns. Victory over the Edomites. lie is killed by con- spirators, i. c. S09. Uzziah succeeds. He is struck with leprosy. Jotham, his son, administers the government. Death of Uzziah. Death of Jotham. Ahaz on the throne. A corrupt, idolatrous monarch. Dies, 725 b. c. He is not allowed a place in the sepulchre of the kings. CHAPTER XXI. Israel, from b. o. S95 to b. c. 719. Jehu comes to the throne, b. c. S95. The coun- try east of the Jordan seized by Hazael, king of Syria. Death of Jehu. Death of Elisha. Jonah's mission. Conquest of Samaria and the whole country by Shalma- neser, king of Assyria. The principal in- habitants cniTied away captive. Judah, from b. c. 725 to b. c. 586. Hezekiah, a pious prince. Description of tho sepulchre of the kings. Hezekiah restores the true worship. The passover revived. Hezekiah subject, for a time, to Sennache- 337 6G rib, the Assyrian king. Destruction of tho Assyrian host by a "blast" from the Lord. Sickness of Hezekiah. His life prolonged in answer to prayer. His death. Manas- seh succeeds, at twelve years of a^c. lie becomes corrupt. Defeated by Ksarhad- don, taken captive, and sent to Babylon. He repents and is released. Josiah, a good king. He overturns idolatry. Killed in battle against Necho, king of Egypt. Je- hoiakim. Warning by Jeremiah. His imprisonment by Jehoiakim. Jehoiakim subdued by Nebuchadnezzar. Forty thou- sand of the people sent into captivity. Zedekiah made king. He revolts. Nebu- chadnezzar burns the temple and city, de- molishes the walls, carries off all tho sacred vessels and treasure. Zedekiah is taken, and carried in fetters to Babylon. The country depopulated. 375 CHAPTER XXII. The seventy years' captivity. Discussion of the causes of the downfall of the Hebrew nation. The divine intention in its estab- lishment not frustrated. Media the scene of the captivity. The captivity a coloniza- tion rather than a slavery. Tobit. Daniel and his three friends. Their Chaldean names. Nebuchadnezzar's dream of the image. Daniel's interpretation. Nebuch- adnezzar acknowledges God. Daniel and his friends promoted. They refuse to wor- ship the image. The fiery furnace. Other dreams. Their interpretation and accom- plishment. Nebuchadnezzar again honors Jehovah. He dies, 561 b. c. Succeeded by Evil Merodach, who is slain in battle with Cyrus. Belshazzar comes to tho throne. He profanes the sacred vessels. The handwriting upon the wall. Daniel's interpretation. Belshazzar's death, 553 b. o. Darius takes the kingdom. Daniel exalted. Jealousy. He is thrown to lions for pray- ing to the Almighty. His deliverance. Jehovah honored. Death of Darius, 551 b. c. Cyrus succeeds. Defection of Na- bonadius. Babylon taken by Cyrus. Pro- phecy of Isaiah. Cyrus acknowledges the supremacy of Jehovah. He allows the captives to return to the Holy Land. 392 CHAPTER XXIII. The Restoration. The honor of Jehovah main- tained and extended by the Captivity. Why was Judah allowed to return, and not Israel ? Remarks of Professor Jahn. W hat became of the Ten Tribes ? Remarks of Rabbi Benjamin — of Major Rawlinson. Ze- rubbabel and Joshua, with ^fty thousand of the people, return to Palestine. Daniel remains r.t the Court of Cyrus. Zerubba- bel is appointed Governor of Judea. lie receives from Cyrus the sacred vessels of the Temple. Feast of Tabernacles cele- brated at Jerusalem. An altar is built on the ruins of the Temple. The people as- semble to rebuild the Temple. Death of Cyrus. Darius Hystaspes elected King. The Temple completed, 516 b. c. The dedi- cation. The temple service re-established. Battle of Marathon, b. c. 490. Darius dies, 485 b. c. Succeeded by Xerxes, the Ahasu- erusofEzra. Artaxerxes. The rebuilding of Jerusalem stopped. Queen Vashti de- posed. Esther promoted. Ezra commis- sioned to go to Jerusalem and beautify the Temple. The plot of Hainan. The Jews saved by Esther. Nehemiah gains permis- sion to rebuild the walls. Jeremiah ap- pointed Governor of Judea. Collection and revisal of the sacred books of the Old Tesitament. The Chaldee dialect displaces TABLE OF CONTENTS. the old Hebrew. A temple built on Mount Gerizim. Eud of the Old Testament Can- on. CHAPTER XXIV. (From B. c. 420 to b. c. 163.) Inspired History is discontinued from 420 b. c. to Hifi birth. Hebrew history derived from Josephas and others. Artaxerxes succeed- ed by Xerxes on tlie Persian throne. "Wars of the Persians -with the Egyptians. The Jews faithful to the Persians. Destruction of Sidon. Overthrow of Egypt by the Per- sian King, 350 b. c. Invasion of "Persia by Alexander, 334 is. c. Fulfilment of the prophecy of Zechariah. Alexander invades Syria. He is met in his march against Jerusalem by a procession of priests. He is shown the prophecy of Daniel. Offers sacrifices. Grants the Jews free enjoy- ment of their national laws. Exemption from tribute every seventh year. Alexan- der dies at Babylon. Ptolemy. He favors the Jews. Depopulation of Babylon. The High Priest, Simon, repairs the temple and city of Jerusalem. He completes the Canon of the Old Testament. Simon dies, 291 b. c. Ptolemy Philadelphus executes the transla- tion of the Hebrew Scriptures into Greek, called the Septuagint, b. c. 27S. Influence of the Greeks. Origin of the Sadducees. Persecution of the Jews by Ptolemy Philo- pater. Destruction of the temple by Appo- lonius, 167 B. c. Idolatry established. Judas Maccabeus desires to maintain the true worship. He gains the mastery of Judea. Attempts to rebuild the temple. Wars of the Maccabees. CHAPTER XXV. Death of Judas Maccabeus. Jonathan suc- ceeds him. His treaty with the Syrian king. Siege of the citadel of Jerusalem. 404 Jonathan taken and murdered. Simon, his brother, succeeds him as leader of the Maccabees. Simon gains possession of the country. Alliance with the Romans. Cleo- patra becomes mistress of Syria. Pompey enters Syria, 65 b. c. The country becomes a Roman province. The temple taken and complete establishment of the Roman pow- er, b. c. 63. Cicero and Antonius, Roman Ccrsuls. The Jews obliged to pay large trib- ute. Hyrcanus appointed High Priest. CHAPTER XXVL Antipater, governor of Judea. The Sanhedrim suppressed. The government changed to an aristocracy. Hyrcanus and the Jewish government restored, B. c. 44, by Julius Ciesar. The temple plundered by Crassus. Liberty given to rebuild the walls of Jeru- salem. Herod made king, 40 b. c. His cruelty. He builds cities and splendid palaces. He builds heathen temples. He also rebuilds the temple of Jehovah at Jerusa- lem, b. c. 17. Birth of John the Baptist, b. c. 5. Birth of Jesus Christ Slaughter of the infants of Bethlehem. Account of Herod's ten wives. His death. Archelaus, his son, succeeds him. Account of the Herods. CHAPTER XXVII. Prophecies concerning Christ, and the Chris- tian religion. The time of His appearance. The place of His birth. The family from which He was to come. His life and char- acter. His sufferings and death. The nature of His doctrine. The extent of His Kingdom. The value of the Bible. 493 NEW TESTAMENT. CHAPTER I. The New Testament the best commentary on the Old. The promise of the Angel Ga- briel to Zacharias an Elizabeth. The an- nouncement by Gabriel to the Virgin Mary. Birth of John. Bethlehem. Birth of Christ. The joy of the aged Simeon and An„i. The wise men. The Star. Herod's bloody purpose. Flight of Joseph to Egypt. Death of Herod. Return of Joseph and Mary. Nazareth. John the Baptist. Baptism of Christ. His fast of forty days. His temptation. Testimony of John." Christ's miracle at Cana. De- scription of Cana. Cleansing the Temple. Nicodemus. Death of John. Christ in Galilee. Attempt of the people to kill him. Call of Simon and Andrew, James and John. The great draught of fishes. Healing of the demoniac, and of Peters wife's mother. Sermon on the Mount. Miracles. Pool of Bethesda. The man with the withered hand. The twelve Apostles. Tncir commission. CHAPTER II. Eaising the widow's son at Nain. Christ is anointed from the alsbaster box of precious ointment. Description of Tiberias. The stilling of the tempest. Casting out of devils. Raising of the daughter of Jairus. Feeding of the multitude. The storm upon the lake. Peter's attempt to walk upon the 499 water. Second miraculous supply of food to the multitude. Christ's transfiguration. Healing of the lunatic. Paying tribute. Teaching in the Temple. Discussions with the Scribes. Jericho. The Holy Land in the time of Christ, with map. Parable of the Prodigal. The rich man and Lazarus. Restoring sight to the blind. Christ blesses little children. Mary and Martha. Raising of Lazarus. CHAPTER III. The Passover at Jerusalem. Description of Jerusalem, with a plan. Plan of the Temple. Blind Bartimeus. Bethany. The anointing by Mary. Triumphal entry into Jerusalem. " Expulsion of the money- changers from the Temple. Treachery of Judas. The Last Supper. Gethsemane. The olive-trees. Peter's zeal. The agony. Peter's fall. His repentance. Remorse of Judas. His suicide. CHAPTER IV Jesus at the bar of Pilate. His condemnation. Mocking. Scourging. Crowning with thorns. Crucifixion. The two thieves. Description of the cross, and the mode of execution. Christ's filial affection. The darkness. Rending of the veil of the Temple. Rending of the rocks. Opening of the graves. "Piercing of the body. Christ's burial by Joseph. Closing the 520 TABLE OF CONTENTS. XI tomb. The guard. The constancy of the women. The Resurrection. Absurd false- hood of the chief priests. Christ's appear- ance to Mar)' — to Thomas— to the two dis- ciples on the way to Em mans — to the dis- ciples at the Sea of Tiberias. His final instructions to the Apostles. His ascen- sion from the Mount of Olives. The char- acter of Christ. The Christian religion. Contrast with heathenism. List of Christ's Miracles, Parables, and Discourses. 524 CHAPTER V. From the Ascension to the full establishment of Christianity. Choice of Matthias as successor to Judas. Pentecost. The gift of tongues. Preaching of Peter. Conver- sion of three thousand people. Healing of the cripple at the beautiful gate. Peter and John thrown into prison. Peter's ad- dress to the Council. They are released. The gift of the Holy Ghost. Charity of the believers. Ananias and Sapphira. Cures wrought by the Apostles. They are again cast into prison. Miraculous deliverance. They are scourged. Choice of seven dea- cons to care for the poor. Stephen. His arrest. His address to the Council. His martyrdom. Dispersion of the Christians from Jerusalem. 540 CHAPTER VI. Philip flees from Jerusalem. His successful preaching in Samaria. Philip and the Eunuch. Saul's persecution of Christians. His miraculous conversion. Cesarea. Damascus. His powerful preaching. De- scription of Joppa. Peter raises Tabitha. His vision and commission to the Gentiles. Cornelius. Peter's discourse. Descent of the Holy Ghost. Conversion and baptism of many. 549 CHAPTER YII. Persecutions under Herod Agrippa. He kills James. Peter imprisoned. He is deliver- ed by an angel in answer to prayer. Death of Herod. Barnabas and Saul journey to Cyprus, Paphos. Perga, and Antioch, preaching. Paul's discourse in the syna- gogue in Pisidia. He is invited to preach again. He proclaims the doctrine that salvation is for the Gentiles as well as the Jews, lie is driven out of the city. He heals the cripple at Lystra. The people wish to offer sacrifice to him and Barna- bas. They forbid it. Paul stoned. 557 CHAPTER VIII. Paul and Silas make an extensive tour to preach. The cure of the demoniac. Paul and Silas are taken before the magistrates. Imprisoned, with their feet in the stocks. They pray and sing. The prison doors opened by an earthquake. Conversion and baptism of the jailer and his family. Paul at Athens. idolatry of the citv. Paul brought before the Areopagus. His discourse to the judges. Conversion of some persons of rank. Paul at Corinth. Description of the city. Paul writes his second letter to the Thessalonians. Paul's success at Ephesus. Geographical no- tices. 5&4 CHAPTER IX. Description of Ephesus. Disorderly conduct of some Christians at Corinth. Paul writes them a letter, lie also writes to the Gala- tians. Jealousy of Demetrius, the silver- smith. Paul's deliverance from the fury of the people. He leaves Timothy in care of the Church at Ephesus. He travels through Macedonia and Aehaia. He preaches at Troas. The death of Eu- tychus. Paul restores him to life. Geo- graphical notices. Paul's farewell dis- course to the Ephesian Christians. He visits Tyre. Here he is advised not to go to Jerusalem. Paul at Jerusalem. He is falsely accused and dragged from the Tem- ple. He is allowed by the Roman com- mander to speak. He gives a detailed ac- count of his conversion. They dare not scourge him, because he is a Roman citi- zen. The plot to kill him. It is frus- trated. He is sent under guard to Cesarea to Felix, the Roman governor. 576 CHAPTER X. Paul brought before Felix. Tertullus speaks against him. Paul's defence. Paul speaks again before Felix and his wife, Drusilla, upon the doctrines of Christianity. Paul is kept in prison two years. He is brought before the new governor, Festus. Paul's defence and appeal to CiPsar. His speech before Agrippa. He is sent to Rome. The shipwreck. Paul's vision. He foretells the safety of all. They land on the island of Malta. Account of Malta. Paul heals the governor's father. Per- forms many other cures. They remain three months on the island. Arrival at Rome. Paul assembles the rulers and ex- plains the doctrines of the Gospel. He preaches two years at Rome. Description of the city. Colossse. Paul writes his let- ter to Philemon — also an epistle to the Ephesians— also to the Colossians. James writes his epistle. Martyrdom of James. His character. 585 CHAPTER XL After two years Paul is set at liberty. He writes his epistle to the Hebrews. He, with Timothy, travels into Spain. Visits Sicily and Greece. Peter also set at lib- erty. He visits Africa, Sicily, Italy, and Britain, preaching the Christian faith. He returns to Rome. Nero orders the perse- cution of the Jews. Burning of Rome by Nero. Paul returns to Rome. Paul and Peter instruct the Jews in the synagogues. They are thrown into prison. Here Peter writes his second epistle, and Paul ) is sec- ond letter to Timothy. They are con- demned to death. Peter is crucified. Paul beheaded. Sketch of their charac- ters. 59$ CHAPTER XII. St. Andrew. He was crucified. He taught the people while hanging upon the cross. St. James the Great. " Beheaded. St. John the Evangelist. Thrown into a caldron of boil- ing oil. Miraculously saved. Banished to Patmos, where he wrote the Revelation. Account of Patmos. St. John, the only Apostle who escaped a violent death. St. Philip, crucified. St. Bartholomew, beaten and crucified. St. Matthew. Thought to have been slain with a halberd. St. Thomas. Pierced with a lance. St. Simon the Zealot. Crucified. StJude. Cruelly nut to death. St. Matthias. Stoned. St. Mark. Bound and dragged through rough places till he died. St. Luke. Hung on an olive-tree. St Barnabas. Stoned. "Timo- thy. Beaten to death. Titus — died a natural death. John Mark — died at Ephe- sus. Clement — death unknown. 604 Xll TABLE OF CONTENTS. CHAPTER XIII. The seven churches of Asia. Ephesus. Smyrna. Pergamoa. Tliyatira. Sardis. Philadel- phia. Laodicea". 620 CHAPTER XIV. Account of the final destruction of Jerusalem by the Romans, a. d. 70, as foretold by our Saviour. Joseph us an eye-witness. Pro- phecies in regard to it. " Their agreement with tar's. Prodigies that preceded the destruction of the city. Revolt under Eleazer. Massacre of "Jews at Cesarea. Siege of Jerusalem by Cestius. His re- pulse. Vespasian assumes command of the Roman army. Great slaughter of the Jews. Siege of Jotapata. Its reduction. Capture of Joseph, the Jewish general. He foretells the elevation of Vespasian to the Empire. Death of Xero. Civil war at Rome. Vespasian proclaimed Emperor by the army. He sets Joseph at liberty. He commits the war against the Jews to his son Titus. Titus lays siege to Jerusa- lem. Joseph in vain entreats the Jews to surrender. Famine in the city. Plunder and burning of the temple. Conquest of the city, and its complete destruction. G31 NOTE BY THE PUBLISHER. In order to prevent any misapprehension which may arise, from finding in the community an occasional copy of a book similar to this, it is due to the public to state, that an edition of Dr. Kitto's work, with some alterations and additions, has been issued by an American publisher, as his own, omitting the original author's name entirely. Not having, however, a literary reputation sufficient to give it character, it did not attain that wide circulation which its intrinsic value warrants. The present publisher has, therefore, restored Dr. Kitto's name, and offers the work in a much more attractive form. HENRY BILL. AN ILLUSTRATED HISTORY OF THE HOLY BIBLE. HISTORIC AND LITERARY INTRODUCTION. The Bible of the Christians is, without exception, the most remarkable work now in existence. In the libraries of the learned, there are frequently seen books of an extraoidmary antiquity, and curious and interesting from the nature of their contents ; but none approach the Bible, taken in its complete sense, in point of age, while cer- tainly no production whatever has any pretension to rival it in the dignity of compo- sition, or the important nature of the subjects treated of in its pages. The word Bible is of Greek origin, and, in signifying simply The Book, is expressive of its su- periority over all other literary productions. The origin and nature of this every way singular work, how it was preserved during the most remote ages, and how it became known to the modern world in its present shape, form a highly interesting chapter of literary history. The Bible comprehends the entire foundation of the religious belief of the Jewh and Christians, and is divided into two distinct portions, entitled the Old and New Testaments, the former being that which is esteemed by the Jewish nation, but both being essential in forming the faith of the Christian. The Old Testament is the largest department of the work, and appears a collection of detached histories, moral essays, and pious poetical effusions, all placed together in the order of time, or, as they may serve, for the purpose of mutual illustration. On taking a glance at the contents, the principal subject of narration seems the history of the Jews, com- mencing with an account of the creation of the world, and tracing their history gen- ealogically, through a series of striking vicissitudes and changes of situation. But when we examine the narrative minutely, it is found that there is another meaning than that of mere historical elucidation. It is perceived that the whole train of events recorded, the whole of those lofty, impassioned strains of poetry which dis- tinguish the volume, are precursory and prophetic of a great change, which, at a fu- ture period, was to be wrought on the moral properties and fate of mankind, by the coming to the earth of a Messiah. The authorship of the Old Testament has been universally ascribed, by both Jews and Christians, to God himself, though not by direct composition, but by spiritually influencing the minds of certain sages to accomplish the work, or, in ordinary phrase- ology, by inspiring or endowing them with a perfect knowledge of the transactions to be recorded and predicted, in a way suitable to the great end in view. The Bible is hence usually termed the Sacred Scriptures. The periods when the act of writing all or most part of the Scriptures took place, as well as most of the names of those who were instrumental in forming the work, have been ascertained with surprising accuracy, both from written evidence in the narratives themselves, and from the well- preserved traditions of the Jews. At whatever time the different books were writ- ten, they were not collected and put into d connected form till long after their im- mediate authors were deceased; and their present arrangement, as we shall after- ward fully explain, is of comparatively modern date. According to the order in which the books of the Old Testament now stand, those of an historical nature are appropriately placed at the beginning. The first five books, having a chain of connexion throughout, are Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, and Deuteronomy. These are styled the Pentateuch, such being the Greek com- 6 INTRODUCTION TO THE pound for five books. They are likewise entitled the Books of Moses, from the belief that that enlightened Jewish leader composed them. The Jcavs, or Hebrews, take the name of the sacred books from the first word with which each begins ; but the Greeks, whom our translators generally follow, take the names from the subject-matter of them. Thus, the first book is called by the Hebrews, Bereshith, which signifies " In the beginning," these being the first words : but the Greeks call it Genesis, which signifies " production," because the cre- ation of the world is the first thing of which it gives an account. It likewise con- tains an account of the increase of mankind ; of their corruption of manners, and its cause ; of their punishment by the deluge (an event which, by scientific investigation and historical research, is placed beyond a doubt) ; of the origin of the Jewish peo- ple from Abraham; of the manner in which God was pleased to have them gov- erned ; and, particularly, of the nature of the special superintendence vouchsafed to the Jewish nation by the Creator. This comprehensive narrative reaches from the creation of the world till the death of Joseph, or a period of 2,369 years. In another part of the Scriptures, reference is made to the Book of Jasher, and it is believed that Genesis is there meant ; for Jasher signifies " the Just," and, according to St. Je- rome, a learned Christian writer, the name of the Book of the Just, or the Authen- tic Book, was applied to it from its containing the history of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob. Exodus, the title of the second book of Moses, signifies in the Greek, " The going out," and was applied from the account which it gives of the Israelites going out of Egypt. In it are related the cruel Egyptian slavery under which the Jews groaned ; their delivery by flight and passage through the Red sea; the history of the estab- lishment of "their very peculiar law, and many remarkable transactions ; concluding with the building of the tabernacle, or place appropriated to the service of the Di- vinity. This book comprises the history of 145 years, from the death of Joseph till the building of the tabernacle. The Hebrews call it Veile Shemoth, that is, in En- glish, " These are the names," which are the words with which it begins. The third book of Moses is called Leviticus, because it contains the laws which God commanded should be observed by those of the tribe of Levi who ministered at the al- tar. It treats at large of all the functions of the Levites ; of the ceremonial of religion ; of the different sorts of sacrifices ; of the distinction of clean and unclean beasts ; of the different festivals; and of the year of jubilee, or continued holyday. It like- wise presents us with an account of what happened to the Jews during the space of one month and a half; that is, from the time the tabernacle was erected, which was the first day of the first month of the second year after the Israelites came out of Egypt, till the second month of the same year, when God commanded the people to be numbered. The Hebrews called this "book Vayicre, that is, "And he called," these being the first words ; they call it also The Law of the Priests. In the fourth book, which we call Numbers, Moses numbers the Israelites, and that, too, in the beginning of the book, which shows whence it had its name. The Hebrews call it Vayedavber, that is, " And he spake." This book contains the history of all that passed from the second month of the second year after the Israelites came out of Egypt, till the beginning of the eleventh month of the fortieth year; that is, it contains the history of thirty-nine years, or thereabouts. In it we have also the history of the prophet Balaam, whom "the king of the Midianites brought to curse the people of God, and who, on the contrary, heaped blessings upon the Israel- ites, and foretold the coming of the Messiah. It particularly mentions, also, the two-and-forty encampments of the Israelites in the wilderness. The fifth book is called Deuteronomy, a Greek term which signifies, "The second law," or, rather, " The repetition of the law," because it does not contain a law dif- ferent from that which was given on Mount Sinai ; but it repeats the same law, lor the sake of the children of those who had received it there, and were since dead in the wilderness. The Hebrews call it Elle-haddebarim, that is, "These are the words." Deuteronomy begins with a short account of what had passed in the wil- derness, and then Moses repeats what he had before commanded in Exodus, Leviti- cus, and Numbers, and admonishes the people to be faithful in keeping the com- mandments of God. After this, he relates what had happened from the beginning of the eleventh month, to the seventh day of the twelfth month of the same year, which was the fortieth after their leaving Egypt. The discourse which is at the begin- HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 7 ning of this book was made to the people by Moses, on the first day of the eleventh month. According to Josephus, he died on the first day of the twelfth ; and the Israelites, as the Scriptures say, mourned for him in the plains of Moab thirty days, and, consequently, during the whole of the twelfth month. The Jews called the Pentateuch " The Law," without doubt because the law of God which Moses received on Mount Sinai is the principal part of it; and it is as little to be doubted whether that great man was the writer of the Pentateuch. This is expressly declared both in Exodus and Deuteronomy. But as an account of the death of Moses is given in the last eight verses of this book, it is therefore thought that these verses were added either by Joshua or Ezra. The opinion of Josephus concerning them is very singular ; he pretends that Moses, finding his death approach- ing, and being willing to prevent an error into which the veneration the people had for him might cause the Jews to fall, wrote this account himself, without which the Jews would probably have supposed that God had taken him away, like Enoch. Alter the death of Moses, Joshua, by the order of the Divine Being, took upon himself the conducting of the Hebrew people, and succeeded Moses, to whom he had been a faithful servant, and by whom he had been instructed in what he ought to do. It is uncertain whether the book which contains the history of this successor of Moses be called Joshua, from the subject of it, or from his having been the wri- ter of it. But it is certain that it contains an account of what passed from the death of Moses to that of Joshua. Nevertheless, there are several things in it which did not come to pass till after the death of this great man, and which, consequently, could not have been written by him. The common opinion as to the length of time it contains is, that Joshua discharged his office only for seventeen years, and that, therefore, this book contains no more than the history of that number of years. After the death of Joshua, the Israelites were governed by magistrates, who ruled under the general designation of Judges; and the book which contains the history of these rulers is called, The Book of Judges. This history begins with the death of Joshua, and reaches to that of Samson. We here see "the people of God often en- slaved in punishment of their crimes, and often wonderfully delivered from slavery. Toward the end of it, we have some instances of this people's inclination to idolatry, and of the corruption of their manners, even before they had been brought into slavery. Such are the histories of Micah, and of the Benjamites who abused the Levite's wife. This book contains the history of three hundred and seventy years. During the time of the government of the Judges, there was a great famine m the land of Israel, which forced Elimelech, a native of Bethlehem, to retire into the land of Moab, with his wife Naomi, and two children. Elimelech died there, as also his two sons, who had married two Moabitish women, one of whom Avas named Ruth. Naomi, after the death of her husband and her children, returned to Bethle- hem, accompanied by Ruth, her daughter-in-law, who was there married to Boaz, Elimelech's near relation, and the heir to his estate. The book which contains this history, is called, The Book of Ruth. The beginning of it shows that it happened in the time of the Judges, but under which of them is not certainly known; some place it in the time of Shamgar, or of Deborah. As to the writer of this book, some think that the books of Judges and Ruth were both written by Samuel ; others at- tribute them to Hezekiah, and others to Ezra. The Jews place the book of Ruth among the five books which they usually read on all the festivals in the year. These five books are, the Song of Songs, Ruth, the Lamentations of Jeremiah, Ecclesiastes, and the book of Esther. In the Hebrew bibles they are printed or written apart by themselves, and are bound up together. The four books following Ruth are called by the Greeks, and also in some Latin bibles, The History of the Reigns. Others call them all, The Books of Kings, because they give an account of the establishment of the monarchy, and of the suc- cession of the kings, who reigned over the Avhole kingdom at first, and over the king- doms of Judah and Israel after its division. At the beginning of these books is given the history of the prophet Samuel, which gives light to that of The Kings. The Jews call the first two of these books, The Books of Samuel : perhaps because they contain the history of the two kings, who were both anointed by Samuel; and be- cause what is said of Saul in the first, and of David in the second, proves the truth oi Samuel's prophecies. They give the name of The Books of Kings only to the other 8 INTRODUCTION TO THE two, which, in the Latin and French bibles, are called the Third and Fourth Books of Kings. The First Book of Kings, or the First of Samuel, contains the history of the high- priest Eli, of Samuel, and of Saul. As the first year of Eli's high-priesthood falls on the year of the world 2848, and the death of Saul in 2949, the history of this book must comprehend the space of one hundred and one years. The Second contains the reign of David, which is the history of about forty years. It is commonly believed that Samuel, Nathan, and Gad, were the writers of these two books, and, indeed, they are called, in the end of the first book of Chronicles, David's historians. The Third, or, according to the Hebrews, the First Book of Kings, begins with a relation of the manner in which Solomon came to the throne, and contains the whole of his reign. After that, an account follows of the division of the kingdom, and the history of four kings of Judah and eight kings of Israel. All these reigns, including that of Solomon, which occupies the first forty years, comprise the space of one hun- dred and twenty-six years. The Fourth of these books contains the history of sixteen kings of Judah, and twelve kings of Israel. It likewise gives an account of the prophets who lived dur- ing this time. It is quite uncertain who were the writers of the last two mentioned books. They are by some attributed to Jeremiah or Ezra, but no very convincing proofs have been adduced in support of this opinion. It is evident, indeed, that these books form a varied collection of several particular histories. The name of Paralipomena, which in Greek signifies the " history of things omit- ted," is given to the two books which follow those of The Kings. These form, in fact, a supplement, containing what had been omitted in the Pentateuch, and the books of Joshua, Judges, and Kings, or rather they contain a fuller description of some things which had been therein only briefly related. Some give them the name of Chronicles, because they are very exact in mentioning the time when every trans- action happened. We divide them into two books, as do also the Jews, who call them Dibere Hayanim, that is, an "historical journal," the matters of which they treat having been taken from the journals of the kings. In the original language, however, the word days often signifies the year ; and, in this sense, we may under- stand the term to signify properly "annals." The generally-received opinion is, that Ezra was the writer of these. In the first book, he begins with a succinct historical abridgment, from the creation of Adam to the return of the Jews from their cap- tivity ; and then he resumes the history of David, and carries it on to the consecra- tion of Solomon, that is, down to the year before Christ 1015. The history contained in the second book reaches down to the year before Christ 536, when, upon the expi- ration of the seventy years of captivity, Cyrus gave the Jews leave to return to their own country. Ezra wrote the history of the return of the Jews from the captivity of Babylon into Judea. It is the history of about eighty-two years, from the year of the world 3468, when Cyrus became master of the eastern empire, by the death of his father, Cam- byses, in Persia, and his father-in-law, Cyaxares, in Media, to the year 3550, which was the twentieth year of the reign of Artaxerxes, suruamed Longimanus. This book bears the name of Ezra, who was the writer of it. The next book is a continuation of that of Ezra, and therefore it is by some called the Second Book of Ezra. It was Nehemiah, however, whose name it also bears, who wrote it, as is said, by the advice of Ezra. It contains the account of the re- establishment of Jerusalem, and the temple, and the worship of God. It is the his- tory of about thirty-one years; that is to say, from the twentieth year of the reign of Artaxerxes Longimanus, to the reign of Darius Nothus, his son, which began in the year of the world 3581. After this general history of the Jews, follow two histories of particular persons, viz., Esther and Job. The first contains the account of a miraculous deliverance of the Jews, which was accomplished by means of the heroine named Esther. The Scrip- ture says it happened under the reign of Ahasuerus, king of Persia ; but as there have been several Persian kings of that name, it is not exactly known in which reign it is to be dated. Dr. Lightfoot thinks it was that Artaxerxes who hindered the build- ing of the temple, and who, in the book of Ezra, is called also Ahasuerus, after his great grandfather the king of the Medes. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 9 The history of Job, which is next in order, is not only a narration of his actions, bu» contains also the entire discourses which this pious man had with his wife and his friends, and is, indeed, one of the most eloquent books in the Holy Scriptures. It is generally conjectured that Moses was the writer or compiler of this book ; but this in very uncertain. Next to the historical books of Scripture follow those of a moral nature. The first of these is the Book of Psalms, which is likewise in some measure historical; for they recite the miracles which God had wrought, and contain, as it were, an abridg- ment of all that had been done for the Israelites, and that had happened to them. The Hebrews call them " the Book of Praises," by which they mean, " of the Praises of God." The word psalm is Greek, and properly signifies the sound of a stringed instrument of music. The Hebrews sung the Psalms with different instruments. We make but one book of them all, but the Hebrews divide them into five parts, which all end with the words Amen, Amen. Though the Psalms bear the name of David, yet they were not all composed by him ; some of them are more ancient, and others are of a later date than his time; some of them being ascribed to Moses, Samuel, and Ezra. Speaking of the dedication of the second temple, Prideaux says, " In this dedication, the 146th, the 147th, and the 148th psalms seem to have been sung ; for in the Septuagint versions they are styled the Psalms of Haggai and Zechariah, as if they had been composed by them for this occasion ; and this, no doubt, was from some ancient tradition : but, in the original Hebrew, these Psalms have no such title prefixed to them, neither have they any other to contradict it." It is not probable, however, that all those whose names they bear were the true authors of them ; it is more likely that these are only the names of those to whom they were first given to sing. After the Psalms are the Proverbs, which are a collection of moral sentences, of which Solomon was the writer. This name is given them by the Greeks, but the Hebrews call them Myste, that is, parables, or comparisons ; and the word may also signify sentences, or maxims. It is a collection of divine precepts, proper for every age, and every condition of life. The book which follows is also a moral one, and was likewise composed by Solo- mon. The Greeks call it Ecclesiastes, which answers to the name of Koheleth, which it bears in the Hebrew. Both these words signify, in our language, a preacher, or one who speaks in an assembly. In this book is given an admirable picture of the vanity of the world. Among the moral books is also reckoned the Song of Songs; that is to say, accord- ing to the Hebrew manner of speaking, a most excellent song. This book has noth- ing of morality in it, and therefore, it is thought the only reason of its being placed here is because it was a third work of Solomon ; for there is not one moral or religious maxim in it, and the name of God is not so much as mentioned in it, except once in the original Hebrew, where it is used adjectively. It is an Epithalamium, or nup- tial song, wherein, by the expressions of love between a bridegroom and his bride, are set forth and illustrated the mutual affections that pass between Ged and a dis- tinguished remnant of mankind. It is a sort of dramatic poem or pastoral : the bride and bridegroom, for the more lively representation of humility and innocence, are brought in as a shepb' -J and shepherdess. We learn from St. Jerome, that the Jews were not permitted to read this song, or the chapters at the beginning of the book of Genesis, till they were thirty years old. In regard to the prophets, it may be observed, that all the Old Testament is con- sidered to be in substance one continued prophecy of the coming of Jesus Christ ; so that all the books of which it consists are understood to be in some sense prophetical. But this name is more especially given to those books which were written by persons; who had a clearer knowledge of futurity, who forewarned both kings and people of what would happen to thern, and who at the same time pointed out what the Mes- siah was to do, whom they who are acknowledged to have been prophets had always in view : and this is what ought most especially to be taken notice of in their writings. The prophecies bear the name of those to whom they belong. Some learned men are of opinion that the prophets made abridgments of the discourses which they had written, and fixed them up at the gates of the temple, that all the people might read them ; and that after this the ministers of the temple might take them away, and place them among the archives, which is the reason why we have not the prophecies 10 INTRODUCTION TO THE in the order in which they were written. But the interpreters of Scripture have long since labored to restore that order, according to the course of their history. The works of the prophets are divided into two parts, the first of which contains the greater, and the second, the lesser prophets. This distinction, of course, does not apply at all to the persons of the prophets, but only to the bulk of their works. The greater prophets are Isaiah, Ezekiel, Daniel, and Jeremiah. The Lamentations of Jeremiah make a separate book by themselves, containing that prophet's descriptions of the destruction of the city of Jerusalem, and of the captivity of the people. The lesser prophets are Hosea, Joel, Amos, Obadiah, Jonah, Micai, Nahum, Habakkuk, Zephaniah, Haggai, Zechariah, and Malachi. They were formerly contained in one single volume, which the Hebrews call Thereaser, which means twelve, or the book of The tAvelve. The dates of many of the prophecies are uncertain, but the earliest of them was in the days of Uzziah, king of Judah, and Jeroboam the Second, his contemporary, king of Israel, about 200 years before the captivity, and not long after Joash had slain Zechariah, the son of Jehoiada, in the court of the temple. Hosea was the first of the writing prophets, and Joel, Amos, and Obadiah, published their prophecies about the same time. Isaiah began his remarkable prophecies a short time afterward, but his book is placed first, because it is the largest of them all, and is more explicit relative to the advent of Christ than any of the others. The language of this eminent writer is ex- ceedingly sublime and affecting; so much so, that it has never been equalled by any profane poet either in ancient or modern times. It is impossible to read some of the chapters without being struck by the force of the prophetic allusions to the character and sufferings of the Messiah ; and in consequence of these prevailing characteristics, the author is ordinarily styled the evangelical prophet, and by so.ie of the ancients, a fifth evangelist. The Jews say that the spirit of prophecy continued forty years during the second temple ; and Malachi they call the seal of prophecy, because in him the succession or series of prophets broke off, and came to a period. The book of Malachi, therefore, appropriately closes the sacred record of the Old Testament. The second and lesser division of the Bible relates entirely to the Christian re- ligion, or the fulfilment of that which was predicted in the preceding and more ancient department of the work. This division of the sacred Scriptures is generally styled the New Testament; and that portion of it which relates to the history of the life of Christ is called the Gospel, and by some the Evangel, both these words having the same meaning, and implying good news, or glad tidings, from the circumstance that the narratives contain an account of things which are to benefit mankind. The NeAv Testament, like the Old, is a compilation of books written by different in- spired individuals, and all put together in a manner so as to exhibit a regular account of the birth, actions, and death of Christ — the doctrines he promulgated — and the prophe- cies regarding the future state of the church which he founded. The historical books are the four gospels and the Acts of the Apostles, all these being of the character of narratives of events; the doctrinal are the Epistles of St. Paul, and some others; the prophetic book is the last, and this is called the Revelation or Apocalypse of St. John, having been written by that apostle while he was in the island of Patmos. The writers of the books of the New Testament are geiu **Uy well known, each having the name of the author affixtd to it, with the exception of the Acts of the Apostles, which, it is presumed, was compiled by St. Luke. It was. long disputed whether St. Paul was the writer of the Epistle to the Hebrews ; Tertullian, an an- cient Christian writer, and some others, attribute it to St. Barnabas ; others to Si Luke ; and others to St. Clement; while some think, with greater probability, that St. Paul dictated it, and St. Luke acted as the writer; and that the reason why the name of the true author was not affixed to it, was because he was disliked by the Jews. The four evangelists, or writers of the leading narratives, are St. Matthew, St. Mark, St. Luke, and St. John ; these having been companions to Christ during his ministrations, and, therefore, personally acquainted with his life and character. Each of the four books is principally a repetition of the history of Christ, yet they ali possess a difference of style, and each mentions some circumstances omitted by the others, so that the whole is essential in making up a complete life of the Messiah. These distinctions in the tone of the narratives and other peculiarities, are always \M>nsidered as strong circumstantial evidence in proof of their authenticity, and of HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. Ji i.here having been no collusion on the part of the writers. But, indeed, the events they record are detailed in so exceedingly simple and unaffected a manner, that it is impossible to suppose that they were written with a view to impose on the credulity of mankind. The veracity and actual belief of the evangelists themselves are placed beyond a doubt. The first book is written by Matthew, who was by birth a Jew, and exercised the profession of a publican— that is, a collector of the public tax or assessment imposed upon the Jewish people by their conquerors, the Romans. Matthew, who was also called by the name of Levi, was one of the twelve apostles of Christ, and he is said to have written his narrative about eight years after the departure of his Master from the earth. Many of the ancients say "that he wrote it in the Hebrew or Syriac language; but Dr. Whitby is clearly of opinion that this tradition is entirely void of foundation, and that it was doubtles's written in Greek, as the other parts of the New Testament were. Yet it is probable that there might be an edition of it in Hebrew, published by St. Matthew himself, at the same time that he wrote it in Greek ; the former for the Jews, the latter for the Gentiles, when he left Judea to preach among the heathen. In regard to Mark, the writer of the second Gospel, it may be observed, that although Mark, or Marcus, was a Roman name, and a very common one, yet we have no reason to think but that he was by birth a Jew ; but as Saul, when he Avent among the Gentiles, took the Roman name of Paul, so did this evangelist take that of Mark, his Jewish name, perhaps, being Mardacai, as Grotius observes. Jerome and Tertullian say that he was a disciple of the Apostle Teter, and his interpreter or amanuensis. We have every reason to believe that both he and Luke were of the number of the seventy disciples who companied all along with the apostles, and who had a commission like to theirs: so that it is no diminution at all to the validity or value of this Gospel that Mark was not one of the twelve, as Matthew and John were. Jerome says, that after the writing of this Gospel he went into Egypt, and was the first that preached the gospel at Alexandria, where he founded a church, to which he was a great example of holy living. The Gospel of St. Mark is much shorter than that of Matthew, not giving so full an account of Christ's sermons as that did, but insisting chiefly on his miracles ; and in regard to these, also, it is very much a repetition of what we have in Matthew, many remarkable circumstances being added to the stories there related, but not many new matters. There is a tradition that it was first written in Latin, because it was written at Rome ; but this is generally thought to be without foundation, and that it was written in Greek, as was St. Paul's Epistle to the Romans, the Greek being the more universal language. Luke, the name of the third evangelist, is considered by some to be a contraction of Lucilius, and it is said by St. Jerome to have been borne at Antioch. Some think that he was the only one of all the penmen of the Scriptures that was not of the Israelites ; that he was a Jewish proselyte, and was converted to Christianity by the ministry of St. Paul at Antioch, and after his coming into Macedonia he was his con- stant companion. He had employed himself in the study and practice of physic, and hence Paul calls him " Luke, the beloved physician." It is more than probable, however, as is testified both by Origen and Epiphanius, that he was one of the seventy disciples, and a follower of Christ when he was upon earth ; and if so, he was most likely to be a native Israelite. Luke most probably wrote his Gospel at Rome, a little before he wrote his history of the " Acts of the Apostles," which is a continuation of the former, when he was there with Paul, while he was a prisoner, and " preaching in his own hired house," with which the history of the Acts con- cludes. In this case, it must have been written about twenty-seven years after Christ's departure, and about the fourth year of the reign of Nero. Jerome says that St. Luke died when he was eighty-four years of age, and that he was never married. Dr. Cave observes that " his way and manner of writing are accurate and exact, his style polite and elegant, sublime and lofty, yet perspicuous ; and that he expresses himself in a vein of purer Greek than is to be found in the other writers of this holy history." Thus he relates several things more copiously than the other evangelists, and thus he especially treats of those things which relate to the priestly office of Christ. The fourth evangelist, John, was one of the sons of Zebedee, a fisherman of Gali- . 2 INTRODUCTION TO THE lee, ihe brother of James, one of the twelve apostles, and distinguished by the honorable appellation, " that disciple whom Jesus loved." The ancients tell us that John lived the longest of all the apostles, and was the only one of them that died a natural death, all the rest suffering martyrdom ; and some of them say that he wrote this Gospel " Ephesus, at the request of the ministers of the several churches of Asia, in order to combat certain heresies. It seems most probable that he composed it before his banishment into the isle of Patmos, for there he wrote his Revelation, the close of which seems designed for the closing up of the canon of scripture ; in which case this Gospel could not have been written after. It is clear that he wrote the last of the four Evangelists, and, comparing his Gospel with theirs, we may observe that he relates what they had omitted, and thus gleans up what they had passed by. These four Gospels were early and constantly received by the primitive church, and read in Christian assemblies, as appears by the writings of Justin Martyr and Irenceus, who lived little more than one hundred years after the origin of Christianity ; they declared that neither more nor fewer than four were received by the church. A Harmony of these four Evangelists was compiled by Tatian about that time, which he called " The Gospel out of the four." In the third and fourth centuries there were gospels forged by divers sects, and published, one under the name of St. Peter, another of St. Thomas, another of St. Philip, &c. But they were never owned by the church, nor was any credit given to them, as the learned Dr. Whitby shows. And he gives this good reason why we should adhere to these written records : " be- cause," says he, " whatever the pretences of tradition may be, it is not sufficient to preserve things with any certainty, as appears by experience. For whereas Christ said and did many memorable things which were not written, tradition has not pre- served any one of them to us, but all is lost except what was written; and that, there- fore, is what we must abide by-" After the Gospel, or history of Jesus Christ, follows the history of what passed after his ascension, and was transacted by the apostles. The book, therefore, which contains this history is called " The Acts of the Apostles." It is a history of the rising church for about the space of thirty years. It was written, as has been already observed, by St. Luke the Evangelist, when he was with St. Paul at Rome, during his imprisonment there. In the end of the book he mentions particularly his being with Paul in his dangerous voyage to Rome, when he was carried thither a prisoner ; and it is evident that he was with him when, from his prison there, Paul wrote his epistles to the Colossians and Philemon; for in both of these he is named by him. Next to this come the Epistles of St. Paul, which are fourteen in number: one to the Romans, two to the Corinthians, one to the Galatians, one to the Ephesians, one to the Philippians, one to the Colossians, two to the Thessalonians, two to Timothy, one to Titus, one to Philemon, and one to the Hebrews. They contain that part of ecclesiastical history which immediately follows after what is related in the Acts. The principal matter contained in them is the establishment or confirmation of the doctrine which Jesus Christ taught his disciples. According as the difficulties which raised disputes among 'the Christians, or the heresies which sprung up in the church from the first age of it, required, St. Paul in these epistles clears up and proves all matters of faith, and gives excellent rules for morality. His epistles may be con- sidered as a commentary on, or an interpretation of, the four books of the Gospel.* The chronological succession of the Epistles, according to Prof. Lange, is as follows: 1. To the Thessalonians. 2. To the Galatians. 3. To the Corinthians. 4. To the * In respect to the leading design of the apostolical epistles, Dr. Bloomfield remarks : " That though the essential doctrines and precepts of Christianity are to he found in the Gospels, yet a fuller and clearer statement of them wa3 necessary, considering the altered state of things to that which existed during our Saviour's life-timo ; and especially after the uprise of serious corruptions and dangerous errors, originating partly in misconception, hut which required to he checked by a more explicit, and yet equally authoritative revelation. Now this was done by St. Paul and the other writers of the Epistles. Consequently, though they were written for the immediate purpose of refuting heresies, arising from a mixture of Christianity with Judaism or Gentilism, of repressing corruptions, reforming abuses, and composing schisms and differ- ences, yet, in poiut of fact, they became, and were avowedly, commentaries on the doctrines of Christ, as delivered in the Gospels; and though originally intended for particular Christian societies, yet are adapted to the instruction of Christians in all ages." Principles are involved, which are our surest guides on all points relating to church liberty, especially as to abstaining from things innocent in themselves, if likely w give offence to scrupulous brethren. — Ed. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 13 Romans. 5. The epistle of James. 6. To the Ephesians. 7. To the Philippians. 8. To the Hebrews. 9. The first epistle of Peter. 10. The first to Timothy. 11. To Titus. 12. The second to Timothy. 13. The second of Peter. 14. The epistle of Jude. 15. The three epistles of John. As it respects the date of these apostolic epistles, it is very generally agreed that they were written between the years A. D. 54 and 68, excepting those of John, written probably between the years 96 and 100.* Ii has sometimes occurred to the minds of many well-disposed persons, that it would have been better for Christianity had there never been any other record of its origin and doctrines than the writings of Matthew, Mark, Luke, and John. But, however plain and satisfactory the histories of these evangelists may be, and how- evei little they admit of controversy, it has to be remembered that it required the strong arguments and illustrations brought forward in the epistles, by Paul and others, to combat the sophistry of the Greeks, and the self-sufficient philosophies of other races of man. Paul, the chief of the epistle writers, who became a Christian by conversion after Christ had departed from the earth, is the great champion of the faith, and exposes, in strong and dauntless language, the hidden depravities of the human heart ; so that where the affecting discourses and sufferings of the Messiah fail to convert and convince, the reasoning of this great writer is calculated to silence and subdue those who stubbornly resist the benignant influence of the Christian faith. The first division of the Scriptures, as already mentioned, is into the Old and New Testaments. The New belongs to the Christians, but the Old was received from the lews ; and it is from them, therefore, that we must learn what the number of the books of it originally was, and everything else relating to this most ancient and in- teresting production. The celebrated Jewish writers, Josephus and Philo, reckon two and twenty canoni- cal books in the Old Testament, which is the number of the letters in the Hebrew alphabet : and to make out this, they join the book of Ruth to that of Judges, and the Lamentations of Jeremiah to the book of his Prophecies. But other Jewish doc- tors divide the book of Ruth from that of Judges, and, making likewise a separate Dook of the Lamentations of Jeremiah, they reckon four and twenty books in all. In order to accommodate this number to that of the letters of the alphabet, they repeat the letter yod three times, as they say, in honor to the great name of God Jehovah, of which yod is the first letter; and in Chaldee, three yods together were used to express this adorable name : but as the modern Jews thought this savored too much of what Christians call the Trinity, they use only two yods for this purpose. St. Jerome is of opinion that St. John had this division of the Hebrew scriptures in view, when in his Revelation he speaks of the four and twenty elders who paid adoration to the Lamb of God. The Jews divide the whole of these books into three classes, namely, the Law, the Prophets, and the Hagiographa or Holy Writings, which last division includes more particularly the poetical parts; and some are of opinion that Jesus Christ alludes to this division of the Scriptures when he says that " all things must be fulfilled that were written in the law of Moses, and in the prophets, and in the psalms, concerning" him. For the book of Psalms, they understand all the books of the third class. The Law comprehends the Pentateuch; that is, Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, and Deuteronomv. The Prophetical hooks are ejght, viz: (1) Joshua, (2) Judges, with Ruth, (3) Samuel, (4) Kings, (5) Isaiah, (6) Jeremiah, (7) Ezekiel, and (8) the twelve Lesser Prophets. The first four books of this division are called the For- mer Prophets, and the last four the Latter Prophets. The Hagiographa, or Holy Writings, are nine, viz: (1) Job, (2) the Psalms, (3) Proverbs, (4) Ecelesiastes, (5) The Song of Songs, (6) Daniel, (7) Chronicles, (8) Ezra, with Nehemiah, and (9) Esther. The Jews do not put Daniel in the rank of a prophet, although they ac- knowledge him to have been a man inspired by God, and whose writings are full of the clearest prophecies concerning the time of the Messiah's coming, and what should * The apostolic epistles are didactic or catholic. The didactic epistles are those addressed to particular churches; the catholic or general are addressed to the whole church, or to a larger section of it. The writings of Paul, for the most part, belong to the former class. They are analyzed or classified by Lange, as follows: 1. Eschatological epistles, which treat of the last things. 2. Ecclesiastic epistles, which treat of the discipline of the church. 3. Soteriological epistles, which creat of redemption and righteousness by faith. 4. Christological epistles, which treat of the person of Christ. 5. Pastoral epistles. The Epistle to the Hebrews, that of James, and the three of John, and those of Peter and Jude, are classed as catholic epistles.— Ed. 14 INTRODUCTION TO THE happen lo their nation. Jesus Christ, therefore, gives him the name of a Prophet, and the Jewish doctors are much puzzled to find out a proper reason for their not doing the same. "It is," says Maimonides, "because everything that Daniel wrote was not revealed to him when he was awake and had the use of his reason, but in the night, and in obscure dreams." But this is a very unsatisfactory account of the matter; and others are of opinion that the name of a Prophet was commonly given to those only who were of a certain college, and whose business it was to write the annals ; and that, therefore, their works were ranked among the prophetical books, though they did not contain a single prediction of anything to come, as the books of Joshua and Judges ; while, on the contrary, the works of those who were not of these colleges of the prophets were not ranked among the prophetical books, although they contained true prophecies. The Laiins agree with the Jews as to the number of the Psalms, which is a hun- dred and fifty ; but both they and the Greeks divide them differently from the He- brews. In the Greek Bible and the Vulgate, or common Latin version, the ninth and tenth, according to the Hebrew, make but one psalm ; and therefore, in ordei to make up the number of a hundred and fifty, they divide the hundred and forty-sev- enth into two. This is the general division of the sacred books among the Jews. But they divide the Pentateuch, in particular, into certain paragraphs or sections, which they call Parashiuth, and which they subdivide into the Great and Little. A Great section contains as much as is to be read in the synagogue in a week. There are in ali fifty- four of these, inasmuch as there may be so many weeks in a year ; for the Jews are obliged to read all the Pentateuch over once every year, finishing it on the feast of tabernacles, and beginning it again on the next sabbath day. In the time of the persecution by Antiochus Epiphanes, they also selected fifty-four sections to be read out of the Prophets, which have ever since constituted the second lessons in the Jewish synagogue-service. The Little sections, which are subdivisions of the Greater, are made according to the subjects they treat of; and these Great and Little sections are again of two sorts, one of which is called Peluchoth, that is, open sec- tions; and the other Sethumoth, that is, close sections. The former commences in the Hebrew Bibles always at the beginning of lines, and are marked with three P's if it be a great section, and with only one if it be a little section ; because P is the first letter of the word Petuchoth. Every open section takes its name from its first word ; and thus the first section in the whole Bible is called Bereshith, which is the first word of the Book of Genesis in Hebrew. The close sections begin the middle of a line, and are marked with the letter Samech, which is the first letter of the word Sethumoth; if it be a great section it has three Samechs; if a little section, only one. Every great section is also divided again into seven parts, which are read in the synagogue by so many different persons. If any priest be present, he begins, and a Levite reads after him; and in the choice of the rest, regard is had to their dignity and condition. The divisions of the prophetical books already mentioned are read jointly with those of Moses, in the same manner. These latter divisions they call Haphteroth, a term which signifies, in Hebrew, dismissions ; because after this read- ing is over they dismiss the people. The Jews call the division of the Holy Scriptures into chapters, Perakim, which signifies fragments; and the division into verses they call Pesuhim, a word of nearly the same signification as the former. These last are marked out in the Hebrew Bibles by two great points at the end of them, called hence Soph-Pasuk, that is, the end of the verse. But the division of the Scriptures into chapters and verses, as we now have them, is of a much later date. The Fsalms, indeed, were always divided as at present; for St. Paul, in his sermon at Antioch in Pisidia, quotes the second Psalm. But as to the rest of the Holy Scriptures, the division of them into such cnapters as at present, is what the ancients knew nothing of. Some attribute it to Stephen Langton, who was archbishop of Canterbury in the reigns of King John and his son Henry the Third. But the true author of this invention, as is shown by Dean Pit- deaux at great length, was Hugo de Sancto Caro, who, being from a Dominican monk advanced to the dignity of a cardinal, and the first of that order that was so, is com- monly called Hugo Cardinalis. This Cardinal Hugo, who flourished about the yea; 1e Mf), and died in 1262, had labored much in the study of the Holy Scriptures, ant nade a comment upon the HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 15 whole of them. The carrying on of tms work gave him the occasion of invent- ing the first concordance that was made of the Scriptures — that is, of the vulgar Latin Bible; for, conceiving that such an index of all the words and phrases in the Bible would be of great use for the attaining of a better understanding of it, lie pro- jected a scheme for the making of such an index, and forthwith set a great number til' the monks of his order on the collecting of the words under their proper classes in every letter of the alphabet, in order to this design ; and, by the help of so many hands, he soon brought it to what he intended. This work was afterward much improved by those who followed him, especially by Arlottus Thuseus, and Conradus Halberstadius, the former a Franc : scan and the other a Dominiran friar, who both lived about the end of the same century. But the whole intention of tile work being for the easier finding of any word or passage in the Scriptures, to make it answer this purpose the cardinal found it necessary, in the first place, to divide the book into sec- tions, and the sections into other divisions, that by these he might the better make the references, and the more exactly point out in the index where any word or pas- sage might be found in the text; and these sections are the chapters into which the Bible has ever since been divided. For, on the publishing of this concordance, the usefulness of it being immediately discerned, all were desirous to have it; and, for the sake of the use of it, they all divided their bibles as Hugo had done; for the references in the concordance being made by these chapters and the subdivisions of them, unless their bibles were so divided too, the concordance would be of no use to them. And thus this division of the several books of the Bible into chapters had its original, which has ever since been made use of in all places and among all people, wherever the Bible itself is used in these western parts of the world ; for before this there was no division of the books in the vulgar Latin bibles at all. But the subdivisions of the chapters were not then by verses as now. Hugo's way of subdividing them was by the letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G-, placed in the margin at equal distances from one another, according as the chapters were longer or shorter. In long chapters all these seven letters were used, in others fewer, as the length of the chapters required ; for the subdivision of the chapters by verses, which is now in all our bibles, was not introduced into them till some ages after ; and then it was from the Jews that the use of it, as we now have it, took its original on the follow- ing occasion. About the year 1430, there lived here among the western Jews a famous rabbi, called by some Rabbi Mordecai Nathan, by others Rabbi Isaac Nathan, and by many by both these names, as if he were first called by one of them, and then, by a change of it, by the other. This rabbi being much conversant with the Christians, and having frequent disputes with their learned men about religion, he thereby came to the knowledge of the great use which they made of the Latin concordance composed by Cardinal Hugo, and the benefit which they had from it, in the ready finding of any place in the Scriptures which they had occasion to consult ; which he was so much taken with, that he immediately set about making such a concordance to the Hebrew Bible for the use of the Jews. He began this work in the year 1438, and finished it in 1445, being seven years in composing it; and the first publishing of it happening about the time when printing was invented, it has since undergone sev- eral editions from the press. The Buxtorfs, father and son, bestowed much pains on this work ; and the edition of it published by them at Basil in 1632 is by far the most complete, and has deservedly the reputation of being the best book of the kind that is extant. Indeed, it is so useful for the understanding of the Hebrew scriptures, that no one who employs his studies in this way can have a better companion ; it being the best dictionary, as well as the best concordance to them. In the composing of this book, Rabbi Nathan finding it necessary to follow the same division of the Scriptures into chapters which Hugo had made in them, it had the like effect as to the Hebrew bibles that Hugo's had as to the Latin, causing the same di- visions to be made in all the Hebrew bibles which were afterward either written out or printed for common use; and hence the division into chapters first came into the Hebrew bibles. But Nathan, though he followed Hugo in the division into chapters, yet did not do so in the division of the chapters by the letters A, B, C, &c, in the margin, but introduced a better usage by employing the division that was made by verse. This division, as already mentioned, was very ancient ; but it was till now without and numbers put to the verses. The numbering, therefore, of the verses in 16 INTRODUCTION TO THE liie chapters, and the quoting of the passages in every chapter by the verses, were Rabbi Nathan's invention ; in everything else he followed the pattern which Cardinal Hugo had set him. But it is to be observed, that he did not number the verses any otherwise than by affixing the numerical Hebrew letters in the margin at every fifth verse; and this has been the usage of the Jews in all their Hebrew bibles ever "since, except that latterly they have also introduced the common figures for numbering the intermediate verses between every fifth. Yatalibius soon after published a Latin Bible according to this pattern, with the chapters divided into verses, and the verses so numbered ; and this example has been followed in all other editions that have been since put forth. So that, as the Jews borrowed the division of the books of the Holy Scriptures into chapters from the Christians, in like manner the Christians bor- rowed that of the chapters into verses from the Jews. But to this day the book of the law, which is read by the Jews in their synagogues every sabbath day, has none of these distinctions, that is, is not divided into verses as theBible is. The division of the books of Scripture into great and little sections, does, without doubt, contribute much to the clearing up of their contents ; and for this reason, as well as because they found it practised in the synagogues, the Christians also divided the books of the New Testament into what the Greeks call pericopes, that is, sec- tions, that they might be read in their order. Each of these sections contained, under the same title, all the matters that had any relation to one another, and were solemnly read in the churches by the public readers, after the deacons had admon- ished the faithful to be attentive to it, crying with a loud voice, "Attendance, Let us attend." The name of titles was given to these sections, because each of them had its own title. Robert Stephens, the famous printer, who died at Geneva in 1559, gets the credit of being the first who made the division of the chapters of the New Testament into verses, and for the same reason as Rabbi Nathan had done before him as to the Old Testament; that is, for the sake of a concordance which he was then composing for the Greek Testament, and which was afterward printed by Henry Stephens, his son, who gives this account of the matter in his preface to the concord- ance. Since that time, this division of the whole Bible by chapters and verses, and the quoting of all passages in them by the numbers of both, has grown into use everywhere among us in these western parts; so that not only all Latin bibles, but all Greek ones also, as well as every other that has been printed in any of the mod- ern languages, have followed this division. They who most approve of this division of the Bible into chapters and verses, as at present used, agree that a much more convenient one might be made; since it often happens that things which ought to be separated are joined together, and many things which ought to be joined together are divided. The respect which the Jews have for the sacred books, and which even degener- ates into superstition, is one of the principal of their religious practices. Nothing can be added to the care they take in writing them. The books of the ancients were of a different form from ours; they did not consist of several leaves, but of one or more skins or parchments sewn together, and fastened at the ends to rollers of wood, upon which they were rolled up; so that a book when thus shut up might easily be sealed in several places. And such was the book mentioned in the Revelations, which St. John says " was sealed with seven seals,'" and which no one but " the Lion of the tribe of Judah could open and explain." The Hebrew manuscripts of the Bible are of two kinds— the rolled ones, or those used in the synagogues, and the square ones, or those which are to be found in pri- vate collections. The rules laid down by the Jews with respect to their manuscripts have undoubtedly tended much to preserve the integrity of the text. They are di- rected to be written upon parchment, made from the skin of a clean animal, and to be tied together with strings of similar substance, or sewn with goat's-hair, which has been spun and prepared by a Jewess. h must be likewise a Jew that writes the law, and they are extremely diligent and exact in it, because the least fault in the world profanes the book. Every skin of parchment is to contain a certain number of columns, which are to be of a precise length and breadth, and to contain a certain number of words. They are to be written with the purest ink, and no word is to be written by heart or with the points; it must be first orally pronounced by the copyist. The name of God is directed to be written with the utmost attention and devotion, and the transcriber is to wash his pen before he inscribes it on the parchment. If HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 17 there should chance to be a word with either a deficient or a redundant letter, or should any of the prosaic part of the Old Testament be written as verse, or vice versa, the manuscript is vitiated. No Hebrew manuscript with any illumination is, on any account, admitted into a synagogue, although private individuals are permit- ted to have them ornamented for their own use; but in the illustrations, the resem- blance of any animal denounced by the Jews as unclean can not be admitted. Among the modern Jews, the book of Esther, in particular, is frequently decorated with rude figures of various kinds ; but with respect to this book, it must be observed that, owing to its wanting the sacred name of God, it is not held in such repute for holiness as the other books are. The manuscripts for private use may be either upon parchment, vellum, or paper, and of various sizes. " There is," says Prideaux, " in the church of St. Dominic, in Bononia, a copy of the Hebrew Scriptures, kept with a great deal of care, which they pretend to be the original copy written by Ezra him- self; and therefore it is there valued at so high a rate, that great sums of money have been borrowed by the Bononians upon the pawn of it, and again repaid for its redemption. It is written in a very fair character upon a sort of leather, and made up in a roll according to the ancient manner; but it having the vowel-points an- nexed, and the writing being fresh and fair, without any decay, both these particu- lars prove the novelty of that copy. But such forgeries are no uncommon things among the papistical sect." To open and shut up the roll or book of the law, to hold it, and to raise and show it to the people, are three offices, which are sold, and bring in a great deal of money. The skins on which the law is written are fastened to two rollers, whose ends jut out at the sides, beyond the skins, and are usually adorned with silver ; and it is by them that they hold the book when they lift it up, and ex- hibit it to the congregation; because they are forbidden to touch the book itself with their hands. All who are in the synagogue kiss it, and they who are not near enough to reach it with their mouths, touch the silken cover of it, and then kiss their hands, and put the two fingers with which they touched it upon their eyes, which they think preserves the sight. They keep it in a cupboard, which supplies the place of the ark of the covenant, and they therefore call this cupboard Aaron, which is the Hebrew name for the ark; and this is always placed in the east end of the synagogue. He who presides chooses any one whom he pleases to read and explain the scripture, which was a mark of distinction; as we see in the thirteenth chapter of the Acts, where we find the rulers of the synagogue de- siring the apostles, when they were in the synagogue, to make a discourse to the people. Ordinarily speaking, a priest began, a Levite read on, and at last one of the people* whom the president chose, concluded. He who reads stands upright, and is not suffered so much as to lean against a wall. Before he begins, he says with a loud voice, "Bless ye God ;" and the congregation answer, "Blessed be thou, my God, blessed be thou for ever ;" and when the lesson is ended, the book is rulled up, and wrapped in a piece of silk. The Jews still retain so great a veneration for the Hebrew tongue, that they do not think it lawful to use any other bibles in the synagogues but such as are written in that language. This was what enraged them so much against the Hellenistic or Grsecising Jews, who read the Septuagint Greek version in their synagogues ; and so much were they grieved that this version was ever made, that they instituted a fast, m which they annually lament this as a misfortune. But because the Hebrew was, after the captivity, no longer the vulgar tongue, there was an interpreter in the syna- gogues, who explained to the people in the Chaldee, or common tongue, what was read to them in the Hebrew. The use they made of the Scriptures, however, gave the people at least an imperfect knowledge nf the Hebrew language. And thus we see the eunuch who is mentioned in the Acts, could read Isaiah, and understand enough of it to form the question which he put to Philip, concerning the passage in the prophecy relating to Jesus Christ. After having spoken of the books contained in the Bible, and of the divisions of those books which have been used by the Jews and the Christians, both in ancient and modern times, it may now be necessary to examine a little into the language in which they were written. The Old Testament was originally written in the Hebrew tongue; and this language is generally considered as having the best claims to be considered the most ancient at present existing in the world, and, perhaps, as the 2 IS INTRODUCTION TO THE primeval tongue of the human race. By the Hebrew language, therefore, is mean! that which was spoken by Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, and the twelve patriarchs, which was afterward preserved among their posterity, and in which Moses wrote, it being improbable that he would employ any other language than that which was in use among the Jews. This language is supposed by some to derive its name from Heber, great-grand- son to Shem, whose posterity were denominated Hebrews ; but it is much more likely that it received its name from its being the mother-tongue of the descendants of Abraham, who were called Hebrews, not because they were descended from He- ber, but because Abraham, having received a command from God to leave the coun- try where he lived, which was beyond the Euphrates, passed :hat river, and came into the land of Canaan, where the inhabitants of the country gave him the name of the Hebrew, that is, one that has passed over ; in the same manner as the French call all those that live beyond the mountains, Ultramontanes. The reasons that demonstrate the antiquity of the Hebrew tongue are many. In the first piace, the names which the Scripture explains are therein drawn from He- brew roots. It was thus that the first man was called Adam, because he had been formed out of the ground, which in Hebrew is called Adamah. The first woman was called Eve, because she was the origin of life to all, evach in Hebrew signifying to live. The name of Cain, which comes from Canah, signifying to acquire, or get, alludes to what Eve said when he was born: "I have got a man from the Lord." The explanation of these names is not to be found in any language but the Hebrew , and as this relation between names and things does not occur in any other language, it is in it alone that we can see the reasons why the first human beings were so called. The names of an immense number of people, also, who are descended from the Hebrews, show the antiquity both of the nation and the language. The Assurians, for instance, derive their name from Ashur, the Elamites from Elam, the Arameans from Aram, the Lydians from Lud, the Medes from Madai, and the Ionians from Javan, who are all traced in the Hebrew bible to Shem, Ham, and Japhet. These names have no signification in any language but the Hebrew, which shows that they are derived thence, as are also the ancient names of the pagan deities; to which we must add the remark which several learned men have made, namely, that there is no language in which some remains of the Hebrew are not to be found. A very apposite example, in allusion to the meaning of proper names in Hebrew, is to be found in the Book of Ruth, toward the end of the first chapter, where it is said, "And the whole town was in commotion about them; and the women said, Is this Naomi? And she said, Call me not Naomi (which means Delightful) ; call me Marah (which means Bitter) ; for the Almighty (Emer) hath caused bitterness ex- ceedingly to me. I went away full, and Jehovah hath caused me to return empty ; wherefore then do ye call me Naomi, since Jehovah hath brought affliction on me, and the Almighty hath caused evil to befall me?" Thus we see that in Hebrew, as well as in most of the oriental languages, ail proper names are significant words ; and this is found to be the case also among many of the nations of Africa. This circumstance has a great effect in increasing the energy of the diction in these tongues; for it not unfrequently happens, as in the case of Naomi, that the speaker or writer, in addressing a person by his name, makes use of it at the same time as a word of ordinary signification, to express something in the inward disposition or the outward circumstances of the possessor. Instances of this occur in almost every page of the Hebrew scriptures; and, as may readily be supposed, it is impossible in such cases, for any common translation to do justice to the energy of the original. We have a very remarkable example of this in the twenty-fifth chapter of 1 Samuel, at the twenty-fifth verse, in which Abigail, speaking of her husband Nabal, says to David: "Let not my lord set his mind at all now toward the man of Belial (that is, worthless), mis same person, Nabal (which means a scoundrel) ; for like his name so is he; Nabal is his name, and Ne- belah (that is, vileness) is with him." In speaking of the meaning of proper names, however, the most extraordinary ex- ample, perhaps, that can be produced from any book, either ancient or modern, is the following, which is to be found in the fifth chapter of Genesis : the names of the ten antediluvian patriarchs, from Adam to Noah inclusive, are there given; and when these ten names are literally translated, and placed in the order in which thev occur- HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 10 they form altogether the following very remarkable sentence in English : man, ap- pointed, miserable, lamenting, the God of glory, shall descend, to instruct, his death sends to the afflicted, consolation ! We need not be surprised, therefore, at what is mentioned in the Spectator (Ne. 221), of a certain rabbinical divine having taken the first three of these names as the subject of his discourse, forming thus the text of a regular sermon. " We had a rabbinical divine in England," says Addison, " who was chaplain to the earl of Essex in Queen Elizabeth's time, that had an admirable head for secrets of this nature. Upon his taking the doctor of divinity's degree, he preached before the university of Cambridge upon the first verse of the first chapter of the First Book of Chronicles, *in which,' says he, 'you have the three following words: 'Adam, Sheth, Enosh.' " He divided this short text into many parts, and by discovering several mysteries in each word, made a most learned and elaborate discourse. The name of this pro- found preacher was Dr. Alabaster, of whom the reader may find a more particular account in Dr. Fuller's Book of English Worthies." It is evident, that although this matter appeared ridiculous enough in Addison's eyes, so as to furnish him with a theme for a very amusing paper, yet, on considering attentively the meaning of the original words here used as proper names, a great deal of very sound doctrine might be elicited by a subtile divine, even from such an ap- parently insignificant text. In the same way the names of animals in Hebrew are found to be words expressive of their qualities, which gives support to the idea that this was the language which Adam used when he gave them their names ; as we find recorded in the second chapter of Genesis, at the 19th verse: "And Jehovah God formed out of the ground every beast of the field, and he formed also every fowl of the heavens ; and he brought them unto Adam to see what he would call them, and whatever Adam called it — the living creature — it is its name." Some of the names of animals in Hebrew are still found to be clearly descriptive of their qualities, and therefore in regard to what animal is intended there can in such cases be no dispute. But with respect to some others the matter is not so plain, as, from the root not being now found in the language, the ideal meaning of the name can not be so readily ascertained : and hence the eleventh chapter of Leviticus, in which the names of certain clean and unclean animals are enumerated, presents difficulties to a translator of no ordinary description. There is, perhaps, no language in the world so easily reduced to its original ele- ments as the Hebrew. As Wilson has well expressed it, " We descend from words to their element; and the accurate knowledge of letters is the principal part of He- brew grammar. Its flexion nearly approaches ^at of the modern languages, par- ticularly the English. The relations and dependan es of nouns are not distinguished by terminations, or cases, but by particles or prepo-itions prefixed. The persons, moods, or tenses, of verbs are not marked by the changes of their last syllables, but by means of letters of a particular order, which sometimes appear in the middle, sometimes in the beginning, and sometimes in the end of the original word." In fact the structure of the Hebrew language is peculiarly favorable for the expression of energy and sublimity. The words, as is well known, are remarkable for short- ness, the greater part consisting of not more than two, three, or four letters; few words have more than ten letters, and those that consist of that number are not many. The sentences are also for the most part short, and are quite free from that complexity which is apt to embarrass the reader when perusing even the best authors of Greece and Rome. The idiom of any language consists in the order of the words ; but it is well known that, in this respect, the Greek and Latin tongues are extremely capricious, the words being arranged in them not in the order of the understanding, but of the ear, according to the sound rather than the sense. The Greek and Roman writers place the emphatic words in whatever order the sentence can be made to run most musically, though the sense be suspended till the speaker or reader come to the and; and hence the need of so many flexions and syntax-rules for a learner to arrange them to find out the meaning. Yet even for this purpose more declensions than one were not necessary; nor more tenses than three, a past, a present, and a future. From this mass of perplexity the Hebrew language is entirely free. Its original words, called roots consist of a proper -.summer of letters, commonly three, the fewest 20 INTRODUCTION TO THE that make a perfect number ; and they express an action finished or expressed by a single agent. It has a proper number of voices, that is, active, passive, and medial — and only the tenses that are in nature. Its primitive words are more sentimental and scientific than sonorous; and they express original ideas, being definitions of thing3 descriptive of their natures. The Hebrew, Greek, and Latin, and such as are immediately derived from them, or constructed on their model, are the only languages that are formed on a regular artificial plan; and all other tongues of which we know anything, except perhaps the Persian and the Sanscrit, must be considered in comparison as mere gibberish, being quite rude in their original formation; nor is it possible to reduce them to another state, without wholly metamorphosing them. That which was never the language of a cultivated, learned people, and in which there are no literary works of taste, can not be a polished language, although it may have been the language of a civilized nation, or of a court, if they were only an illiterate people. In a word, all languages that have a concourse of consonants, or silent letters, are rude in their writing or pronunciation, whatever their structure may be. The Greek and Latin are free from the latter fault, and the Hebrew from both. "As Solomon possessed the most wis- dom and knowledge," says Mr. Ray, " and treated all subjects of natural philosophy, &c, and his court being the most splendid and elegant, as people came to it from all nations, and greatly admired it, the Hebrew must be a copious, elegant language ; and its structure is invariable, being the same in Moses and Malachi, at a thousand years' distance." In speaking of the genius of a language, indeed, which is its force, vigor, or energy, the Hebrew, may, without doubt, be said to excel all. It. is evident therefore that if, as Lon^inus observes, " saying the greatest things in theiewesi words" be essential to simplicity and energy in discourse, the Hebrew is the best language in the world for the purpose. In it we have no superfluous parts of a sentence in words, or even in letters. A Hebrew writer conveys his meaning without circumlocution; for, although he were inclined, he would be unable to ac- complish it, because the language is quite unsuitable in its nature for being employed in any such way; and therefore if an author's subject be good, even although he should possess but little genius, he will find no great difficulty to clothe his ideas in sublime and energetic language, if he write in Hebrew.* Such is the simple nature of the formation of this primitive language, and which seems, at the same time, to entitle it more to the claim of being a philosophical tongue than, perhaps, any other in the world. It is remarkable that the structure of this very ancient language approaches closely to that of the English, and other modern tongues, as the relations and dependances of nouns, according to what has been already remarked, are not distinguished by terminations, or cases, as in Greek and Latin, but by particles or prepositions (or little words) prefixed, and which are, at the same time, conjoined with the noun, as if they were a part of it. The advantages which the Hebrew language possesses, above all others, in the simplicity of its formation — its remarkable originality, in that it borrows from no language, while almQSt all others borrow from it — as also the ideality which is found to pervade its roots or primitive words — have all been considered as entitling it to higher claims in the consideration of philosophers, than any other language in the world, either ancient or modern. These notions have been carried to such a length, indeed, by some learned men, that they gave rise to an entirely new school of philosophy, generally known by the designation of the Hutchinsonian ; the disciples of which are remarkable as being opposed in many things to the Newtonian system, and as being possessed with the belief that in the Hebrew language, and in it alone, are to be found the germes of all true philosophy. INTEGRITY OF THE TEXT. The sacred books which were written, as we have seen, in Hebrew, the language cf the patriarchs, have been preserved down to our days without any corruption ; and * The Bible was composed, says Prof. Lange, in the two leading languages of antiquity, which reflect the greatest contrast in the intellectual world. The Hebrew tongue may be characterized as the most unstudied and child-like, as the deepest, purest, and most direct language of spiritual experiences; while the Greek tl)=» most cultivated, refined, and philosophical expression of intellectual life. — Erf. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 21 Jie same judgment may also be formed of those other books of Scripture which have been since written in Greek. But before proving 1 the purity and integrity of these original texts, it may be necessary to remove a prejudice which may arise from the variety o[ different readings that are found in the manuscript and printed copies of the Bible. The different manner in which some passages are expressed in different manu- scripts, together with the omission or insertion of a word, or of a clause, constitute what are called various readings. This was occasioned by the oversights or mistakes of transcribers, who deviated from the copy before them, these persons not being, as some have supposed, supernaturally guarded against the possibility of error ; and a mistake in one copy would, of course, be propagated through all that were taken from it, each of which copies might likewise have peculiar faults of its own, so that various readings would thus be increased in proportion to the number of transcripts that were made. Besides actual oversights, transcribers might have occasioned various readings by substituting, through ignorance, one word, or even letter, in place of another; they might have mistaken the line on which the copy before them was written, for part of a letter, or they might have mistaken the lower stroke of a letter for the line, and thus have altered the reading ; at the same time they were unwilling to correct such mistakes as they detected, lest their pages should appear blotted or defaced; and thus they sacrificed the correctness of their copy to its fair appearance. Copyers, seem not unfrequently, to have added letters to the last word in their lines, in order to preserve them even, and marginal notes have been sometimes introduced into the text. These different circumstances, as well as others with which we may not be acquainted, did no doubt contribute very much to produce and multiply mis- takes and variations in the manuscripts of the Hebrew scriptures. This language is more susceptible of corruption, and any alteration would be more detrimental in it than in others. In English, if a letter be omitted, or altered, the mistake can be easily corrected, because the word thus corrupted may have no meaning ; but in He- brew, almost every combination of the letters forms a new word, so that an alteration of even one letter of any description is likely to produce a new word and a new mean- ing. Thus putting all alterations made knowingly — for the purpose of corrupting the text, out of the question — we must allow that from these circumstances connected with the transcribing, some errata may have found their way into it, and that the sacred Scriptures have in this case suffered the fate of other productions of antiquity. When we have collected all the differences that are found in manuscripts of the original text, and have selected from them what are really various readings, we are able to determine, from the number and authority of the manuscripts, with tolerable correctness, what is the genuine reading. Beside the authority of the manuscript, we must also be guided in determining the true reading by the scope of the passage, by the interpretations and quotations of ancient writers, by the old versions, and not un- frequently by Scripture itself; for similar or parallel passages will often be found useful for this purpose. When all these things are considered, it will seldom happen that the true reading of a passage will be doubtful ; yet should it continue so, either reading may contain a truth, though certainly both can not be authentic, and in a theological point of view, either of them may be followed without involving a doc- trinal error ; and in such a case, the common reading should not be relinquished. To a person who has not considered the subject closely, it may appear sufficient to overthrow the authority of the text, that no less than thirty thousand various readings of the scriptures of the Old and New Testaments have been discovered. But when these are examined closely, and all that are not properly various readings are rejected, the number will be considerably diminished ; from these again let all be deducted which make no alteration in the several passages to which they refer, and the reduc- tion will be much greater ; and out of the remainder there are none found that can invalidate the authority of those doctrines that have been esteemed fundamental, or that can shake a single portion of that internal evidence whereby the divine origin of the Scriptures is supported ; so that the friends of revelation had no grounds for the alarm they felt at the time when the subject of various readings began to be discussed. These observations apply strongly to the New Testament, which, as it has been transcribed more frequently, and probably by less skilful transcribers than the Old, has, in proportion, many more various readings. Respecting these, however, it has been said, that " all the omissions of the ancient manuscripts put together, would not 22 INTRODUCTION TO THE countenance the omission of any essential doctrine of the gospel, relative to faith ur morals ; and all the additions countenanced by the whole mass of manuscripts already collated, do not introduce a single point essential either to faith or morals, beyond what may be found in the Complutensian or Elzevir editions.* The manner in which the original text of the Scriptures, particularly the He- brew, has been preserved free from all material corruption, and handed down pure through such a long succession of ages, may now form the subject of our especial con- sideration. It has been supposed by many that the Christian fathers accused the Jews of cor- rupting the text ; but from an examination of such passages as seem to imply this, it appears that they spoke not of corrupting the text, but of adopting unfaithful transla- tions. Justin Martyr, one of the most celebrated of the Christian fathers, defends the Jews very well as to this point, and proves that they have not corrupted the Scrip- lures : and it is past doubt they have not; for, as St. Jerome observes, before the birth of Jesus Christ they had certainly made no malicious alterations in them. If they had done so, our Saviour and his apostles, who cast so many reproaches upon the scribes and Pharisees, would not have passed over in silence so great a crime. To suppose such a thing, indeed, were to know little of the attachment of the Jews for the Scriptures. Josephus and Philo assure us that they would have undergone all sorts of torments rather than have taken a letter from the Scripture, or altered a word in it. A copy which had only one fault in it was by them thought polluted, and was not suffered to be kept above thirty days; and one that had four faults was ordered to be hid in the earth. In the Babylonian Talmud it is laid down as a regulation, that " the books of the law which have been written by a heretic, a traitor, one who is a stranger to the Jewish religion, an idolatrous minister — by which they mean a monk — a slave, a woman, one under age, a Cuthsean, or Christian, or an apostate Israelite, are unlawful." " This," says St. Augustine, " is a most visible effect of the providence of God over his church. It pleased him that the Jews should be our librarians ; that, when the Pagans reject the oracles of the ancient prophets concerning Jesus Christ, which we quote against them as being invented by us, we might refer them to the enemies of our religion, who will show them in their books the same prophecies which we quote against them." The class of Jewish doctors called Massorites were grammarians, who engaged with peculiar ardor in the revisal of the Hebrew scriptures. The Massoritic notes and criticisms relate to the verses, words, letters, vowel-points, and accents. All the verses of each book and of each section are numbered, and the amount placed at the end of each in numerical letters, or in some symbolical word formed out of them; the middle verse of each book is also marked, and even the very letters are numbered : and all this is done to preserve the text from any alteration, by either fraud or neg- ligence. For instance, Bereshith, or Genesis, is marked as containing 1,534 verses, and the middle one is at — " And by thy sword thou shalt live" (xxvii. 40). The lines ire 4,395 ; its columns are 43, and its chapters 50. The number of its words is 27,713, and its letters are 78,100. The Massoritic notes, or Massorah, as the work is called, contain also observations on the words and letters of the verses ; for instance, how many verses end with the letter samech ; how many there are in which the same word is repeated twice or thrice ; and other remarks of a similar nature. It sp^ms now generally agreed upon that the Massorites of Tiberias, during the fourth century of the Christian era, were the inventors of the system of the vowel- points and accents in the Hebrew Bible ; and although they multiply them very un- necessarily, it must be allowed that this is the most useful of their works. From the points we learn how the text was read in their time, as we know they were guided in affixing them by the mode of reading which then prevailed, and which they sup- posed to have been traditionally conveyed down from the sacred writers. The Massoritic notes were at first written in separate rolls, but they are now usually placed in the margin, or at the top and bottom of the page in printed copies. Many opinions are entertained about the authors of them ; some think they were be- gun by Moses ; others regard them as the work of Ezra and the members of the great synagogue, among whom were the later prophets ; while others refer them entirely to the rabbins of Tiberias, who are usually styled the Massorites, and suppose thai * Vide Dr. Adam Clarke's Tract on the Editions of the New Testament, and also the Critical Editions of the New Testament, by Tichendorf, Dr. Henry Alford, and Dr. S. P. Tregelles.— Ed. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 23 they commenced this system, which was augmented and continued at different times by various authors, so that it was not the work of one man, nor of one age. It is not improbable that these notes were begun about the time of the Maccabees, when the Pharisees, who were called the masters of tradition, first began to make their obser- vations on the letter of the law though they were regardless of its spirit. They might have commenced by numbering first the verses, next the words and letters ; and then, when the vowel-points were added, others continued the system by making observa- tions on them. On the whole, then it appears that what is called the Massorah is entitled to no greater reverence or attention than may be claimed by any other human compilation ; but, at the same time, it must be allowed that it has preserved the Hebrew text from the time it was formed, and conveyed it to us as perfect as any ancient work could be given. The various readings given in the Hebrew Bibles, and which are technically de- nominated by the Jews the Keri and Cetib, are not to be ascribed to Moses or the prophets, for it can not be supposed that inspired writers were ignorant of what was the true reading of the scripture text. One principal occasion of the notes of the Keri and Cetib is, that there are several words which the Jews, either from super- stitious reverence or from contempt, are never allowed to pronounce. When they meet with them in the text, instead of pronouncing them, they pronounce others that are marked by certain vowels or consonants in the margin. The chief of these is the great name of God Jehovah, instead of which they always read Adonai, Lord, or Elohim, God. This is the word called Tetragrammaton, or the ineffable name of God, consisting of the four letters, Yod, He, Wau, He. The people were not suffered to pronounce it ; the high-priest alone had that privilege, and that only in the temple once a year, when he blessed the people on the great day of atonement ; and hence it is, that, as this holy name has not been pronounced since the destruction of the tem- ple, its true pronunciation is now lost. Galatinus, in the sixteenth century, was the first who thought fit to say, that it ought to be pronounced Jehovah;- " which did not happen," says Pere l'Amy, " without a very particular providence of God, who was pleased, that when the Jews lost the temple in which the true God was worshipped, they should at the same time lose the true pronunciation of his august name. It hap- pened, I say, because, being no longer willing to be their God (for the destruction of the temple was an authentic testimony of the divorce which he gave them), he would not leave them the power of so much as pronouncing his name."* Josephus, himself a priest, says it was unlawful for him to speak of the name whereby God was made known to Moses; and if it be true that the pronunciation of it was connected with the temple service, it is not surprising that all trace of it should be lost when the temple was destroyed, and when the Jews grew every day more superstitiously afraid of pronouncing it. Leusden, the great orientalist, is said to have offered a Jew at Amsterdam a considerable sum of money if he would pronounce it only once, but in vain. Besides the various readings called the Keri and Cetib, which the Jews admit to be the oldest, there are two other kinds of various readings which deserve our notice, because they are given in some printed bibles. The first are those of the eastern and western Jews; the second, those between the manuscripts of Ben Asher and Ben Naphtali. By the eastern Jews we are to understand those of Babylon ; by the west- ern, those of Palestine. At Babylon and in Palestine, after the destruction of the city and temple, there were famous schools for many ages, and between the learned men of these places much rivalship existed; so that each party, by following their own copies, gave rise to a collection of various readings, or corrections of the text, whose antiquity is acknowledged, though it does not appear exactly at what time it was made. The other collection is called after the heads of two celebrated schools — Ben Asher, at Tiberias, and Ben Naphtali, at Babylon, who were two famous Massorites, that lived about the year 1,030, and were the last of them. Both of these rabbies la- bored to produce a correct copy of the Scriptures, and the followers of each corrected theirs by that of their master. The variations between them relate to the points, and in but one instance is there any difference in the writing of a word ; so that they do not affect the integrity of the text. What has been said of the integrity of the text of the Old Testament, may be ap- * Vide " Apparatus Biblicus, or an Introduction to the Study of the Holy Scriptures." 21 INTRODUCTION TO THE plied also to the New, in so far as it may be charged with corruptions, in conse- quence of the negligence of transcribers, as also in consequence of the attempt of heretics to make it conform to their erroneous sentiments. Though it must be admitted that the New Testament text, by being more frequently transcribed than that of 'he Old, became liable to a greater proportion of various readings, originating from the mistakes of the transcribers, yet this very circumstance was likewise a sure protection against wilful perversion or corruption ; for in proportion as copies were multiplied, the difficulty of effecting a general corruption was increased. No such sa stem as that of the Massorites was ever adopted to preserve the purity of the New Testament text ; but we have it in our power to use various means for ascertaining what is the true reading of the text, without having recourse to such a plan as that of the Massorah ; and concordances, which are now brought to an uncommon degree of perfection, are of great use in preserving it from corruption ; in fact, the single one of Buxtorf has done more toward fixing the genuine reading, and pointing out the true meaning of Scripture, than the entire body of the Massoritic notes. We have the consent of the church, in all ages and countries, to prove our copies of the New Testament scriptures authentic, and the authenticity of the Hebrew text is confirmed by Christ and his apostles; and, in concluding this part of the subject, it may be re- marked, that the general integrity of the Hebrew text receives additional confirma- tion from the ancient versions, as will more fully appear hereafter. ANCIENT VERSIONS. Originally there was but one version of the Scriptures ; but a schism of a remark- able nature which broke out between the Jews and the Samaritans, was the cause of producing another version ; and of this, and those which followed, we are now about to speak. The Second Book of Kings furnishes us with the history of this schism, which, it will be recollected, was caused by the setting up of certain golden calves to be worshipped at Dan, in Bethel, by Jeroboam. Omri hence built Samaria, and made it the capital of his kingdom, and thus was the separation between Judah and Israel rendered complete. Samaria was, at first, only the name of a city, but afterward it became that of a province. It contained the tribe of Ephraim, and the hali-tribe of Manasseh, which was on this side Jordan ; so that it was to the north of Judea, and between the Great sea, Galilee, and Jordan ; and there was, therefore, no going from Galilee to Jerusalem without passing through this province. The cap- ital of the district, subsequent to the captivity, was Sichem, afterward called Neapo- lis, or Naplous, which was situated between the mountains Gerizim and Ebal. In the reign of Hezekiah, king of Judah, Samaria was taken by Shalmanezer, and the ten tribes were carried into captivity. Some years after, Esarhaddon sent jthe Cutheans to supply the place of the Jews, and to inhabit Samaria; and these people, who knew not the true God, but continued their idolatrous practices, and burnt their children in the fire to Moloch, were punished for their idolatry with lions, which made great havoc among them. For this reason, at their request, Esarhaddon sent some of those priests who had been carried into captivity, to instruct them, and teach them the worship of the true God. They did not embrace it with purity, however, but mixed the remains of paganism with their religion; for which reason, in the writings of the Jewish rabbies, they are denominated, in scorn, " The proselytes of the lions; 1 ' because it was through fear of them that they mixed the worship of the Creator with that of their idols. Nevertheless, when Manasses, the son of Jaddus, the high-priest of the Jews, had built the temple on Mount Gerizim, the Samaritans then retained their old superstitions no longer, but always contended that their tem- ple was more holy than that of Jerusalem; inferring from the ark's having been a long rime at Shiloh, near Ephraim, that the worship of God had rather begun in their country than in Jerusalem. According to Josephus, they claimed kindred witJi the Jews in their prosperity, but renounced all connexion with them when they weie under persecution. From John's gospel we learn, that when the Messiah was on the earth, the Samaritans, who received no part of the Old Testament except the Pentateuch, had lost all tradition of the revolt and subsequent captivity of the ten tribes ; thev considered themselves descended from the stock of Israel, claimed Jacob HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 25 for their father, and contended that the " holy mountain" was in the portion assigned to them by Joshua. There was no particular enmity between the two nations until the lime of Ezra. Incensed by the opposition they gave to the building of the temple, from the time their assistance was refused, he is said to have solemnly excommunicated them; and hence arose that enmity, which was carried to such a height that " the Jews had no dealings with the Samaritans ;" and, from Ezra's time, Samaria became a refuge for the malcontent Jews. Ptolemy Lagos carried numbers, both of the Samaritans and of the Jews, into Egypt, where a fierce contest took place between them respecting the sanctity of their temples, each party insisting that theirs stood on the holy mount. The point was discussed publicly in presence of the king, and the Samaritan advo- cates, failing in their proof, were put to death. In the year 109 before Christ, John Hyrcanus destroyed the city and temple of the Samaritans, and, though afterward, viz., ii the year 25 before Christ, King Herod built them a city and temple, they still conti.iued to worship on Mount Gerizim. In the twelfth century, Benjamin of Tu- dela found some remains of these people in that country, where they are still to be found. During the revolt of the Jews, the Samaritans continued in their subjection to the Romans ; and since that period they have always remained subject to the dif- ferent powers who have been in possession of that and the neighboring countries. It is supposed that the present Hebrew character was first adopted from the Chal- deans by Ezra, at the time when, after the return of the Jews from Babylon, he col- lected the Scriptures, and formed the entire canon. As the people were familiarized with the Chaldee, he used that character in transcribing the Old Testament. What is now called the Samaritan, was the character used by Moses and the prophets ; and Ezra relinquished it to the Samaritans, it is said, in order to render the separation between them and the Jews more complete. Since that time, the Jews have used the character we call the Hebrew, and the Samaritans have retained the others. The value of the Samaritan Pentateuch is very great ; for, where its text accords with the Hebrew text, it confirms it most decidedly; because, as the Jews and Sa- maritans were such inveterate enemies, there never could have been any designed corruption effected by them both. It frequently confirms, and sometimes corrects, the reading of the Hebrew in important places ; and it overturns all that system of rabbinical trifling, by which mysterious knowledge is said to be communicated through the shape and positions of certain letters, or certain words, which they pre- tend Moses learned from God, because such things can not be applied to its characters. As the Samaritans do not understand the Hebrew text, although in the character of their own language, they have found it necessary to translate it for common use. For, as the Jews, after the Babylonish captivity, degenerated in their language from the Hebrew to the Babylonish dialect, so the Samaritans did the same, most proba- bly, by bringing this dialect out of Assyria with them, when they first came to plant in Samaria. Therefore, as the Jews, for the sake of the vulgar among them who understood only the common language, were forced to make Chaldee versions of the Scriptures, which they called Targums, so the Samaritans, for the same reason, were obliged to do the same thing, and to make a version of their Pentateuch into the vul- gar Samaritan, which is, most probably, the most ancient translation of the Bible in existence. This Samaritan version is not made, like the Chaldee versions among the Jews, by way of paraphrase, but by an exact rendering of the text word for word, for the most part without any variation. Being perfectly literal, the same Latin translation answers both to it and the Samaritan Pentateuch ; and all the three are published in the Paris and London polyglots. There were two causes which chiefly conduced to render the Greek language, at one time, of almost universal use in the world. The first cause was the conquests of Alexander the Great, who was, by nation, a Grecian, king of Macedon, and after- ward ruler of the greater part of the then known world. His vast empire, although divided, yet subsisted for a great length of time, as his officers divided it among themselves, and reigned in different countries, so that the Greeks still continued to have dominion in the world, particularly the Seleucidee, in Syria, and the Ptolomies, in Egypt, by which means the Greek language became known and in use, both in Ju- dea and Egypt. The other cause of the extent of this language, was the high rep- utation the Greeks had acquired for learning and wisdom, which made many people desirous of knowing their language, who were not subject to their dominion. 26 INTRODUCTION TO THE This, then, was the language which was made use of to give the Gentiles the firs: knowledge of the Messiah. The Greek version of the Old Testament prepared the way for the gospel. The Gentiles read in these books the prophecies which the apostles showed had been accomplished in Jesus Christ: and they found, also, that the obstinate incredulity of the Jews had been foretold in them. They could not suspect the fidelity of the apostles, because this version of the Scriptures had not been made by them ; nor could they accuse the Jews of having altered these books, because, as they were, the Jews were condemned in them. Besides, the time at which it was made, gave this translation of the Bible a prodigious deal of weight ; because, from its having appeared before the birth of Jesus Christ, neither Pagans nor Jews could say that the ancient prophecies therein contained had been adapted to the circumstances of his life. Whoever were the authors of this the first translation of the Scriptures into Greek, commonly known by the name of the Seventy, or the Septuagext, and of which the Jewish historians, Philo and Josephus, have spoken much, no one doubts that it was made long before the time of Jesus Christ; and it is of great authority. Several passages of the Old Testament, which are quoted in the New, are taken thence ; and, being thus noticed by the writers of the New Testament, from their mode of using it, we may infer that it was in general circulation among the apostolic churches. All the other ancient versions, likewise, which were publicly read in the different churches of the world, the Arabic, the Ethiopic, the Armenian, the Gothic, the Illyr- ican, and the ancient Latin, which was in use before St. Jerome's time, were made from it; and, in short, every one of them, except the Syriac, were made from that of the Seventy, and to this day the Greek church, and the churches of the east, have no other. It is this version that the fathers and doctors of the church have explained and commented upon. It was from this version that they drew their decisions in matters of faith, and their precepts of morality. It was by this that they confuted heresies, and both general and particular councils explained themselves by it. Thus, whoever the authors of it were, its authority is great; and that upon this account only, if no other, that it was made at a time when the Hebrew was a living language, and, consequently, more easy to be understood than it is now, when it is almost impossible to come at the true understanding of it, otherwise than by the as- sistance of the ancient versions. For these reasons, we shall turn our attention, somewhat particularly, to the history of this celebrated version. Alexander the Great, on his building of the city of Alexandria, in Egypt, brought a great many Jews thither to help to plant the new city; and Ptolemy Soter, after his death, having fixed the seat of his government there, and set his heart much upon the enlarging and adorning of it, brought thither many more of this nation for the same purpose; where, having granted to them the same privileges with the Macedonians and other Greeks, they soon grew to be a great part of the inhabitants of that city. Their continual intercourse with the other citizens, among whom they were there mingled, having obliged them to learn and constantly use the Greek lan- guage, the same happened to them here, as had happened to them before at Baby- lon; that is, by accustoming themselves to a foreign language, they forgot their own. Hence, from their no longer understanding the Hebrew language, in which the Scrip- tures had been hitherto first read, nor the Chaldee, in which they were after that in- terpreted in every synagogue, they got them translated into Greek for their own use, that this version might serve for the same purpose in Alexandria and Egypt, as the Chaldee paraphrases afterward did in Jerusalem and Juclea. After the time of Ezra, the Scriptures were read to the Jews in Hebrew, and in- terpreted into the Chaldee language ; but at Alexandria, after the writing of this version, it was interpreted to them in Greek, which was afterward done also in all other Grecian cities where the Jews became dispersed. There are several opinions which modern writers have entertained respecting the origin of the septuagint version, but the commonly-received opinion is that enter •ained by Bishop Walton, the author of the London polyglot, and is the same which is given in an historical account of the transaction, as related by a Hellenistic Jew, who flourished in the time of Ptolemy Philadelphus, king of Egypt. The account of the affair, as contained in a book written by the person above mentioned, whose name w r as Aristeas, is as follows : HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 27 King Ptolemy Philadelphus, having, by the advice of Demetrius Phalerius, caused a magnificent library to be erected at Alexandria, and given him the direction of it, this philosopher spoke to him of the sacred books of the Jews, as of a work which would do honor to his library. The prince, therefore, resolved to have a copy of the Jewish law translated into Greek, his own language, and that which was then uni- versally understood. For this purpose he sent ambassadors to Jerusalem, to Elea- zer, the high-priest, with magnificent presents for the temple. Their instructions were, to desire him to give the king a copy of the sacred books, and to send him some persons of distinction and learning, who might translate them into Greek. Aristeas, who was a chief officer in the king's guards, and a chief man in the king- dom of Egypt, was of this embassy; and Eleazer, who received him with honor, was, according to Josephus, the son of Onias the First, the brother of Simon the Just, who is mentioned in the apocryphal book called Ecclesiasticus, and grandson to Jaddus, who went to meet Alexander the Great, and made him confer favorable terms upon the Jews. The high-priest consulted with the great council of the nation, called the sanhe- drim, in regard to Ptolemy's request, and afterward chose six men out of each tribe — seventy-two in all — gave "them a copy of the law, written in letters of gold, upon skins curiously fastened together, and sent them into Egypt. The king received them favorably, and showed a great deal of respect for the divine books ; he then assigned them a residence in the isle of Pharos, about seven furlongs distant from Alexan- dria, where they completed the version in seventy-two days. Demetrius caused it to be read publicly in the presence of the priests, great men, and all the Jews, who were then very numerous at Alexandria, and it was universally applauded ; they cried out, with one voice, that the translation was just and faithful; and, in order to render it not only authentic, but also unalterable, they made imprecations against those who should attempt to make any alteration in it. When it was read to the king, he admired the wisdom of the lawgiver, and commanded the books to be deposited in his .ibrary, allowing copies to be taken for the use of the Jews ; he then sent back the seventy-two elders, after having made them some rich presents. The most magnifi- cent of these presents was the freeing of one hundred and twenty thousand Jewish captives, whose ransom he paid, and gave them liberty to return into Judea. This version soon became common among all the Jews who spoke the Greek language, and was read publicly in their synagogues. It is not accurately ascertained in what year all this took place; Walton thinks the opinion which fixes it in the 7th of Ptol emy, and the 278th before Christ, the most probable. THE SEPTUAGINT AND VULGATE. It has generally been admitted that the septtlagint, which, as has been explained, is so called from the number seventy, or, more properly, seventy-two interpreters, who were said to be employed in the formation of it, was the first Greek version of the Old Testament. No mention has been made of any that preceded it, and it can not be deemed probable that Ptolemy would have taken so much pains to procure a ver- sion of the Jewish law, had any other previously existed ; and it is equally improb- able he should have been unacquainted with it, had it existed at a time when, Avith the assistance of Demetrius, he was procuring Greek books from every part of the world. It" is plainly affirmed by Phiio, that before his time the law was not known in any language but the original. The acquaintance with Jewish customs and Jew- ish history, which many heathen writers, before the reign of Ptolemy, have mani- fested, has led many persons to conclude that they must have derived their knowl- edge from a Greek version of at least pa'ts of the Old Testament. Yet Ave may account for the knowledge of Jewish cus'.oms, &c, which these writers display, with- out supposing that they obtained it from any Greek version ; for we have direct evi- dence that Aristotle, at least, had intercourse Avith the Jcavs, for the purpose of gaining information respecting their laAV ; and as the philosophers Avere certainly ac- quainted Avith the doctrine of the Gymnosophists and the Druids, avIio had not any written laAV, so Ave may suppose they obtained their knoAvletlge of the Jewish reli- gion from personal intercourse Avith individuals of that nation. 2fl INTRODUCTION TO THE A: first, it is probable, the law only was translated, for there was no need of tht- ouier books in the public worship; no other part of the Scriptures but the law hav- ing been in early times read in the synagogues. But afterward, when the reading of the prophets also came into use in the synagogues of Judea, in the time of the persecution under Antiochus Epiphanes, and' the Jews of Alexandria, who in those times conformed themselves to the usages of Judea and Jerusalem in all matters of religion, were induced hereby to do the same ; this caused a translation of the proph- ets also to be there made into the Greek language, in like manner as the law had been before. After this, other persons translated the rest for the private use of the same people ; and so that whole version was completed which we now call the sep- tuagint : and after it was thus made, it became of common use among all the churches of the Hellenistical Jews, wherever they were dispersed among the Gre- cian cities. When the Hebrew language had ceased to be the vulgar tongue, the version of the seventy was read in the synagogues, even in Judea itself. It is true, this was not universally done ; there was a sort of division among the Jews about it ; some were for having the Scripture read only in Hebrew, and were therefore called He- brews, or Hebraizers ; while others read it in Greek, and were called Hellenists, thai is, Grecians, or Grecizers, as has been already observed. As the number of the lat- ter was greater than that of the Hebrew- Jews, and. the apostles preached most fre- quently to them, it is not to be wondered at, as St. Jerome observes, that the passages of the Old Testament which are quoted in the New, are sometimes borrowed thence. It is thus seen that this version preceded the publication of the gospel: and it has been authorized by the use which the apostles made of it, as well as the whole church. It seems very evident however, from various passages, as Parkhurst has remarked, that the writers of the New Testament, in their citations of the Old, did not intend either literally to translate the Hebrew, or to stamp their authority on the seventy translation, but only to refer us to the original Scriptures. The septuagint version was continued in public use among the Jews for more than three hundred years; but as it grew into use among the Christians, it went out of credit with the Jews. In the twelfth year of the emperor Adrian, A. D. 128, Aquila, a native of Sinope, a city of Pontus, published a new Greek version of the Old Tes- tament. This man, who had been a Christian, and afterward became a Jew, is supposed to have undertaken this work in opposition to the Cbristians, not only that the seventy mio-ht be superseded, but that a new version might be given of those passages on which they relied most in their controversies with the Jews. The Hel- lenistic Jews received this version, and afterward used it everywhere instead of the septuagint; and, therefore, this Greek translation is often made mention of in the Talmud, or Compendium of Jewish Doctrines, but the septuagint never. The em- peror Justinian published a decree, which is still extant among his institutions, whereby he ordained that the Jews might read the Scriptures in their synagogues, either in the Greek version of the seventy, or in that of Aquila, or in any other lan- guage, according to the country in which they should dwell. But the Jewish doc- tors having determined against this, their decrees prevailed against that of the empe- ror, and, within a little while after, both the septuagint and the version of Aquila was rejected by them; and ever since, the solemn reading of the Scriptures among them, in their public assemblies, has been in the Hebrew and Chaidee languages. '• The Chaidee," says Prideaux, " is used in some of their synagogues even to this day, and particularly at Frankfort, in Germany." Nol long after the time of Aquila, there were two other Greek versions of the Old Testament scriptures made ; the first by Theodotion, who lived in the time of Corn- modus, the Roman emperor, and the other by Syrnmachus, who flourished a little after him, in the reigns of Severus and Caracalla. The former is supposed to have belonged to Ephesus, and fell into the heretical errors of Ebion and Alarcion, to which sect Svrnmachus also belonged, beitg by birth a Samaritan, and by profession hrst a Jew, then a Christian, and, lastly, an Ebionite heretic. They both :f them undertook the making their versions with the same design as Aquila did, though not entirelv for the same end; for they all three entered on this work for the per- verting of The Old Testament scriptures. Aquila, however, did it for the serving of tue interest of the Jewish religion, the other two for promoting the interest of the heretical sect to which thev belonged; and all of them wrested the original Scriptures HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. -29 in their versions of them, as much as they could, to make them speak for the differ- ent ends which they proposed. From the circumstances, therefore, under which these versions were made, it may be inferred that their authority can not be very great, though from the fragments of them which have been collected, we may derive considerable assistance in understanding particular portions of the Old Testament. In speaking of the ancient versions of the Bible, it must be observed, that there are two in the Syriac language : the Old, which is a translation of the Old Testa- ment from the Hebrew, and the New, which is a translation of the New Testament from the Greek. This last is, beyond contradiction, the most ancient that ever was formed in the Christian church. It is that which the Christians in the east, called Maronites, make use of in their worship : and they, as well as the other Syrian Chris- tians, boast very much of its antiquity ; for they allege that one portion of it was made by the command of Solomon, for the use of Hiram, king of Tyre, and the Dther part by the command of Abgarus, king of Edessa. It is certain this version was of considerable antiquity, and was in all likelihood made within the first cen- tury after Christ, and had for its author some Christian of the Jewish nation that was thoroughly skilled in both the Hebrew and Syriac languages ; and as it is among the oldest translations that we have of any part of the Scriptures, so it is the best, without any exception, that has been made of them by the ancients into any lan- guage whatsoever. This last character belongs to it in respect of the New Testa- ment, as well as of the Old ; and therefore, of all the ancient versions which are now consulted by Christians for the better understanding of the Holy Scriptures, as well of the New Testament as of the Old, none can better serve this end than this old Syriac version, when carefully consulted and well understood. To this purpose the very nature of the language gives much assistance ; for, it having been the mother-tongue of those who wrote the New Testament, and a dialect of that in which the Old was first given, many things of both are more happily expressed in it through this whole version than can well be done in any other language. The languages of princes generally become, in time, the common language of their subjects. The conquests of Alexander made the Greek tongue universal ; and by the same means the Latin tongue extended itself, with the Roman empire, all over the world ; so that, at length, there was scarce a nation where, by the help of this language, you might not make yourself understood. It is not known who was the author of the first Latin version of the Scriptures ; but St. Augustine, a celebrated bishop of the Latin church, about A. D. 400, tells us that there soon appeared a great number of them. " We know them who translated the Scriptures into Greek," says he, " and the number of them is not great ; but the number of the Latin translators is infinite. When the faith came to be established, the first man who found a Greek copy, notwithstanding the little knowledge he had of the two languages, boldly undertook a translation of it." From another passage of his writings, it has been generally concluded that there was one particular version, called " the Italian," in higher estimation than the rest, and which was the author ized version of the Roman churches. However this may be, it is certain the Latin church was in want of a version of the Scriptures formed directly from the Hebrew, as all the Latin translations in existence at that time had been taken from the sev- enty. St. Jerome, who was contemporary with St. Augustine, was in every respect best suited, of any of the learned men of that time, to the task of making a new translation, which he accordingly undertook. He began by correcting some books of the Old Testament in the Latin bible, particularly the version of the Psalms, and marked those passages wherein any difference existed between the Latin version, the Greek of the seventy, and the Hebrew original. He had early applied himself to the study of the Hebrew language, and at different periods had the assistance of five Jewish teachers ; he had access also to the works of Origen, who published what is called the Hexapla, that is, the Bible in six different languages. From these he must have derived considerable assistance in the work he undertook: that of translating into Latin all the books of the Old Testament, to which he added a corrected edition of the common version of the new. This work of St. Jerome is still used in the Roman Catholic church, and is known by the name of the Vulgate ; for which some have gone so far as to claim the authority and infallibility of an inspired production. At first, however, his ver- sion was not generally received ; for although many were pleased with it because if 30 INTRODUCTION TO THE was more consonant to the original, and a more literal translation than that of the seventy, yet others, and among the rest Augustine, considered it a rash attempt, and calculated to diminish the authority of the Greek version. It was approved ol by the Jews as conformable to their text, and was received into the church gradu- ally and by racit consent, rather than by the sanction of public authority. Nevertheless, the Vulgate which we have at present, and wnich the celebrated council of Trent declared to be authentic, is not the pure version of St. Jerome ; it has in it a great deal of the ancient Italian; but it can not now be discovered by whom, or at what time, this mixture was made. Some think that St. Jerome has no part at all ill the present Vulgate; and it is certain that the Psalms m it are no* his. Nevertheless, the Latin version comes nearer to the Hebrew, and is more per- spicuous, than the Septuagint. Since the time of the council of Trent, namely, in 15S9 and 1592, corrected editions of the Vulgate have been published under tne au- thority of the popes Sixtus the Fifth and Clement the Eighth. MODERN FOREIGN VERSIONS. We have seen, by the preceding remarks on this subject, that, at some period prior to the promulgation of Christianity, there existed a valuable translation of the Scrip- tures into Greek, entitled the Septuagint, or the Seventy, from the number of in- dividuals engaged in its arrangement. It has also been shown, that at an early period in the history of the Christian church, a Latin translation of the Scriptures was found called the Vulgate. These Greek and Latin versions of the Bible did not supersede the use of the original Hebrew Scriptures, such being ever preserved by the Jews with the most extraordinary care, and generally made use of by them in their synagogues, while the Septuagint and Vulgate, from being in more modern lan- guages, were in more extensive use among churchmen and the people. The exist- ence of these early versions is therefore an incontestable evidence that the Scriptures as now found in the original tongues, have not been impaired, interpolated, or abused, during the lapse of at least two thousand years. Almost all the modern nations of Europe, and part of Asia, have had versions ol the Scriptures, in whole or in part, taken from other versions, or from the originals. Arabic having become the vulgar language of almost all the east, there are several versions of the Bible in Arabic, which, besides the Syriac version (which is under- stood by the learned alone), are not only used by the Maronites and other Christians in Asia, but also by the Jews and Samaritans. About the year 900, Rabbi Saadias Gaon, an Arabian Jew, translated the Old Testament, or, at least, the Pentateuch, into Arabic. Another Jew of Mauritania translated the Pentateuch, and Erpenius printed his work. Risius, a monk of Damascus, translated the New Testament. The greater part of these versions were from the Septuagint.* The Persians have some manuscript versions of the Bible. Rabbi Jacob Favos, a Jew, translated the Pentateuch into Persian, and the Jews printed it at Constan- tinople in 1546. This, with the gospels translated by one Simon, a Christian, are inserted in the London polyglot ; but these gospels are far from being correctly done. There have been several other Persian versions of the Psalms and the New Testament executed in modern times, particularly the New Testament by Henry Martyn, the celebrated English missionary, translated by him in the city of Shiraz in Persia, and printed at Petersburgh in 1S15. The Turks have likewise some translations m manuscript of the Bible in their language. In 1666, a Turkish New Testament was printed at London, for the pur- pose of being dispersed in the east. It is mentioned, that, in 1721, the Grand Signor ordered an impression of bibles to be produced at Constantinople, that they might be confronted with the Koran, or Bible of the Mohammedans. In the Report of "the British and Foreign Bible Society for 1815, it is mentioned, that a Turkish translation in manuscript of the whole Bible had been discovered in the repositories of the Univer- sity of Leyden, where it had remained for a century and a half. The author of this translation was by birth a Pole, of the name of Albertus Boboosky, and born in the * The Arabic Bible, translated by Dr. Ely Smith, and continued after his death by Dr. Van Dyck, both of the Syrian Mission, a mission of the A B. C. F. M., is now in course of publication by the American Bible Society. This is pronounced by the best criiios superior to any other Arabic version extaut. — Ed HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 31 beginning of the seventeenth century. While a youth, he was stolen by the Tartars, •and, being sold to the Turks in Constantinople, he was by them educated in the Mohammedan faith. His name was changed to Hali Bey, and when he grew up, he was constituted the chief dragoman or translator to Mohammed the Fourth. The learning of Hali Bey was considerable. He understood seventeen languages, and he is said to have spoken in French, German, and English, like a native. He was par- ticularly fond of the English language, and, at the request of the Hon. Pv. Boyle, translated the Church of England Catechism into Turkish. He also composed dif- ferent works himself, several of which have been published. His chief work, how- ever, is his translation of the whole Bible into the Turkish language, which was undertaken at the instigation and under the direction of the famous Levin Warner, Dutch ambassador at the court of the sultan at that period ; and the translation appears to have been completed about the year 1666, the same year in which Sea- man's translation of the New Testament into Turkish was published at Oxford. The Armenians have a translation of the Old Testament, done from theSeptuagint, by Moses Grammaticus, and two others, about 1400 years ago. In 1666, under the direction of an Armenian bishop, it was printed at Amsterdam, corrected or corrupted from the Vulgate. Theodorus Patreus procured an impression of an Armenian New Testament at Antwerp in 1668, and of the whole Bible in 1690. In 1815, the Ar- menian Bible, in quarto, for the accommodation of the Armenian inhabitants of Russia, who subscribed liberally for the undertaking, was printed at St. Peiersburgh. The Armenians are scattered all over Asia. The Georgians have the Bible in their ancient language; but that being now almost obsolete, and themselves, in general, brutishly ignorant, few of them can either read or understand it. There has never been, till lately, but one edition of the Georgian Bible ; it was printed at Moscow in 1743 in a large folio volume. The modern Greeks have recently received the New Testament in their proper tongue, which is considerably different from that in which the sacred work was originally written. The edition is in the Hellenestic and Romaic dialects, and was printed in England under the direction of a society. It has been approved of by the the patriarch of the Greek church. The Russians have the Bible in their Sclavonic tongue, done from the Greek by Cyril, their apostle. It was published in 1581, but being too obscure, Ernest Gluk, a Swedish captive, above one hundred years ago, began to form another. He died before he finished it. Peter the Great ordered a number of his most learned clergy to complete the work; and it is supposed that the bibles distributed by imperial authority about 1722 were of this translation. In the course of two hundred and sixty years, from the time when printing was first introduced into Russia, no more than twenty-two editions of the Sclavonian Bible had appeared, prior to the year 1815, consisting of about fifty thousand copies only. The most ancient German translation is that of Ulphilas, bishop of the Goths, about A. D. 360; but he left out the Books of Kings, lest they should have excited his savage countrymen to war. Toward the end of the 16th century, Junius pro- fessed to publish an edition of it, from a manuscript found in the abbey of Verden, written in letters of silver. An anonymous version was printed at Nuremberg in 1477. Between 1521 and 1532, Luther composed his translation, but Michaelis, La Croze, and Bayer, think this was not from the Gothic version of Ulphilas, but one about 200 years later ; he published it in seven parts, as it was ready. Some persons of quality, masters of the German language, revised it. Two catholic versions, the one of Eckius on the Old, and Emzer on the New Testament, and another of Ulem- bergius, were published to depress the credit of Luther's; but the protestants of Ger- many and Switzerland still use it, a little corrected. About 1604, Piscator turned the Latin translation of Junius and Tremellius into a kind of German, but too much Latinized. About 1 580, Athias published a Hebrew-German translation of the Old Testament, for the sake of his Jewish brethren, and Jekuthiel another; but both, especially the latter, distorted several texts relative to the Messiah, &c. The first Polish version of the Scriptures is ascribed to Hadewich, the wife of Jagellon, Duke of Lithuania, who embraced Christianity A. D. 1390. In 1596, the protestants published another, formed on Luther's translation. There were three other versions, one bv James Wick, a Jesuit, and the other two by Socinians, puK 'ished in the end of the 16th centurv. 32 INTRODUCTION TO THE About 1506, the Bohemian Taborites published a Bible in their language, done from the Vulgate. In the end of the 16th century, eight Bohemian divines, after a careful study of the original languages at Wirtemberg and Basil, published a version from the original text. In 1534, Olaus and Laurence published a Swedish Bible, done from Luther 't German translation. About 1617, Gustavus Adolphus ordered some learned men to revise it; and it has been, since, almost universally followed in that kingdom. The translation into the language of Finland is thought to have been done from it. In 1550, Peter Palladius, and three others, published a Danish version, done from the German of Luther; and there are one or two others, as also a version in the Icelandic tongue. The Flemish or Dutch Bibles, composed by Roman Catholics, are very numerous; but the names of the translators are scarcely known, except that of Nicolas Yink, in 154S. The Calvinists of the Low Countries long used a version done from Luther's; but the synod of Dort appointed some learned men to form a new one from the originals. It was published in 1637, and is considered very exact. Since the Beformation, a vast number of Latin versions of the Bible have been made by members of the Romish church. Pagnin the Dominican was the first after St. Jerome who translated the Old Testament into Latin from the. Hebrew. His version was printed at Lyons in 1528. It is very literal, and" generally exact. Ar'as Alontanus retouched it, and made it yet more literal. After Pagnin came a crowd of interpreters, since the Hebrew language has been more studied. Leo of Judah, who, though not a Jew, understood Hebrew extremely well, began one, which has since been printed at Zurich; but death having prevented him from finishing his work. Theodoras Bibliander completed it. This is the version which Robert Stephens printed with the Vulgate and Vatablus's Notes, without naming the authors of it. Of Protestants, Emmanuel Tremillius, who of a Jew became a Christian, and Francis Junius, have also given a Latin translation, as also Castalio and Beza. These are considered tolerably exact, and have been frequently reprinted. Sebastian I\Iunster also published a literal but judicious translation. In 1471, an Italian Bible, done from the Vulgate by Nicolas Alalerme, a Benedic- tine monk, was published at Venice. Anthony Bruccioli published another in 1530 but the council of Trent prohibited it. The Protestants have two Italian versions — the one, which is rather a paraphrase than a translation, by the celebrated Diodati, published in 1607, and with corrections in 1641 — the other by 3Iaximus Theophilus, and dedicated to the Duke of Tuscany, about 1551. By an order of King James of Arragon to burn them, we find there were a number of bibles in Spanish about the year 1270, probably the work of the Waldenses. About 1500, a Spanish version was published, but the translator's name is unknown. In 1543, Driander published his version of the New Testament, and dedicated it to the Emperor Charles the Fifth. In 1553, the Jews published their Spanish version of the Old Testament, aftei having long used it in private. Cassiodore, a learned Calvinist, published his Bible in 1569, which Cyprian de Valera corrected and republished in 1602. Peter de Vara, chief of the Waldenses, published the first translation of the Bible in French about A. D. 1160. Two others were published about the years 1290 and 1380 ; and in 1550, by order of the Emperor Charles the Fifth, the doctors of Lou- vain published another. There are various other French versions, particularly of the New Testament; that of VIoas, done from the Vulgate, and published in 1665, with the king of Spain and archbishop of Cambray's license, is in a most clear and agree- able style. In 1702, F. Simon published his New Testament, with some literal and critical notes, which the bishops of Paris and Vieaux quickly condemned. There are many French versions of the Bible done by Protestants. Faber's trans- lation of the New Testament was printed for those of Piedmont, in 1534. Next year, Peter Olivetan's Bible was published at Geneva, and, having been reprinted with the corrections of Calvin and others, it is now a work of considerable exactness. After seme struggling with the French Protestant clergy, Diodati published his in 1644; out, like his Italian and Latin versions, the translation is too free and paraphrastic. Le Clerc published his New Testament at Amsterdam in 1703. with notes mostly borrowed from Grotius and Hammond. The states-general prohibited it, as inclining to the Sabeliian and Socinian heresies. La Cene published another, which shared much the same fate, on account of its fancies and errors. HISTORY OF THE BIELE. 33 The Bible, or at least portions of it, principally by the labors of the missionaries at Serampore, are now printed in nearly forty Indian languages, and are also to be found in Tartar, in Calniuc, and in Chinese. Upon the whole, out of the 3,061 languages which are said to exist in the world, the Bible is now to be found in more than two hundred languages. ENGLISH VERSIONS. It is probable that the inhabitants of Britain, who were first converted to Christi- anity by St. Augustine, about the beginning of the seventh century, had some of the scripture in their own language. About A. D. 709, Adelm translated the Psalm? into English Saxon, and other parts of scripture were translated by Eadfrid, a Saxon, about the same time. Bede, the first ecclesiastical English historian, who was born at Jarrow, on the banks of the Tyne, in 673, commonly denominated the Vener- able Bede, made a translation of the Gospels, if not the whole Bible, into his native tongue. The whole Bible was translated into the Anglo-Saxon by order of King Alfred; and he himself, about A. D. 890, undertook a version of the Psalms, but died before it was completed. The next complete translation of the whole Bible, including the apocryphal books, was made by John Wicklifle into English from the Latin, and appeared between 1360 and 1380. This translation was written, but not printed; and great objections were made to it by the clergy ; so that, in consequence of a de- cree of Arundel, archbishop of Canterbury, many persons were committed to the flames for reading Wickliffe's translation of the Old and New Testament. The only portion of Wickliffe's version of the Scriptures which has ever appeared in print, is the New Testament, published in 1731, by the Rev. John Lewis, minister of Margate, in Kent. This was reprinted several years ago, with a life of this earliest of English reformers, by the Rev. H. Baber, A. M., assistant librarian at the British museum. For the gratification of our young readers, we shall transcribe the Lord's prayer in Wickliffe's language, as a curious specimen of the orthography of the times in which this great reformer lived : — " Our Fadir that art in hevenys; halewid be thi name. Thi kyngdom come to, be thi will done in erthe as in hevene. Give to us this day ourbreede ouir other sub- staunce. And forgiue to us our dettis as we forgiven to our dettouris. And lede us not into temptacioun, but delyvere us from yvel. Amen." In the reign of Henry VIII. , William Tyndale made one of the best English trans- lations of the New Testament. It appeared in 1526, being the first that ever was printed in the English language. It was published at Hamburgh or Antwerp, and was dispersed at London and Oxford. Tonstal, bishop of London, and Sir Thomas More, bought up almost the whole impression, and burnt it at St. Paul's Cross. The venders were condemned by the star-chamber to ride with their faces to the horses' tails, with papers on their heads, and with the copies they had dispersed lied about them, to the standard at Cheapside, where they were compelled to throw them in the fire. The price, however, enabled Tyndale to proceed, and, undismayed, he be- gan to translate the Old Testament; for which he was at length seized in Flanders, and, having been strangled by the common hangman, his body was consumed tc ashes. Previous to the Reformation, in the time of Henry VIII., people were so little ac- quainted with the Scriptures, and so ignorant even in regard to the languages in which they were originally written, that the strangest assertions were made. Upon the ap- pearance of the Scriptures in the Hebrew and Greek originals, some individuals ex- claimed that " there was now a new language discovered called Greek of whicJr people should beware, since it was that which produced all heresies; that in thi* language was come forth a book called the New Testament, which was now in every body's hands, and was full of briars and thorns. And there had also another language now started up, which they called Hebrew, and that they who learnt it were termed Hebrews !" When the Reformation in England first took place, efforts were made to pronion the reading of the Scriptures among the common people. Among other devices for the purpose, the following curious one was adopted. Bonner, bishop of London, mused six bibles to be chained to certain convenient places in St. Paul's church, for 3 34 INTRODUCTION TO THE all that were so well inclined to resort thither, together with a certain admonition to the readers, fastened upon the pillars to which the bibles were chained, to this tener : "That whosoever came there to read should prepare himself to be edified, and made the better thereby; that he should bring with him discretion, honest intent, chanty, reverence, and quiet behavior; that there should no number meet together there as to make a multitude; that no such exposition be made thereupon but what is de- clared in the book itself; that it be not read with noise in time of divine service, or that any disputation or contention be used about it; that in case they continued their former misbehavior, and refuse to comply with these directions, the king would be forced, against his will, to remove the occasion, and take the bibles out of the church." Soon after the death of Tyndale, John Rogers, afterward martyr, finished the cor- rection of Tyndale's translation of the Old Testament, and printed it at Hamburgh, under the name of Thomas Matthews. Archbishop Cranmer and Miles Coverdale further corrected it. Cranmer got it printed by public authority in England, and King Henry ordered a copy of it to be set up in every church, to be read by even' one that pleased; but, by advice of the Romish bishops, he soon after revoked this order, and prohibited the Bible. When Coverdale, Knox, Samson, Goodman, Gilby, Cole, and Whittingham, were exiles during the persecution in the reign of Mary, they framed another translation, with short notes, and got it printed at Geneva. It was much valued by the Puritans, and in about thirty \ears had is many editions. The bishops being displeased with it, made a new one of ;heir own, w J iich was read in the churches, while the Geneva translation was generally lead in families. About 15S3 Laurence Thompson published an English version of the New Testament, from the Latin translation, and annotations of the learned Genevan divine Theodore Beza. In the end of the sixteenth and beginning of the seventeenth century, the English catholics at Rheims published a version of the whole Bible, crowded with barbarous terms, and accompanied with notes calculated to support the doctrines of their church. Of those who translated the Geneva bible, as it is called, in the reign of Mary, besides Coverdale, we have their own and contemporary testimony, that they well understood the grace and propriety both of the Hebrew and Greek tongue. Among the good Hebrew scholars of this period, also, must be reckoned Bishop Alley, after- ward one of the translators of the Bishops' Bible, who was the author of a Hebrew grammar, and a person universally learned, especially in divinity and languages; as well as his fellow-laborer, Bishop Benthan, who, about the beginning of the reign of Edward VI., is said to have addicted his mind entirely to the study of theology and the learning of the Hebrew language. To these may be added Bishop Davies, another of the translators of the Bishops' Bible, who, in the time of Mary, fled from this country, and, after his return in the following reign, served Wales, as well as Eng- land, with his assistance in translations of the Bible from the original into the lan- guages of both countries. The knowledge of Hebrew seems sometimes to have formed in those days a part even of female education for ladies of superior rank; and, accordingly, Paschali, in his translation of the Psalms from the Hebrew into Italian verse, dedicated it to Queen Elizabeth, as one who was well acquainted with the eastern tongues. " Having entered upon the reign of Elizabeth, we soon behold," says Todd, in his Memoirs of Biyan sValton, '• with grateful admiration, the goodiy company of those who made the present version of our Bible in the reign of her successor. Of these, several, if they have been equalled, have not yet been excelled by any of their coun- trymen in oriental learning. With men of similar studies the kingdom then abounded. Nor could it well be otherwise, attention having been paid to the culti- vation of such learning in public schools (particularly Merchant-Tailors school), ^founded soon after the accession of Elizabeth, and the pursuit being greatly encour- aged at both universities." At the conference which was held at Hampton Court, soon after the accession of James, fur the settling of an ecclesiastical uniformity between the two countries ol England and Scotland, the Puritans suggested unanswerable objections to the Bisli ops' Bible ; and the king similarly objected to the Genevan translation. He therefore appointed fifty-four learned persons to translate the Scriptures anew into English, or, at least, compose a better translation, out of many. Seven of the fifty-four either died or declined the assigned task. Forty-seven, who remained, were ranged hue sjx divisions, every individual of each division translating the portion assigned to tht HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 35 division, all of which translations were collected togetner; and when each company nad determined on the construction of their part, it was proposed to the other divis- ions for general approbation. When they met together, one read the new version, while all the rest held in their hands either copies of the original, or some valuable version : when they observed any objectionable passage, the reader paused till they considered and agreed on it. They met at Oxford, Cambridge, and Westminster, beginning the work in 1607, and after the expiration of three years it was finished, and published in 1611. This Bible, which is now in use, must be pronounced an excellent work, remarkable for the general fidelity of its construction, as well as for the simplicity of its language. Dr. Adam Clarke remarks, that " those who have compared most of the European translations with the original, have not scrupled to say, that the English translation of the Bible, made under the direction of King James the First, is the most accurate and faithful of the whole. Nor is this its only praise : the translators have seized the very spirit and soul of the original, and have expressed this almost everywhere with pathos and energy." It is still of public au- thority in the British dominions ; and, next to the Dutch, is perhaps the best transla- tion of the Bible extant. It has been asserted by Mr. Bellamy, and some others, that the authors of our au- thorized translation confined themselves to the Septuagint and the Vulgate, and did not translate from the Hebrew. This assertion, however, can be at once overthrown, by bringing forward the authority of the fifty-four, or rather, as seven of them died before the translation was finishes, of the forty-seven learned men, as may be seen by their no less modest than digniiie' preface, or address to the reader, inserted in the edition of the Bible published in the year 1630, which has this satisfactory pas- sage among manv others: "If you ask what they had before them, truly it was the Hebrew text of the Old Testament — the Greek of the New." Among these translators, two of the most noted for Hebrew erudition were Dr. Adrian Sara via, and Dr. Richard Clarke. Dr. Saravia, well known as a Hebrew critic, " was educated," says Mr. Todd in his life if Bryan Walton, " in all kinds of literature in his younger days, especially in several languages. He was the master of the celebrated oriental scholar, Nicholas Fuller, who gratefully mentions him in the preface to his Miscellanea Theologica ; and he was one of those who had suc- cessfully answered an objection of the Puritans, which they revived in the conference at Hampton Court, in regard to a verse in the old English version of the Psalms. Next to him in rank is Dr. Richard Clarke, who thoroughly understood three lan- guages, Latin, Greek, and Hebrew. Christ college, in Cambridge, of which he was a fellow, « had a testimony of his learning in his Hebrew lectures ; so had the uni- versity, in .his disputations and sermons ; so had the church, when his majesty (James the First) called many to the work of the last translation of the English bible; in which number he was, like one of the chief of David's worthies, not among the thirty, but among the first three.' To him and to Dr. Saravia, it appears that the portion assigned was from the Pentateuch lo the book of Chronicles." One of the best Hebrew scholars of that time was the celebrated English divine and theological writer, Hugh Broughton, who corresponded with a learned rabbi at Constantinople, and used great exertions for the conversion of the Jews there to Christianity. Mr. Broughton was in continual and most bitter controversy with the bishops, and was not employed, as he though i he should have beta, in the transla- tion of the Bible. At the time when our present version was made, he communica- ted many interpretations to the translators, which, as he afterward complains, they " thrust into the manrent;" and whoever compares the text of our version with the marginal readings, will be led to regret that our translators did not associate him with them ; though, it must be confessed, he would not have proved a very agreeabk fellow-laborer. It must be observed, that in rendering the original text into English, there are cer tain words necessarily supplied by the translators, in order to make out the meaning These supplementary words are printed in our Bible in italic letters, to show tha( they are not in the original. The greatest of these supplements occurs in the 23d verse of the second chapter of the First Epistle of John, where the translators have supplied no fewer than ten words, in order to make out what they thought to be the proper meaning " From the mutability of language," says Evans, " the variation of customs, and 3G INTRODUCTION TO THE the progress of Knowledge, several passages in the Bible require to be newly transla- ted, or materially corrected. Hence, in the present age, when biblical literature has been assiduously cultivated, different parts of the sacred volume have been transla- ted by able hands. The substituting a new translation of the Bible in the room of the one now in common use, has been much debated. Dr. Knox, in his ingenious essays, together with others, argues against it; while Dr. Newcome, the late Lord Primate of Ireland, the late Dr. Geddes, of the Catholic persuasion, and the late Rev. Gilbert Wakefield, contended strenuously for it. Bishop Lowth and Professor Marsh have pointedly shown the necessity of bringing the text of the Scriptures, by r he aid of ancient manuscripts and versions, as near as may be to perfection." Ainsworth, Doddridge, Macknight, Lowth, Blaney, and others, have published new translations of parts of the sacred books in English; and there is no doubt that many : mprovements might be made upon the present authorized version, particularly in the Old Testament. Dr. Alexander Geddes, above mentioned, at his decease, had pro- ceeded as far as the Psalms in the Translation of the Old Testament ; but many of his variations from the common version are extremely injudicious. Archbishop New- come and Mr. Wakefield published entire translations of the New Testament ; and an improved version of the New Testament, founded on Newcome, has been pub- lished by the Unitarians, accompanied with notes and an excellent introduction. With the professed object of defeating the attacks on Christianity, a new transla- tion of the Bible was given to the world, some years ago, by Mr. J. Bellamy, of Gray's- Inn lane, London. This version is in many places so very literal in its translation as to be unintelligible, and, therefore, unfit for any good purpose. The writer's forced and erroneous interpretations, as well as his unjustifiable attacks upon other versions and translators, were so far from tending to the accomplishment of his professed ob- ject, that they seemed rather calculated to produce the opposite effect; and, con- sequently, his new translation, which made some noise in its day, was soon judi- ciously consigned to oblivion. And, upon the whole, it may be observed, that, although it is generally acknowledged that after the lapse of two hundred and twenty years, the improvements in critical learning, and the discoveries in the pursuits of knowledge, together with hundreds of manuscripts that have since emerged into light, call for a revision of the present authorized version ; yet such an attempt should not be rashly ventured upon, and it should not take place until the necessity of it >ecomes much more apparent to common apprehension than it is at present. THE APOCRYPHA. Having given an account of the origin and literary characteristics of the accredited and usually accepted books composing the Old and New Testaments, we now pro- ceed to offer a few details relative to those books styled the Apocrypha, a branch of the subject possessed of considerable interest, and which we shall treat in the same measure of impartiality.* The term apocrypha is Greek, signifying hidden or concealed, and is used to desig- nate a number of books, often placed between the Old and New Testaments, or otherwise bound up with them. Some writers divide the sacred books into three classes, viz., the canonical, the ecclesiastical, and the apocryphal. In the first they place those whose authority has never been questioned in the catholic or universal church ; in the second, those which were not received at first, but which were never- theless read in the public assemblies as books that were useful, though they never "•laced them upon the same footing of authority as the former ; and in the third they pla^d the books which were of no authority, which could not be made to appear in public, rut were kept hidden, and were therefore called apocryphal, that is, concealed or such as could not be used in public.+ * The relationship between the canonical and the apocryphal books was correctly denned by the ancient Jewish synagogue, and, after it, by the ancient Greek and the modern Protestant churches, in opposition to the Roman Catholic theory. The Apocrypha serve, 1. As a kind of historical supplement, being a narrative of the kingdom of God during the period intervening between the Old and New Testaments. 2. As a record of popular piety, forming a distinct period between the age of the prophets and that of the New Testament. 3. To exhibit the character of Alexandrian Judaism, though only a part of them is derived from that source. 4 As a background to the canon itself. 5. For private instruction and edification. — Dr. Lange's General Introduction to the Scriptures.— Ed. t Lango. etc., on Matth., p. 14. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 37 The Apocrypha consists of fourteen books, viz. First and Second Esdras, Tohit, Judith, the rest of the chapters of the Book of Esther, the Wisdom of Solomon, Ecclesiasticus, Baruch, the Song of the Three Holy Children, the History of Susanna, the Story of Bel and the Dragon, the Prayer of Manasses, and the First and Second Book of the Maccabees. Every attentive reader must perceive that these books want the majesty of inspired scripture; and that there are in them a variety of things wicked, false, and disagreeing with the oracles of God. None of them were ever found in the proper Hebrew tongue; and they were never received into the canon ol scripture by the Jews, to whom the oracles of God were originally committed. They were partly read in private by the ancient Christians as useful, but they did not admit them into the canon of scripture. None of them are found in the catalogue of the canonical books by Melita, bishop of Sardis, in the second century; nor does Origen in the third, or Epiphanius in the fourth, in the least acknowledge their authenticity. One or two of the writers of them also ask pardon if they have said anything amiss; which clearly shows that they were not inspired, or at least did not consider them- selves to be so ; and therefore these books can by no means be considered as having a title to form part of the word of God. A very simple analysis of the books them- selves will be sufficient to demonstrate this to every attentive mind. I. It is not known at what time the First Book of Esdras was written, neither is it known who was the author of it; but Prideaux considers it certain that he wrote before the time of Josephus. It was originally to be found only in Greek; and in the Alexandrian manuscript it is placed before the canonical Book of Ezra, and is there called the First Book of Ezra, because the events related in it occurred prior to the return from the Babylonish captivity. In some editions of the Septuagint it is called the First Book of the Priest (meaning Ezra), the authentic book of Ezra being called the second book. In the editions of the Latin Vulgate previous to the Coun- cil of Trent, this and the following book are styled the Third and Fourth Books of Esdras, those of Ezra and Nehemiah being entitled the first and second books. This book is chiefly historical, giving an account of the return of the Jews from the Baby- lonish captivity, the building of the temple, and the re-establishment of divine wor- ship. It is, in fact, nothing but a bad extract of the last two chapters of Chronicles, and the Book of Ezra; and in a great many instances it even contradicts these. The author falsely makes Zorobabel a young man in the days of Darius Hystaspes, and Joakim to be his son ; whereas he was the son of Joshua, the high-priest. He calls Darius king of Assyria, long after that empire was utterly dissolved; and makes some things to be done under Darius which were done under Cyrus. II. The author of the Second Book of Esdras is likewise unknown. It is supposed to have been originally written in Greek, though the original of it has never been found but in Latin ; and there is an Arabic version, differing very materially from it, and having many interpolations. Although the writer personates Ezra, it is manifest from the style and contents of his book, that he lived long after that celebrated Jewish reformer. He pretends to visions and revelations; but they are so fanciful, indi- gested, ridiculous, and absurd, that it is clear the Holy Spirit could have no concern in the dictating of them. He believed that the day of judgment was at hand, and that the souls of good and wicked men would all be then delivered out of hell. A great many rabbinical fables occur in this book, particularly the account of the six days' creation, and the story of Behemoth (or Enoch, as it is here called) and Leviathan- two monstrous creatures that are designed as a feast for the elect after the day of resurrection, &c. He says that the ten tribes are gone away into a country which he calls Arsareth, and that Ezra restored the whole body of the Scriptures, which had been entirely lost. He also speaks of Jesus Christ and his apostles in so clear a manner, that the gospel itself is scarcely more explicit. On these accounts, and from the numerous traces of the language of the New Testament, and especially of the Revelation of St. John, which are discoverable in this book, several critics have concluded that it was written about the close of the first century, by some converted Jew, who assumed the name of Esdras or Ezra. III. The Book of Tobit, from the simplicity of the narrative, and the lessons of piety and meekness which it contains, has been always one of the most popular of the apocryphal writings. It was first written in Chaldee by some Babylonian Jew; but there is no authentic information as to his name, or the time when he flourished, [t professes to relate the history of Tobit and his family, who were carried into cap* 38 INTRODUCTION TO THE tivity to Nineveh by Shalmanezer, being first besrun by Tobit, then continued by Ms .son Tobias, and, lastly, finished by some other of the family, and afterward digested by the Chaldee author into that form id which we now have it. The lime of this history ends with the destruction of Nineveh, about six hundred and twelve years before Christ ; but most commentators and critics agree in thinking that the book itself was not written till about one hundred and fifty or tw T o hundred years before Christ. It has been generally looked upon, both by Jews and Christians, as a genu- ine and true history ; but it contains so many rabbinical fictions, and allusions to the Babylonian demonology, that it is much more rational to suppose the whole book an entire fable. It is not probable that, in the time of Sennacherib and Esarhaddon, the father should live, as is here said, one hundred and fifty-eight years, and the son one hundred and twenty-seven. It is certain no angel of God could falsely call himself '• Azarias the son of Ananias," as this writer affirms. The story of Sarah's seven husbands being successively killed on their marriage-night by an evil spirit, and ol that spirit's being driven away by he smell and smoke of the roasted heart and liver of a fish, and bound in the uttermost parts of Egypt, or of the angel Raphael's pre- senting to God the prayers of the saints, with other matters evidently fabulous, are quite sufficient to justify the rejecting of this book entirely from the sacred canon, upon the score of internal evidence alone. IV. The Book of Judith professes to relate the defeat of the Assyrians by the Jews, through the instrumentality of their countrywoman of this name, who craftily cut off the head of Holofernes, the Assyrian general. This book was originally written in Chaldee by some Jew of Babylon, and was thence translated by St. Jerome into the Latin tongue. Dr. Prideaux refers this history to the time of Manasseh, king of Judah ; Jahn assigns it to the age of the Maccabees, and thinks it was written to animate the Jews against the Syrians; but so many geographical, historical, and chronological difficulties attend this book, that Luther, Grotius, and other eminent critics, have considered it rather as a drama or parable than a real history. It has been received into the canon of scripture by some as being all true; but, on the other hand, it is the opinion of Grotius that it is entirely a parabolical fiction, written in :he time of Antiochus Epiphanes, when he came into Judea to raise a persecution against the Jewish church, and that the design of it was to confirm the Jews, under that persecution, in their hope that God would send a deliverer. According to him, by Judith is meant Judea, which, at the time of this persecution, was like a desolate widow: that her sword means the prayers of the saints: that by Bethulia, the name of the town which was attacked, is meant the temple, or the house of the Lord, which is called in Hebrew Bethel. Nabuchodonosor denotes the devil, and the king- dom of Assyria the devil's kingdom, pride. Holofernes. whose name signifies a min- ister of the serpent, means Antiochus Epiphanes, who was the devil's instrument in that persecution, &c, &c. It is plain that in this way, by means of a little ingenuity, anything may be made of anything; and such conjectures as these, as an able com- mentator remarks, however ingenious, are better calculated to exhibit the powers of fancy and the abuse of learning, than to investigate truth, or throw light on what is uncertain and obscure. The noted deliverance mentioned in this book is there said to have happened after the Jews had returned from their captivity, and had rebuil« the temple, and yet it is said to have been in the eighteenth year of Nebuchadnezzar, which is absurd ; and it is said that they had no trouble for eighty years or more after this deliverance, which is equally absurd, as the Jews during any period of their historv, or indeed any other nation, never enjoyed a peace of such long continuance. It is quite improbable that a small town, as Bethulia is here represented to be, should stand out against so powerful an army, or that the death of the general should have made all the troops betake themselves to a shameful flight. It is certainly wrong, as is done in the case of Judith, to commend a woman as a devout fearer of the Lord, who was guilty of notorious lying, of acting the part of a bawd, of profane swearing, of murder, and of speaking in praise of that committed by the patriarch Simeon, whom she claims as her ancestor. V. " The rest of the chapters of the Book of Esther, which are found neither in the Hebrew nor in the Chaldee," were originally written in Greek, whence they were translated into Latin, and formed part of the Italic or old Latin version in use be are the time of Jerome. Being there annexed to the canonical Book of Esther, they massed without censure, but were rejected by Jerome in his version, because he c«.n- HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 39 fined himself to the Hebrew Scriptures, and these chapters never were extant in the Hebrew language. They are evidently the production of a Hellenistic Jew, but are considered both by Jerome and Grotius as a work of pure fiction, which was annexed to the canonical book by way of embellishment. From the coincidence between some of these apocryphal chapters and Josephus, it has been supposed that they are a compilation from the Jewish historian ; and this conjecture is further confirmed by the mention of Ptolemy and Cleopatra, who lived but a short time before Josephus. These additions to the Book of Esther are often cited by the father of the church; and the Council of Trent has assigned them a place among the canonical books.* The author of these apocryphal chapters says many things that are in direct contra- diction to the inspired historian ; as when he affirms that the attempt made by the eunuchs to take away the life of Ahasuerus was in the second year of his reign; that Mordecai was at the very time rewarded for his discovery ; that Haman had been advanced be r ore this event, and was provoked with Mordecai for his discovery of the eunuchs, „ lat Haman was a Macedonian, and intended to transfer the government of Persia to the Macedonians. He very stupidly, also, represents Ahasuerus looking upon Esther, " as a fierce lion," and yet " with a countenance full of grace !" and as calling the Jews " the children of the most high and most mighty living God ;" and as ordering the heathens to keep the feast of Purim. VI. The book of " The Wisdom of Solomon" was never written by that monarch as its author falsely pretends; for it was never extant in Hebrew, nor received into the Jewish canon of scripture, nor is the style like that of Solomon. It consists of two parts : the first, which is written in the name of Solomon, contains a description or encomium of wisdom, by which comprehensive term the ancient Jews understood prudence and foresight, knowledge and understanding, and especially the duties of religion and morality. This division includes the first ten chapters. The second part, comprising the rest of the book, treats on a variety of topics widely differing from the subject of the first, viz., reflections on the history and conduct of the Israel- ites during tneir journeyings in the wilderness, and their subsequent proneness to idolatry. Hence the author takes occasion to inveigh against idolatry, the origin of which he investigates, and concludes with reflections on the history of the people of God. His allegorical interpretations of the Pentateuch, and the precept which he gives to worship God before the rising of the sun, have induced some critics to think thai ihe author was of the Jewish sect called Essenes. Although the fathers of the church, and particularly Jerome, uniformly considered this book as apocryphal, yet they recommended the perusal of it, in consideration of the excellence of its style. The third Council of Carthage, held in the year 397, pronounced it to be a canonical book, under the name of " the Fourth Book of Solo- mon," and the famous Council of Trent confirmed this decision. Jerome informs us that several writers of the first three centuries ascribed the authorship of it to Philo the Jew, a native of Alexandria who flourished in the first century; and this opinion is generally adopted by the moderns, on account of the Platonic notions that are dis- coverable in it, as well as from its general style, which evidently shows that it was the production of a Hellenistic Jew of Alexandria. Drusius, indeed, attributes it to another Philo, more ancient than the person just mentioned, and who is cited by Josephus; but this hypothesis is untenable, because the author of the Book of Wis- dom was confessedly either a Jew or a heretical Christian, whereas the Philo men- tioned by Drusius was a heathen. It is quite evident that this author had read Plato and the Greek poets ; and he employs a great many expressions taken from them, such as Ambrosia, the river of forgetfulness; the kingdom of Pluto, &c. ; as also several words borrowed from the Grecian games, which were not in use till long after the time of Solomon, whose 'tame he assumes. A great many of his phrases seem to be taken out of the Proph- ets, and even from the New Testament. There are numerous passages in the book evidently borrowed from the Prophecies of Isaiah and Jeremiah; particularly in the thirteenth chapter, where there are no less than nine verses plainly copied from the forty-fourth chapter of Isaiah. This author brings forward many things that are contrary both to the words of in- spiration and to common sense. He condemns the marrage-bed as sinful, and also excludes bastards from the hopes of salvation : he talks as if souls were lodged in * Vide Home's Introduction to the Scripture, vo' iv p 229. 40 INTRODUCTION TO TUB bodies according to their former merits; makes the murder of Abel the cause of the flood; represents the Egyptians as being plagued entirely by their own idols, that is to say, by the beasts which they worshipped, though it is certain they never wor- shipped frogs, locusts, or lice. He also calls the divine Logos, or second person of the Trinity, a vapor or steam, with many other things that are evidently absurd. The seventh book of the Apocrypha, is entitled " The Wisdom of Jesus the Son of Sirach, or Ecclesiasticus," which, like the preceding, has sometimes been considered as the production of King Solomon ; whence the council of Carthage deemed it canonical, under the title of the Fifth Book of Solomon, and their decision was adopted by the council of Trent. It is, however, manifest, that it was not, and could not be written by Solomon, because in it allusion is made to the captivity ; although it is not improbable that the author collected some scattered sentiments ascribed to Solomon, which he arranged with the other materials he had selected for his work. Sonntag is of opinion that this book is a collection of fragments, or miscellaneous hints for a large work, planned out and begun, but not completed. From the book itself it appears that it was written by a person of the name of Jesus the Son oi Sirach, who had travelled in pursuit of knowledge. By reading the Scriptures, and other good books, he attained a considerable share of wisdom ; and by collecting the grave and short sentences of such as went before him, and adding sundry of his own, lie endeavored to produce a work of instruction that might be useful to his country- men. This book was originally written in Hebrew, or rather the Syro-Chaldaic dialect then in use in Judea about the year 232 before Christ, when the author was probably about seventy years of age. Jesus, his grandson, who is also cailed The Son of Sirach, translated it into Greek during the reign of Ptolemy Evergetes, king of Egypt, about 140 years before Christ, for the use of the Hellenistical Jews, among whom he had settled in Alexandria. The Hebrew original is now lost; but it was extant in the time of Jerome, for he tells us that he had seen it under the title of The V arables ; but he says that the common name of it in Greek was The Wisdom of Jesus the Son of Sirach. The Latin version of this book has more in it than the Greek, several particulars being inserted which are not in the other. These seem to have been in- terpolated by the first author of that version ; but now the Hebrew being lost, the Greek, which has been made from it by the grandson of the author, must stand for the original, and from that the English translation has been made. From the sup- posed resemblance of this book to that of Ecclesiasticus, it has received from the LiTin translator the title of Ecclesiasticus, by which name it is most generally known and referred to. Ecclesiasticus is considered by far the best of all the apocryphal books. The ancients called it Panareton, that is, The Treasury of Virtue, as supposing it to con- tain maxims leading to every virtue. It has met with general esteem, also, in most of the western churches, and was introduced into the public service of the Church of England by the compilers of its Liturgy. It was frequently cited by the fathers of the church under the titles of" The Wisdom of Jesus," " Wisdom," " The Treasures of all the Virtues," or " Logos, the Discourse :" and in these times it was put into the hands of catechumens, or young Christians under examination, on account of the edi- fying nature of its instruction. VIII. The Book of " Baruch" is not extant in Hebrew, and only in Greek and Syriac ; but in what language it was originally written it is now impossible to ascer- tain. Grotius is of opinion that it is an entire fiction, and that it was composed by some Hellenistical Jew, under the name of Baruch. The principal subject of the book is an epistle, pretended to be sent by Jehoiakim and the captive Jews in Baby- lon, to their brethren in Judah and Jerusalem ; and the last chapter contains an epistle which falsely bears the name of Jeremiah. This has never been considered as a canonical book, either by the Jews or the Christians; and, indeed, it is little else than an arrant romance. It absurdly pretends to have been written by Baruch at Babylon, when it is probable he never went thither : that it was read to Jechcniah at the river Sud, which is nowhere else mentioned ; nor could Jeconiah hear it there, when he was confined in prison. It mentions a collection to buy sacrifices, gathered by the captives in Babylon, and sent to Joakim the priest, along with the sacked ves- sels which Zc^kiah had made ; but how could the captives newly enslaved in Baby- lon be able to niake collections ? How could they send it to a high-priest that did no then rxist? How could the sacred vessels which Zedekiah made be returned frotf* HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. A 1 Babylon, when it does not appear that he made any ? Or how could they be re- turned before they were carried away, along with himself? The author borrows a variety of expressions from Daniel, and must therefore have lived after Baruch was dead. The epistle ascribed to Jeremiah is neither written in his style, nor at all in the style of the Scriptures ; and it ridiculously turns the seventy years of the captivity into seven generations.* IX. " The Song of the Three Children in the Furnace" is placed in the Greek version of Daniel, and also in the Vulgate Latin version, between the twenty-third and twenty-fourth verses of the third chapter. It is partly a poor imitation of the 148th Psalm, and partly deprecatory, not at all suited to such a deliverance. It does not appear to have ever been extant in Hebrew ; and although it has met with a good deal of approbation for the piety of its sentiments, it was never admitted to be canon- ical, until it was recognised by the council of Trent. The account of the flame streaming above the furnace " forty-and-nine cubits," and of the angel's " smiting the flame out of the oven, and making a moist whistling wind in it," seems entirely fab- ulous and romantic ; nor is it very consistent with the account of the fire's loosening their hands. The fifteenth verse contains a direct falsehood ; for it asserts that there was no prophet at that time, when it is well known that Daniel and Ezekiel both exercised the prophetic ministry then in Babylon. This apocryphal fragment is, therefore, most probably the production of some Hellenistic Jew. The hymn resem- bling the hundred and forty-eighth Psalm, which commences at the 29th verse, was so approved of by the compilers of the Liturgy of the Church of England, that thev appointed it to be used instead of the Te Deum during Lent. X. " The History of Susanna," has always been treated with some respect, but has never been considered as canonical, though the council of Trent admitted it into the number of the sacred books. It is evidently, like the rest, the work of some Hellenistic Jew, and in the Vulgate version it forms the thirteenth chapter of the Book of Daniel. In the Septuagint version it is placed at the beginning of that book. Lamy, and some other modern critics after Julius Africanus and Origen, consider it to be both spurious and fabulous. That it was originally written in Greek, is mani- fest in the punishment pronounced on the elders, from the play which is made upon the Greek names of the mastic and holm trees, under which they said they found Susanna and the young man together. It is evidently absurd to affirm, that in the beginning of the captivity, Joachim, the husband of Susanna, was become exceedingly rich ; that there were Jewish judges with the power of life and death in Chaldea ; that Daniel, who was bred in the court, had leisure, or being so young, was admitted to be a judge; that Susanna went into her garden to wash at noonday, and did it without searching if anybody was there; or that the elders attempted to force her, when they could not but every moment expect the return of her maids. XI. " The History of the Destruction of Bel and the Dragon" is a still more romantic story. It is not extant in either the Hebrew or the Chaldee language, and it was always rejected by the Jewish church. Jerome gives it no better title than that of The Fable of Eel and the Dragon ; nor has it obtained more credit with posterity, except with the fatheis of the council of Trent, who determined it to be a part of the canonical scriptures. It forms the fourteenth chapter of Daniel in the Latin Vulgate; in the Greek" it was called the Prophecy of Habakkuk, the son of Jesus, of the tribe of Levi ; bi this is evidently false, for that prophet lived before the time of Nebu- chadnezzar, and the events pretended to have taken place in this fable are assigned to the time of Cyrus. There are two Greek texts of this fragment, that of the Sep- tua. E. Slieima AN ILLUSTRATED HISTORY OF THE BIBLE HISTORY OF THE OLD TESTAMENT. CHAPTER I THE CREATION — FALL OF MAN. THE first transaction recorded in history is the creation of the world. " In the beginning God created the heaven and the earth." Gen. i. 1. This work is worthy the amazing power of that Supreme Being by whom it was executed. The idea of creation is truly sublime. It is, indeed, so vast that ancient as well as some modern philosophers have denied the possibility of creation, and hence have invested matter with the attribute of eternity, making it coeval with God. From the infallible testimony of God, we infer that the material elements, of which organic forms and worlds are composed, were the product of the same creative power, so clearly seen and understood by the things that are made. So reasons the apostle, Heb. xi. 3. In the book of G-enesis, the " beginning" of everything is ascribed to the creative power of God ; and we are informed that over the formless and chaotic earth, dark- ness reigned, and " that the Spirit of G-od moved" or brooded " upon the face of the waters," bringing order out of confusion, light out of darkness, and this beauteous earth into a fit condition for the residence of man, and the subsistence of animal and vege- table life.* The Almighty architect said, "Let there be Light, and there was Light." With respect to this expression, Longinus, that great judge of the beautiful and sublime, says, " It is the most noble and lofty example of sublimity that imagi- nation can conceive; it commands things into existence, speaks with the voice of supernatural authority, and is the language of God." " And God saw the light that it was good, and he divided the light from the darkness, calling the light day, and the darkness night ; and the evening and the morning were the first day." Surpri- sing display of Omnipotence to illuminate a whole system in so short a time, and ap- point the proper portions of light and darkness to every part of the universe I Who, with an intelligent mind and a sensitive heart, can look upon the glorious * Between the creative act, described by the words, " In the beginning God created the heaven and the earth," and the organizing work, commenced on the first of the six days, an indefinitely protracted interval of time seems evidently to have elapsed. The facts of geology, so far as they seem at variance with the sacred record, belong to what has been denominated a pre-adamic earth, the time-periods of which were long enough for the development and growth of those gigantic species of animal and vegetable formations, found in the subterranean cabinets of fossil remains. The learned Prof. Moses Stuart, though an anti-geo- logist, in commenting on the first verse in Genesis, remarks ; " All order and arrangement plainly seem to be considered by the writer of Gen. L as having been effected after the original act of creation. * * * The original act of creation, as understood by the sacred writers, appears plainly to have been the calling of matter into being, the causing of it to exist ; and out of this the heavens and the earth were afterwards formed, i. e., reduced to their present order and arrangement." The Rev. John Harris, D. D., as the result of a very elaborate investigation, says : " On the whole, then, my firm persuasion is, that the first verse in Genesis was designed, by the Divine Spirit, to announce the absolute origination of the material universe by the Almighty Creator; and that it is so understood in other parts of Holy Writ; that, passing by an Indefinite interval, the second verse describes the state of our planet immediately prior to the Adaiuic crea- tion ; and that the third verse begins the account of the six days' work.'' These views are not new — they were adopted by some of the most learned of the early fathers of the Christian Church, long before the science of geology was known. Gregory Nazianzen and Justin Martyr suppose an indefinite period between the creation and the first ordering of things. Basil and Origen are still more explicit. To these might be added Augustine, Theodoret, Episcopius, and others, whose interpretations imply the existence of an indefinite interval between the creatiou, as narrated in the first verse of Genesis, and that of which an account is given in the following verses. (See Wiseman's Lectures, and Bucklaud's Bridgewater Treatise.) During this indefinite interval between the primordial creation and the Adamic creation, millions of ages might have intervened, thus affording ample time for the productions, growths, formations, deposits, and transitions which the modern science of geology has brought to light. As Dr. Kitto remarks in his Bible Illustrations: "Whatever facts are recorded in the Book of God, the volume of earth confirms ; and for other facts unrecorded in Scripture, which are written in his stony volume, a sufficient interval of silence and time is afforded." Thus it appears that the phenomena, developed by prying open the long-sealed, stony pages of God's ancient book of nature, are found, in their ultimate results, to be in accordance with His inspired volume.— Ed. 4(j AN ILLUSTRATED scenes and objects around him, without emotion; and, if piety be an inmate of his bosom, without adoring reverence and filial love to Him who made them all ? And n oi it is most true that the beauties and sublimities of the natural world are exhibited id vain to the generality of mankind. Engaged in other pursuits, or degraded by evil passions, or besotted by self-indulgence, the most magnificent, and the most soothing scenes which mark the power or the goodness of God, are equally unnoticed and despised by many who ought to feel most interested in them. Wandering oft, with brute unconscious gaze Man marks not" Him, — "marks not the mighty hand, That, ever busy, wheels the silent spheres, — And as, on earth, this grateful change revolves, With transport touches all the springs of life." The waters being still dispersed over the face of chaos, the Almighty was pleased to separate them from each other, and restrain their current within proper bounds. He divided those above the firmament from those beneath, and parted the waters of the earth from the watery atmospheres. The firmament* formed on this occasion was called heaven, and, with the separation of the waters, completed the second day of the creation. Light being formed, and the waters separated from each other, the Almighty, on the third day, commanded that the waters beneath the firmament should he gathered together, and dry land appear. The waters, accordingly, fled into deep valleys, and recesses of the earth, the lofty mountains raised their towering heads, and the lesser hills displayed their pleasing summits. As the great Creator designed the earth for the future habitation of man and beast, it was no sooner separated from ihe waters, than he gave it a prolific virtue, and endowed it with the power of vege- tation. The surface was immediately covered with grass for cattle, which was suc- ceeded by herbs, plants, and fruit-trees, proper for the nourishment of man. All those Avere instantly in a state of perfection, that they might be ready for the use of i hose inhabitants for whom they were designed.! The Almighty Creator, having prepared such necessaries as he thought proper on earth, for the use of its intended inhabitants, on the fourth day formed those two great luminaries of heaven called the Sun and Moon ! the former of which he ap- pointed to rule the day, and the latter the night. He likewise formed the planets, fixed their gravitation and vicissitudes, and appointed their regular courses, that they might divide time and distinguish the seasons. By means of these luminaries the atmosphere was rarified, and by their influence on the planets, was promoted the office of vegetation. The creation of the first four days consisting of things inanimate, on the fifth God pronounced his omnipotent fiat, for the production of living creatures, saying, "Let the waters bring forth abundantly the moving creature that hath life, and fowlsi that they may fly above the earth in the open firmament of heaven." He was pleased to form these creatures of different shapes and sizes; some very large, || to show the wonders of his creating power, and others exceeding small, to display the goodness of his indulgent providence. After he had created them, he gave them his blessing, by bidding them, be fruitful and multiply ; enduing them, at the same time, with a power to propagate, in a prolific manner, their respective species. And thus were completed the -works of the fifth day. In the beginning of the sixth day God created the terrestrial animals, whieh the sacred historian has divided into three classes, namely, * The Hebrew word which we translate firmament, signifies a curtain, or anything stretched out and extended. The term is not only applied to the sky, but to the atmosphere, and in this place seems particu- larly to refer to that extent of airy matter which encompasses the earth, and separates the clouds om the waters on the earth. t Though the first fruits of the earth were all produced without any seeds, by the bare command of God yet, to perpetuate the same, each kind contained its own seed, which being sown in the earth, or falling, when ripe, from the plants themselves, should continue in succession to the end of the world. t From this expression, some are of opinion that fowls derive their origin from the water as well as the fifties ; while others, with equal reason, suppose them to have been made out of the earth, agreeably to the following passage in Gen. ii. 19: "Out of the ground God formed every beast of the field, and even fowl of the air." But these two texts are easily reconciled, when we consider that neither denies what the other asserts. It is to be observed, that some fowls live rnostiy in the water, others partly ou land and partly on water, while a third sort live altogether on land. This diversity countenances the opinion of many of the ancients, that they were made partly out of the water, or of both mixed together. ii The words in the text are. And God created great whales. But this expression must not be confined to •he wlnle alone : it undoubtedly implies fish of an enormous size, of which there art »'arioiu species, that -.iift'or ooth in the^ fonn and magnitude HISTORY OF THE BIBLE 4 7 1 . Beast?, or wild creatures, such as lions," tigers, bears, wolves, fcc. 2. Cattle, or domestic animals, for the use of men, such as bulls and cows, sheep, hogs, horses, asses, &c. 3. Creeping things, such as serpents, worms, and various kinds of insects. The omnipotent Creator having made these abundant preparations, crowned his work with the formation of the grand object, man, for whose use they were designed. He said, Let us make man in our own image, after our likeness* And, to show that the creature he was now about to form should be the master-piece of the creation, and (under his auspices) have supremacy over the whole, he further says, and let him I, ace dominion over the fish of the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over the cattle, and over all the earth, and over every creeping thing that creepeth upon the earth. In the formation of man's body, God made choice of the dust of the earth, after which, having infused into him an immortal spirit, or, as the text says, breathed into his nos- trils the breath of life, he became a living soul.f As soon as Adam began to experience the consciousness of his existence and intel- lectual endowments, he would very naturally direct attention to the animals around him, desirous of knowing whether his relation to them was one of security and peace. To relieve his mind of any disquieting apprehensions, he was assured by the Creator that they all were to be subject to his authority. As a pledge of such authority, they were moved to appear before him, that he might give them such names as would dis- tinguish their species and indicate their natures.^ On perceiving that all these animals appeared in pairs, Adam would, as may be supposed, desire and expect to find a companion kindred to himself, and fitted to be a partner and help-meet. To meet this want God took one of his ribs, and created a woman, whom the man named, and gladly recognized as one with himself. " This," said he, " is now bone of my bone and flesh of my flesh," language which referred to the nearness of the conjugal relation, as a partnership of love. It thus was intimated that the marriage bond was to be regarded as indissoluble.! This was certainly the last act$ of the whole creation, which, by the almighty power of God, was made perfect in the space of six days; at the close of which the great Creator took a survey of the whole, and pronounced it good, or properly adapt- ed to the uses for which it was intended. The next day (which was the seventh from the beginning of the creation^) God set apart as a time of solemn rest from his labors. He blessed and sanctified it; and to impress mankind with a just sense of his infinite wisdom, power, and goodness, ordered it ever after to be kept sacred.** * What a noble and majestic expression was this, and how consistent with the nature of that Almighty Being by whom it was spoken ! In the formation of other creatures, God says, Let the earth or the waters bring them forth ; but here (as if man was to be made only a little lower than the angels) he says. Let to, make him in our image - that is, let us make him like ourself; let us endue him with all those noble faculties that will raise hiin above the animal creation, and make him not only to bear our image in the lower world, but also qualify him for the enjoyment of those blessings that are to be found at our right hand, to the full pxtent of eternity. t Josephus says, that after God had created man, lie called him Adam, which in the Hebrew signifies rid from the earth with which he was made being of that color. J The jrreat poet, Milton, on this occasion, expresses himself as follows : " As thus he spake, each bird and beast, behold Approaching, two and two ; these cowering low With b.andisiimem ; each bird scooped on hi.s wing I named them as they passed, and understood Their nature, with such knowledge God endued My sudden apprehension !" II The general name for woman, in the Hebrew tongue, is Issa; but this woman, being the first, was (after the fall) called Ene, which signifies the mo/her of human kind. 6 Though the sacred historian does not, in a particular manner, mention the formation of Eve till some time al',er that of Adam, yet it is not in the least to be doubted but they were both created on the same day. This, indeed, evidently appears from the relation of the works of the sixth day, Gen. ii. 27, where, after ths words, God created man in his own image, are added, male and female created he them. m l It is not directly ascertained at what time or season of the year the world was made ; but, from the trees being laden with fruit (of which histor) informs us our first parents did eat), it is most reasonable te suppose that it was at or near the autumnal equinox. ** Thus was the seventh day appointed by God, from the very beginning of the world, to be observed as a day ol rest by mankind, in memory of the great benefits received in the formation of the universe. It has been a question, among the learned, whether any sabbath was observed before the promulgation of the law by Moses ; but the most judicious commentators agree that Adam and Eve constantly observed the seventh Jay, and dedicated it in a peculiar manner to the service of the Almighty ; and that the first Sabbath, which Philo (one of the most ancient writers) calls the bvth-day of the world, was celebrated in Paradise itself which pious custom, bein? transmitted from our first parents to their posterity, became in tiuie so general that the same PhU calls it the universal festival of mankind. 43 AN ILLUSTRATED When Adam first beheld the fair partner of his life, who was presented to him Ny her Almighty Creator, he was struck with a secret sympathy, and, finding her of his own likeness and complexion, he exclaimed with rapture,* This is noiv bone of my hone, and flesh of my flesh. He easily foresaw that the love and union which were now to take place between them were to be lasting. The Divine Hand which con- ducted the woman to Adam did it in the light of a matrimonial father; and having joined them together, he pronounced this benediction, Be fruitful and multiply, and replenish the earth ; intimating, that, as he had given them dominion over every part of the creation, they, by being themselves fruitful in the procreation of children, might live to see the eanh replenished with a numerous progeny. To facilitate the intended happiness of our first parents, the Almighty Creator had provided for their resideuce a most delightful spot called Eden,f which was watered by an extensive river divided into four streams. It was furnished with all kinds of vegetables, among which were two remarkable trees, one called the Tree of Life,\ * The joy and transport of Adam, on his first sight of Eve, is thus beautifully expressed by Milton : " On she came, Led by her heavenly Maker (though unseen) And guided by his voice ; not uninformed Of nuptial sanctity and marriage rites. Grace was in all her steps, heaven in her eye, In every gesture dignity and love. 1. overjoved. could not forbear aloud: s Tl» 5 s turn hath made amends: thou hast fulfilled Tny words. Creator bounteous and benign ! Giver of all things (air, out fairest this Of all thv gifts !" t There is probably no subject on which such a diversity of opinions has been entertained as concerning the site of the Paradise in which the progenitors of mankind were placed. Mohammedans even believe that it was in one of the seven heavens from which Adam was cast down upon the earth after the fall, " Some," says Dr. Clarke, "place it in the third heaven, others in the fourth; some within the orbit of the moon, others in the moon itself; some in the middle regions of the air, or beyond the earth's attraction some on tbe earth, others under the earth, and others within the earth." Every section of the earth's sui- face lias also, in its turn, had its claim to this distinction advocated. From this mass of conflicting opinions we shall select the two which have been supported by the most eminent authorities, and wlrich seem to have the strongest probabilities in their favor. It lias been assumed that in whatever situation, otherwise probable, the marks by which Moses charac- terizes the spot are to be found, there we may suppose that we have discovered the site of Paradise. In fixing the first probability, the all but unquestionable fact that the known rivers Euphrates and Tigris are mentioned as two of the four rivers of Eden, is of the greatest importance ; and therefore the most exact inquirers have not sought for the spot at any point distant from those rivers. The Euphrates and Tigris being thus identified with two of the rivers of Eden, there has remained a great latitude in the choice of a site for the garden, some looking for it near the source of those rivers, and others seeking it in the low and fiat plains through which they flow in the lower part of their course. The first position places Eden in Armenia, near the sources of the four great rivers Euphrates, Tigris (Hiddekel), Phasis (Pison), and the Araxes (Gihon). The similarity of sound between Phasis and Pison is considered to strengthen this opinion, as does also the similarity of meaning between the Hebrew name Gihon and the Greek Araxes, both words denoting swiftness. One consideration that induced a preference for this site is, that the advocates of this opinion considered w heads," as applied to the rivers which went forth from the garden, to mean " sources," which would there- fore render it natural to look for the terrestrial paradise in a mountainous or hilly country, which only could supply the water necessary to form four heads of rivers. But others, those who would fix the site toward the other extremity of the two known rivers, reckon it sufficient, and indeed more accordant with the text, to consider the " four heads" not as sources, but as channels— that is, that the Euphrates and Tigris united before they entered the garden, and after leaving it divided again, and entered the Persian gulf by two mouths ; thus forming four channels, two above and two below the garden, each called by a different nane. "The river or channel," says Dr. Wells, "must be looked upon as a highway crossing over a fores.,, and which may be said to divide itself into four ways, whether the division be made above 01 below the forest." With this view, some writers are content to take the present Shat-ul-Arab (the single stream which is formed by the confluence of the Tigris and Euphrates, and which afterward divides to enter the gulf) as the river that went through the garden ; but as Major Rennell has shown that the two great rivers kept distinct courses to the sea until the time of Alexander, although at no great distance of time afterward they became united, other writers are contented to believe that such a junction and sub- sequent divergence did, either in the time o f Moses or before the deluge, exist in or near the place indi- cated. The deluge must have made great changes in the beds of these and many other rivers, and inferior agencies have alone been sufficient greatly to alter the ancient channels of the Tigris and Euphrates. This is not only rendered obvious by an inspection of the face of the country, but the memory of such events is preserved by local traditions, and they are even specified in the writings of the Arabian geogra- phers and historians. Thus, then, of the two most probable conjectures, one fixes the terrestrial Paradise in Armenia, between the sources of the Euphrates, Tigris, Phasis,,, and Araxes ; and the other identifies the land of Eden with the country between Bagdad and Bussorah ; and, in that land, some fix the garden neai the latter city, while others, more prudently, only contend that it stood in some part of this territory where an ancient junction and subsequent separation of the Euphrates and Tigris took place. X This tree is supposed to have been so called from its having in it a virtue not only to repair the animal spirits, as other nourishment does, but likewise to preserve and maintain them in the same equal tempei and stale wherein they were created; that is to say, without affecting the party who used it with pain, ■iisease, *nd decay. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 40 and the other the Tree of Knowledge,* by the latter of which Good and Evil were 10 be distinguished. Into this earthly paradise did the Almighty conduct Adam and Eve, giving them orders to take careof the garden, and superintend the plants. He granted them permission to eat of the fruit of every tree, except that of the Tree of Knoivledoe of Good and Evil. This he strictly charged them not even to touch, on the penalty of incurring his displeasure, and thereby entailing upon themselves and their descendants, mortality, diseases, and death. With this small restraint God left them in the garden of Eden, where everything was pleasing to the sight, and ac- commodated to their mutual enjoyment. Thus fixed in the most beautiful situation, possessed of innocence, devoid of guilt, and free from care, the happiness of our first parents appeared complete : " Perfection crowned witli wondrous frame, And peace and plenty smiled around ; They felt no grief, they knew no shame, But tasted heaven on earthly ground." But, alas ! their bliss was transient, their innocence fleeting, and their exemption from care very short. All animals at this time were social in their tempers, except the serpent,! who was equally subtle and envious. This malignant creature, viewing the felicity of the first pair with those painful sensations which are natural to depravity of heart, de- termined to allure them from their innocence, and stimulate them to the crime of disobedience. In consequence of this infernal design, he began by persuading Eve to taste the prohibited Tree of Knowledge, telling her,! that, by so doing, both herself and her husband would immediately be sensible of the difference between Good, and Evil, acquire much additional happiness, and even not be inferior, in point of wis- dom, to Goo himself. J Unhappily the artifices of the serpent prevailed. Eve gazed on the tempting fruit till her appetite was inflamed ; its beautiful hue made her fancy it a most delicious food; and she at length sacrificed her duty to gratify her curiosity. She stretched forth her presumptuous hand, took of the baneful fruit, and ate her oAvn destruction. She plucked, she ate ; Earth felt the wound, and nature from her seat, Sighing through all her works, gave sign of wo That all was lost." Pleased with the taste of the fruit, and fancying herself already in possession of that additional happiness the serpent had promised her, she flew to Adam, and enticed him to participate in her crime. He scrupled not to eat Against his better knowledge- Earth trembled from her entrails, as again In pangs, and Nature gave a second groan : Sky lowered, and muttering thunder, some sad drops Wept, at completing of the mortal sin." Remorse, the natural consequence of guilt, now opened their eyes to each other's nakedness. No longer shielded by innocence from shame, they were mutually shock- ed at the reciprocal indecency of their appearance ; and they sewed fig-leaves together and made themselves aprons. That is, they tied or twisted together the broad leaves of the fig-tree, so as to form a girdle for the loins, being prompted by the impulse of shame to the expedient of an artificial covering for their persons. While they were in a state of innocence, they no sooner heard the voice of God ap- * There are various opinions concerning the nature and properties of the Tree of Knowledge, which was forbidden to our first parents. Some think it had a baneful quality, directly opposite to that of the Tree of Life ; while others imagine it is thus called by the sacred historian, because, directly after Adam and Eve had eaten of it, they became sensible of the good they had lost, and the evil they had incurred, by their disobedience. t It is geneially thought that this was the work of Satan, who, to effect his purposes, assumed the figure of a serpent. X The narrative of the temptation has been regarded by some interpreters as allegorical, because the power of speech and the faculty of reason are ascribed to the serpent. But the whole narrative, of which tiiis is a part, is clearly historic ; and as the sacred writer would not be likely to mix the allegorical and the historical in his record, the conclusion is very evident that the literal interpretation of the narrative is the true one, and that the presence and the agency of a real serpent must be considered as a matter of fact. Of course it will be conceded that the utterance of words was supernatural. There is clear evidence, however, of the agency of a higher power concealed under the serpent's form — a malignant spirit of evil — that used the serpent in executing his malevolent design.— Ed. 4 50 AN ILLUSTRATED proach them, than they ran with ecstasy to meet him, and with humble joy welcomed his gracious visits ; but now their Maker was become a terror to them, and they a terror to each other. Their consciences painted their transgression in the blackest colors, all hope was banished, and nothing remained but horror and despair. When, therefore, after their transgression, they heard the voice of the Loud in the garden, instead of running to meet him as before with cheerfulness and joy, they flew to the most retired part of it, in order to conceal themselves from his sight.* But the Almighty soon called them from their dark retreat; and, after a short examination, they both acknowledged their guilt. The man attempted to excuse himself by laving the blame on the woman, and pleaded her persuasions as the cause of his criminality. The woman endeavored to remove the crime from herself to the serpent ; but the Almighty thought proper to make all three the objects of his distributive justice. As the serpent had been the origma'. n ause of this evil, God first passes sentence on him, which was, that (instead of going erect as he did before the fact) he should ever after creep on his belly, and thereupon become incapable of eating any food, except what was mingled with dust. The woman was given to understand that she had entailed upon herself sorrow from conception, pain in childbirth, and subjection to her hus- band. The punishment of Adam consisted in a life of perpetual toil and care,t in order to keep in due subjection those passions and appetites, to gratify which he had transgressed the divine command. The awful decree being thus solemnly pronounced, as well on the author of the offence, as the offenders themselves, the Almighty, to enhance their sense of the crime, and the tokens of his resentment, expelled the guilty pair from the blissful regions of paradise, after which he placed at the east end of the garden a guard of angels, in order nut only to prevent their re-entrance, but to secure the forbidden fruit from the unhallowed hands of polluted mankind. Thus, by this original pollution, fell our first parents, who, from the happiest con- dition that can be conceived, plunged themselves into a state of wretchedness, and thereby entailed misery on their descendants. CHAPTER II. FAMILY OF ADAM — UNIVERSAL DEPRAVITY — THE FLOOD. In the space of two years after the expulsion of our first parents from Paradise, the human race was increased by Eve's being delivered of two sons, the first of whom she called Cain,$ and the latter Abel.|| As these two brothers were of different disposi- tions, so, when they grew up to years of maturity, they followed different employ- ments. Abel, the younger was just in his dealings, and amiable in his temper. Firmly believing that God saw all his actions, and knew their motives, he carefully avoided offending his beneficent Maker, and, in the simplicity of a shepherd's life, took a pleasure in practising all the social virtues. On the contrary, Cain was per- versely wicked, and avariciously craving. His attention was principally directed to * Milton makes Adam, on this occasion, express himself as follows : " How shall I heliold the face Henceforth of God or angel, erst with joy And raptures oft beheld .'— O ! might 1 here In solitude live savage, in some glade Obscured, where highest woods (impenetrable To star or sunlight) spread their umbrage broad, And brown as evening ; cover me, y'e pines ! Ye cedars, with innumerable boughs, Hide me, where I never may see them more !" t The words in the text are, in the sweat of thy face shall thou eat bread ; which implies that labor aione •should produce what, if he had not transgressed, nature would have spontaneously bestowed. t As soon as Eve was delivered of her first child, she cried out. in a transport of joy, / have gotten a man from the Lord: being persuaded that this son was the promised seed mentioned by the Almighty in the sen- tence he passed on the serpent : / will put enmity betwen thee and the woman, and between thy seed and he seed : it shall bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise his heet. In consequence of this persuasion, Eve called aer first son Cain, which signifies possession or acquisition. il The word Abel, in the Hebrew language, signifies vanity, and, according to some, was given him a« an Intimation of the little esteem his mother had for him in comparison of her first-born HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 51 nusbandry ; but with all the benefits arising from cultivation, he was perpetually dissatisfied at what the earth produced, and, from his natural vile disposition, was guilty of the first murder ever committed. It was customarv, even in the infancy of the world, to make acknowledgments to (tod bv wav of oblation. This being agreed on by these two brothers, Cain offered the produce of his husbandry, and such fruits as nature bestowed by the assistance of art. Abel's oblation consisted of the milk of his herds, and the firstlings of his Hocks. The Almighty was pleased to prefer the latter, being the simple productions of nature, to the former, which, no doubt, he considered as the interested offerings ol laborious avarice.* This preference raised the resentment of Cain, whose soul was so impressed with hatred toward his brother, that he even showed it in his coun- tenance. The Almighty, knowing the secrets of Cain's heart, condescended, in his great goodness, to expostulate with him to the following effect: " That his respect to true goodness was impartial, wherever he found it ; and that, therefore, it was purely his own fault that his offering was not equally accepteu . thru piety was the proper dis- position for a sacrificer, and that if herein he would emulate his brother, the same tokens of divine approbation should attend his oblations: that it was madness in him to harbor any revengeful thought against his brother, because, if he proceeded to put them into execution, a dreadful punishment would immediately follow." This kind admonition from the Almighty had so little effect upon Cain, that, in- stead of being sensible of his fault, and endeavoring to amend, he grew more and more incensed against his brother, and at length formed the resolution of gratifying his re- venge by depriving him of his existence. But it was not long before Cam was ca/led to an account for this horrid deed. The all-seeing God, from whom no secrets can be hid, appeared before him, and demanded the reason of his brother's absence. Sensible of the enormity of his crime, Cain at- tempted to reply ; but guilt, for a time, tied his tongue. At length, in faltering ac- cents, he tried to evade what he did not dare positively to ansAver. He pretended to be surprised at not having seen his brother for some time ; and likewise observed, that he was neither the guardian of Abel, nor empowered to watch his motions. On this the Almighty charged Cain, in direct terms, with the murder of his broth- er ; and, after expressing to him the atrociousness of the crime, and how much it cried to heaven for vengeance, proceeded to pass sentence on him. " Now," says he, "art thou cursed from the earth, which hath opened her mouth to receive thy brother's blood from thy hand. When thou tillest the ground it shall not henceforth yield unto thee her strength ; a fugitive and a vagabond shalt thou be in the earth." The wretched criminal, struck with the severity of this denunciation, convinced of the atrocious nature of his offence, and deploring the misery of his situation, ex- claimed, " My punishment is greater than I can bear." He was apprehensive of meeting Avith Avorse evils than his sentence really imported; and that he should not only feel the miseries of banishment, but likeAvise be subjected to the loss of his life by the hands of his felloAv-creatures. But, to ease his mind in this last respect, the Almighty Avas pleased to declare to him, that Avhoever should slay him, vengeance should be taken on them seven fold. He likeAvise set a particular mark on him, whereby he might escape his supposed danger ; for it Avas the divine int p nt to puni?h nim by the prolongation of his life, during the remainder of which L l should be loaded Avith infamy, and under all the horrors of a guilty conscience. In consequence of the divine sentence, Cain left his parents and relations, and went into a strange country. He Avas banished from that sacred spot where the Almighty had given frequent manifestations of his glorious presence; and though by the divine decree no person Avas permitted to hurt him, yet the consciousness of his oAvn guilt made him fearful of everything he saAV or heard. After Avandering about * The reason why the offering of Ahel was preferred to that of Cain, is given in the Epistle to the Heb. 11 : 4: "By faith Abel offered unto God a more excellent sacrifice than Cain." It was faith that made hi9 offering more acceptable. As Abp. Magee has remarked. " His faith was especially superior, as being not directed to God alone, but also to the great Redeemer, promised immediately after the fall, whose expiatory death was typified by animal sacrifice ; by offering which Abel evinced his faith in the great sacrifice of the Redeemer prefigured by it. Such faith was what Caiu wanted. His offering was a mere recognition of God as a Creator and Benefactor, such as any unrighteous man might offer. — Ed. 52 AN ILLUSTRATED a considerable time through different countries, he at length settled with his family ill the land of Nod. Here he lived for a course of years, in which time his descend- ants being greatly increased, in order to keep them together, he built a city, and called it after the name of his son Enoch, which, in the Hebrew tongue, signifies a dedication. From the loins of Cam, m regular succession, came Lantech, the son of ^Iethu- selah. who introduced polygamy by marrying two wives, the one named Adah, and the other Zillah. Among the children by the former of these wives he had two sons, namely, Jabal and Jubal, the first of whom made great improvements in the management of cattle, and the other invented the psaltery, and first gave melody to music. By Zillah he had Tubal-Cain, who was celebrated for his great strength, excelled in martial exercises, and first discovered the art of forging and polishing metals. Lamech had likewise a daughter called Naamah (which denotes fair and beautiful), who is supposed to have been the first person that found out the art of spinning and weaving. Having said thus much of Cain and his posterity, we must now return to our primitive parents, Adam and Eve. The death of the righteous Abel and the banish- ment of Cain afflicted them to the heart ; and they continued some time in the deepest lamentation. At length the Almighty was pleased to alleviate their afflic- tion by a promise that they should have another son, who should be a comfort and consolation to them in their old age. Accordingly, in the proper course of time, Eve was delivered of another boy, whom they called Seth, which signifies substitute, or appointed, because God was pleased to send him instead of " Abel, whom Cain slew." At this time Adam was one hundred and thirty years old, after which he lived eight hundred years, and begat several other children, both sons and daughters. The male posterity of Adam, in the line of Seth, was as follows: — When Seth was one hundred and five years old, he had a son named Enos, in whose days the sacred historian informs us that men began to institute stated forms and ceremonies in the worship of Almighty God. After the birth of Enos, Seth lived eLsrht hundred and seven years, so that the whole of his life was nine hundred and twelve years. Enos, at the age of ninety, had a son, whom he named Caman ; after which Iip lived eight hundred and fifteen years; in the whole nine hundred and five. Cainan, when seventy, had a son named IMahaialeel ; after which he lived eight hundred and forty years ; in all nine hundred and ten. ]\Iahalaleel, when sixty-five, had a son named Jared ; after which he lived eight hundred years ; in all eight hundred and sixty-five. Jared, when one hundred and sixty-two, had a son named Enoch;* after which he lived eight hundred years ; in all nine hundred and sixty-two. Enoch, when sixty-five, had a son named ^Ieihuselah ; after which he lived three hundred years; in all three J undred and sixty-five. Methuselah, when one hundred and eighty-seven, had a son named Lamech ; after which he lived seven hundred and eighty-two years; in all nine hundred and sixtv- nine. Lamech, when one hundred and eighty-two, had a son named Noah ; after which he lived five hundred and ninety-five years ; in all seven hundred and seventy-seven. And Nop a, when five hundred years old, had three sons, Shem, Ham, and Japliet ; from whom the world was replenished after the general deluge. This is the genealogy which Closes ^ives us of the posterity of Adam, in the line of Seth ; and if we consider the prodigious length of men's lives in this age, the strength of their constitutions from a temperate life, and the advanced years in which they begat children, the number of inhabitants previous to the flood must have been very immense. The descendants of Seth, and those of Cain, lived separate for a considerable time, the former despising the latter on account of their natural cruelty. The Sethites, who adhered to the service of God, and diligently attended to their religious duties, were stvled the "Sons of God:" in distinction to which the descendants of Cain, who led profligate and impious lives, were termed the " sons and daughters of men." * Of all the posterity cf Adam, the most remarkable is Enoch, who, for his distinguished piety and vir- tue, was exempted from mortality, being immediately-; that is, without passing through the valley of the shadow of death, translated to the heavenly mansions HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 53 After the death of Adam,* the Sethites retired from the plain where they had hitherto resided, to the mountains opposite paradise; and, for some time, continued to live in the fear of God, and to preserve the strictest rules of piety and virtue. In the course of time, the descendants of Cain, who were now become very numerous, spread themselves over all that part of the country which had been left by the Seth- ites, even to the confines of the mountains where Seth had fixed his abode ; and here they continued that abandoned course of life they had followed before their removal. By this close connexion, the Sethites had frequent opportunities of seeing the daughters of Cain, who being exceeding beautiful, they were so captivated with their charms, that they entered into nuptial alliances with them ; and from this intercourse were bora men of a very gigantic size, who were no less remarkable for their daring wickedness, than for their bold and adventurous undertakings. Thus did the example of the wicked family of Cain prevail, and, by degrees, destroy all the remains of religious duties in the posterity of Seth. The righteous Noah used his utmost efforts to convince them of the enormity of their conduct ; but all his admonitions were in vain: the bent of their thoughts had taken another turn, and their whole study and contrivance was, how to gratify their inordinate passions. This universal depravity of mankind so offended the Almighty, that, as the sacred historian informs us, he " repented that he had made man on the earth "f and, as a proper punishment for their offences, thought of destroying not only the whole of the human race (Noah and his family excepted), but also the brute creation, which he had formed for the use of ungrateful man. But before the Almighty fixed the resolution of executing his design, he thought proper to give one chance to the prin- cipal objects of his resentment, which was, that if, in the space of one hundred and twenty years, they should forsake their evil ways, repent, and reform, his mercy should be at liberty to interpose and reverse their doom. This he communicated to his servant Noah, who, for his great justice and piety, had found favor in his sight ; and for which his family (consisting only of eight persons) were to be exempted from the general destruction. Notwithstanding the merciful and beneficent promises of the Almighty, yet such was the corrupt state of mankind at this time, and so lost were they to every sense of virtue, that they still prosecuted their vicious courses, and subjected themselves to the consequences of the divine displeasure. Finding, therefore, that all lenity and forbearance tended to no purpose, except to make them more bold and licentious, God at length made known to his servant Noah his awful determination of involving them, and the earth they inhabited, in one general destruction, by a flood of water. He likewise assured him that as he had, in a particular manner, testified his fidelity to his Maker, he would take care to preserve him and his family, together with such other creatures as were necessary for the restoration of their species from the general calamity. To effect this, he gave him orders to make an ark, or large vessel of gopher-wood, | and, that it might be secured from the violence of the waves, to pitch it both within and without. The form and dimensions of this building are thus described by the sacred historian : " And this is the form which thou shah make it of: the length of the work shall be three hundred cubits, the breadth of it fifty cubits, and the height of it thirty cubits. A window shalt thou make to the ark, * The sacred historian does not inform us at what exact period Adam paid the debt of nature, nor in what place his remains were deposited. The ancient Arabians tell us that he was buried at Hebron, in the cave of Machpelah, which Abraham, many ages after, bought for a burying-place for himself and family. They likewise say that when Adam fcund his end approaching, he called his son Seth, and the other branches of his numerous family, to whom l.e gave a strict charge that they should always live separate, and have no manner of intercourse with the impious family of the murderer Cain. t This expression must not be taken in the literal sense of the words, for God is not the son of man that he should repent ; but it is a figurative expression, and adapted to our apprehensions. The meaning, therefore, is, that as all men were corrupt, and turning a deaf ear to his preacher Noah, the Almighty was determined to destroy man whom he had created. t When we consider that ""S3 and KV-rrapiaaog have the same radical consonants, we are at once led to select a species of cypress as the "gopher-wood," or rather the gopher-tree in question. The wood of the cypress possesses an unrivalled fame for its durability, and its resistance to those injuries which are inci- dent to other kinds of wood. The divine appointment had doubtless a reason founded in the nature of things, and no better reason can be found than the matchless excellence of the wood recommended. The compact and curable nature of the cypress rendered it peculiarly eligible for sacred purposes: hence w« find it was employed in the construction of coffins among the Athenians, and mummy-cases among tin Egyptians. The cupressus semperDirens, a straight and elegant tree of the cone-bearing family, seems there fore to have the best title to the credit of having furnished the material for the most important vesse' that was ever constructed. 54 AN ILLUSTRATED and in a cubit shah thou finish it above ; and the door of the ark shah thou set in the side thereof; with lower, second, and third stories shah thou make it."* Having received these instructions from God, Noah, in obedience to the divine command, immediately set about the arduous work, which he finished, according to God's direction, seven days before the rain began to fall, having been encouraged so to do by an assurance from his Maker, that though he meant to destroy the world in general, yet he would establish his covenant with him. The ark being finished, the Almighty commanded Noah to take into it " every Jiving thing of all flesh," both cattle and" beasts of the field," birds and fowls of the air, and reptiles of all kinds ; of the unclean only one pair each, but of the clean, seven pair. That he should likewise make a proper provision of food for the differ- ent animals ; and, having placed them in their respective apartments, should then enter the ark himself, taking with him his wife, together with his sons and their wives. All things being adjusted agreeably to the divine direction, Noah entered the ark, with his family, in the six hundredth year of nis age ; and on the seventeenth day of the .second month (which was seven days after his entrance) the whole face of nature began to wear » gloomy aspect, and to appear as if the earth was to be finally dis- solved, and cui tmngs return to their primitive chaos. The windows or cataracts of heaven were opened, and the earth was overspread with a dreadful inundation. In vain did sinful mortals seek for protection, or endeavor to shelter themselves from the common destruction ; for mountains and valleys were soon alike, and every refuge was banished their sight. For forty days and nights did the rain continue to fall, without the least intermission ; when at length the ark began to float, and, in pio- cess of time, was elevated above the highest mountains. A dismal scene now pre- sented itself! the earth, with all its beautiful variety of nature and art, was no more ! nothing appeared to the sight but a watery desert, abounding with wrecks of the once lovely creation."! The Almighty having thus avenged himself of a sinful world, and reflecting upon Noah, and the poor remains of his creatures in the ark, caused a drying north wind to arise, the flood-gates of heaven to be stopped, and the falling of the waters to cease ; by which means the deluge began to abate, and the waters gradually sub- siding, in process of time the earth again appeared. The first discovery Noah made of the cessation of the flood was, from the ark * There is much difference of opinion about the form of the ark. The common figures are given under the impression that it was intended to be adapted to progressive motion : whereas no other object was sousht than to construct a vessel which should float for a given time upon the water. For this purpose it was not necessary to place the ark in a sort of boat, as in the common figures ; and we may be content with the simple idea which the text gives, which is that of an enormous oblong box, cr wooden house, divided into three stories, and apparently with a sloping roof. The most moderate statement uf its dimen- sions makes the ark by far the largest of vessels ever made to float upon the water. As the measurements are given, the only doubt is as to which of the cubit measures used by the Hebrews is here intended. It eeems that the standard of the original cubit was the length of a man' s arm from the elbow to the end ol the middle linger, or about eighteen inches. This was the common cubit; but there was also a sacred cubit, which some call a hand's breadth (three inches) larger than the common one ; while others make the sacred cubit twice the length of the common The probability is, that there were two cubit measures be- side thp common ; one being of twenty-one inches, and the other of three feet Some writers add the geometrical cubit of nine feet. Shuckford says we must take the common or shortest cubit as that for the ark ; and Dr. Hales, taking this advice, obtained the following result : " It must have been of the burden of 42,413 tons. A first-rate man-of-war is between 2.200 and 2.300 tons ; and, consequently, the capacity or stowage of eighteen such ships, the largest in present use, and might carry 20.000 men. with provisions for six months, besides the weight of 1,800 cannon and all military stores. It was then by much the largest ship ever built" t Thk Deluge. — From the Original by Nicholas Poussin. — Several great masters have treated this subject but none of their productions have acquired the celebrity of our engraving by Poussin. All others have chosen but partial scenes or episodes— either the beginning or the <-nd — of this terrible infliction. Poussin alone has ventured to embody the whole of this all-engulfing cataclysm, and 6how its frightful catastrophe; he alone has dared to render that tremendous sentence: "All flesh died that moved "upon the earth, both of fowl, and of cattle, and of beast, and of every creeping thing that creepeth upon the earth, and every man." The air is laboring with the full-swollen clouds ; the raiu descends in torrents , the sun. obscured, throws but a dim and feeble light; the overwhelming floods have long confounded the hill- with the plains, and already reached the summits of the highest mountains. The foaming wave6 in tin; centre of the awful scene, rolling in irresistible volumes, dash against the rock the frail bark of one who had vainly leaped thereon to find a refuge, and now raises his imploring hands to inexorable Heaven. In front a family are still struggling to escape their fate ; while the ark floats away in the distance. Never wits execution more adapted to its subject— abounding in gloomy and terrific, images, presented with appal ling truth. This chef d'oeuvre was the last labor of Poussin : he finished it in 1664, at the age of TO, anc died to the following year. 5G AN ILLUSTRATED resting on the mountains of Ararat.* This was about the beginning of May, and about the middle of the following month the tops of the mountains a«ppeared^ But Noah (who, no doubt, was glad to see the appearance of anything substantial after so long a confinement), wisely considering, that though the mountains were visible, the valleys might be yet overflowed, waited forty days longer before he attempted any further discovery. At the expiration of that time, opening the window of tht ark, he let go a raven, supposing that the scent of dead bodies would allure him to fly a considerable distance. Encouraged by the absence of the raven for seven davs, he let fly a dove, which, finding no resting-place, returned to its old habitation. Seven days after he sent out the same bird, which then returned with an olive-branch in its mouth, a happy certainty that the waters were removed from the place where the olive-tree stood. Still, however, determined not to be too hasty, he remained in the ark seven days more, when sending out the dove a third time, and she not return- ing, he concluded that the waters were entirely withdrawn. In consequence of this he made the necessary preparations for leaving the ark; but, mindful of God's directions, ventured not forth till fifty-five days after, in order that the earth might be properly dry for his reception. Having, at the expiration of that period, received God's positive command to leave the ark, he accordingly came out of it on the twenty-seventh day of the second month, bringing with him every creature that had been retained for replenishing the earth. Thus ended Noah's long and melancholy confinement, which, from the time of his entering the ark to that of his leaving it. amounted exactly to one solar year. The first thing Noah did, after quitting the ark, was to erect an altar, on which he offered sacrifices to God, for his great o-oodness in preserving him and his family from the general destruction. The Almighty, knowing the purity of Noah's inten- tions, was so well pleased with his conduct, that he gave him his divine assurance that he would never more " curse the ground for man's sake," nor should the earth ever be again destroyed by a general deluge. In confirmation of this, he appointed a bowf to appear in the heavens as a token, and which was now to be the ratifica- tion of the truth of his promise. Having, by this divine promise, eased the mind of Noah, who was fearful of a second deluge, the Almighty, after blessing him and his sons, granted them many singular privileges, such as far exceeded those ne had bestowed on our primitive parents. Before the flood, mankind had no other food than vegetables; but now the Almighty, after giving Noah and his sons the same dominion over the creation as he had done Adam, permitted them to kill any creatures they thought proper for food, only with this restriction, that they should not eat " the blood thereof." This restraint was certainly laid by God to prevent the shedding of human blood, against which he denounces the following sentence : " Whoso sheddeth man's blood, by * It is generally admitted that the mountain on which the ark rested lies in Armenia ; although there are some who contend that it must be sought, in Cashgar, on the extension eastward of the great Caucasian chain. The investigations of recent Jhblical critics have, however, tended to strengthen the original con- viction in favor of the Armenian mountain. The particular mountain to which people of different nations and religions concur in awarding this distinction is situated in N. lat. 39° 30', and E. long. 44° 30'. in the vast chain of Taurus, and nearly in the centre between the southern extremities of the Black and the Caspian seas. Its summit is elevated 17,2(50 feet above the level of the sea, and is always covered with «now, as indeed is the whole mountain, for three or four months in the year. It is a very grand object, t>emg not merely a high summit in a chain of elevated mountains, but standing as it were apart and alone . the minor mountains, which seem to branch out from it and decline away in the distance, being so per- fectly insignificant in comparison, that the sublime effect of this most magnificent mountain is not at all impaired, or its proportions hidden by them. This great mountain is separated into two heads, distin guished as the Great and Little Ararat, which perhaps accounts for the plural expression, "mountains,' of the text. The heads form distinct cones, separated by a wide chasm or glen, wlucn renders the distance between the two peaks 12,000 yards. One of them is much smaller than the other, and forms a more regular and pointed cone : it is also much lower, and its summit is clear of snow in summer. The Arme- nians, who have many religious establishments in its vicinity, regard the mountain with intense vendition, and aie firmly persuaded that the ark is still preserved on its summit t " / do ?et my bow in the cloud."— The rather equivocal sense of the woid " set" in English has occa- sioned a very mistaken impression, which has led to some cavils, which the use of the more proper word " appoint" vould have prevented. As it stands, it has been understood to say that the rainbo.v was at this time first produced: whereas, as its appearance is occasioned by the immutable laws of refraction and rellection, as applied to the ravs of the sun striking on drops of falling rain, we know that the phenomenon must have been occasionally exhibited from the beginning of the worfd. as at present constituted. Accord- in ,r ly, the text says no more than that the rainbow was then appointed to be a token of the covenant r-e'tween God and man. Our engraving is a view of Mount Ararat, from the hills above Erivan, drawn by A VV Ca'catt r rom a sketch made on the spot by J. Morier, Esq HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 58 AN ILLUSTRATED man shall his blood be shed." With these grants and promises, God gave the same encouragement to Noah and his family that he did to our first progenitors, by telling them to " be fruitful and multiply, and replenish the earth." Though the deluge had destroyed all the inhabitants of the earth (except what were retained in the ark for forming the new world), yet the vegetable part of the creation still existed, and, in a short time, by the genial warmth of the sun, again appeared m all its glory. Previous to the flood, Noah had directed his attention to husbandry,* and the earth having now resumed its former appearance, he betook himself to the same employment. Among other improvements, he planted a vineyard, and, prompted by natural curiosity to taste the fruit of his own labor, invented a machine for ex- tracting the juice from the grape. Pleased with the taste of the liquor, and being unacquainted with the strength of it, he unwisely gave a loose to indulgence, and, by di inking too freely, became quite intoxicated. In consequence of this, he laid himself down to sleep in his tent, where, either from the rustling of the wind, or the discomposure of his body, he was uncovered on that part which natural modesty teaches us to conceal. This circumstance produced the first instance of human degeneracy after the flood. The old world was destroyed for the wickedness of its inhabitants, and therefore it might have been expected that the new world would have been filled with people of a better disposition : but, as in the ark there were unclean as well as clean beasts, so in the family of Noah there were two good sons and one naturally wicked, the two former being Shem and Japhet, and the latter Ham. The unseemly situation of Noah, from his intoxication, was first discovered by this wicked son, who, instead of covering his father's nakedness and concealing his shame, exposed his weakness, and made him the subject of his scorn and derision. But his brothers were far from being pleased with his conduct : possessed of filial piety, and moved at the indecent posture of their aged parent, they no sooner saw him than they ran and fetched a garment, and immediately covered that nakedness which their pious modesty would not permit them to behold. When Noah recovered from the stupefaction into which the wine had thrown him, and was informed of the unworthy manner in which his son Ham had treated him, he cursed his race, in the person of Canaan, his grandson : " Cursed," said he, '• be Canaan : a servant of servants shall he be to his brethren." On the contrary, reflecting how respectfully his other two sons behaved, he rewarded their pious care with giving each his blessing; all which, in process of time, was fulfilled in their posterity. These are all the particulars given us by the sacred historian relative to Noah, except that he lived three hundred and fifty years after the deluge, and paid the debt of nature at the age of nine hundred and fifty. At what exact period he died we are not informed, neither the place of his interment; but, according to oriental tradition, his remains were deposited in some part of Mesopotamia. CHAPTER III. SETTLEMENT AND GENEALOGY OF NOAH'S DESCENDANTS. It is not in the least to be doubted but that Noah and his family, for some years after the flood, continued to reside in the neighborhood of the mountains of Armenia, where the ark had rested. But his descendants, in the course of time, having a nu- merous progeny, the greater part of them quitted their primitive spot, and directing their course eastward, came at length to the plain of Shinar, on the banks of the river Euphrates. Attracted by the beauty of the place, the convenience of its situa- tion, and the natural fertility of the soil, they resolved not to proceed any further but to make this their fixed place of residence. Having formed this resolution, in order to render themselves conspicuous to future * It is conceived that Noah considerably advanced agriculture by inventing more suitable implements Mian had previously been in use. We find no grounds fortius conjecture in the text ; but it is by no means uilikely that the demand upon his mechanic ingenuity in the construction of tbe ark had qualified him for improving the agricultural implements previously in use. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 59 !ij|lii|ii;i,ii iii'iij;!, I, 'ft ISMiK ; : i ■if If : 60 AN ILLUSTRATED generations, they determined to erect a city,* and in it a building of such stupendous height as should be the wonder of the world. Their principal motives in doing this were, to keep themselves together in one body, that by their united strength and counsels, as the world increased, they might bring others under their subjection, and thereby become masters of the universe. The idea of the intended tower gave them the most singular satisfaction, and the novelty of the design induced them to enter upon its construction with the greatest alacrity. One inconvenience, however, arose, of which they were not apprized, namely, there being no stone in the country wherewith to build it. But this defect was soon supplied by the nature of the soil, which being clayey, they soon converted into bricks, and cemented them together with a pitchy substance, called bitumen, the country producing that article in great abundance. As the artificers were numerous, the work was carried on with great expedition, and in a short time the walls were raised to a great height. But the Almighty, being dissatisfied with their proceedings, thought proper to interpose, and totally put an end to their ambitious project; so that this first attempt of their vanity he- came only a monument of their folly and weakness. Though the descendants of Noah were at this time exceedingly numerous, yet they all spoke one language.f In order, therefore, to render their undertaking inef- fectual, and to lessen the towering hopes of these aspiring mortals, the Almighty formed the resolution of confounding their language. In consequence of this, a uni- versal jargon suddenly took place, and the different dialects caused such a distraction * Babylon. — This city arose from the building of Babel, and became the famous capital of Chaldea. This- most celebrated metropolis of the East, enlarged by Belus, and further extended by Queen Semiramis, about the year 1200 B. C., reached its summit of magnificence under Nebuchadnezzar, about the year 570 B C, or when further embellished by his daughter-in-law Nitocris. Its magnitude was 4&0 furlongs, or 60 miles in compass, being an exact square of 15 miles on each side. Its walls were built of brick laid in bitumen, 87 feet thick, and 350 feet high, on which were 250 towers, or, according to some, 316. The • materials for building the wall were dug from a vast ditch or moat, which was lined with brick-work, and, being filled with water from the river Euphrates, surrounded the city as a defence. The city had 100 gates of solid brass, one at each end of its 50 streets, 150 feet wide : these crossed the city; so that the whole was divided into 676 squares, four and a half furlongs on each side, around which were houses, the inner parts being reserved for gardens, pleasure-grounds, and fields. Facing the wall, on every side, was a row of houses, with a street between, of 200 feet wide ; and the city was divided into equal parts by the river Euphrates, over which was a bridge, and at each end of it a palace, communicating with each other under the river by a subterraneous passage. Near to the old palace stood the tower of Babel : this prodigious pile, being completed, consisted of eight towers, each 75 feet high, rising one upon another, with an out- side winding staircase, to its summit, which, with its chapel on the top. reached an elevation of 660 feet. In this chapel was a golden image 40 feet high, valued at $17,500,000, and the whole of the sacred utensils were reckoned worth $200,000,000 ! Besides these wonders, were the hanging gardens, on a series of elevated terraces, the lppermost equalling the height of the city walls, and having a reservoir, supplied by a rnaclune with water from the river. This great work was designed by Nebuchadnezzar to represent a hilly country, for the gratification of his wife Amytis, a native of "Media. Babylon flourished for nearly 200 years in this scale of grandeur ; during which idolatry, pride, cruelty, and every abomination, prevailed among all ranks of the people ; when God, by his prophets, denounced its utter ruin, and which was accordingly accomplished, commencing with Cyrus taking the city, alter a siege of two years, in the yeai 538 B. C, to emancipate the Jews, as foretold by the prophets. By successive overthrows, this once " glory of the Chaldees' excellency," this " lady of kingdoms," has become a " desolation," " w ithout an inhabitant," sfiid its temple a vast heap of rubbish ! Daniel ii. vi., Isaiah xiii. xlv., Jeremiah 1. li. " Birs Nemroud." as the ancient tower of Babel is called, Mr. Bich says, " is a mound of an oblong form, the total circumference of wliich is 762 yards. At the eastern side it is cloven by a deep furrow, and is not more than 50 or 60 feet high; but on the western side it rises in a conicai figure to the elevation of 198 feet, and on its summit is a soliu pile of brick. 37 feet high by 28 in breadth, diminishing in tluckness to the top, which is broken and irregular, and rent by a large fissure extending through a third of its height. It is perforated by small holes, disposed in rlwmboids. The fire-burnt bricks of which it is built have inscrip- tions on thern : and so excellent is the cement, which appears to be lime-mortar, that it is nearly impossible to extract one whole. The other parts of the summit of this hill are occupied oy immense fragments of brick-work, of no determinate figure, tumbled together, and converted into solid vitrified masses, as if they had undergone the action of the fiercest fire, or had been blown up with gunpowder, the layers of crick heing perfectly discernible." These ruins proclaim the divinity of the Holy Scriptures ! t Language, or human speech, Genesis xi. 1 : this most certainly was originally given to our first parents by the inspiration of God, who, therefore, exercised Adam in giving names to the creatures, Gen. ii. 19, 20. Learned men call the most ancient language the " Shemitish," as spoken by the descendants of Shern, the son of Noah. This, however, was soon divided into three dialects : many other languages are now found to exist, Daniel iii. 4; of which the origin is declared m the Bible to have been erfected~b> tne Divine interposition at Babel, Genesis xi. 7. The Shemitish dialects were : I. Ararmean, spoken m Syria, Mesopotamia, and Chaldea, subdivided into the Syriac and Chaldee dialects. 2. Hebrew or Canaan itish dialect, spoken in Phenicia and its colonies. 3. Arabic, spoken with variations in Arabia and Ethiopia. Hebrew bears marks of being the most ancient of the oriental languages ; and in it the old Testament, which contains the most ancient records in existence, was written, except Daniel, ii. 4. vii. 28, Ezra iv. S. vi. 18, vii. 12-26. The New Testament was written in the Greek language. Seventy-two distinguished languages are spoken of; but five which are the chief, viz. Hebrew, Greek, Latin, Germanic, and Sclavonic. The English is a compound of all these, and, with the French, is most esteemed. Ours, it seems probal> : e, is destined by Divine Providence to become the universal language of mankind, through the intelligence, uiiliience. and Christian missions of Great Bntian and America. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 61 of dough t, that, incapable of understanding or making known to each other their respective ideas, they were thrown into the utmost disorder. By this awful stroke of divine justice they were not only deprived of prosecuting their intended plan, but of the greatest pleasure a social being can enjoy, namely, mutual converse and agreeable intercourse. We are not, however, to suppose that each individual had a peculiar dialect or language to himself, but only the several tribes or families, which are supposed to have been about seventy in number. These, detaching themselves according to their respective dialects, left the spot, which, before the consequences of their presumption, they had considered as the most delightful on earth, and took up their temporary residences in such places as they either pitched on by choice, or were directed to by chance. Thus did the Almightv not only defeat the designs of those ambitious people, but likewise accomplished his own, by having the world more generally inhabited than it otherwise would have been. The spot on which they had begun to erect their tower was, from the judgment that attended so rash an undertaking, called Babel.* The confusion of tongues, and dispersion of the family of Noah, happened one hundred and one years after the flood, as is evident from the birth of Peleg, the son of Eber, who was the great-grandson of Shem, and born in the one hundred and first year after that memorable period. He received his name from this singular circum- stance, the word Peleg, in the Hebrew language, signifying partition or dispersion. The descendants of Noah being now dispersed, in process of time, from their great increase, they scattered themselves to distant parts of the earth, and, according, to their respective families, settled in different parts of the world. Some took up their residence in Asia, some in Africa, and others in Europe. But by what means they obtained possession of the several countries they inhabited, the sacred historian has not informed us. It is, however, natural to suppose, that their respective situations did not take place from chance, but mature deliberation ; and that a proper assign- ment was made of such and such places, according to the divisions and subdivisions of the different families. In order to ascertain a proper idea of the manner in which the world was popu- lated after the flood, and confusion of tongues, we shall give the genealogy of Noah's three sons, and describe the respective parts of the earth possessed by their descend- ants; in doing which, we shall, agreeably to the manner of Moses, begin with those of Japheth, who, though usually mentioned last, was the eldest son of Noah. It is to be observed that the grand-children of Noah made it an invariable rule to give their own names to the countries of which they became possessed, and where they settled, in order to perpetuate their memories to future posterity. The sons of Japheth were seven in number, who spread themselves over Asia, from the mountains Taurus and Auranus to the river Tanais, and then entering Europe, penetrated as far as Spain, distinguishing the countries, as they proceeded, by their own proper appellations, viz. :f Gomer gave title to the Gomorites, now called Galatians, or Gauls, by the Greeks. Magog founded the Magogites, since styled Scythians, or Tartars. From Media originated the Medeans or Medes. Ja- van was the founder of the Ionians and Greeks in general. Tubal, of the Iberians, or Spaniards: and Mashech, of the Meschinians or Cappadocians : and Tiras, of the Thiraeans or Thracians. Gomer had three sons, the eldest of whom, Ashkanaz, took possession of Ascania (which is part of the Lesser Phrygia). The second son, named Riphah, possessed * Babel (confusion or mixture), a tower commenced, as is generally supposed, during the life of Noah, under the direction of Nirnrod, a grandson of Ham, and about A. M. 1770, or 113 years after the de.uge, though some place this work two or three hundred years later, Genesis x. 10, xi. 1-9. Nirnrod is believed to have formed a system of idolatry for his adherents, designing, by this means, to establish a national union under his government, thereby frustrating the Divine designs, which required their disper- sion, to repeople the earth. This impious attempt occasioned their miraculous confusion of speech, on which account the building ceased, and the purpose of God was accomplished in the replenishing of the world by the scattered people. How far the work had proceeded we are not informed; but it is believed that, besides three years in preparing materials, twenty-two had been expended in the undertaking, and that the tower had been carried up several stories, laying the foundation for the city of Babylon. t Several of these nations still retain the names given them by their founder ; others have lost their oiiginal appellations ; and some are distinguished by terms corruptee from the primitive denominations. The Greeks principally occasioned these innovations ; for, when power gave them importance, they arro- gated to themselves the glory of antiquity; corrupted the names of other nations to give them a rnoie modern appearance ; and pretended that, from the emigrations of their predecessors, the surrounding realms were peopled, for which, reason they took the liberty to prescribe laws for their observance, as they ^ad iii/ented appellations for their distinction. G2 AN ILLUSTRATED himself of the Riphaan mountains; and Togarmah, the third son, took Galatia and part of Cappadocia. Javan had four sons, namely, Elishah, who seated himself in Peloponnesus ; Tar- shish, in part of Spain; Kittim, in Italy; and Dodanim, in France. By these, and the colonies which, in process of time, proceeded from them, not only a. considerable part of Asia, but all Europe, with the adjacent islands, were weil stocked with inhabitants descended from Japheth, who, though thus dispersed spoke the same language, and, for a time at least, preserved a correspondence with the respective tribes or families to which they originally belonged. The descendants of Shem, the second son of Noah (from whom originated the Hebrew nation), Avere five sons, who possessed themselves of those parts of Asia which extend from the Euphrates to the Indian ocean. Elam, the eldest, took pos- session of a country in Persia, at first called after himself, but, in the time of Daniel, it obtained the name of Susiana. Ashur founded the Assyrian empire, in which he built several cities, particularly one called Nineveh ;* Arphaxad founded Chaldea ; * NrNKVKH. Nineveh was the capital of the ancient kingdom and empire of Assyria. It is first mentioned in the O. T. in connexion with the primitive dispersion of the human race. Ashur, or according to the opinion of some. Nimrod. migrating from the land of Shinar, founded this city, which is supposed to have been first peopled bv a colony from Babvlon. It was built on the east bank of the Tigris, nearly opposite Mosul, in N. Lat. 36° 20'; E. Lon. 43° 10'. This once splendid and populous city, the first notice of which is found in Genesis, B C. 2213 years, is not mentioned again until the time of the book of Jonah, the eighth century B. C. The prophet Xahum, B. C. 645, directs his prophecies against Xineveh. Sennacherib was slain there, when worshipping in the temple of Xisroch, his god. Zephaniah. B. C. 630, speaks of the city in connexion with Assyria (2: 13); and this is the last mention of Xineveh as an existing city. Its destruction took place, as appears from the concurrence of Biblical and classical history, about 600 years B. C It was then laid waste, its monuments destroyed, and its inhabitants dispersed. It never recovered from its ruins. Previous to modern researches and excavations, the ruins, which occupied the supposed site of Nineveh, consisted apparently in irregular mounds of earth and rubbish, with traces of dilapidated walls and sun- dried bricks. Some of these mounds were of enormous dimensions, varying from 50 to 150 feet in height. The discoveries made by recent explorers are of very great historic value, more especially as they stand related to the Bible history and prophecy. The first traveller who explored the ruins which marked the site of ancient Xineveh was Mr. Kich, political resident of the British government in Bagdad, in 1820. Xo attempt at a thorough and systematic exploration was made till M. Botta, French consul at Mosul, was commissioned by his government to explore those ruins more fully, which he did in 1S43. His discoveries were followed, between the years 1S45 and 1850, by Mr. Layard, who found the ruins of several edifices, consisting of a number of halls, chambers, and galleries, panelled with sculptured and inscribed alabaster slabs, and opening into each other by doorways, formed by pairs of colossal, human-headed, wiuged bulls or lions. By the aid of the inscriptions, which have been decyphered. there have been recognized the names of Sardanapalus, Shalmanezer, Essarhaddon, and Sennacherib, builders of these magnificent palaces, now exhumed after having been buried for centuries. The palaces, sculptures, inscriptions, paintings, and other relics discovered, are, in a most striking man- ner, illustrative and confirmatory of the prophecies contained in the books of Xahum and Zephaniah. Xahum threatens the utter destruction of the city: "With an overrunning flood he will make an utter end of the place thereof.'' " He will make an utter end; affliction shall not rise up the second time." (1 : S, 9.) "Thy people is scattered upon the mountains, and no one gathereth them. There is no healing of thy bruise." (3 : IS, 19.) The overrunning flood," and the allusion to the overflow of the river, contained in 2 : 6, " The gates of the rivers shall be opened," is believed by some commentators to have been fulfilled, when the Medo-Babylonian army captured the city, the walls having been partly undermined by an extraordinary overflow of the Tigris. The city was to be in part destroyed by fire. '"The fire shall devour thy bars," "then shall the fire devour thee." (3: 13, 15.) It has been found that some of the palaces had been destroyed by fire. The population was to be surprised when unprepared ; — " while they are drunk as drunk- ards, they shall be devoured as stubble fully dry." (1 ; 10.) Diodorus states that the last and fatal assault was made when they were overcome with wine. Xineveh, after its fall, was to be " empty, and void, and waste" (2; lu) ; "it shall come to pass, that all they that look upon thee, shall flee from thee, and say, Xineveh i6 laid waste." (3: 7.) This language describes the present state of the site of the city. Many allusions in the O. T. to the dress, arms, modes of warfare, and customs of the people of Xineveh, as well as of the Jews, are explained by the Xineveh monuments. Thus (2: 3) "the shield of his mighty men is made red, the valiant men are in scarlet." The shields and the dresses of the warriors are generally painted red in the Scriptures. The glowing description of the assault upon the city (3: 1,2, 3) is illustrated in almost every particular. The mounds, the battering-ram, the various kinds of armor, helmets, shields, spears, and swords used in battle during a siege, and chariots and horses, are all seen in various bas-reliefs. The interior decoration of Assyrian palaces is described by Ezekiel, himself a captive in Assyria, and an eye-witness of their magnificence ("-3 : 14, 15); a description strikingly illustrated by the sculptured like- nesses of Assyrian kings and warriors. The Assyrian inscriptions, discovered on the exhumed monuments and palace walls of Xineveh, usually contain brief chronicles of the king who built or restored the edifice in which they are found, records of his wars and expeditious and conquests. The most important inscription hitherto discovered in connection with Biblical history, is that upon a pair of colossal human-headed bulls, now in the British Museum, con- taining the records of Sennacherib, and describing his wars with Hezekiah. Many Biblical names have been found in the Assyrian inscriptions. Among these names are found those of three Jewish kings, viz., Jehu, Menahem, and Hezekiah. I mportaut results in relation to Biblical history have been already realized from the discoveries made among the long-buried ruins of ancient Xineveh, and important additional results may be anticipated from future researches. As appears from an article in Dr. Smith's Dictionary o the Bible, from which many cf the above facts are derived, " a list of nineteen or twenty kings can already be compiled, and the annals of the greater number of them will probably be restored to the history of one of the most powerful empires ->f the ancient world, and which appears to have exercised perhaps greater influence than any othe.i apon HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 03 Ifc ,;i :; ; ii4 AN ILLUSTRATED Lud, Lydia ; and Aram that part of Syria which extends itself to the Mediterranean seas. Aram had four sons, namely, Uz, who seated himself in the country called Da- mascus; Hul took possession of Armenia; Mash, of the mountain Masius; Gether, of a part of Mesopotamia. Arphaxad was the father of Salah, whose son Eber gave name to the Hebrew nation. Joctan, the nrst-born of Eber, had thirteen children, all of whom settled themselves in that part of the world which is situated between Syria and the rivei Cophene in Judea. The youngest son of Eber was Peleg, who, as we have before observed, was so called because, at the time of his birth, the dispersion of the people took place. The descendants of Ham (the youngest son of Noah) were four sons, namely, Cush, who took up his residence m that part of Armenia lying towards Egypt ; Mizraim,* in both Upper and Lower Egypt; Phutt, in part of Lybia; and Canaan, in that part of the country which was afterward called by his name. Cush, the eldest son of Ham, had several children, namely, Seba, who settled on the southwest of Arabia; Havilah fixed himself in that part of the country situated on the river Pison, where it leaves the Euphrates, and runs into the Arabian Gulf; Saptah took up his residence on the same shore, a little to the north of his brother Havilah; Raamah and Sabtecha, together with the two sons of the former (namely, Sheba and Dedan), settled themselves on the same coast, farther to the east; and Nimrod, the last son of Cush, was founder of the Babylonish empire. Besides the three sons of Mizraim (who, after the death of their father, divided nis territory into three parts), he had three others, namely, Ludim and Lehabim, who peopled Lybia; and Caslubim, who seated himself at Castisots, near the en- trance of Egypt from Palestine. Caslubim had two sons, namely, Philistim and Caphthorim, the former of whom established the country of the Philistines, between the borders of Canaan and the Mediterranean sea ; and the latter, after his father's death, took possession of his territories. The sons of Canaan were, Sidon, the founder of the Sidonians, who lived in Phoe- nicia; Heth, the founder of the Hittites, who lived near Hebron; Emor, the found ei of the Amorites, who lived in the mountains of Judea; and Arva, the founder of the A.rvadites,f who resided near Sidon. But whether the other sons of Canaan settled ji this country or not, can not be ascertained with any certainty ; only this we know, that they must have taken up their residence somewhere between Sidon and Gerar, ^nd Adman and Zoboim ; those places being the boundaries of the land they pos- sessed. Thus we find that, in the first dispersion of the people over the world, the de- scendants of Japheth not only possessed all Europe, but also a considerable portion 3f Asia. The posterity of Shem had in their possession part of the Greater and Lesser Asia, and probably all the countries to the east, as far as China. The de- scendants of Ham possessed all Africa, with a great part of Asia. the subsequent condition and development of civilized man. The only race now found near the ruins of Nineveh or in Assyria, which may have any claim to be considered descendants from tlie ancient inhabitants of the country are the so-called Chaldean "or Nestorian tribes, inhabiting the mountains of Koordistan, the plains round the lake Ooroomiyah, in Persia, and a few villages in the neighborhood of Mosul." — Ed. * After the death of Mizraim (who was king of Egypt), the country he possessed was. by three of his sons, divided into as many kingdoms, viz: Ananim was king of Tanis, or lower Egypt, called afterward Delta ; Napthulim, of Naph, or Memphis, in Upper Egypt ; and Pathrusxm founded the kingdom of Pathros or Thebes in Thebais. t The Arvadites are said by Josephus to have occupied and given their name to the small island of Aradus, called Arvad and Arphad in the Scriptures (2 Kings xix. 13 ; Ezekiel xxvii. 8); and the inhabitants of which are bv Ezekiel mentioned along with the Sidonians, as taking an active part in the maritime commerce of T><-e. This island, which is about one league from the shore, and not above a mile in circumference. Ultimately became the port and chief town of this enterprising and prosperous section of the Phoenician people ; and there was a time when even Romans regarded with admiration its lofty houses, built with more stories than those of Rome, and its cisterns hewn in the rock. All this, except the cisterns and some fragments of wall, has passed away; but Arvad is still the seat of a town, and, being a mart of transit, Its inhabitants are still engaged in commerce. Though the island was the favorite seat of the people,' as their wealth and peace were there safe from the wars and troubles of the continent, and their shipping needed not to hazard the dangers of the coast, they were by no means without possessions on the main land; for their dominion along the shore extended from Tortosa [also Tartous, anciently Antaradus; which lay opposite their island, northward to Jebilee. They were, therefore, the most northerly of thr Phoenician people. See Joseph. Antiq. 1. 6 2; Strabo, Geog. v. 15; Pococke, ii. 27; Votaey, ii. 14>- Buckingham's Arab Tribes. 523 HISTORV OF THE BIBLE. 65 tffi AN ILLUSTRATED But before we quit the genealogy of Noah's descendants, it will be necessary to mention some further particulars relative to the posterity of his second son Shem, from whom the Hebrews took their rise, and who will be found the principal objects of the succeeding history. About two years after the flood, at which time Shem was one hundred years old he had a son named Arphaxad ; after which time he lived five hundred years; so that the whole of his life Avas exactly six hundred years. Arphaxad, when thirty-five, had a son named Salah; after which he lived four hundred and three years ; in all four hundred and thirty-eight. Salah, when thirty, had a son named Eber (from whom his descendants were called Hebrews), after which he lived four hundred and three years; in all four hun- dred and thirty-three. Eber, when thirty-four, had a son named Peleg, in whose time the earth came to be divided ; after which he lived four hundred and thirty years; in all four hundred and sixty-four. Peleg, when thirty, had a son named Ren, after which he lived two hundred and nine years; in all two hundred and thirty-nine. Reu, when thirty-two, had a son named Serug; after which he lived two hundred and seven years ; in all two hundred and thirty-nine. Serug, when thirty, had a son named Nahor ; after which he lived two hundred years ; in all two hundred and thirty. Nahor, when twenty-nine, had a son named Terah ; after which he lived one hundred and nineteen years ; in all one hundred and forty-eight. Terah was the father of the first great patriarch after Noah, namely, Abraham. He had likewise two other sons, the one called Nahor, and the other Haran. The last of these, who was the eldest of the three, died before his father, at Ur,* in Chaldea, the place of his nativity. He left behind him a son named Lot, and two daughters, the elder of whom, called Milchah, was espoused to her uncle Nahor, and the younger, named Sarai, was married to her uncle Abram. A universal depravity of human nature now displayed itself in all parts of the world, but more particularly in the city of Ur, where the practice of idolatry was carried to its utmost height. In consequence of this, Terah resolved to leave his abode, that he might no longer be an eye-witness of the iniquity of the people. Having formed this resolution, he quitted Ur, and taking with him his son Abram and his wife, together with his grandson Lot, set out with an intent of visiting the land of Canaan. In his journey he stopped at a place called Haran (or Charran), a city of Mesopotamia, where, being seized with a violent illness, he was compelled to make it the place of his residence. The violence of the disorder prevailing over the power of medicine, nature at length gave way, and Terah died at Haran, in the two hundred and fifth year of his age. CHAPTER IY. CALL OF ABRAHAM — MIGRATION — BIRTH OF ISHMAEL. At the close of the preceding chapter, we observed that Terah, the father ol Abram, left his native place, in order to go into the land of Canaan. It is here to be observed, that his conduct in this respect, certainly arose from divine direction, * Ur of the Chaldees.— The birthplace of Abraham has been generally regarded as a town ; but suck orientalists as have of late years had occasion to express an opinion on the subject, have been rathe: disposed to regard it as the name of a district. As such, there is little reason to question that it is that which the sacred text indicates, as it comprehends both the towns in which the names mentioned in this par* of the history have been sought. Of these, one is the town called by the Syrians Urhoi, and by the Arabians Orfah, or Urfah, which the Moslems firmly believe to be the Ur of the text ; and the Jews and Christians of the country acquiesce in this conclusion. This town is situated at the foot of the mount ains of Osroene, at the head of the great plain which was formerly so called, and is still a place of some consideration. Cartwrisht says : "The air of this city is very healthful, and the country fruitful It i« built nearly four-square," the west side standing on the side of a rocky mountain, and the east part trendeth into a spacious valley, replenished with vineyards, orchards, and gardens. The walls are very strong, furnished with "Teat store of artillerv, and contain in circuit three English miles ; and for the gallantness of its sight it was once reckoned the rnetropolitical seat of iMesopotamia." This traveller, as well as one who preceded him. rtiuwolff heedless of the analogy ot name, regards Urfah rather as representing Har:,i> '.mm Hi HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 67 the Almighty having thought proper to select this family out of the rest of mankind, by making Abram " Father of the faithful," or worshippers of the true God. It is evident that God had revealed himself to Abram, previous to his removal from Ur, as appears from the account of the inspired penman : " The Lord had said unto Abram,"* &c, Gen. xii. 1. He had commanded him to leave the country in which he resided, and to travel into another he should point out to him. He like- wise promised to make him father of a mighty people, and in him to bless all the families on the earth. Abram, fully persuaded, in his own mind, of the truth of the divine promise (though he knew not the difficulties that might attend his removal, nor even the country in which he was to settle), immediately after the decease of his father, pre- pared himself to go to the land which God should appoint, and, by a strict attention to the divine commands, prove at once his faith and obedience. Accordingly, taking with him his nephew Lot, his wife Sarai, and the rest of his family, together with all his effects, he set out on his journey, which he prosecuted with all convenient expedition, till he came (by the divine guidance) into the land of Canaan. f Desirous of making some survey of the country, he stopped in the plaint of Moreh, not far from the city of Sichem,|| then inhabited by the Canaanites. Here he erected an altar, in order to pay his devotions to God, who was so well pleased with his conduct, that he gave him fresh assurances of his favor and protec- tion, and that, in process of time, the whole land in which he then dwelt should be possessed by his descendants. After staying some time in the plains of Moreh, Abram removed with his family into the more mountainous part of the country, situated between Bethel and Hai. Here he likewise erected an altar, that he might not be deficient in the discharge of that duty which he was conscious of owing to his great and omnipotent benefactor. From Bethel he proceeded farther to the south ; but was interrupted in his progress by a dreadful famine, which raged with great violence throughout the whole coun- try. In consequence of this, he formed the resolution of going to Egypt, that being the only place where relief could be obtained under such calamities.^ Being apprized of the natural libertinism of the Egyptians, Abram was exceeding anxious concerning his wife Sarai, fearing lest her extraordinary beauty might pro- voke their lascivious attention. Though she was at this time in the sixty-sixth year of her age,H yet she still retained those personal charms which, in that country, * In what manner God revealed himself to Abram, the sacred historian has not told us. It was probably by a voice from the Shechinah, or symbol of the Divine presence; for St. Stephen expressly says: "The God of Glory appeared unto him before he dwelt in Charran." Acts vii. 2. t This country fell to the lot of Canaan, the son of Ham, to which he gave his own name. Canaan was about 200 miles long, and nearly 80 broad, lying along the eastern border of the Mediterranean sea. David and Solomon governed several provinces beyond the limits of Canaan, which enlarged their kingdom, 1 Kings, iv. 21-24. Canaan was bounded on the north by the mountains of Lebanon in Syria, on the east by Arabia Deserta, on the south by the wilderness of Arabia Petrea and Idumea, and on the west by the land of the Philistines and the Mediterranean sea. Besides the name of its first possessor, Canaan has been variously denominated as the Land of the Hebrews, Genesis xl. 15 ; Palestine, Exodus xv. 14, the Land of Promise, Hebrews xi. 9; the Land of Israel, JucKh, Judea, the Holy Land, Zechariah ii. 12. Canaan has been the theatre of the most extraordinary transactions which have ever taken place under the Divine government upon earth. This is the country where the chief patriarchs walked with God — where the theocracy of Israel was established— where the prophets received most of their divine inspira- tions — where the temple of Jehovah was erected under his special direction— where the incarnate Son of God accomplished the work of human redemption— and where the apostles were miraculously endowed with the gifts of the Holy Spirit, to fulfil their commission as ambassadors for Christ to invite sinners of all nations into the kingdom of Messiah for the blessings of pardon, purity, and immortality, in the eternal glory of God. Canaan, in the times of David and Solomon, contained a population of about 5,000,000; but now it has only about 1,500,600 inhabitants. Since the destruction of Jerusalem by the Romans, it has been the scene of strange revolutions, especially during the crusades, profanely called holy wars : it now forms two wretched provinces, Acre and Damascus, under the miserable government of pachas, subjeel or tributary to the sultan of Turkey. The population consists of Turks, Syrians, Bedouin Arabs, Copts, Druses of Lebanon, Roman, Armenian, and Greek Christians, and Jews. t The Septuagint and most other versions call it the Oak of Moreh, from a large oak that grew on it ; but our translation renders it plain. II This city, after the ruin of Samaria by Salmanesar, was the capital of the Samaritans ; and Josephus says it was still so in the time of Alexander the Great. It was situated ten miles from Shiloh, forty from Jerusalem, and fifty-two from Jericho. ^ It appears from this circumstance, that Egypt had been soon formed into a kingdom after mankind were dispersed by the confusion of languages. Its first name was Mizraim, which signifies straightness , it being closed on the north by th-9 Mediterranean sea, on the west and south by mountains, and on the ea»t by the Red sea, or Indian gulf. Nicolaus Damascus, a heathen author, says, that Abram went out of Chaldea into Canaan, now called Judea, but, in consequence of a great famine raging there, he removed tr. Egypt, in which were abundance of all kinds of provisions. H It may appear somewhat strange that Sarai should have such personal charms at so advanced an age • but it must be remembered that as in those days they were longer lived than at present, so their charms *ere proportionably durable 68 AN ILLUSTRATED might endanger the life of him who should pass tor her hushand. After some delib- eration, Abram concluded that the safest way would be for her to conceal her mar- riage ; upon which, communicating his fears to Sarai, and she approving of his plan, it was mutually agreed between them, that wherever they took up their residence, instead of his wife, she should pass for his sister. The apprehensions that Abram had formed were soon verified, after his arrival in Egypt. The distinguished charms of his wife attracted the notice of several princi- pal Egyptians, and she soon became the subject of popular conversation. The king, being informed of her beauty, was excited to gratify his curiosity by the sight of so amiable a stranger. Accordingly, Sarai was, by his order, conducted to court, and placed in the apartments allotted for his concubines. Here she remained several days, during which Abram (her supposed brother) was treated with great civility, mil on her account (though the king had not yet seen her) complimented with many valuable presents. A feeling mind may, in some degree, conceive the distress each party must natu- rally be susceptible of on this trying occasion. Sarai was a beautiful woman, in the power of a loose and vicious monarch, and destitute of all protection but from the hands of the Almighty. While her husband, who should be the only guardian of her person, dare not own her as his wife, lest the rage of lust and strength of power should deprive him of his existence. To relieve them from this distressed situation, the Almighty was pleased to inter- pose in their behalf: and, in order to deter Pharaoh* and his nobles from any dis- honora Mo attempts on Sarai, he suddenly afflicted them with various diseases and bodily mnrmities. Not being able to account for this singular circumstance, they at length suspected that it was occasioned by the confinement of Sarai, who, instead of being the sister of Abram, must certainly be his wife. In consequence of these sus- picions, the king sent for Abram, and expostulated with him on his misconduct, in having spread a false report, which might have been attended with a breach on his wife's chastity. After saying this he ordered him immediately to quit his kingdom, permitting him to take not only his own effects, but the presents that had been made him in consequence of his supposed sister. The famine in Canaan, which had occasioned Abram to go into Egypt, was hap- pily ceased ; so that his leaving the place was not only in conformity to the king's command, but agreeable to his own inclinations. Abram directed his course the same way he had come, and on his arrival at Bethel, where he had erected an altar, he offered on it a sacrifice of thanks to God for his happy escape from Egypt, and safe return into the land of Canaan. Abram and his nephew Lot had hitherto lived with great unanimity on the same spot; but their families and possessions beimj now greatly increased, inconveniences took place. They found themselves particularly distressed for want of provision for their cattle, which, probably, arose partly from the late famine, and partly from the great number of Canaanites, who possessed the most fertile parts of the land. This want of pasture-ground occasioned frequent disputes between the herdsmen of Abram and those of Lot ; so that the former, fearing lest the contention which prevailed among the servants might end in a rupture between themselves, resolved, in a friendly manner, to propose a separation from Lot. In doing this, such was his great prudence and condescension, that, though superior in every respect to his nephew, he gave him his choice of settlement in that part r the country he should best ap- prove. "If," says he, "thou wilt take the left hand, then I will go to the right; @r, if thou depart to the right hand, then I will go to the left." This generous and friendly proposition was readily agreed to by Lot, who, after taking a view of the country, chose the plains near Sodom and Gomorrah, which, being watered by the streams of Jordan,! was not only pleasant, but exceedingly fertile. * What this king's name was, or indeed any of the Egyptian monarchs, can not be ascertained. The nime Phrraoh was i title o' dignity ci mmon t > all, in tl e saine nanner as that o' Caesar issumed by the Roman Emperors. t This river, being the principal stream of Palestine, has acquired a distinction much greater than its • eograph cal impor ance cc aid have given. 1 is somet mes cal ed "the r ver," b> way of eminence being \n fact almost the only stream of the country which continues to flow in summer. The river rises about an hour and a quarter's journey (say three or three miles and a quarter) northeast from Banias. the ancienf Oresarea Philippi, in a plain near a hill called Tel-el-kadi. Here there are two springs near each other, one «»nailer than the other whose waters very soon unite, forming a rapid river, from twelve to fifteen varrt* HISTORY OF THE BIBLE H9 % ! m.% 70 AN ILLUSTRATED These matters Deing adjusted, Abram and Lot parted, the former continuing at Bethel, and the latter retiring to the spot he had chosen for his future residence. Some time after Lot's departure, the Almighty, ever mindful of his faithful ser- vant Abram, again appeared to him in a vision, and not only renewed the promise he had before made, of enlarging his posterity, but, bidding him cast his eyes round the kingdom, confirmed the gift of all the land which he beheld, to him and his descendants. These divine assurances were acceptably received by Abram, who, desirous of seeing the different parts of the country promised to his posterity, removed from Bethel, and took up his residence in the plain of Mamre, at a small distance from Kebron. Here (as was his usual custom, wherever he pitched his tent) he erected an altar, in order to discharge his religious duties, by offering sacrifices to the Lord In a short time after Abram had settled himself at Mamre, by the natural affa- bility of his temper, and the respect shown him on that account, he acquired the intimacy and friendship of some of the most considerable Canaanites, particularly three, named Mamre, Aner, and Eschol ; the former of whom was of such importance as to give name to the country in which he lived. This alliance was not only agreeable to Abram, but, in the course of time, proved infinitely serviceable, as will appear from the following circumstances. Chederlao- mer, king of Elam, had for some years held five petty princes (of which number the king of Sodom was one) in a tributary subjection to him. Weary with this subjec- tion, they at length determined to shake off the yoke they had so long borne ; to effect which they confederated together, and, joining their respective forces, prepared themselves to march against their oppressor. The king of Elam, being informed of their intentions, resolved, if possible, to frus- trate their designs. He accordingly raised a powerful army, and, in conjunction with three other kings, his allies, immediately advanced to meet the enemy. The revolted kings, seeing him at a distance, took the field, with a firm resolution of trying the fate of a pitched battle. The place allotted for determining the dispute was the valley of Siddim, which was full of pits of bitumen, or soil of a clayey nature. For some time the victory appeared doubtful ; but at length the five tributary kings were put to the route : one part of their army was entirely cut to pieces, and the other (led to the neighboring mountains, leaving their cities a prey to the conquerors. Lot, who happened at this time to reside in Sodom, was involved in the calamity of the city, being not only plundered of all his possessions, but carried away among the rest of the captives. One of the soldiers belonging to the vanquished, happening to make his escape, immediately hastened to Abram, to whom he related the particu- lars of the battle, and the hapless fate of his nephew. The faithful patriarch, anx- Lous for Lot, determined to pursue the victors, and, if possible, not only rescue him, but the whole of the captives. He accordingly armed all his own servants, the number of wiiom amounted to three hundred and eighteen, and, accompanied by his three friends and associates, Mamre, Eschol, and Aner, set out in pursuit of the vic- tors, whom, after a march of about seventy leagues, he overtook near Dan. Availing himself of the covert of the night, he put his forces into proper disposition, and im- mediately charged the enemy on all quarters. So sudden and vigorous an attack on an army fatigued with a late engagement, and revelling in the spoils of conquest, had the desired effect, for Abram, in a short time, obtained a complete victory. Che- derlaomer, the king of Elam, was, among many others, slain, and his whole army rTeing routed, Abram's victorious party pursued them as far as Hobah, a small place situated near Damascus. The enemy, from the great consternation into which they had been thrown, by the suddenness of the attack, fled so precipitately, that they left behind them not only the captives, but likewise the booty of which they had across, which rushes over a stony bed into the lower plain, where it is joined by a river which rises to the northeast of Banias. A few miles below their junction the now considerable river enters the small lake ol Houle, or Semechonitis (called "the waters of Merorn" in the Old Testament). Tins lake receives several othei mountain-streams, some of which seem to have as good claim to be regarded as forming the Jordan with that to which it is given in the previous statement; and it would perhaps be safest to consider the lake formed by their union as the real source of the Jordan. After leaving the lake, the river proceeds about twelve miles to the larger lake, called by various names, but best known as the Sea of Galilee : after leaving which, it flows about seventy miles farther, until it is finally lost in the Dead or Salt sea. It dis- charges into that sea a turbid, deep, and rapid stream, the breadth of which is from two to three hundred feet. The whole course of the rive is about one hundred miles in a straight line, from north to south ; but. *'ilh its windings it orobably does not describe a course of less than one huiul r »-d and fiftv miles. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 71 possessed themselves. The whole of these fell into the hands of Abram, and anions them his nephew Lot, who, being thus happily recovered, returned, with all his substance, to his former habitation. Abram having, by this conquest, signalized 1 oth his valor and fidelity, was highly caressed by those whose cause he had so galla illy espoused. The first person who came to congratulate him on the occasion was he king of Sodom, who, in thankful acknowledgment of the benefits received from his important services, offered him all his booty which he had retaken belonging to him, desiring only the restoration of those prisoners who were his subjects. But Abram's righteous soul disdained to take advantage of the unfortunate; and therefore, after reserving to his associates that part of the plunder to which their services entitled them, he restored to the king both his subjects and property, evincing, through the whole of his conduct, the most distinguished fidelity, intrepid courage, and inflexible justice. The next person who congratulated Abram on his success was Melchisedek, # king of Salem, who, on his return from the battle, accommodated both him and his men with a refreshment of bread and wine which he had provided on the occasion. Being a priest as well as king, he first blessed Abram for being the instrument of so public a deliverance, and then the Almighty, for having given him such uncommon suc- cess ; in return for which, the victorious patriarch presented him with the tenth part of the spoils he had taken from the enemy. As Abram had noAV acted in the public capacity of a warrior, and might reasonably expect that the kings whom he had routed «vould recruit their scattered forces, and prepare for a second attack, he was fearful of the consequences. But the Almighty, in order to fortify his mind against all disagreeable apprehensions, even from the most potent princes of the earth, appeared to him in a vision, and informed him that he had undertaken his defence, and would ever reward his faithfulness. " Fear not," says he, "Abram, I am thy shield, and thy exceeding great reward." Hitherto the pious patriarch had listened to God's promises without the least shadow of distrust; but on this fresh assurance he ventured, for the first time, to expostulate with his great protector, not knowing how these things could possibly be accomplished, while himself continued without an heir to his body, and that, to all appearance, he must be obliged to leave his substance to Eliezer his steward. The troubles of Abram on this head were soon removed by the beneficence of the Almighty, who told him that not his servant, but a son of his own, begotten of his body, should be his heir, and that from him should descend a race as " innumerable as the stars in heaven." Abram was so encouraged by this joyful intelligence, that he ventured to beg of God that he would be pleased "to give him some sensible token whereby he might be assured of so distinguished a blessing. The Almighty thought proper to comply with his request, and that they might enter into a formal covenant on the occasion, ordered him to take a heifer, a goat, and a ram, each of three years old, together with a pigeon and a turtle-dove, and offer them up as a sacrifice. The pious patriarch readily obeyed the divine command, and, having killed the beasts, cut them in halves, laying each opposite to the other ; but the fowls he left whole. After doing this, he walked between the dissected bodies, making his sol- emn vows to God of perpetual obedience to his will ; and then sat himself down to prevent birds of prey from injuring the sacrifice. About the time of sunset Abram fell into a deep sleep, during which it was revealed to him that he was not to expect an immediate accomplishment of the divine promise ; for though himself was to die in peace, and at a good old age, yet his posterity were, after that, to sojourn and be afflicted in a strange country, for the space of four hun- dred years ; after which the Almighty would not only punish their oppressors, but would likewise safely establish them in the land he had promised. After this revelation Abram soon awoke, and while he was reflecting on what he had heard, the Almighty, in confirmation of the assurances he had ^iven him, and as a ratification of his part of the covenant, caused the symbol of his divine presence tc appear before him. It consisted of a smoking furnace and a burning lamp, which passed between the divided pieces of the victims, and totally consumed them. * Who this extraordinary person was, has been a subject of great dispute ; but the most rational op'ivou '». that lie was one of the princes of Canaan, who on account of his great piety and goodness, was called Alelcluzedek, which, in the Hebrew language, signifies King of Righteousness. 72 AN ILLUSTRATED Sarai, the wife of Abram, desired a son no less fervently than her husband. But she had been considered barren before she left Mesopotamia ; she was now seventy- hve y^ars of age; and she had waited ten years since their hearts were first glad- dened by the promise of an heir. She therefore thought the case was hopeless as regarded herself; and began to reflect that, although a son had been promised to Abram, it had not been said, and did not necessarily follow, that this son should be the fruit of her own womb. Explaining these views to the patriarch, she prevailed upon him 10 resort to a custom of the time, of which there are still some traces in the East, undei which the man takes a secondary wife, whose children become his undoubted heirs, equally with any other children he may have ; and if the woman is the slave or attendant of the chief wife, or is provided by the chief wife, the children are, in a legal point of view, considered hers: and, in the same point of view, the condition of the actual mother remains unchanged, though in practice it necessarily sustains some modification from the operation of the feelings arising from the connex- ions which are formed, especially when her children are grown up. The female whom Sarai proposed to Abram as her substitute was her own handmaid, a woman of Egypt, named Hagar, who may be supposed to have been one of the female slaves whom the king of Egypt gave to the patriarch.* In due time it was known that Hagar had conceived, and the prospect of becoming the mother of Abram's long-promised heir had a mischievous effect upon her mind, leading her to treat her mistress with disrespect. Sarai, through whose preference and management all this had been bro ight about, was stung to the quick by this treatment, and complained of it to Abram with some sharpness, insinuating that, without some encouragement from him, Hagar durst not be so impertinent to her. The patriarch himself, respecting the rights of his wife, and displeased at Hagar's presumption (which those who know anything of Oriental women of her class, will believe to have been very coarsely and offensively manifested), reminded Sarai that the Egyptian was still her bond-servant, and that her authority was sufficient to pre- vent or punish the treatment of which she complained. Being thus assured that he would not interfere, Sarai proceeded to a more unsparing exercise of the powers with which she was invested, than the raised spirits of the Egyptian bondmaid could brook ; and she therefore fled, directing her course towards her own country. It is a terrible and perilous thing for a woman, alone and on foot, to pass the desert which lies between the land of Canaan and Egypt; and we know not how one might do it and live. Nor did Hagar accomplish this enterprise; for she was as yet but upon the borders of the desert, and was tarrying for refreshment and rest by a well of wa- ter, when an angel of God appeared to her, and persuaded her to return and submit herself to her mistress ; encouraging her to obedience by the assurance that the child she then bore in her womb would prove a son, whom she was directed to name Ish- mael (God attendeth), because the Lord had attended to her affliction. She was also assured that this son should be the parent of a numerous race ; and that while in his character, as typifying that also of his descendants, he should be wild and fierce as the desert ass — his hand against every man, and every man's hand against him — he should never be expelled or rooted out from the domain which God would give to him.f Thus instructed and encouraged, Hasrar returned to her master's camp in the valley of Mature ; and in due season brought forth a son, to whom, in obedience to th«" angel's direction, Abram gave the name of Ishmael. At this time Abram was eighty-six years of age ; and lest, in the excess of his joy, he should mistake this child for the heir of the promises which had been made him, about thirtpen years after, the Almighty again appeared to him in a vision, and re- newed his former covenant ; to ratify which he was pleased to institute the rite of circumcision, by commanding that every male child, of eight days old, whether born in the house or bought with money, should be circumcised, on the penalty of being cut off from the benefits of the covenant. As a further mark of his divine respect, he changed our patriarch's name from Abram to Abraham, and his wife's from Sarai to Sarah ;$ and to complete his happiness, again promised that he should yet have a son by her. * It is not unlikely that Hagar had been given to Sarai as hei personal attendant while she was in Ph;v /aoli'h harem, and that she was allowed to retain her as such when she departed. t This is the best interpretation we can give to the expression, " and in tiie face of all his brethren shall \w Iwcll." i The difference in the sound of these words is very trifling . but in the sense, it is considerable. The HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 73 74 AN ILLUSTRATED Though this promise gave great satisfaction to Abraham, yet his mind was agi- tated on account of Ishmael, his first-born, for whom lie had a most pater lal affection. He was suspicious that, on the birth of a child by the free woman, he might be de- prived of that descended from the bond-woman ; and therefore, falling prostrate on the ground, he began to intercede with God in behalf of Ishmael : " 0," says he, "that Ishmael miglu live before thee !" But the Almighty thought proper to remove his fears, by assuring him that the great blessings in the covenant were not designed lor Ishmael, but for a son to be born of Sarah, which should happen within the course of the year, and that his name should be called Isaac. That he might not, however, seeni wholly to neglect his request for Ishmael, he promised to "make him a great nation," and the father of twelve princes ; but at the same time told him, that the covenant made should only be established m the son begotten of Sarah. This was the whole substance of the vision ; and as soon as it was ended, Abra- ham delayed not (according to the divine command) to circumcise himseli, his son Ishmael, and all the males in his family. And this ordinance the Hebrews have ever since very religiously observed.* CHAPTER V. DESTRUCTION OP SODOM — BIRTH OP ISAAC — HIS HiRRIAGB. The great wealth of the inhabitants of Sodom and Gomorrah had introduced lux- ury, which, as usual, soon produced licentiousness. The fatal consequences of this were, irreverence to God, inhospitality to strangers, and the indulgence of the most abominable vices. These enormities highly offended the Almighty, who, in order to punish the people, denounced his vengeance both against them and their country. But, previous to the execution of the fatal sentence, ne thought proper to intimate his intentions to his faithful servant Abraham. At this time the pious patriarch resided at Mamre; and as he was sitting one day at the coor of his tent, he saw at a distance three persons, whom he took for travel- lers. Being naturally of a hospitable disposition, when they came up to him he arose from his seat, and, in a polite manner, asked them to partake of such refresh- ment as his habitation afforded. His civility being accepted, an entertainment was immediately prepared for the unknown guests, which being set before them, they, to all appearance, seemed to eat. While they were at table, one of them inquired after Sarah, and being told she was in the tent, he then addressed himself to Abraham, and assured him that he had still in remembrance the case of his wife Sarah, who, before the end of the year, should certainly be delivered of a son. From this circum- stance Abraham was convinced that these three visiters were messengers from heaven, and that one of them was the peculiar representative of the Almighty. Sarah had listened attentively to the discourse that had passed between her hus- band and his guests; but, considering the advanced age both of herself and him, she regarded not their prediction, and even laughed within herself at the improbability of such an event. This disrespectful behavior being observed by the stranger, he, in an angry tone, asked her the reason of it. Struck with terror, she attempted to deny it ; upon which he dismissed her with this gentle reproof: that it was exceedingly wrong in her to mistrust what he had said, since "nothing was impossible with God.'* This finished the conversation, immediately after which the three guests prepared themselves to depart, and Abraham, understanding they were going towards Sodom, word Abram, signifies high father ; but Abraham implies the father of a great multitude, as he certainly was, according to the Divine promise, "a father of many nations have I made thee," Gen. xvii. 5. The word Sarai signifies, my princess, or chief of my family only ; but Sarah implies, Princess or chief of multitudes, according to the words in the text, " She shall be a mother of nations, kings of people shall be of her," Gen. xvii. 16. * GiRCUMUisir m— the cutting off the small skin of the prepuce, as the rite was enjoined upon Abraham with the male part of his family, to be the sign of the covenant of G>>n with the patriarch, when he renewed to him the promise of the Messiah (Gen. xvii. 10-26). Physicians have regarded circumcision as medically E/eneficia) , and it was practised by the Arabians, Israelites, and Saracens, the descendants of Abraham ; but especially by thO Israelites, to whom it was ordained as the initiatory ordinance ol the Hebrew church, This, howe\ er, with all th<- l.evitical ceremonies, was abolished by the perfect mediation of Christ (Acts tv. 1-24 ; Col. ili. 11). The Israelites are called the circumcision, and the Gentiles the uncircumcision. Rom. iv. 9. Circumcision of the heart: this is the thing signified by the original ceiemony, the cutting off of even evil affection by the renewal of the soul in holiness to secure devotedness of heart in the true servu-e ol fJoD a." promised by Moses, Phil iii. 3; Col. ii. 11 ; Deut. x. 16 HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 75 courteously offered to attend them some part of the way. As they journeyed together, God was pleased to manifest iiis peculiar regard to Abraham, in foretelling the dread- ful judgment he intended to inflict on Sodom and the neighboring cities, which in- stance of his kindness was founded upon an assurance that he would command noi only his children, but his household also, to persevere in the true fear and worship of their divine Creator. This intelligence was communicated to Abraham by one of the angels (the imme- diate representative of God), the other two having gone before with great haste, to reach, as soon as possible, the place of their destiny. So melancholy a piece of news greatly afflicted Abraham, who, from an assurance of the divine favor, ventured to intercede in behalf of those wicked people. Not doubting but the supreme and equi- table Judge of the earth would listen to mercy, he begged of him not to punish the innocent with the guilty. He made five petitionary propositions, lessening the sup- posed number of pious inhabitants in Sodom from fifty to ten, earnestly beseeching of G-od that, could even so small a number be found, he would, on their account, withdraw his avenging rod, and avert the impending danger. This request being granted, the angel departed, and Abraham .returned home, happy in the thought of having received such peculiar manifestations of the divine love. In the mean time, the two other guests, who went before (and were, indeed, the ministering angels Avhom God had appointed to execute his judgment on the Sodom- ites), pursued their journey towards the city, whither they arrived in the evening. Lot happened at this time to be sitting at the gate of the city; as soon, therefore, as he saw the angels, he arose, and, after proper salutations, invited them to his house, in order to refresh themselves. For some time the divine messengers declined the offer ; but at length, from the strength of Lot's importunities, they were prevailed on to accept the invitation. It being soon rumored about the city that Lot had strangers with him, great num- bers of the vile inhabitants assembled together, and, surrounding the house, com- manded him, in a peremptory manner, to deliver them up. Lot thought at first to appease them by mild and soft words ; and, therefore, stepping out of the house, and shutting the door after him, he begged of them not to offer any insult to his guests, who had committed themselves to his care and protection. This not having the desired effect, in order to appease their rage, and, if possible, to preserve the laws of hospitality inviolate, he offered to give up his two virgin daughters to their discre- tion. But so abandoned were these wretches to wickedness, and so deaf to every remonstrance, that they even refused this offer, and threatened Lot with very severe treatment, if he did not immediately comply with their request. Finding Lot was resolute, and totally disregarded their threats, they determined to effect that by force which they could not obtain by any other means. Accordingly, pressing forward, they attempted to break open the door; but the divine messengers prevented their design. By an exertion of supernatural power, they forced their way out of the house, took in their host, and then, shutting the door, struck the rioters with a temporary blindness ; so that, not being able to find the house, they were obliged to desist from their diabolical intentions. All things being now quiet, the two angels acquainted Lot with the purport of their embassy. They told him they were come to execute the divine vengeance on that execrable place and its neighborhood ; and therefore, if he had any friends for whose safety he was concerned, to acquaint them of their danger, that thereby they might escape the general destruction. In the city were two young men, who had been betrothed to Lot's daughters, to whom he immediately repaired, and informed them of the approaching event, at the same time advising them, for their safety, to leave the place and go with him ; but, instead of listening to his advice, they totally despised it, and profanely ridiculed the idea of the threatened destruction. In the morning, soon after daylight, one of the angels, observing Lot not to pre- pare for his departure with that expedition he knew to be necessary, rather chastised him for his conduct. The cause of this delay certainly arose from hopes that the dreadful sentence against those wretched people might be reversed ; but his hopes were in vain, for, instead often righteous persons, that Abraham had capitulated for, no moie lhan four, and all those of Lot's family (himself included), were appointed to escape the dreadful judgment. Knowing, therefore, the necessity of immediate 76 AN ILLUSTRATED departure, the angel took Lot, his wife, and his two daughters by the hands, ami eon-ducted them out of the city. The divine messenger told him to make all the ex- pedition possible, and, to avoid the common ruin, pursue his course to the neighbor- ing mountains. Lot, observing the mountains to which he was directed were at a considerable distance, began to despair of reaching them in a proper time, and therefore entreated the angel that he might be permitted to escape to a small city, not far from Sodom, then called Bela, but afterward Zoar. This request was granted, and that city, on their account, escaped the general destruction. Before the angel left them, he urge*' them to make all possible haste, as the divine commission could not be put in exe cution till they were safely arrived at the place of their destination. He likewise enjoined them not, upon any account whatever, to look behind them, but to keep their eyes fixed on the place allotted for their refuge. Having said this the angel departed, and Lot, with his family, pursued their jour- ney toward Zoar. After travelling some way, Lot's wife, either from forgetfulness of the prohibition, or out of respect to the place of her habitation, indiscreetly looked back. This misconduct was attended with the most fatal consequences: she was immediately turned into a pillar of salt,* and became a standing monument of the vengeance of the Almighty on disobedient and obstinate offenders. Lot and his daughters, strictly observing the divine injunction, hastened toward Zoar, whither they had no sooner arrived, than the vengeance of the Almighty began to appear in all its horrors. The angry heavens poured down showers of liquid firef * She was overwhelmed and smothered in the spray of the igneous and saline matters which filled the air; and which, gathering and hardening around her, left her incrusted body with some resemblance to a mass of rock salt. f The examination of the agencies which it pleased God to employ in effecting this great overthrow is a subject which need not interrupt the present narrative. It suffices now to mention, that the destruction was sudden and overwhelming, and not only did it overthrow and devour the cities of the plain, and all the inhabitants, and all the growth of the ground, and every living thins, but it cut off" the Jordan in its course, and absorbed the very plain itself: the surface of which, once blooming ill;e another Eden, no man has be- held since that day ; but, instead thereof, a bitter, sulphureous and fetid lake, the Lake of Death, which has from that hour to this, remained one of the wonders of the earth. The following brief description of the Dead sea (see engraving), will, we hope, be read with interest : — The celebrated lake, which occupies the site of Sodom anu Gomorrah, is variously called in Scripture the Sea of the Plain (Deut. iii. 17, iv. 49), being situated in a valley with a plain lying to the south of it, where those cities once flourished, with the other cities of the plain ; the Salt sea Deut. iii. 17, Josh. xv. 5), from the extremely saline and bitter taste of its waters ; the Salt sea eastward (Num. xxxiv. 3), and the East sea (Ezek. xlvii. 18; Joel ii. 20), from its situation relatively to Judaea. At present it is called Bahret-Lout, or the sea of Lot. By Josephus and other writers, it was called the Lake Asphaltites, from the abundance oJ bitumen found in it. The most familiar name, the Dead sea, is in allusion to the ancient tradition, errone- ously but generally received, thai no animal can exist in its stagnant and hydro-sulphuretted waters, which, though tliev look remarkably clear and pure, are nauseous in the extreme. A chymical analysis of one hundred grains of the water gave the following results as to the substances, and proportions of them, which it holds in solution: — Muriate of lime 3.920 I Soda - - 10.360 Magnesia 10.246 Sulfate of lime .054 From this analysis it will readily be concluded that such a liquid must be equally salt and r».tter. The acrid saltness of its waters, indeed, is much greater than that of the sea: and the land wluch surrounds this lake, being equally impregnated with that saltness, refuses to produce any plants, except a few stunted thorns, which wear the brown garb of the desert. Bodies sink or float upon it in proportion to their specific gravity: and although the water is so dense as to be favorable to swimmers, no security is found againrl the common accident of drowning. This sea, when viewed from the spot where the rapid Jordan daily dis charges into it 6.090,000 tons of muddy water, takes a southeasterly direction visible for ten or fifteen miles, when it disappears in a curve toward the east. The expanse of the Dead sea, at the embouchure ol the Jordan, has been supposed not to exceed five or six miles : though the mountains, which skirt each side of the valley of the Dead sea, are apparently separated by a distance of tight miles. The mountains on the Judaean side are lower than the mountains of Moab, on the Arabian side. The latter chain at its southern extremity is said to consist of dark granite, and of various colors. The shores at the northern extremity are remarkably fiat, and strewed with vast quantities of driftwood, white and bleached by the sun, which is brought down by the swelling of Jordan. It is not certainly known whether there has been any visible increase or decrease in the waters of the Oead sea. Some have imagined that it finds a subterraneous pas- sage to the Mediterranean, or that there is a considerable suction in the plain which forms its western boundary ; but Dr. Shaw has long since a.*... ounted for it, by the quantity which is daily evaporated. As the Dead sea advances toward the south, it evidently increases in breadth. Its dimensions have been variously estimated by different travellers. Pliny states its total length to be one hundred miles, and its greatest breadth twenty-five . the Jewish historian Josephus. who measured this lake, found that in length \l extended about five hundred and eighty stadia, and in breadth one hundred and fifty; according to our standard, somewhat more than seventy miles hv nineteen. With this measurement nearly coincides the estimate of Dr. Shaw, who appears to nave ascertained its dimensions with accuracy, and who computes its length to be about seventy-two English miles, and its greatest breadth about nineteen. Whoever has once seen the Dead sea. will ever after have its aspect impressed upon his memory: it is in truth agloomv and fearful spectacle. The precipices, in general, descend abruptly into the lake, the surface of which is generally unruffled, from the hollow of the basin 'in which it lies) scarcely admitting the" free passage ne cessar) for a strong breeze. It is, however, for the same reason, subject to whirlwinds or squalls of shoM duration A profound silence, awful as death, hangs over the lake : its shores are rarely visited bv anv HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 77 i, ■3 ., 78 AN ILLUSTRATED on bodoin and Gomorrah, and the other wicked cities of the plain; and in a slio r t time the whole was reduced to a state of irreparable destruction. When Lot beheld the dreadful calamity that had befallen the cities of Sodom an«! Gomorrah, he began to think himself not safe in Zoar ; he therefore withdrew to the mountains to which he was first directed, and, for want of a proper habitation, lived for some time with his daughters in a cave. In his caverned retreat a new and un- expected evil befell Lot. His daughters, like all eastern women, and especially all women of Bedouin parentage, looked upon the possession of children as the best and orightest hope of their existence; but they saw none on earth whom they might ex- pect to marry. They knew not that any of their father's family and. connexions existed, to become their husbands ; and the example of their sisters, who had perished in Sodom Avith their husbands, made them afraid, if willing, to entertain the notion of a marriage with Canaanitish husbands. They therefore most wickedly managed, on two successive nights, to intoxicate their father with Avine, and in that condition, and without his clear knowledge of what was done, to procure issue by him. A son to each daughter was the result of this transaction. The eldest daughter gave to her son the name of Moab (" from a father"), and the younger called hers Ben-Ammi (" son of my people"), which latter name, intimating the mother's satisfaction in the tact that the child was a son of her own race, corroborates the view we have taken of the motives by which the women were influenced, and which seems to us far preferable to the notion that they supposed that all the inhabitants of the earth, ex- cept their father and themselves, were destroyed in the overthrow of Sodom. We do not see how it is possible that they could have entertained any such impression. Be this as it may, the sons which were bora to them were the progenitors of the Moabites and Ammonites, — nations well known in a later age for their enmity to the house of Israel. Thus much of Lot, of whom the sacred history takes no further notice. AVe now proceed to consider the peculiar dispensation of Providence with respect to his faithful servant Abraham. At the time of the destruction of Sodom and Gomorrah, the pious patriarch re- sided at Mamre ; but as soon as he beheld that fatal catastrophe, struck with a proper sense of the Divine vengeance, and the great power he had over his creatures, he removed thence to the southward, and took up his residence in Gerar, one of the principal cities in Palestine. On his first entering this place, he had recourse to the same policy he had before practised when in Egypt, and an agreement was made between him and his wife that they should pass for brother and sister. Abimelech,* the king of Gerar, sup- posing this to be their real affinity, and being captivated with the person of Sarah, who, though far advanced in years, possessed some distinguished charms, ordered her to be brought to his palace, with an intent of making her his concubine. But the Almighty warned him in a dream from committing the iniquitous act, by assuring him, that if he took to his bed a woman, whose husband was a prophet, his conduct should be punished with immediate death. In consequence of this, Abimelech sent for Abraham, whom he severely repri- manded for having endeavored to impose on him, by calling her his sister whom he footstep, save that of the wild Arab ; and its desolate but majestic features are well suited to the tales re- lated concerning it by the inhabitants of the country, who hold it in superstitious dread, and speak of it with terror. We can not forbear subjoining the lively account which Mr. Stephens gives of the " water of the Dead sea :" " From my own experience I can almost corroborate the most extravagant accounts of the ancients. 1 know, in reference to my own specific gravity, that in the Atlantic and Mediterranean I can not float with- out some little movement of the hands, and even then my body is almost totally submerged: but here, when I threw myself upon my back, my body was half out of the water. It was an exertion even for mv lank Arabs to keep themselves under. When I struck out in swimming it was extremely awkward, for my lees were continually rising to the surface, and even above the water. I could have lain and read there with perfect ease. In fact I could have slept; and it would have been a much easier bed than the bushes at Jericho. It was ludicrous to see one of the horses : as soon as his body touched the water, he was afloat, and turned over on his side : he struggled with all his force to preserve his equilibrium ; but the mo- ment he ceased moving, he turned over on his side again, and almost on his back, kicking his eserved in different and distant nations. Now, we know not of any people who preserved, mixed with many and awful corruptions, so many traces of this ancient religion as existed in the Druidical institutions 82 AN ILLUSTRATED and in it erected ail altar, that he might not be anywise deficient in the discharge of his religious duties. The Almighty, in his wise Providence, had, in divers instances, and on many occa- sions, put Abraham's iV.th and obedience to the test; but now he resolved to try him in the tenderest point, m Avhich every tie of parental affection bound him, and to give up which required a degree of resignation uncommon to the best of men. He is re- quired, by his God, to sacrifice his son — to embrue his hands in the blood of his dar- ling offspring. Ishmael was now no more to him; he had parted with him at the divine command, and had transferred his affections solely on Isaac ; and this son, this only son, who had been given him by Divine promise, and in whom all his future expectations of happiness centred, must fall a victim by the unalterable de ee of Heaven. Hard task to flesh and blood ! Severe trial to human nature ! But if the flesh shuddered, the spirit was absolute : God commands — the patriarch obeys. Earlv therefore, the next morning, Abraham arose, and, without giving any notice to hi? .amily, prepared himself for the appointed business. He sat out, accompanied only by his son Isaac, and attended by two servants, who led an ass laden with pro- visions, together with the wood, instruments, and other things necessary for the sac- rifice. After travelling three days he came within sight of the spot God had ap- pointed for the dreadful scene, which was a particular mountain in the land of Mo- riah. Here he ordered his servants to stop with the ass, while he and his son went to a spot at some distance to perform their religious duties. Abraham having laden his son with the wood and other materials for a burnt-offer- ing, they proceeded on their journey. The harmless Isaac, ignorant of the design of his pious and affectionate parent, went cheerfully on with him, and the good old pa- triarch, relying on the faithfulness of the Divine promise, overcame the struggling* of a natural affection, which might have retarded his compliance with the will of God, and proceeded with a resolution worthy the father of the faithful. As they approached near the appointed place for executing the awful injunction, Isaac, recollecting that a proper victim (the most essential requisite for the sacrifice) was wanting, innocently asked his father, where was the lamb for the burnt-offering ? Such a question, at such a time, was enough to have startled any heart less firm than Abraham's ; but, fixed in the resolution to obey the divine command, he coolly replied, "My son, God will provide one himself." Being now arrived at the spot which the Almighty had directed, the first thing Abraham did was to erect an altar; after which, having prepared the instruments, and laid the wood in order, he embraced his son, and then bound him. Here the sa- cred historian, like a great painter, hath drawn a veil over the sorrow of Abraham, and the resignation of Isaac, that the imagination of the reader might paint to him more forcibly the struggles of the parent, and the agonies of the son, than words can possibly express. Every preparation being now made, Abraham, taking up the knife, stretched forth his hand to give the finishing stroke to the life of his son ; when, behold ! God is satisfied with the faith and obedience of the father, and the piety and resignation of the son. The voice of a heavenly messenger is suddenly heard, saying unto Abra- ham, "Lay not thy hand upon the lad, neither do thou anything unto him." The uplifted arm was now withheld, and the fatal blow happily averted. The divine sound intimated, that the Almighty neither delighted in human sacrifices, nor wished to make a father the murderer of a son whom he had bestowed on him as a peculiar favor ; but that the command had been given to try if his obedience to God exceeded his feelings as a man, and if his natural affections could submit to his religious duties. and religion of the Celtes. It is true they had idols, and that many wild notions were entertained, and many horrid rites practised by them ; but, amid all, they believed in one Supreme Being-, to whom all other gods were far inferior. His symbol was the oak, and him, exclusively, they worshipped amid the groves. They never had images of him, 01 erected temples to him ; and Tacitus, speaking of the Senones, who were a branch of the Celtes, and had the same religion, tells us that its principle consisted in the acknowledgment that the Deity whom they worshipped in the gioves, the God without name, was he who governed all things, on whom all things depended, and whom all beings were bound to obey! There are other resemblances which would render our position more clear if we could bring them intc one view. But the purpose of the present note does not require this ; and we need only now observe, that these remarkable analogies between the patriarchal .or say the Hebrew) and Druidical religions are lale discoveries of our own day; but the antiquity and wisdom of the Druidical religion, and its contoimiti^a with that of the Jews, were adduced so long ago as the time of Celsus, in opposition to what that writer was pleased to consider the novelties of the gospel. HISTORY OF THE BIBLR m Cromlech at Plas Newydd. Druidical Circle— Jersey. 84 AN ILLUSTRATED When the divine voice ceased, the pious patriarch, turning his eyes from the dear though intended victim, beheld a ram fastened by his horns in a thicket. Convinced in his mind that this was the gracious substitute of Providence, he immediately flew to it with raptures, and having slain it with that knife which was intended for the destruction of his son, brought it to the altar and presented it (instead of the before- destined Isaac) as a burnt-offering, to his great and benevolent benefactor. This infallible token of Abraham's obedience was so satisfactory to the Almighty, that lie was pleased to renew his gracious promise to him with enlarged abundance ; and even to confirm the same by a solemn oath. " By myself have I sworn, for because thou hast done this thing, and hast not withheld thy son, thine only son, from me." Having thus complied Avith the will of God, and received a most convincing testi- mony of the divine approbation, Abraham and Isaac returned to the servants, and they all went joyfully together to Beersheba, at that time the place of Abraham* residence. In memory of this singular transaction, the pious patriarch called the place where it happened, " Jehovah-jirah," in allusion to the answer he gave to his son's question, "God will provide himself a lamb." When Abraham returned home, he received the agreeable intelligence of the in- crease of his family, namely, that Milcah, his brother Nahor's wife, had brought him a numerous issue.* But the joy he received on this account was soon damped by a circumstance which happened in his own family, namely, the loss of his wife Sarah, who died at Kirjath-arba (afterward called Hebron), in the one hundred and twenty-seventh year of her age. At the time of Sarah's death, Abraham was at Beersheba ; but he no sooner heard of the melancholy event than he immediately repaired to Hebron, in order to perform the last offices due to his departed wife. As he was a stranger in the country, and had no land there of his own, he could not give her honorable interment without first obtaining the consent of the people. He therefore addressed himself to a general assembly of the principal inhabitants, entreating them to allow him the liberty of burying his wife in their country. This request being readily granted, Abraham bowed to the assembly in acknowledgment for the favor ; after which he told them he should be glad to purchase a piece of ground as a sepulchre for himself and family, and begged of them to entreat Ephron, the prince of the country, to sell him the cave of Machpelah. This request being likewise granted, and application made to Ephron, he gener- ously offered the patriarch not only the cave, but also the whole field in which it stood, as a burying-place. Abraham acknowledged the bounty of the offer ; but as he had ever acted on a principle of strict justice, he desired the prince to fix a price on the field ; and that, on such condition, he would take possession of it for the pur- poses intended. The prince, finding the patriarch resolute, asked four hundred shekels (a sum greatly beneath its real value). The purchase was made before all the people of Hebron, and the field, together with the cave, was formally assigned over to Abra- ham and his heirs for ever. This matter being adjusted, Abraham, after the usual ceremonies of mourning were over, buried his wife in the cave he had then purchased, and in which his own remains were afterward deposited. Abraham, being now far advanced in years, and apprehending he had not much longer to live, was desirous of seeing his own son Isaac married, and settled in the world, before his departure out of this transitory life. He therefore called to him his household steward, an old and trusty servant, to whom he related his intention of marrying his son; and obtained from him an oath,t that (in case he died first) he * The names of the children of Nahor, by Milcah, were as follows : Huz, Buz, Kemuel, Cheshed, Hazo, Pildash, Jidlaph, and Bethuel. The last of these begat Rebecca, who was afterward the wife of Isaac. t The great anxiety of the patriarchs to secure the marriage of their sons to women of their own clan or family appears everywhere, and is even indicated in the precise mention which is made of marriages which took place against this regulation — as in the cases of Ishmael and Esau. Such a desire has always pre vailed wherever the distinction of clans or tribes has been strongly marked, for the sake of keeping up its property, blood, and peculiar feelings, and of compacting its union and influence ; and these ordinary mo- tives acquired increased intensity in the instance of the Hebrew patriarchs in consequence of the general idolatry or superstition into which all the surrounding nations had fallen, and which alone would have suf- ficed to preclude intermarriages with them. This consideration, separately from any other, has always pre- vented the Jew* from forming matrimonial connexions with any but the daughters of Israel. Their law forbade sii-h ma — ages in .tie strictest manner; and we shall find instances of their being severely purush. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 85 should procure a wife for him anions: his own kindred, and not from the daughters of the Canaanites. Having obtained this solemn oath, Abraham told his servant to go into Mesopotamia, which was the place of his nativity, and there choose a wife, out of his own kindred, for his son Isaac. On receiving these orders, the servant asked him this question: "If," says he, "the woman refuse to follow me into the land of Canaan, must I return and fetch thy son to her ?" The patriarch immedi- ately answered in the negative, as no consideration could prevail on him to suffei his son to return to a land which he himself had left on account of the inhumanity and idolatry of its inhabitants. To encourage the servant in the prosecution of his intended expedition, Abraham assured him that a heavenly messenger would conduct him to the place whence he should bring a wife unto his son ; and that if the woman pitched on should refuse to follow him, he should be free from the oath he had taken, and be considered as having properly discharged the business with which he was intrusted. These matters being settled, Eliezer (for that Avas the name of this trusty servant) set out on his embassy, attended by a number of servants and camels, agreeably to the importance of his business, and the dignity of the person by whom he was employed. After undergoing great fatigue, both from the badness of the roads and the want of water, this trusty servant, with his attendants, reached Mesopotamia, and repaired to Haran,* a city belonging to his master's brother Nahor. When he had arrived near the entrance of the city, he stopped at the public well (whither it was custom- ary for the young women of the place to come every morning and evening for water), in order to refresh the camels.f ed, and of the deep disgust which they inspired. They were neither to take the females of other nations, nor give their own females to them (Deut. vii. 3, 4) ; and the reason was, " For they will turn away thv sons from following me." While this principle inhibited marriages with other nation's, there was another law which preserved the integrity of property in the respective tribes, by directing that daughters having any inheritance should not marry out of the tribe of their father, (Num. xxxvi). " So shall not the inherit- ance of the children of Israel remove from tribe to tribe." These principles, taken from the subsequent laws of the Hebrews, afford the best explanation of the conduct of the patriarchs with regard to the mar- riages of their sons. Among the Bedouin Arabs there is no regulation precluding the intermarriages of dif- ferent tribes ; but in practice a man seldom takes a wife from any other tribe than his own ; and still more rarely, although there is no national or religious difference, will a Bedouin give his daughter in marriage to the inhabitant of a town, or to a cultivator or artisan. Some tribes never do so ; but others are rather less strict. So, as Ward informs us, among the Hindoos, the parents who find employment at a distance from their original homes, always marry their children in their own country and among their old acquaintance. * " Pharran," as given by St. Stephen, is the proper reading of this name, and is, therefore, different from the name of Abram's brother, which is truly spelt Haran. The site of this place is very questionable. Meet writers on scriptural geography identify it with the place called Charrae by the Greeks and Romans, and renowned in history for the defeat of Crassus. But we are inclined to think that this identification is scarcely compatible with that which finds TJr in Urfah ; for not only is this Charran in the same plain with Urfah, but is actually, at almost all times, visible from it, being distant not above eight hours' ride to the south ; so that a removal to this Histance hardly corresponds with the historical intimations which refer to it. There are three other sites to which different writers refer the Charran of our history. One is Oruros, nn the Euphrates, about fifty miles below the embouchure of the Chaboras ; the second is Harcc, about twenty miles to the east-northeast of Palmyra ; and the third, Carra, about thirty-eight miles northeast from Damascus. All these places would, however, be out of the way in proceeding from Urfah to the land of Canaan, excepting the one near Damascus, which, on many grounds, we should hold to offer the prefer- able claim, were it not that the account of Jacob's journey to the same place expressly informs us that Haran was in Mesopotamia, on which ground the site, with the mention of which we commenced this note, must still be held to have a little the preference, notwithstanding the objections which apply to it, as none if the others answer to this condition. We think it very likely that the site of Ur, and more than likely that the site of Haran, are yet to bd found. t Water is usually drawn in the evening, and frequently in the cool of the morning also. Fetching water is one of the heaviest of the many heavy duties which devolve upon the females in the East, and one which the most sensibly impresses us with a sense of their degraded condition. The usage varies in different countries. Among the Arabs and other nomades, and also in many parts of India, it is the exclusive em- ployment of the women, without distinction of rank. But in Turkey and Persia the poorer women only are subject to this servile employment, respectable families being supplied daily by men who make the supply- ing of wa*,er a distinct business. The tents of the Bedouins are seldom pitched quite near to the well from which they obtain their water; and if the distance is not more than a mile, the men do not think is neces- sary that the water should be brought upon the camels : and, unless there are asses to be employed on this service, the women must go eA'ery evening, sometimes twice, and bring home at their backs long and heavy leathern bags full of water. The wells are the property of tribes or individuals, who are not always will- ing that caravans should take water from them ; and in that case, a girl is sometimes posted at the well to exact presents from those who wish to have water. It is not likely that Abraham's servant travelled with- out a leathern bucket to draw water, and it is therefore probable that he abstained from watering his ten camels until he should have obtained permission. The women, when they are at the wells in the evening, are generally obliging to travellers, and ready to supply such water as they may require for themselves or their beasts. The women of towns in Turkey and Persia have seldom far to go, except under peculiai circumstances in the situation or soil of the place, or quality of its water. Their water-vessel depends much upon the distance ; if rather far, a skin will probably be prefeired as most convenient for carrying ^ good quantity ; but if near, an earthern jar will often be chosen. The present well seems to have been 1'iite near the town, and we concur in the translation which renders Rabecea's vessel "a pitcher " Th^ M AN ILLUSTRATED Having been properly instructed by his master in the fear of God, and being sen- sible of the importance of the business, as well as fearful of not executing it to ln's master's satisfaction, he made a mental prayer to God, beseeching him to direct him, by a certain sign, to a proper object of choice for his young master. He had no sooner solicited this divine assistance than his request was immediately complied with, and the sign given was, that she who, at his desire, permitted him "to drink of her water, would be the person appointed by God for the wife of his servant Isaac. Soon after this, Rebecca, the daughter of Bethuel, came to the well, with her pitcher, for water; after she had filled it, the servant (having taken notice that she was exceedingly beautiful) accosted her m a very humble manner, begging that she would give him a draught of the water, he being exceedingly thirsty. Rebecca readily consented, and not only gave him to drink, but also went several times to the well to fetch water for the refreshment of his camels.* This propitious occurrence highly delighted Abraham's servant, who, after paying some general compliments to her beauty and benevolence, made inquiry concerning her family and relations. To which the lovely virgin replied, that she was the daughter of Bethuel, the son of Nahor, and kinswoman to Abraham. This intelligence gave fresh spirits to the faithful messenger, who was now con- vinced that God approved of the alliance between Rebecca and Isaac. He therefore presented to her a pair of gold ear-rings, and some other female ornaments, request- ing her to accept them as-a token of his esteem for her virtues, and a grateful return word (kad) is different from that (chemitz) rendered "bottle" in the narrative of Hag-ar's expulsion; and is the same word used to describe the vessels in which Gideon's soldiers concealed their torches, and which they broke to produce a crashing and alarming noise. The women contrive to draw an enjoyment even out of this irksome duty, as it affords the best opportunity they have of meeting and talking together, and of displaying their finery to each other. They by no means appear to the worst advantage, as to dress, at the wells ; and this circumstance shows that Abraham's servant might there, without any incongruity, in- vest Rebecca with the ornaments he had brought. To a traveller in the East, the best opportunities of making his observations on the females will occur in the evening at the wells. Eliezer was aware of this, and regarded the opportunity as favorable for his purpose. It appears that the unmarried females even of towns went unveiled, or only partially veiled, on ordinary occasions, in these early times. Now all go veil- ed ; and the more extended use of the veil in modern times has probably, in one respect, operated favora- bly for the women, by exonerating those in families decently circumstanced from the very heavy duty of fetching water, the proper management of the veil being scarcely compatible with the performance of this laborious office. Accordingly we find that this duty devolves more exclusively on the females, without distinction of rank, in those Asiatic countries or tribes where the women are not obliged to veil their faces, as in India, and among the Arabian and other nomade tribes. We have already noticed the Arabian usage. In consequence of the modifications which we venture to think that the extended use of the veil has pro- duced among the inhabitants of towns west of the Indus, it is perhaps in India we are to look for the most precise parallels to the patriarchal customs. Accordingly we find, that in many parts of India, women of the first distinction draw water daily from the public wells. They always fetch it in earthern jars carried upon their heads. Sometimes two or three jars are carried at once, one upon the other, forming a pillar upon the bearer's head. As this necessarily requires the most perfect steadiness, the habit gives to the females a remarkably erect and stately air. It seems that it is a distinction to carry the jar on the shoulder ; and Forbes, in his " Oriental Memoirs," relates an anecdote of an intelligent native who, when this highly in- teresting passage was read to him, inferred that Rebecca was of " high caste," from her carrying the pit- cher on her shoulder. The text, however, does not necessarily imply that she carried the jar erect upon hei shoulder, but quite as probably means that it was carried at the back, the handle being held over the shoulder by the hand or leathern strap. * The pastoral poetry of classical antiquity, which has been imitated more or less in all nations, has ren- dered us familiar with the idea of females of birth and attractions acting as sheperdesses long after the practice itself has been discontinued, and the employment has sunk into contempt. When nations origin- ally pastoral settled in towns, and adopted the refinements of life, the care of the sheep ceased to be a principal consideration, and gradually devolved upon servants or slaves, coming to be considered a mean employment, to which the proprietor or his household only gave a general and superintending attention The respectability of the employment in these patriarchal times is not evinced by our finding the daughter of so considerable a person as Laban engaged in tending the flocks, for in the East all drudgery devolves upon the females ; but by our finding the sons of such persons similarly engaged m pastoral duties, which in Homer also appears to have been considered a fitting employment for the sons of kings and powerful chiefs. We are not aware that at present, in the East, the actual care of a flock or herd is considered a dignified employment. Forbes, in his "Oriental Memoirs," mentions, that in the Bramin villages of the Concan, women of the first distinction draw the water from wells, and tend the cattle to pasture, "like Rebecca and Rachel." But in this instance it can not be because such employments have any dignity in them, but because the women are obliged to perform every servile office. So, among the Bedouin Arabs, and other nomade nations, the immediate care of the flocks devolves either upon the women or the ser- vants ; but most generally the latter, as the women have enough to occupy them in their multifarious do- mestic duties. However, among some tribes, it is the exclusive business of the young unmarried women to drive the cattle to pasture. " Among the Sinai Arabs," says Burckhardt, " a boy would feel himself in- sulted were any one to say, 'Go and drive your father's sheep to pasture;' these words, in his opinion, would signify, ' You are no better than a girl.' " These young women set out befoie sunrise, three or foui .o^ether, carrying some water and victuals with them, and they do not return until late in the evening Throughout the day they continue exposed to the sun, watching the sheep with great care, for they are sure of being severely beaten by their father should any be lost. These young women are in general civil to persons who pass by, and ready enough, to share with them their victuals and milk. They are fully able to protect their flocks against any ordinary depredation or danger, for their way of life makes them a» hardv and vigorous as the men. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 87 88 AN ILLUSTRATED for her distinguished condescension. As it grew late, and he had valuable property about him, he entreated permission, for that night, to reside at the house of her rela- tions. Rebecca, in a most engaging manner, permitted him this convenience, but begged that she might previously apprize the family of so unexpected a visiter. Ac- cordingly, having accepted the presents, she immediately hastened home, leaving Eliezer full of contemplation and acknowledgments to the divine favor for the happy incident. As soon as Rebecca entered the house, her brother Laban, observing thp bracelets on her arms, asked her by what means she had obtained such costly ornaments. Re- becca acquainted him with every particular that had happened, from her going out till her return ; upon which Laban immediately went to the well, where finding Eliezer and his attendants, he brought them home with him, and ordered proper provision to be made both for him and his retinue. As soon as Eliezer had paid the necessary compliments to Rebecca's family, he in- formed them of the nature of his embassy, the great success that had attended him in his journey, and the fortunate incident of his meeting Rebecca without the city. He likewise gave them an ample account of the state of his master's family ; of the wealth and prosperity wherewith God had blessed him; of the son and heir which he had given him in his old age; and of the large expectances which this heir had, not only from the prerogative of his birth, but from the donation and entail of all his father's possessions. Having thus minutely related every particular relative to his embassy he demanded an immediate answer, saying, till that was obtained, he could not, with any satisfaction, take the least refreshment. From the very singular circumstances that had occurred in the course of Eliezer's journey, Laban and Bethuel* were of opinion that Divine Providence was materially concerned in the whole affair. Concluding, therefore, that it would be exceedingly wrong to refuse Eliezer's request, they readily consented, and told him he might take Rebecca to her intended husband as soon as he thought proper. This business being settled, the trusty servant presented Rebecca with jewels of sil- ver and gold, and fine raiment, which he had brought with him for the purpose. He likewise gave some considerable presents! to her mother and the rest of the family ; and the remainder of the evening was dedicated to mirth and festivity. Early in the morning, Eliezer, being impatient to acquaint his master with the suc- cess of his embassy, desired to be dismissed. This request greatly surprised the family, who, influenced by natural affection, desired that Rebecca might be permitted to tarry with them a few days, to take, perhaps, a last farewell. But the diligent and faithful steward would admit of no delay ; upon which, the matter being referred to Rebecca herself, she agreed to go with him whenever he thought proper. Accordingly, the necessary preparations being made, and the bridal blessing bestowed, she took her leave, attended by her nurse (whose name was Deborah) and other servants appointed on the occasion. When Eliezer came within some distance of his master's house, it happened that Isaac was then walking in the fields, meditating on the beauties of nature, and the beneficence of that Being who formed the creation. Seeing at a distance his servants and camels on the road, he hastened to meet them, anxious to know the result of Eliezer's embassy. As he approached near, Rebecca asked who he was ; and being informed, she immediately alighted from her camel, threw a veilf over her face, and waited to receive the first compliments of her intended husband. * This Bethuel could not be the father of Rebecca, because, had that been the case, it would have been improper to have had Laban either named before him. or to have given answer to Abraham's messenger when his father was by ; and, therefore, since Josephus makes the damsel tell Eliezer that her father had been dead long ago, and that she was left to the care of her brother Laban, this Bethuel (who is here named after Laban. and never more taken any notice of during the whole transaction) must have been some younger brother of the family. t Dr. Shaw, who resided many years in the East, tells us, that among the Arabians, the person who settles a marriage contract, first adorns the espoused person with jewels, and then makes presents to her relations, according to their rank. He adds, that, on such occasions, it is expressly stipulated what sum of monev the husband shall settle on the wife ; what jewels she shall wear; how many suits of raiment she shall have ; and, lastly, how many slaves shall be allowed to attend her. t Whether veiled before or not, she now " covered herself— her whole person— with the ample envel- oping veil with which brides are still conducted to the bridegroom. Rosenrnuller, in illustration of this passage, quotes an ancient father (Tertullian), who, with an express reference to the same text, observss. as a custom still existing in his time, that the heathen brides were also conducted to their husbands covered with a veil. It is still all but universal in the East, and it will be observed that it is used, not only dv the females whose faces are always concealed both before and after marriage, but bv those who display HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 89 When Isaac came up to Rebecca, he addressed her with great respect, and imme- diately conducted her to his mother's tent, which had been previously fitted up for her reception, and designed for her future habitation. A few days after they were joined in wedlock, and Isaac grew so fond of her, that his mind was greatly relieved from that perturbation with which, for three years, it had been loaded, for the loss of his affectionate mother. Such was the pious regard children had for their parents in those days; and such was the amiable example set by Isaac for all who should follow ! Some time after Isaac's marriage, his father, though far advanced in life, yet still possessing great strength of constitution, made an addition to his family, by taking another wife, whose name was Keturah, and by whom he had six sons. But, lest they should interfere with Isaac in his inheritance of Canaan, as they grew up he portioned them off, and sent them towards the east, where, settling in Arabia and Syria, they became, in time, the rulers of different nations. These are the last circumstances mentioned by the saered historian, relative to the great patriarch Abraham, who at length, worn out with bodily infirmities, quietly gave up the ghost, in the one hundred and seventy-fifth year of his age, leaving be- hind him a name famous to all posterity. He was buried by his two sons, Ishmael and Isaac, in the cave of Machpelah, where, about forty years before, he had depos- ited the remains of his beloved Sarah. Ishmael, the eldest son of Abraham, though not his heir, lived many years after his father. He died at the age of one hundred and seven, leaving behind him twelve sons.* part or the whole of their faces on ordinary occasions. It is in fact, the indispensable costume for the oc- casion. Whether the bridal veil was distinguished from other veils does not appear; but we observe that one of red silk or muslin is affected by the Persians on such an occasion, although the ordinary veils are white or blue; and Dr. Russell, in his account of a Maronite marriage, observes that the bride's veil was of the same color. Thus we see that Rebecca, by enveloping her person in a veil, put herself into the cos- tume usual for a bride when conducted to the tent or house of her husband. * The Isiimaelites. — We know not whence the strange opinion arose that the whole Arabian nation is descended from Ishmael, and that, consequently, the names of the Ishmaelites and Arabs are co-extensive, unless from the Chaldee and Arabic paraphrasts, and from other Jewish writers, whose historical authority, at all times of the least possible value, becomes a perfect nullity when open to any obvious influence, such as the wish to represent Abraham as the father of so great and wide-spread a nation as the Arabians. The whole testimony of the oriental w T nters, and all the inferences deducible from the sacred narrative, are opposed to this conclusion. The Arabians have a history anterior to Ishmael; and it would be preposter- ous to suppose, that Arabia, even to its deserts, was not occupied before his time. According to the Arabian writers, Arabia was occupied a few generations after the flood by the successive settlement within it of variously descended tribes, all of whom ultimately gave way to the races from which the present Arabs claim to be descended, either from being destroyed by them or lost in them. These latter proceed from two stocks, of which the most ancient islhat of Kahtan, the same who in the Bible is called Joktan, a son of Eber; and the other that of Adnan, who descended in a direct line from Ishmael. To the posterity of the former is given the distinguishing title of eminence, al Arab al Araba, (equivalent to " a Hebrew of the Hebrews" among the Jews), mat is, the genuine or pure Arabs : while those of Ishmael receive that of al Arab al Mostdreba, meaning naturalized or mixed Arabs. But some writers, who wish to be more precise, apply the first and most honorable title to the most ancient and lost tribes to which we have alluded, while the descendants of Kahtan obtained the name of Motdieba, which likewise signifies mixed Arabs, though in a nearer degree than Mostdreba ; those who acknowledged Ishmael for their ancestor (through Adnan) being the more distant graft. Considering the origin of Ishmael, it is no wonder that those supposed to be descended from him should have no claim to be admit- ted as pure Arabs ; but as he is alleged to have contracted an alliance with the Jorhamiles (descended from Jorham, a son of Kahtan), wtio possessed Hejaz, by marrying the daughter of their emir Modad, whence, and by subsequent intermarriages his descendants became blended with them into one nation, their claim to be regarded as Mostareba is beyond dispute. There is considerable uncertainty in the descents from Ishmael to Adnan, which is the reason why the Arabs have seldom attempted to trace their genealogies higher than the latter, whom they therefore look upon as the founder of their tribes. The account of this Adnan does not commence, however, till 122 B. C. ; so that the uncertainties extend over a period of about 1800 years. This is a very awful circum- stance at the first view, but the line of descent is not compromised by it, notwithstanding. The uncer- tainties refer merely to the numbers and names of the generations which fill the interval, and arise from the contracted manner in which genealogies, extending over a long series of ages, were necessarily kept Thus they do not specify all the generations from A to Z, in this way r— " Z, the son of Y ; Y, the son of X ; X, the son of W," and so on up to A : but knowing it to be a matter of perfect notoriety and unques- tionable truth that Z is descended from some eminent ancestor, say S, and that it is equally notorious and unquestionable that the remote ancestor of this S was M, and that M was descended from G, and G from A,— they may omit the intermediate ancestors, through whom Z descended from S, and S from M, and M from G, and G from A, and state the matter thus : " Z, the son of S, the son of M, the son of G, the son of A ;" and thus it may occur that not only the names but even the numbers of the generations between A and Z may, in the course of time, become involved in great uncertainty through their not being given in detail in the genealogies, while the truth yet remains certain and unquestionable that Z is descended from A through G, M, and S. Hence, it is not questioned that Adnan is descended from Ishmael, and a certain number, eight or ten, of illustrious names are mentioned to mark out the line of descent, .while the names ->{ the mass of intermediate ancestors is lost, and even the numbers of their generations may be a subject of fair dispute without the main question being touched. It is, therefore, surprising to see some able writers so much in the dark as to imagine, that, because the Arabian writers give us only some eight or 90 AN ILLUSTRATED CHAPTER VI. LIFE OF ISAAC — FORTUNES OF HIS FAMILY. When Isaac married Rebecca, he was forty years old, and lived with her nearly twenty years before she had issue. He had been so long uneasy on this account, thai he at length prayed to God to grant him an heir, who being pleased to listen to his request, bestowed that blessing he had so earnestly wished for, and the long barren Rebecca noAV conceived, to the great satisfaction both of herself and husband. After Rebecca had been pregnant some months, the struggles of the children (for she had twins within her) gave her such pain and uneasiness, that she began, in a manner, to wish herself not with child. Unable to account for the cause of her ex- treme pains, she went to consult the divine oracle, and received for answer, that the two children, which she then bore, should be the heads of two different nations, and that they would long contest for superiority ; but that, in process of time, the glories acquired bv the elder would be eclipsed by the more resplendent transactions of the younger. When the time of Rebecca's delivery arrived, the child that first entered the world was covered all over with red hair,* for which reason his parents called him Esau ; and the other came so close after him, that he took hold of his heel with his hand, and was therefore called Jacob, to denote (what he afterward proved) the supplanter of his brother. As these two children grew up, they became very different in their tempers, and when they arrived at the age of maturity, folloAved different employments. Esau, the elder, being strong and active, delighted in the chase, and thereby frequently supplying his father with venison, obtained his particular affection; while Jacob, who was of a more courteous disposition, by staying at home in the tent, and em- ploying himself in family offices, became the favorite of his mother. Esau having one day greatly fatigued himself with hunting, returned home just at the time his brother Jacob had prepared a mess of pottagef for his own refreshment, ten names to mark the line of descent, they were absurd enough to suppose that that eight or ten genera- tions sufficed to cover the long interval between Ishmael and Adnan. We have dwelt on this subject the rather because this Arabian manner of proceeding suffices to clear up some difficulties which the Hebrew genealogies offer. It must not be inferred that the Arabs undervalue the descent from Ishmael in comparison with that from Kahtan, on account of their applying to it a less honorable designation. This is by no means the case ; for, on the contrary, they set a high value, like the Jews, on the privilege of being descended from Abraham ; and this distinction is, in the eyes of the modern Arabs, greatly enhanced by the circumstance that Mohammed belonged to this race, and gloried in being descended from Ishmael and Abraham. Of the personal history of Ishmael the Arabians give a highly embellished account, which it is not neces- sary in this place to repeat. In those circumstances which seem most entitled to consideration, as not incompatible with his scriptural history, we are somewhat inclined to suspect that they apply to him actions and events which really belong, if they are at all real, to some of his descendants. For instance, that Ishmael ever was in Hejaz, or formed any important connexions there, seems to us very doubtful ; but there is nothing in this that might not be very probably true of one of his descendants, after the tribe had increased, and had formed alliances among the Arabs of the Kahtan races. We therefore attach little weight to the statement of his marriage to the daughter of the king of the Jorhamites, though we should not be prepared to doubt it merely on the ground that the scripture tells us that he married an Egyptian woman, since his Arabian wife might have been the second. In fact, much that the Arabians tell us about Ishmael proceeds on the grievous misconception that Abraham himself lived in Hejaz, and that there all the events of his later history took place. The account of the descent of numerous Arabian tribes from Ishmael is not open to the same doubts oi difficulty, and is, indeed, so clear in itself, and so universally acknowledged, that the object of the present note has not been to prove this, but to indicate the historical certainty that all the Arabians could not. and did not, claim to be descended from him. * This expression, according to some commentators, is taken two ways, namely, either that Esau was, at his birth, covered with red hair, or that the color of his skin was red, like a coat of red hair. He was called Esau, from the word Kschau, which in the Hebrew language, signifies a hair-cloth ; as Jacob was named from Hekel, the heel, and signifies a supplanter, or one that taketh hold of, or trippeth up another's heels. t The edom, or red pottage, was prepared, we learn from this chapter, by seething lentils (adashim) in water ; and subsequently, as we may guess from a practice which prevails in many countries, adding a little manteca, or suet, to give them a flavor. The writer of these observations has often partaken of tliis self-same " red pottage," served up in the manner just described, and found it better food than a stranger would be apt to imagine. The mess had the redness which gained for it the name of edom ; and which, through the singular circumstance of a son selling his birthright to satisfy the cravings of a pressing appe tite, it imparted to the posterity of Esau in the people of Edom. The lentil (or Lens esculenta of some wr: ters, and the Ervum lens of Linnaeus) belongs to the leguminous or podded family. The stem is branched and the leaves consist of about eight pairs of smaller leaflets. The flowers are small, and with the uppei division of the flower prettily veined. The pods contain about two seeds, which vary from a tawny red to a black It delights in a dry, warm sandy soil. Three varieties are cultivated in France — " small brown," "yellowish," and the " lentil of Provence." In the former country they aro dressed and eaten during Lent as a haricot; in Syria they are used as food after they have undergone the simple process of being parched in a pan over the fire. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 01 Esau, being almost spent with hunger, was so struck with the looks of tne pottage, that he anxiously begged of his brother to let him participate of the repast. But Jacob (who was probably so instructed by his mother) refused to comply with nis re- quest, unless on the following conditions; namely, that he would immediately makt over to him his birth-right. Esau reflecting on the danger to which he was dailv subject, from the nature of his employment, set no great value on what Jacob re- quired; and the latter, perceiving his disposition to comply (that he might have tin. right more firmly conveyed to him), proposed his doing it by Avay of oath. Notwith- standing the singularity of the request, Esau complied with it, and the bargain being made, he ate very greedily of the food prepared by his brother. Thus did the un- thinking Esau dispose of his birth-right, with all the privileges* belonging to it, foi so simple a thing as a mess of pottage. Isaac, at th:s time, lived at Beersheba, but a dreadful famine happening in the land of Canaan, he resolved (as his father Abraham had done on a similar occasion) to avoid its consequences by retiring to Egypt. He accordingly proceeded as far as Ge- rar, a city belonging to the Philistines. But here he was interrupted in his intended journey by the interposition of the Almighty, who, in a dream, charged him not to go into Ecrypt, but to tarry in the country where he then was; and at the same time assured him, that he would not only secure him from the danger of the famine, but, in performance of the oath which he had sworn to his father Abraham, would cause his descendants (to whom he would give the whole land of Canaan in possession) to multiply exceedingly. In conformity to the divine command, Isaac determined to fix his residence at Ge- rar, where he made use of the same stratagem his father had formerly done in the same place, and from the same motive. Fearful lest the charms of his wife Rebecca might attract the particular notice of some of the city, and thereby endanger his own safety, it was agreed between them, that, instead of his wife, she should pass for hi? sister. This deception succeeded for a time, but at length was discovered by Abime- lechf the king, who, from a window, observed such familiarities pass between them as convinced him they were man and wife. In consequence of this discovery, Ahimelech sent for Isaac, whom he accused of dissimulation, telling him, that from the freedom he had observed between him and Rebecca, he was sure she was his wife; and that the imposition he had endeavored to lay on the people might have been attended with consequences disgraceful to himself. Isaac, conscious of the justness of the accusation, did not attempt to disprove the charge, but urged, in vindication of his conduct, that he did it to preserve that life, which, otherwise, he thought in the most imminent danger. This apology was ad- mitted by Abimelech, who not only forgave him the offence, but immediately issued an edict, that whoever should presume to offer any injury either to him or his wife, should be punished with death. Having received these tokens of friendship from Abimelech, Isaac thought himself happy under his protection, and, intending to make Gerar his fixed place of residence, • employed himself in husbandry, and the rearing of flocks, for the future support of him- self and family. The great success that attended his endeavors, by means of his bene- ficent Creator, soon raised the envy and indignation of the Philistines. In the space of one year only, during his residence at Gerar, so prolific was the land he sowed that, to the great astonishment of his neighbors, it yielded him a hundred fold. * It should be understood, that previously to the establishment of a priesthood under the Law of Moses, the first-born had not only a preference in the secular inheritance, but succeeded exclusively to the priestly functions which had belonged to his father, in leading the religious observances of the family, and perform ing the simple religious rites of these patriarchal times. The secular part of the birthright entitled the first- born to a " double portion" of the inheritance ; but writers are divided in opinion as to the proportion of this double share. Some think that he had one half, and that the rest was equally divided among the other sons ; but a careful consideration of Gen. xlvii. 5-22, in which we see that Jacob transfers the privilege of the first-born to Joseph, and that this privilege consisted in his havmg one share more than any of his brethren, inclines us to the opinion of the Rabbins, that the first-born had merely twice as much as any other of his brethren. It is certainly possible, but not very likely, that in the emergency, Esau bartered all his birth- right for a mess of pottage ; but it seems more probable that Esau did not properly appreciate the value of the sacerdotal part of his birthright, and therefore readily transferred it to Jacob for a trifling present art- vantage. This view of the matter seems to be confirmed by St. Paul, who calls Esau a "profane person," for his conduct on this occasion; and it is rather for despising his spiritual than his temporal privileges, that he seems to be liable to such an imputation. t This Abimelech was probably the son of him with whom Abraham had formerly made a covenant. It is reasonable to suppose that Abimelech was only a title commonly used for the kings of the Philistines, in the same manner as Caesar was br the Roman emperors, and Pharaoh foi the kings of Egypt 92 AN ILLUSTRATED This so irritated the Philistines, that, in order to oblige him to leave the country, they filled up the wells which had been formerly dug by his father's servants; and Abimelech himself, to satisfy the resentment of "the people, ordered him to quit Ge- rar. telling him, that as he had sufficiently improved his fortune under his protection, he might now give the like opportunity to others, by leaving the place, and retiring to a more distant part of the country. Finding to what a degree the people were incensed against him, Isaac, to preserve his property, as well as secure his person, left the place, and retired to the valley of Gerar, which was at some distance from the city, and where Abraham had formerly fed his cattle. Having settled himself here, he opened the wells (which had been dug by his father and filled up by the Philistines) and called them by their ancient names In the course of their labors, Isaac's servants discovered a new well of fine springing water ; but a dispute arising between them and some neighboring herdsmen, the latter claiming the well as found upon their ground, Isaac resolved to leave the place ; and by way of perpetuating the circumstance called it Esek, which, in the Hebrew language/signifies contention. Removing some way farther, Isaac's servants dug another well, which being likewise claimed by the Philistines, he Avas obliged to relinquish it, and therefore, called the place Sitruih, which signifies enmity.* Being quite tired out with repeated insults from the Philistines, in order to prevent the like in future, he removed to the most distant part of their country. Here he dus another well; and not meeting with any opposition, he called it Rehobolh, which signifies enlargement, because his flocks had" now room to feed and range the country in search of fresh pasturage : " for now," said he, " the Lord hath made room for us, and we shall be fruitful in the land." After residing a short time on this spot Isaac returned to Beersheba,t where, on the very night of his arrival, the Almighty was pleased to appear to him in a vision, promising him his favor and protection, and that he would bless him, and multiply * The cause of these differences seems to have been, that a question arose whether wells dug by Abra- ham's and Isaac's people within the territories of Gerar belonged to the people who digged them, or to those who enjoyed the territorial right. The real motive of the opposition of the people of Gerar, and their stopping up the wells made by Abraham, seems to have been to discourage the visits of such powerful per- sons to their territory ; for otherwise the wells would have been suffered to remain on account of their utility to the nation. Stopping up the wells is s+ill an act of hostility in the East. Mr. Roberts says that it is so in India, where one person who hates another will sometimes send his slaves in the night to fill up the well of the latter, or else to pollute it by throwing in the carcases of unclean animals. The Bedouin tribes in the country traversed by the great pilgrim-caravan which goes annually from Damascus to .Mecca, receiv- presents of money and vestments to prevent them from injuring the wells upon the line of march, and which, are essential to the very existence of the multitudes who then traverse this desert region. However, of all people in the world, none know so well as the Arabs the value of water, and the importance of wells, and hence they never wantonly do them harm. They think it an act of great merit in the sight of God to dig a well; and culpable in an equal degree to destroy one. The wells in the deserts are in general the exclu- sive property either of a whole tribe, or of individuals whose ancestors dug them. The possession of a well is never alienated; perhaps because the Arabs are firmly persuaded that the owner of a well is sure to prosper in all his undertakings, since the blessings of all who drink his water fall upon him. The stopping of Abraham's wells by the Philistines, the re-opening of them by Isaac, and the restoration of their former names— the commemorative names given to the new wells, and the strifes about them between those who had sunk them and the people of the land— are all circumstances highly characteristic of those countries in which the want of rivers and brooks during summer renders the tribes dependant upon the wells for the ver> existence of the flocks and herds which form their wealth. It would seem that the Philistines did not again stop the wells while Isaac was in their country. It is probable that the wells successfully sunk by Isaac did not furnish water sufficient for both his own herds and those of Gerar. and thus the question became one of exclusive right. Such questions often lead to bitter and bloody quarrels in the East ; and it was probably to avoid the last result of an appeal to arms that Isaac withdrew out of the more settled country toward the desert, where he might enjoy the use of his wells in peace. t Beersheba.— In the Biblical Repository for April. 1839, we have a very valuable and interesting "Re- port of Travels in Palestine and fhe Adjacent Regions, in 1838; undertaken for the illustration of Biblical Geography by the Rev. Prof. E. Robinson and Rev. E. Smith :" in which we find a notice of the discoverv ol the site of Beersheba, about thirty miles to the south of Hebron. Our readers will not fail to be gratified at being enabled to obtain the view, conveyed in the following description, of a place of such great interest in the history of the patriarchs:— "After crossing another elevated plateau, the character of the surface was a^ain changed. We came upon an open rolling country- ; all around were swelling hills, covered in ordinary seasons with grass and rich pasturage, though now arid and parched with drought. We now came to Wady Lebu ; and on the north side of its water-course we had the satisfaction of~ discovering the site of ancient Beersheba. tiie celebrated border city of Palestine, still bearing in Arabic the name of Bir Seba. Near the water-course are - two circular wells of excellent water, nearly forty feet deep. They are both surrounded with drinking troughs of stone, for the use of camels and flocks ; such as doubtless were used of old for the flocks that then fed on the adjacent hills. Ascending the low hills north of the wells, we found them strewed with the ruins of former habitations— the foundations of which are distinctly to be traced. These ruins extend over a space of half a mile long by a quarter of a mile broad. Here, then, is the place where Abraham and Isaac and Jacob often lived 1 Here Samuel made his three sons judges ; and from here Elijah wandered out into the southern desert, and sat down under the rethem. or shrub of broom, just as our Arabs sat down undei it every day and every night. Over these swelling hills the flocks of the patriarchs roved by thousands ■ we now only found a few camels, asses, and treats " HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 93 r A x VU /ft V> 3^? y-l AN ILLUSTRATED his seed, for the sake of his faithful servant Abraham. In grateful acknowledgment of this repeated instance of the divine goodness, Isaac, intending to continue here, first built an altar for religious worship, and then ordered his servants to clear out the well which had been formerly dug by his father. Isaac had not long returned to Beersheba, when Abimelech, touched with a sense of the unworthy treatment he had received, both from him and his subjects, as well as fearing his just resentment, should he become powerful hereafter, thought it most prudent to avoid future trouble, by endeavoring either to renew the old league which had been formerly made with his father Abraham, or to enter into a new one. Ac- cordingly, taking with him the chief of his nobility, together with the captain-general of his forces, he went, in great pomp, to Beersheba, in order to pay honor and respect to Isaac. At the first interview Isaac, to show that he still retained a sense of the injuries he had formerly done him, received his visit very coolly, and, with apparent surprise, asked, how he came to offer respect to a person, for whom, by his conduct and behavior, he had long discovered an utter aversion ? Abimelech, conscious of his error, made the best excuse the nature of the case would admit. He told him he had long been convinced that the divine favor attended him in all his undertakings, and that he might not be thought to oppose God, he Avas come to renew the covenant between his people and Abraham's posterity, and was ready to engage m the same conditions and obligations. Isaac, being naturally of a quiet and easy disposition, readily admitted this apology from Abimelech, whom, with his attendants, he entertained with great liberality. The articles for a treaty of friendship were agreed on that same evening, and the next morning confirmed by a solemn and mutual oath ; after which Abimelech took his leave, and returned home. Soon after the departure of A bimelech, the servants of Isaac informed him, that, in the well they had been clearing out, and which formerly belonged to Abraham, they had found a spring of most excellent water. This event happening on the same day that the league of friendship had been confirmed between Isaac and Abimelech, he called it (as his father had done before on a similar occasion) Beersheba, the well of the oath, " i. e. the well wherein water was delivered, on the day that Abimelech and 1 entered into a treaty of peace, and ratified the same with the solemnity of an oath.'''' A circumstance now occurred, which gave great uneasiness both To Isaac and his wife. Their two sons were arrived at the age of forty, and Esau had taken two wives from among the Hittites, one of whom was Judith, the daughter of Beeri, and the other Bashemath, the daughter of Elon, both women of respectable families in Ca- naan. These marriages he had contracted without his parents' privity, knowing that his father had determined not to form any alliance with the idolatrous Canaanites. Rebecca was so incensed at Esau's conduct, that the little affection she before had for him, was now entirely alienated ; but such was the power of natural affection in Isaac, and such his over-fondness for an obdurate and perverse son, that knowing the error past repair, he made a virtue of necessity, and forgave what he could not remedy. Isaac, becoming very old,* imperfect in his eyesight, and apprehensive that his dis- solution was near at hand, resolved to bestow that parental benediction on his son Esau, which he had long intended. Accordingly, calling him one day to his private apartment, he first related the occasion of his sending for him, and then desired him to take his hunting instruments, to go into the fields, kill some venison,! and dress it to his palate, that his spirits might be refreshed, and his mind properly disposed, for giv- ing him that solemn blessing which should crown his future prosperity. While Isaac was relating his intentions to Esau, Rebecca had so planted herself as to hear all that passed. She, therefore, determined, if possible, to deprive him of the intended blessing, and, by stratagem, get it conferred on her favorite son Jacob. As soon, therefore, as Esau was well gone, Rebecca, calling her son Jacob, told him what she had heard, namely, that his father was going to bestow a benediction, which was final and irrevocable, on his brother; but that, if he would listen to, and follow her directions, she doubted not of getting the honor bestowed on him. * Isaac was at this time 137 years old. so that there is no wonder he should be imperfect in his sight. It appears that he was still ignorant of Esau having sold his birth-right ; for he loved him as his first-born sou, and designed to bestow on him the blessing. t Venisor was the principal article of food, in these early ages, next to vegetables, and it is ven likely the aged patriarch longed for some. According to all the accounts we have of the people in the Eastern countries, tiiey had always a feast prepared before Inev bestowed their blessing on their first-born son. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 95 Jacob promising to pay a strict obedience to whatever his mother should command, she ordered him to go immediately" to the flocks, and bring two kids, with which, she said, she would make savory meat, such as should resemble venison, and be agreeable to the palate of his father. Jacob made some hesitation at complying with this in- junction, intimating, that if his father should discover the deception, instead of a blessing, he would pronounce on him a curse. As a farther ground of objection, he observed, that, as Esau was remarkably hairy, and he naturally smooth, his father, to supply the defect of sight, mig^ht handle him, in which case a discovery must una- voidably follow. But these objections bore no weight with Rebecca, who, determined to put her design into execution, told him, whatever bad consequences ensued, she would take all upon herself: " Upon me," said she, " be thy curse, my son ; only obey my voice."* Jacob, being thus encouraged by his mother, threw off his diffidence, and going to the fold, brought with him, as he was directed, two fat kids. Rebecca immediately killed them, and taking the choicest parts, dressed them in such manner, by the as- sistance of savory sauce, as to make the whole strongly resemble venison. Having thus prepared the food, she dressed Jacob in his brother's best attire, and covering his hands and neck with the skins of the kids, gave him the dish, ordering him immedi- ately to take it to his father. Jacob, agreeably to his mother's directions, went with the food to Isaac's apartment, which he had no sooner entered* than the good old man (not being able to distinguish objects from the imperfection of his sight) with surprise asked, who he was. To which Jacob replied, " I am Esau, thy first-born : I have punctually obeyed thy com- mand; arise, therefore, and eat of my venison, that thy soul may bless me." Isaac, astonished at the haste with which his desire was executed, inquired of him how it happened that he had so quickly got the venison ? To this he answered, " Because the Lord thy God brought it to me." Being, however, still diffident as to his person, Isaac ordered him to approach near, that, by feeling him, he might be convinced whether or not it was really and verily his son Esau. Jacob accordingly went close to his aged father, who, feeling the hairy skin on his hands and neck, exclaimed, with great surprise, " The hands are the hands of Esau, but the voice is the voice of Jacob." He then put the question to him forcibly, saying, " Art thou my very son Esau ?" To which Jacob, without the least hesitation, answered, "I am." The good old man, being now satisfied, arose from his couch, ate of his son's pre- tended venison, and drank a cup or two of wine ; after which he bid him come near that he might bestow on him the promised blessing. The scent arising from Jacob's garments gave great satisfaction to Isaac. He smelt, and praised them : " The smell of my son," said he, "is as the smell of a field, which the Lord hath blessed."! He then, in a kind of ecstacy of pleasure, embraced and kissed his pretended first-born; and, after washing him all heavenly and earthly blessings,|: at length dismissed him. * From a circumspect view of Rebecca's conduct throughout the whole of this affair, it appears evident that she had been made acquainted with the Divine will concerning the channel in which the grand promise was to pass. Sho theiefore resolved to do her part toward preventing the ill effects of Isaac's partial fondness for his eldest son Esau, who had already indicated so unworthy a disposition. To tliis end she incites her son Jacob (as it appears) to an act of deceit, and, being confident of the propriety of her con- duct, absolves him *"rom all guilt or blame. The expression, " Upon me be thy curse, my son," is as much as to say, I will warrant thee success ; I am so fully persuaded of the rectitude of the proceeding, that I tear no evil from it, but will readily bear it all if any happens. A stronger proof than tins can not be given of Rebecca's full confidence in the propriety of her proceeding. Indeed, it does not appear that the least blame is laid upon Rebecca for her conduct : on the contrary, Isaac himself confirms the blessing which Jacob had by her means acquired ; whence we must necessarily conclude that she acted upon right motives, and with -i full persuasion of the Divine pre-appointment and approbation. Many particular circumstances, if -we were fully informed of the state of the family, might possibly be urged in her behalf, but this alone is sufficient to vindicate her from all blame. She had certainly been pre-informed that Jacob should have the pre-eminence, and therefore she acted religiously in preventing her husband from any endeavor to counteract the Divine will. Let it, however, be observed, that her case is so peculiar that it cm not be drawn into example ; and, detached from that important and discriminating circumstance of God's will revealed to her, her conduct would, unquestionably, be deemed blameable. t It is evident, from mention being here made of the smell of Jacob's garments, that the people in the most early times perfumed their clothes, especially when they approached a person of superior rank ; and '.his custom is still preserved in most parts of Asia. The comparison between the smell of the garments mid that of the field is very just ; for in the Eastern countries, where they have a long continuance of drought, nothing can be m^re sweet and delightful than the scent arising from a field after a refreshing shower I The prayei which Josephus makes Isaac offer up to God on this occasion is to the following effect:— " Eternal and Supreme Being ! Creator of all things ! thou hast already showered down innumerable favors on my family and promised still greater biessings in future. Ratify, O Lord, those gracious assurances, and despise not tho prayers of infirm age. Protect this child from all calamities ; grant him 96 AN ILLUSTRATED A short time after Jacob had left his father's tent, Esau entered it, and, bringing with him the venison he had been directed to prepare, invited his aged parent, in the same dutiful manner his brother had previously done, to arise, and eat of it. Isaac, surprised at this address, hastily asked, " Who art thou ?" On being answered tha* it was his elder son Esau, he appeared, for some time, thunderstruck; but at length recovering himself, he asked, who, and where, that person was, who had been with him before, and taken away the blessing, which he neither could nor would revoke. When the disappointed Esau heard these words from his father, he exclaimed, in the bitterness of his soul, "Bless me, even me also, O my father." Isaac then tolc" him that his brother Jacob had, by stratagem, obtained that blessing he had designee for him; upon which Esau complained of his double perfidy, first, in artfully obtaining his birth-right, and then in robbing him of his father's benediction. He wept bitterly for some time, and then pathetically asked his father if he had not in reserve a blessing for him, repeating the importunate request, "Bless me, even me also, my father." Isaac, no doubt, was greatly grieved to hear the lamentations of Esau for so great a loss; but what could he do? he had already bestowed the choicest of his blessings on Jacob, and as they were gone he could not recall them. At length, however, in order to pacify the afflicted Esau, he told him that his posterity should become a great people, and live by dint of the sword; and that though they might become subject to the descendants of Jacob, yet in process of time they would shake off their yoke, and erect a dominion of their own.* When Esau came coolly to reflect on the loss he had sustained by the artifices of his brother, he resolved, as soon as a proper opportunity should offer, to be revenged on him. The respect he had for his lather laid a restraint on the execution of his design. As Isaac was far advanced in years, and exceedingly infirm, Esau imagined his existence was of short duration, and therefore determined to wait till his father's death, immediately after which he resolved to put a period to the life of his brother. Esau having accidentally dropped some hints of his design, they soon came to the ears of his mother, who, anxious for the future welfare of her favorite Jacob, ac- quainted him with the horrid intentions of his brother. She told him that the most prudent method he could take would be to absent himself till his brother's anger was in some degree abated, and that the most proper place for him to fly to was the house of his uncle Laban in Mesopotamia: that thither he might retire for a time, and as soon as she found his brother's resentment was assuaged, she would not fail to recall him. She said the thoughts of separating gave her great affliction, though nothing in comparison with the misery she must feel, should she in one day be robbed of them both — of him, by the hands of his brother; and of his brother, by the hand of justice. Jacob, who ever listened to and obeyed the counsel of his mother, was very ready .o comply with her proposal ; but at the same time was umvilling to depart without the consent of his father, which, in this case, he was fearful of obtaining. Rebecca soon hit upon a stratagem to remove this seeming difficulty. She immediately re- paired to Isaac, to whom she complained of the great concern under which she labored on account of Esau having taken wives from among the daughters of the Hittites. She then intimated her fears lest Jacob should follow his example ; to pre- vent which she earnestly recommended that he might be sent to Mesopotamia, and there choose a wife from among her own kindred. Though Isaac was unacquainted with the drift of his wife's complaint, yet, being a pious man, and knowing that the promise made to Abraham, and renewed in him, was to be completed in the issue of Jacob, he readily assented to Rebecca's proposal. length of days, peace of mind, and as much wealth as may appear consistent with his happiness here. In fine, render him, O Lord, the dread of his enemies, and the glory of his family and friends." * The Edornites, 01 Idurnaeans (the descendants of Esau), were, for a considerable time, much more powe-ful than the Israelites, who were descended from Jacob, till, in the days of David, they were entirely conquered. See 2 Samuel viii. 14. After this they were governed by deputies, or viceroys, appointed by the kings of Judah, and for a long time were kept in total subjection to the Jews. In the days of Jehoram, the son of Jehoshaphat, they expelled their viceroy, and set up a king of their own (see 2 Kings viii. 2(1). which fulfilled the latter part of Isaac's prophecy. For some generations after this they lived independent of the Jews ; and, when the Babylonians invaded Judea, they not only took part with them, but greatly opp-essed the inhabitants after their departure. Their animosity against the descendants of Jacob evi- dentiy appears, indeed, to have been hereditary ; nor did they ever cease, for any considerable time, from broils and contentions, till, at length, they were conquered by Hyrcanus, and reduced to the necessity either of embracing the Jewish religion or quitting their country. Preferring the former, they were inter- mixed with the Jews, and became one nation, so that in the first century after the birth of Christ the nam* of Muiiiiean was totallv annihilated. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 07 Calling, therefore, Jiis son Jacob, lie first bestowed on him his blessing, and then strictly enjoined him never to marry a Canaanitish woman. To prevent so improper an alliance, he ordered him to go to his uncle Laban, in Mesopotamia, and provide himself with a wife from his family. Jacob promised to obey his father's orders, upon which the good old man, after repeating his blessing, dismissed him. When Esau understood that his father had again blessed Jacob, and sent him into Mesopotamia to avoid marrying any of the daughters of Canaan, he began seriously to reflect on his own misconduct, and to lament having, by the indiscreet alliances he had formed, incurred the displeasure of his aged parents. To reinstate himself, therefore, if possible, in his father's esteem, he took a third wife, whose name was Mahalath, the daughter of his uncle Ishmael. This marriage certainly took place both from duty and affection; but, unfortunately for Esau, it was not attended with the wished-for consequences. Early the next morning, after Jacob received h's father's charge and blessing, he left Beersheba, and proceeded on his journey toward Haran. Determined strictly to obey his father's commands, he travelled the most private ways he could find, shun- ned the houses of the Canaanites, and, when night came on, took up his lodging in the open air, near a place called Luz, having only the spangled sky for his canopy, and a hard stone for his pillow. Notwithstanding the uneasiness of his situation, he slept soundly, during which he dreamed that he saw a ladder set upon the earth, the top of which reached to heaven, and on the rounds of it were a number of an- gels, some ascending and others descending. On the summit of the ladder appeared the Almighty, who promised him all those privileges he had before done to Abra- ham and his" father Isaac; and that, wherever he weit, he might be assured of the divine protection. " Behold I am with thee, and will Keep thee in all places whither thou goest, and will bring thee again into this land: for I will not leave thee until 1 have done that which I have spoken to thee of."* This dream made such an impression on Jacob's mind, that, as soon as he awoke, he paid an awful reverence to the place, and after a short contemplation of what had passed, thus exclaimed: "This is none other than the house of God, and this is the gate of heaven !" Having said this, he arose, and taking the stone which had been substituted for a pillow, he set it upright, poured oil on it, and, in pious commemo- ration of the vision, called the place " Bethel," which, in the Hebrew language, signifies " the house of God. "| * There Is something very noble and sublime in the representation of this vision. The ladder which reached from earth to heaven is a proper image of the providence of God, whose care extends to all things in heaven and on earth. The angels are represented ascending and descending on this mysterious ladder, because these ministering spirits are always active in the execution of the wise designs of Providence, Bnd appointed the special guardians of the just : they ascend to receive, and descend to execute, the com- mands of God. And, lastly, by the representation of the Divine Majesty appearing above the ladder, is meant, that though the conduct of Providence is often above the reach of human comprehension, yet the whole is directed by infinite wisdom and goodness; and though in this vale of misery we can see only a few lower steps of the ladder, nearest to the earth, yet it hath a top that reacheth unto heaven : and were it possible for us to trace the chain of causes and effects to their source, we should see them gradually ascend higher and higher, till they terminate at length in the Supreme Being, the first and proper cause oi all, who presides over and directs the complicated scheme of Providence, from the creation of the world to the consummation of all things. Certainly nothing could have been a more seasonable relief to Jacob, oi *illed lis heart with greater joy, than the pleasing assurance, that though he was an exile from his native country, and wandering alone over the solitary wastes, yet he was still in tlie presence of his Maker whose powerful arm would constantly protect him from all dangers, and under whose wings he should be absolutely snfe. t Nothing can be more natural than this act of Jacob, for the purpose of marking the site and rnakin^ u memorial of an occurrence of such great interest and importance to him. The true design of this humble monument seems to have been, however, to set this anointed pillar as an evidence of the solemn vow which he made on that occasion. This use of a stone, or stones, is definitely expressed in Gen. xxxi. 4S and 59 Mr. Morier, in his '• Second Journey through Persia," notices a custom which seems to illustrate th ; s act of Jacob. In tra/elling through Persia, he observed that the guide occasionally placed a stone on a conspicuous piece of rock, or two stones one upon another, at the same time uttering some words which were understood to be a prayer for the safe return of the party. This explained to Mr. Moiier what ne had fnq'iently observed before in the East, and particularly on high roads leading to great towns, at a poim where the towns are first seen, and where the oriental traveller sets up his stone, accompanied by a devout exclamation in token of his sale arrival. Mr. Morier adds : "Nothing is so natural, in a journey over a dreary country, as for a solitary traveller to set himself down fatigued, and to make the vow that Jacob did ' [f God will be with me, and keep me in the way that I go, and will give me bread to eat, and raiment to put on, so that I may reach my father's house in peace,' &c, then will I give so much in charity ; or, again, that, on first seeing the place which he has so long toiled to reach, the traveller should sit down and make a thanksgiving, in both cases setting up a stone as a memorial." The writer of this note has hiinsel! often observed such stones without being aware of their object, until happening one day to overturn one that had been set upon another, a man hastened to replace it, at the same time informing him that to dis place such stones was an act unfortunate for the person so displacing it, and unpleasant to others. The writer afterward observed, that the natives studiously avoided displacing any of these stones " set up foi US AN ILLUSTRATED Previous to Ins departure from this memorable spot, in order to bind himself more strongly to the service of God, he made a most solemn vow to the following effect : " That if he would protect and prosper him in his journey, provide him with common necessaries in his absence, and grant him a happy return to his father's house, to him alone would he direct his religious worship; in that very place where the pillar stood, on his return, would he make his devout acknowledgments, and offer unto him the tenth* of whatever he should gain in the land of Mesopotamia." After making this solemn vow, the pious traveller proceeded on his journey, and at length arrived at Haran. As he came near the town he saw some shepherds with their flocks not far from a well, which was covered with a large stone. Of these shepherds he made inquiry concerning Laban and his family, and was informed that they were all well, and that it would not be long before Rachel, his daughter, would be there with her flock. Scarce had he received this intelligence when the damsel arrived with her fleecy care, immediately on which Jacob, as a token of respect, rolled away the stone from the mouth of the well,t and watered the sheep in her stead; which done, he saluted her, wept for joy, and told her to whom he belonged. Elated at this incident, Rachel, leaving Jacob at the well, immediately hastened home, and acquainted her father with what had happened. Laban was so trans- ported at the arrival of his sister's son, that he fled with all expedition to the spot, and, after cordially embracing him, conducted him to his house. Jacob, after receiving some refreshment, told his uncle the occasion of his leaving home, and related the most material incidents that had happened in the course of his journey. Laban was sufficiently satisfied of the truth of his nephew's relation, and, from the singular circumstances that attended his excursion, was convinced that he was under the immediate care and protection of Divine Providence. After being a few days with his uncle, Jacob, detesting an inactive life, applied himself to business, by assisting Laban in the care of his flocks, and such other mat- ters as pertained to his interest. Having thus employed him, with great diligence, for the space of a month, his uncle one day entered into private conversation with him, and, among other things, told him he neither expected nor thought it reason- able that he should have his labor for nothing, and therefore, as he intended staying with him for some time, desired him to name such wages as would satisfy him for his services. Jacob hesitated for some time what answer to give to this request, but at lengtn, thinking on the charms and graces of the beautiful Rachel, who had already capti- vated his heart, he proposed serving him seven years, on condition of having, at the expiration of that time, Rachel for his wife. Laban readily consented to this proposal, and Jacob as readily entered on his ser- vice. The flattering prospect of possessing so amiable a partner, after the seven years, and the endearments of her pleasing company during the time, rendered that interval of waiting apparently short and light. When the time of Jacob's servitude had expired, he required Laban to fulfil his contract, by giving him his daughter Rachel in marriage. Laban seemingly assent- a pillar," by the way-side. The place now pointed out as Bethel contains no indication of Jacob's pillar. The Jews believe that it was placed in the sanctuary of the second temple, and that the ark of the cove- nant rested upon it ; and the> add, that after the destruction of that temple, and the desolation of Jud1one, when Jacob was able singly to do so. When the well is piivate property, in a neighborhood where water is scarce, the well is sometimes kept locked, to prevent the neighboring shef herds fiom watering their flocks fraudulently from it; and even when left unlocked, some person i< frequently so far the pro- prietor that the well may not be opened unless in the presence of himself or ol some one beionging to his household. Chardin, whose manuscripts furnished llarmer with an illustration of this text, conjectures, with great reason, that the present well belonged to Laban's family, and that the shepherds dared not open the well until Laban's daughter came with her father's flocks. Jacob, therefore, is not to be supposed to have oroken the standing rule, or to have done anything out of the ordinary course; for the oriental shepiierda are not at all persons likely to submit to the interference or dictation of a stranger. He however rendered a kind service to Rachel, as the business of watering cattle at a well is very tiresome and laborious HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 99 ed, and, on the occasion, invited all his friends and neighbors to the solemnization ol the nuptials. But Laban, desirous of retaining Jacob longer in his service, had pro- jected a scheme for that purpose, the execution of which gave great uneasiness to his nephew. After the entertainment was over, and the company retired, Laban caused Leah, his eldest daughter, to be conducted to Jacob's bed, instead of the beau- tiful Racnel, to whom he was contracted. When daylight appeared in the morning, and Jacob discovered the deception,* he immediately aro<-e, and going to Laban, ex- postulated with him on the impropriety of his conduct. Laban, who had prepared an answer for the occasion, told him, in a magisterial tone, that it was an unprece- dented thing in that country (and would have been deemed an injury to her sister) to marry the younger before the elder; "but" (continued he, in a milder tone), "if you will fulfil the nuptial week with your wife, and consent to serve another seven years for her sister, 1 am content to take your ivord for it, and to give Rachel to you as soon as the seven days" (or nuptial week for Leah) "have expired." This unfair treatment greatly perplexed Jacob, but his distinguished affection for Rachel made him resolve to obtain her, however dear the purchase. He therefore readily consented to his uncle's secondary terms, and when the nuptial ceremonies for Leah were over, he likewise took Rachel in marriage. The distinguished charms of Rachel, in preference to those of Leah, made Jacob pay the greatest respect to the former; but his happiness was greatly curtailed by Leah's having four sonsf even before Rachel had conceived. This circumstance par- ticularly affected Rachel, who, in a fit of melancholy, one day told her husband that jnless "he gave her children she should certainly die with grief. " Give me," said she, "children, or else I die."! Jacob was greatly vexed at this speech of his beloved wife, who seemed to lay the whole fault of her sterility to him. He therefore sharply rebuked her in words to the following effect: "That it was not in his power to work miracles; that the want of children was agreeable to the divine will ; and that such uneasy and discon- tented behavior was the way to prevent, rather than obtain, such a favor."|| This answer greatly mortifying Rachel, she resolved to supply the defect of her- self by the same means that had been practised by her grandmother Sarah. She accordingly made a proposition to Jacob that he should take her handmaiden Bilhah as a concubinary wife, and that if she should bear children they should be accounted hers. Jacob assented to this proposal, and, in the proper course of time, Bilhah was delivered of a son, whom Rachel named Dan, which, in the Hebrew language, sig- nifies "judging." Within a twelvemonth after this Bilhah bore another son, whom Rachel called Naphtali. By this time Leah imagined she had done bearing children, and, therefore, to imi- tate her sister's policy, she gave her maid (named Zilpah) to Jacob, by whom she had likewise two sons, the one named Gad, and the other Ashur. Reuben, the eldest son of Jacob, was now arrived at years sufficient to be trusted by himself, and wandering one day in the fields, about the time of wheat harvest, he happened to meet with some mandrakes,^ which he brought home and presented to * As ail marriages in the East were solemnized in the evening, or rattier at midnight, and as the bride was veiled, so it was no difficult matter to impose on Jacob, who did not expect any such deceit. Ur. Shaw tells us, that in the Levant the bride is brought home in the dark to her husband, and being intro- duced to the harem, or apartment for the women, her mother goes and conducts the bridegroom to her: out he does not see her till the next morning. t The names of these sons were Reuben, Simeon, Levi, and Judah. Reuben signifies a s.on given by Divine regard; Simeon implies, God hath heard or considered me; Levi signifies joined: and Judah, praise 01 thanksgiving. t This expression furnishes us with a lively picture of human folly in general. If children are to parents like a flowery chaplet, whose beauties blossom with ornament, and whose odors breathe delight, death or aome unforeseen misfortune may find means to entwine themselves with the lovely wreath. Whenever our souls eagerly long after some inferior acquisition, it may be truly said, in the words of our Divine master, " Ye know not what ye ask." Does Providence withhold the thing we long for? It denies in Mercy, and only withholds the occasion of our misery, if not the instrument of our ruin. With a sickly appetite we often loathe what is wholesome, and banker after our bane. Where the imagination dreams of uniningled sweets, there experience frequently nnds the bitterness of wo. II It is not to be wondered at tnat such a man as Jacob snonld De orfended at an expression made ase of by his beloved wife, which, in its own nature, was little better than blasphemy. To say, "Give me children," was certainly a high indignity offered to the majesty of Heaven, as none but God can give being to any creature whatever. <) The Hebrew word dud.aim, here rendered "mandrakes," has occasioned so much discussion as to evince clearly enough tnat we know nothing about it. Calmet has an exceedingly long note on this word in his " Commentaire Litteial sur la Genese," in which he states the different opinions which had in his time been ei terrahied as to the plant really intended by the dudaim. Some think that "flowers," or "fine flowrrs.. r 100 AN ILLUSTRATED his mother Leah. Pleased with the sight of what the hoy had brought, Rachel dp- sired Leah to give her a part; but instead of complying with her request, she gave her this forbidding answer: " That having robbed her of her husband's affections, she could not expect to have any part of her son's present." Notwithstanding this con- temptuous answer, Rachel was determined, if possible, to obtain some of the man- drakes, to do which she thought of inducing Leah to comply with her request by a method, which above all others, was most likely to prove effectual. It happened to be her turn that night to enjoy the company of her husband ; and, therefore, in order fo obtain her ends, she told Leah, if she would oblige her with some of her son's mandrakes, she would waive her pretensions for that night, and resign the right of her husband's bed to her. This proposition being approved of by Leah, the agreement was accordingly made ; and as soon as Jacob came home she related Avhat had passed, and asked him to confirm the bargain. Jacob readily assented, and Leah enjoyed his company that night, the consequence of which was that she conceived again, and had a fifth son, whom she called Issachar, which signifies hire or reward. After this she had another son, whom she named Zebulon; and the last of all, a daughter, called Dinah. Rachel had long lamented not having issue of her own body; but at length it pleased God to remove her troubles on that head by giving her a son. As soon as she found she had conceived, she exclaimed, with the most expressive joy, "God hath taken away my reproach ;"* and when the child was born she called his name Joseph, which, in the Hebrew language, signifies increase. Soon after the birth of Joseph the appointed time of Jacob's last servitude being expired, he began to entertain thoughts of returning to his own country, and accord- ingly begged his uncle to dismiss him and his family. But Laban, avIio had found by experience no small advantage from his services, entreated him to stay a little longer, promising, at the same time, that if he would comply with his request, he would give him whatever wages he should think proper to ask. In answer to this, Jacob re- minded him of the great increase of his substance since it had been under his care, and that he now thought it high time to make some provision for himself and family; so that therefore he was resolved to return to Canaan, unless he could point out to him some method whereby he might improve his fortune, and not longer waste his lime in humble servitude. Laban could not bear the thoughts of parting with Jacob, and therefore again pressed him hard to stay, at the same time offering him his own terms. After some farther controversy, Jacob at length consented to stay with his uncle, on the following condi- tions: that they should pass through the whole flock both of sheep and goats, and having separated all the speckled cattle from the white, the former should be com- mitted to the care of Laban's sons, and the latter to the care of Jacob ; and that whatsoever spotted or brown sheep or goats should, from that time forward, be pro- duced out of the white flock (which he was to keep) should be accounted his hire. Laban readily consenting to this proposal, the flocks were accordingly separated. The spotted cattle were delivered into the custody of Laban, while the rest were committed to the care of Jacob ; and to prevent any intercourse between them, thev were placed three days journey apart. Whether it was from his own observation on the power of fancy in the time of conception, or (what seems much more likely) from the interposition of divine wisdom in furnishing him with the idea; but so it was that he pursued a very extraordinary method to improve his own stock, and at the same time lessen that of Laban. He in general, are intended ; while others fix the sense more definitely to " lilies," " violets," or "jessamines." Others reject flowers, and find that figs, mushrooms, citrons, the fruit of the plantain or banana, or a small and peculiarly delicious kind of melon, are intended. A great number adhere to the " mandrake," which has the sanction of the Septuagint, the Chaldee,the Vulgate, and of many learned commentators. Hassel- quist, the naturalist, who travelled in the Holy Land to make discoveries in natural history, seems to con- cur m this opinion. Calmet, however, is disposed to contend, that the citron is intended ; and his arguments deserve the attention of those who are interested in the question. The claims of the plantain, and of the dt^cate species of melon to which we have alluded, have been strongly advocated since Calmet's time. * Many reasons concur to render the possession of sons an object of great anxiety to women in the East. The text expresses one of these reasons. Sons being no less earnestly desired by the husband than by the wife, a woman who has given birth to sons acquires an influence and respectability, which strengthen with the number to which she is mother. To be without sons is not only a misfortune, but a disgrace to a woman ; and her hold on the affections of her husband, and on her standing as his wife, is ol a very feeble description. Divorces are easily effected in the East. An Arab has only to enunciate the simple words, ml tn^L/-"thou £-rt divorced"— which, in whatever heat or anger spoken, constitute a legal di-orce. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 101 took rods or twigs of the green poplar, hazel and chestnut trees, and stripping off pari of the rinds in streaks, caused some of the white to appear on the twigs. These twigs he placed in the watering troughs when the cattle came to drink, at the time in which they usually engender; so that by seeing the speckled twigs they might conceive and bring forth speckled cattle. He also took particular care to place the twigs before the fattest and most healthy, and to avoid putting any before those that were weak and sickly ; by which means he might not only obtain for himself the greater number, but also the choicest and most valuable. This scheme succeeded to his utmost wishes, and in a short time he became ex- ceeding rich and powerful. But the extraordinary increase of his property exposed him to the envy, not only of Laban, but also his sons, the former of whom treated him with great coolne»., and the latter frequently accused him of having procured to himself a good estate out of their fortunes. Jacob, finding himself envied by his uncle and kinsmen, had some thoughts of leaving them, and retiring, with his family and effects, into his own country. This design was, in a short time, ultimately resolved on, in consequence of the Almighty appearing to him in a vision, and ordering him to return to the land of Canaan. Though Jacob was fully resolved to obey the divine command, yet he thought it most prudent, previous to his departure, to hold a consultation with his two principal wives, namely, Leah and Rachel, in order to obtain their consent. Accordingly, sending for them into the field (which, from its privacy he thought the most proper place for the business) he told them, that for some time past he had observed their father had treated him with great coolness and indifference, and even sometimes with marks of displeasure, though he was not sensible of any just cause for such behavior. He appealed to them concerning his industry and fidelity, and the injustice of their father toward him, first, in having deceived him, and afterward in having so often changed his wages.* He observed, that God had turned all their father's devices to his advantage, had taken away his cattle, and given them to him. He then told them, that the Lord appeared to him in a drt.im, reminding him of the solemn vow he had made at Bethel, in his journey to Mesopotamia, and that he had commanded him to return to the land of Canaan. Leah and Rachel, having listened with great attention to what Jacob had said, readily agreed to go with him; and by all means recommended his paying a strict obedience to the divine command. In consequence of this, Jacob, having made the necessary preparations for his de- parture, set his wives and children upon camels, taking the advantage of his father- in-law's absence (who was gone to shear his sheep, and which likewise gave Rachel the opportunity of stealing away his images!) he set out upon his journey, taking with him all his cattle, and other property, he had acquired during his stay at Haran. Jacob had proceeded on his journey three days before Laban received intelligence of his Hight, in which time he passed the Euphrates, and having gained the moun- tains of Gilead, he there stopped, in order to refresh himself and attendants, who by this time were become greatly fatigued with travelling. Laban no sooner heard that his nephew had absconded, than he immediately pur- sued him with a mind fully bent on revenge. But in this he was checked by the in- terposition of the Almighty, who, appearing to him the same night in a vision, * It is to be observed, that when Laban found Jacob so successful in the produce of his flocks, he repented uf his bargain, and several times altered the agreement, which God, as many times, turned to Jacob's advantage. t Tiie Hebrew word which we render images is teraphun, a kind of penates, or household-gods which they worshipped as syml>oh of t lie Deity and consulted as oracles — hence Laban calls them his gods. These terapliims were afterward known by the name of talismen, as they are to this day in most parts of India. Some think those of Laban represented angels, who were supposed to declare the mind of God. Rachel might stertl them either for their curiosity or worth ; but it is most probable she still retained a tincture of her father's superstition, and designed to make them the objects ot her worship in Canaan ; for it appears (Gen. xxxv. 4) that Jacob, when he made a thorough reformation in his house, caused them to be taken from her, and buried them under the oak which was by Shechem. The following is a list of the idols mentioned in scripture: Adram-melech, Isaiah xxxvii. 38; Anamelech, 2 Kings xvii. 31 ; Ashtaroth. Judges ii. 13; Baal, Numbers xxii. 4 ; Baalim, 1 Samuel vii. 4 'plural of Baal); Baal-herith, Judges viii. 33 ; Baal-peor, Numbers xxv. 3; Beelzebub, 2 Kings, i. 2 ; Bel. Isaiah xlvi. 1 ; Calf, Exodus xxxii. 1 ; Castor. Acts xxviii. 11 ; Chemosh. I Kings xi. 7 ; Da^on, Jud?es xvi. 23; Diana. Acts xix. 24, 35 ; Jupiter, Acts xiv. 12; Mi (com or Molech, 1 Kings xi. 5-7 ; Moloch. Leviticus xviii. 25 ; Nebo, Isaiah xv. 2 ; Nergal. 2 Kings xvii. 30; Nibhaz, 2 Kings xvii. 31 ; Nisroch, 2 Kings xix. 37, Pollux, Acts xxviii. 11 ; Remphan, Acts vii. 43 ; Rimmon, 2 Kings v. 18 . Sheshach, Jeremiah Ii. 41 ; Suc- eoth-benoth. 2 Kings xvii. 30 ; Tammuz, Ezekiel viii. 14 ; Tartak, 2 Kings xvii. 31 : Teraphun, Judges xvii 5 102 AN ILLUSTRATED threaiened him severely ii' he committed any hostility or violence against his servant Jacob. In consequence of this when Laban came up with his nephew at Mount Gilead, he only expostulated with him on his want of respect in stealing away his daughters, and iherel v preventing them from taking their leave as became his children, or de- parting in a manner consistent with their rank and dignity. He added that such con- duct ni'^ht have exposed him to his most severe resentment, and that he mi^ht have sustained much injury from him who was by far the most powerful. That, indeed, he would have pursued measures of revenge, had he not been diverted therefrom by the immediate prohibition of God himself. In answer to this Jacob reminded his uncle of the cheat he had put upon him. in making him serve so long for a woman he did not love ; the altering of the agreement so many times made between them relative to the sheep; and. lastly, his late strange behavior to him and his family. All these, and many more, he said, were but ill re- quitals for his care and diligence, as well as the blessings which God had heaped on him for his sake. L man had still another thing to lay to Jacob's charge, namely, the stealing of his gods. Fired with resentment at this accusation, Jacob (who knew nothing of Rachel's haying taken them) desired him to make the most diligent search for them throughout his family, assuring him, at the same time, that on whomsoever they should be found, that person should immediately be put to death. In consequence of this Laban proceeded to search the different tents, and having examined those of Jacob, Leah, and her handmaids, without effect, he went to the tent of Rachel, who, conscious of her crime, and fearful of the consequences should she be detected, had just concealed the images in the camel's furniture, on which she sat herself down to rest. Having taken this precaution, she pleaded as an excuse for not arising to salute him, that she was exceedingly ill, and that to move then might greatly increase her com- plaint. This excuse was readily admitted by her father, who. after searching even- other part of the tent without effect, departed. • AVhen Laban acquainted Jacob with his bad success, the latter upbraided him, in verv severe terms, for his unjust suspicions. He then recounted the great services he had done him during a number of years, and concluded with these words, '"Except the God of my father had been with me, surely thou hadst sent me away empty." Laban, conscious that Jacob's charge was most justly founded, made not the least attempt to vindicate his conduct; but, waiving the argument, assumed an air of re- spect for Jacob, and a fondness for his wives and children ; and, in order to remove all further animosity, proposed a treaty of alliance between them, and to erect a monu- nent which should be a standing witness of the same to ltrure ages. This proposition being agreed to, and the covenant signed, they accordingly raised a pillar or heap of stones.* as a memento of the circumstance ; and then took mutual oaths thai neither should invade the property of the other. A particular injunction was likewise laid on Jacob, that he should use his wives and children with all be- coming: tenderness and affection. The covenant being thus ratified, and sacrifices offered up on the occasion. Jacob entertained his brethren that night in as magnificent manner as the nature of his situ- ation would admit. The next morning Laban took leave of Jacob and his family, and each departed for their respective habitations. Jacob had been favored with a heavenly vision in his way from Canaan to Meso- potamia ; and the Almighty was pleased to favor him again with the like token of his protection on his return* As he was proceeding on his journey, there appeared before him a bodv of heavenly messengers, which he no sooner saw than he broke out into the following exclamation: "This is God's host;" from which additional mark of divine protection, he called the place Mahanaim. t * The heap of stones raised by Laban and Jacob in memory of this covenant was called Gihaii, which, in the Hebrew language, signifies a hfap of witnesses. This circumstance, in after ages, srave name to the whole country thereabout, winch lies on the east of the Sea of Galilee, being: part of that ridge of mountains which ran from Mount Lebanon southward on the east of the Holy Land, and included the mountainous region called, in the New Testament, Trachcnihs. T The Hebrew word Mahanaim signifies two hosts or canps. because the angels appeared like two armies drawn up on either side for h:s protection, according to that beautiful expression of the Psalmist. •■ Tiie aneel of the Lord encampeth round about thern that fear him. and delivereth them." Psalrn xxxiv. 7 The pi:ice calied Mahanaim was situated between Mount Gilead and the brook Jabbok. It was after- ward one of the residences of the Levites, and one of the strong places belonging to David. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 103 BMfc. 4... J 04 AN ILLUSTRATED Thougn Jacob had the greatest reason to rely on the protection of the Almighty, yet, as he drew near the confines of Edom, and within the reach of his incensed brother Esau (whom lie had highly provoked, and concerning the abatement of whose resentment he had received no account from his mother, though so long absent), he thought it most prudent to send a message to him, in order to allay his anger, and, if possible, regain his fraternal affection. He accordingly sent messengers to Esau, whose residence was at Mount Seir,* otherwise called the country of Edom, whither he had settled himself soon after his marriage with the daughter of lshmael. The message Jacob sent to his brother was to the following effect : that during his -esidence in Mesopotamia he had acquired prodigious wealth, and that as he was now on his return to his native country, he thought proper to notify his arrival to him, and at the same time to implore his favor and friendship. The messengers, having discharged their embassy, returned, and gave Jacob such an account as greatly alarmed him. They brought no direct answer from Esau, and only told their master that his brother was coming to meet him at the head of four hundred men. Jacob, concluding that the design of this mighty retinue was to act against him in a hostile manner, was greatly perplexed, and at a loss in what manner to proceed. He knew, on the one hand, that the number of his people was too small to engage with that of his brother; and, on the other hand, that his baggage was too heavy for flight. At length he came to this conclusion : to divide his company into two bands, so that, if Esau should fall upon one, he might have the chance of escaping with the other. Such was the plan laid down by Jacob ; but as he well knew, from former experi- ence, that his safety depended upon the divine protection, independent of all human creatures, he, in this critical juncture, addressed himself to God in a very humble and submissive prayer, the substance of which was to the following effect: " thou eternal Majesty of heaven, whom my father worshipped, and who alone art the ob- ject of my prayer, permit an unworthy creature to repeat thy own promise to thee. When my family began to increase, thou wast graciously pleased to order me to re- turn to my native country ; and, to encourage me, thou promisedst that thou wouldst protect me. What an infinite condescension, O my God, to a poor unworthy creature ! The least of all thy mercies is too good for me; and yet thou hast been pleased to show me the greatest. When I crossed Jordan, I had nothing besides my staff; but in thy goodness thou hast caused my family and substance to increase so fast, that I am now possessed of great riches. O God, thou promisedst to make my seed a great nation ; and although I know thou couldst suffer them to be killed, and raise them up from the dead, yet, most merciful Father, be pleased still to preserve them, and * The term "Mount Seir," or rather the mountains of Seir, must be understood with considerable lati- tude. It was applied indefinitely to that range of mountains which, under the modern names of Djebal. Shera, and Ilasma, extends from the southern extremity of the Dead sea to the gulf of Akaba. The reader will recollect the " Ghor," or valley, extending in the same direction, which we have had frequent occasion to mention, and which is supposed to have formed the continued channel of the Jordan before its waters were lost in the Dead sea. Now the mountains of Seir rise abruptly from this valley, and form a natural division of the country, which appears to have been well known to the ancients. The plain to the east of the hilly region which these mountains form, is much more elevated than the level of the Ghor, on the west of the same mountains ; in consequence of which, the hills appear with diminished importance as viewed from the eastern or upper plain. This plain terminates to the south by a steep rocky descent, at the base of which begins the desert of Nedjed. It is to a part of this upper plain, and to the mountains which constitute its western limit, that, as Burckhardt thinks, the name of Arabia Petrrea, or the Stony, was given by the ancients ; the denomination being, however, extended northward, so as to include the eastern plain with the mountains which form the eastern boundary of Palestine so far north as the river Jabbok. Speaking of this region, Burckhardt says : " It might well be called Petrsa, not only on account of its rocky mountains, but also of the elevated plain, which is so covered with stones, especially Hints, that it may with great propriety be called a stony desert, although susceptible of cu'<,ure. in many places it is overgrown with herbs, and must once have been thickly inhabited, for the traces of many ruined towns and villages are met with on both sides of the Hadj route between Maan and Akaba, as well as between Maan and the plains of the Haouran, in which direction there are many springs. At present, all this country is desert, and Maan is the only inhabited place in it." — (" Travels in Syria ;" different parts of winch have been analysed to furnish this geographical statement.) The mountains themselves are described by the same traveller as chielly calcareous, with an occasional mixture of basalt. The mountainous region which they form, of course, differs from the plain which skirts it on the east. The climate is very pleasant. The air is pure ; and although the heat is very great in summer, the refreshing breezes which then prevail prevent the temperature from becoming suffocating. The winter, on the other hand, is very cold ; deep ^now falls, and the frosts sometimes continue to the end of March. This mountainous country is ade- juately r ortile. producing figs, pomegranates, apples, peaches, olives, apricots, and most European f-uita The reg' jn has been in all times noted for the salubrity of its air ; and Burckhardt. observes, theie was u< part of 'jyria in which he saw so few invalids. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 105 suffer not my enraged brother to destroy them; I know that thy promise is truth itself, and I will cheerfully trust in thee." After having thus humbly and earnestly implored the guidance and protection of the Almighty, Jacob determined to pursue another measure in order to appease the anger of his brother, which he imagined to be no less severe than when he left Ca- naan. Imagining that Esau might consider his first message as an empty piece of formality, he resolved, as he had already informed him of the great wealth of which he was possessed, to send him a very liberal present. He accordingly selected from his stock the following articles, namely; two hundred she-goats and twenty he-goats ; two hundred eAves and twenty rams; thirty milch camels with their colts; forty swine and ten bulls ; twenty she-asses and ten foals. These being divided into sep- arate droves, he ordered the servants to keep a proper space between them, and strictly charged them, whenever they should meet his brother, to present each to him separately, and to tell him that they were presents sent by Jacob to his lord Esau. Jacob, having dismissed his servants with this present to his brother, arose early next morning, and, before daylight, sent his wives and children, together with all his substance, forward on their journey, staying himself for some time behind. A short time after the departure of his family and children, being alone, he was accosted by an angel, who, appearing in the shape of a man, began to wrestle with him, which exercise they continued till break of day. The contest was certainly unequal, notwithstanding which, the angel permitted Jacob to prevail ; but, to convince him that he did not obtain the victory by means of his own strength, and how easily him- self could have made a conquest, he touched the sinews* or hollow of his thigh, which was immediately put out of joint. The angel then asked Jacob his name, and on being answered, he told him he should hereafter be called Israel,! which signifies " a man that has prevailed with God." After saying this, the angel blessed Jacob, and then departed. In conse- quence of so singular a circumstance, Jacob called the place where it happened Pe- niel, which signifies the "face of God," being confident that it must have been a divine agent with whom he had been contending. Soon after the angel disappeared, Jacob, though lame, made what haste he could to join the company. Having come up with them, they proceeded with great ex- pedition on their journey ; but they bad not travelled far before Jacob discovered his brother Esau, attended by a considerable body of men, coming toward him. Alarmed at the sight of so powerful a reiinue, Jacob immediately divided his family into three companies, placing them at equal distances from each other. The two maid-servants and their sons went first; Leah and her children next; and Rachel and Joseph (the latter of whom was now about six years old) in the rear, while himself led the van- As soon as Jacob approached his brother, he showed his respect to him by bowing seven times to the ground. Esau, filled with the tenderest sense of fraternal affec- tion, at once removed his brother's fears and compliments by running to him with eager joy, falling on his neck, and most cordially embracing him. He wept over him for some time; after which, seeing his wives and children prostrate themselves before him in the order Jacob had placed them, he returned their civilities with the like tenderness he had done his brother's. Thus was revenge turned into love and pity ; and Esau, who once thirsted for his brother's blood, dissolves into tears of joy, and melts with the softest endearments of love and friendship. Thus transported with this happy interview, Esau surveyed his brother's posses- sions with pleasure, and expressed his satisfaction at the great success he had met with during his residence in Mesopotamia. He kindly acknowledged the presents Jacob had sent him, but begged he would excuse his accepting them, because they would be superfluous to him, who had already great abundance. Jacob, however, pressed him so earnestly, that he at length agreed to accept them; to make some * This was the sinew or tendon that keeps the thigh-bone in the socket, not only in the human species, but also in the brute creation ; and from this circumstance, even to the present time, the Jews will not eat that part. In the Misnah, one of their books of directions concerning religious ceremonies, the) have a whole chapter prescribing the manner in which it is to be cut out of the beast when killed ; and it is fur- ther enjoined that they shall not eat the sinews of the hips of any animal whatever. t The words in the text are— "Thy name shall be called no more Jacob, but Israel." This expression clearly evinces the mis-translation of some passages in the scriptures, it being certain that the patriarch was frequently after called Jacob. But this seeming contradiction will be easily adjusted, by substituting the words not only for "no more:''' in which case the sense will read thus: Thou shalt not only be called Jacob, but also Is-ael — the latter of which names was at length established in Jacob's descendants. 106 A-N ILLUSTRATED recompense for which, Esau invited him to Seir, and offered to accompany him ihe remaining part of the. journey. Though Jacob had no design of accepting this offer, yet he did not choose to mate a direct refusal. He therefore represented to Esau the tenderness of his children and (locks, and that they could not travel with such expedition as would be agreeable to him. He begged they might not confine him to their slow movements, but that he would return home his own pace, and he would follow with as much expedition as possible. Esau then offered to leave him a num- ber of men to guard and conduct him into his territories ; but this compliment Jacob likewise thought proper to decline, upon which, after saluting each other, they parted. Esau returned immediately to Seir, and expected that his brother would follow him ; but Jacob turned another way, and coming to a spot which struck his fancy, he resolved (at least for a time) to settle in it; in consequence of which he built a house for his family, as also proper conveniences for the reception of his cattle. After staying here some time, Jacob removed to Shechem, and having purchased a piece of ground of Hamor, the prince of the country, he there pitched his tents,* intending to make it his fixed place of -residence. He also erected an altar, and called it El-alohe-Israel, which signifies " the great or mighty God of Israel." Jacob might probably have lived at this place a considerable time, had it not been for an occurrence of a very singular nature. His daughter Dinah, who was at this time about sixteen years of age, and very beautiful in person, being desirous of see- ing the dresses and ornaments of the Avomen of that country, rambled abroad from her mother's tent, in order to gratifv her curiositv. Young Shechem, the son of Hamor (the king of the country), happening to see her, was so captivated with her charms, that, unable to restrain the force of his passion, he determined, if possible, to possess her. He diligently watched her for some time, till at length, taking the * The use of tents probably arose at first out of the exigencies of pastoral life, which rendered it neces- sary that men removing from one place to another in search of pasture should have a portable habitation. Accordingly, we find that the fist mention of tents is connected with the keeping of cattle ((Jen. iv. 2U), and to this' day tents remain the exclusive residence of only pastoral people. Portability is not the only recommendation of tents to the nomade tribes of the East: the shelter which they offer in the warm but delicious climates of Western Asia is positive enjoyment. Shelter from the sun is all that is needful , and this a lent sufficiently affords, without excluding the balmy and delicate external air, the comparative exclusion of which renders the finest house detestable to one accustomed to a residence in tents. The advantage ol tents in this respect is so well understood, even by the inhabitants of towns, that, in many places, those whose circumstances admit it endeavor, so far as possible, to occupy tents during the sum- mer months. This was the constant practice ot the late king of Persia, who ever)- year left his capital with all the nobles, and more than half the inhabitants, to encamp in the plain of Sultanieh. Many of the princes, his sons, did the same in their several provinces, and the practice is an old one in Persia. It is true that tents would seem to be rather cheerless abodes in the winter: hut it is to be recollected that the nomades have generally the power of changing the climate with the season. In winter the Hedouins plunge into the heart of the desert, and others descend, in the same season, from the mountainous and nigh lands, where they bad enjoyed comparative coolness in summer, to the genial winter climate of the low valleys and plains, which in the summer had been too warm. It is impossible to ascertain with precision the construction and appearance of the patriarchal tents; but we shall not probanly be far from the truth, if we consider the present Arab tent as affording the nearest existing approximations to the ancient model. The common Arab tent is generally of an oblong figure, varying in size according to the wants or rank of the owner, and in its general shape not unaptly compared by Saliust. and after him Dr. Shaw, to the hull of a ship turned upside down. A length ol from twenty-five to thirty feet, by a depth or breadth not exceeding ten leet, form the dimensions of a rather large family tent ; but there are many larger. The extreme height — that is. the height of the poles which are made higher than the others in order to give a slope to throw off the rain from the roof— varies from seven to ten feet: but the height of the side parts seldom exceeds five or six feel. The most usual-sized tent has nine poles, thiee in the middle, and three on each side. The covering of the tent among the Arabs is usually black eoat's-hair, so compactly woven as to be impervious to the heaviest rain ; but the side coverings are often ot coarse wool. These tent-coverings are spun and woven at home by the women, unless the tribe has not goals enough to suppl} its own demand for goat .>-hair, when the stuff is bought from those better furnished. The front of the tent is usually kept open, except in winter, and the back and side hangings or coverings are so managed that the air can be admitted in any direction, or excluded at pleasure. The tents are kept stretched in the usual way by cords, fastened at one end to the poles, and at the other to pins driven into the ground at the distance of three or four paces from the tent. The interior is divided into two apartments, by a curtain hung up against the middle poles of the tent. This partition is usually of white woollen stuff, sometimes interwoven with patterns of liowers. One of these is for the men. and the other for tne women. In the former, the ground is usually covered with carpets or mats, and the wheal- sacks and camel-bags are heaped up in it, around the middle post, like a pyramid, at the base of which, or toward the bank of the tent, are arranged the camels' pack-saddles, against which the men recline as they sit on the ground. The women's apartment is less neat, being encumbered with all the lumber of the tent, the water and butter, skins, the culinary utensils. Arc. Some tenls of great people are square, perhaps thirty feet square, with a proportionate increase in the number of poles ; while others are so small as to require but one pole to support the centre. The principal differences are in the slope of the toof. and in the part for entrance. When the tent is oblong, the front is sometimes one of the broad, and at othoi times one of the narrow, sides of the tent. We suspect this difference depends on the season of the yeai or the character of the locality; but we can not speak with certainty on this point. It will be observed that the tent covering among the Arabs is usually black : but it seems that they are sometimes brown, and occasionally sniped white and black. Black tents seem to have prevailed among the Arabs fram the earliest times. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 07 10S AN ILLUSTRATED opportunity of her being alone, he suddenly seized on her, and, by mere dint of vio- lence, obtained his wishes. But notwithstanding: this dishonorable act, Shechem was still so enamored with Dinah's charms, that he most earnestly wished to marry her; and stronglv solicited his father to intercede with her friends in his behalf, and to form a treaty with them for that purpose. Jacob was soon informed of the depredation made on his daughter's chastity, anc though greatly incensed at so unjustifiable a proceeding, he resolved not to take any notice of it till his sons (who were then abroad) came home. Accordingly, on their arrival, he told them the injury their sister had sustained, and by whom; upon which their resentment was raised to the greatest height, and they vowed severely to revenge the dishonor thus throAvn upon their family. In the mean time, Shechem having prevailed with his father to use his interest in obtaining for him the beamiful Dinah, they both went together to make the proposal to Jacob, whose sons were with him at the time of their arrival. After the first salu- tations were over, Hamor, addressing himself to Jacob, told him the great affection his son had for his daughter Dinah, and earnestly entreated him that he would give her to him in marriage. He at the same time proposed that Jacob's family should intermarry with his people, and offered them the privilege of settling and trading in any part of his dominions they thought proper. To strengthen this proposal, young Shechem promised to give Dinah as large a dowry, and her relations as costly pres- ents, as they should desire. In short, he offered them whatever advantages they should please to nominate, bidding them only name their terms, and they should be granted to the uttermost, provided they would but give him Dinah in marriage. These were certainly very fair offers, and such as evinced that Shechem was de- sirous of making some recompense for the injury he had done his beloved Dinah. But, instead of accepting these proposals, the treacherous sons of Jacob, who only meditated the most bloody revenge, made the following reply: "That it Avas not lawful for them to contract an affinity with an uncircumcised nation, but that, if they and their people would consent to be circumcised (as they were), they would then agree to the terms proposed." Shechem was so enamored with Dinah, and Hamor so fond of his son, that, not- withstanding the singularity of this proposal, they readily agreed to it. Accordingly ieaving Jacob and his son, they immediately repaired to the city, and having convened a general assembly of the inhabitants, they told them " that the Israelites were a wealthy, peaceable, and good-natured people ; that they might reap many great ad- vantages from them, and, in process of time, by intermarrying with them, might make all their substance (which was very considerable) their own ; but that this could not be done without a general consent to be circumcised." Captivated with the prospect of great wealth, and influenced by the powerful interest both Hamor and his son had among them, they unanimously assented to the proposal ; and on that very day every male of them was circumcised. This circumstance furnished Simeon and Levi (the sons of Jacob, and brother to Dinah, by the same mother) with an opportunity of wreaking that revenge on the Sheehemite? which they had privately resolved "on for the violation of their sister's chastity. Sensible of the great pain the Shechemites felt in consequence of circum- cision, they determined to take advantage of it, by r attacking them at a time when they knew they must be totally incapable of making the least resistance. Accord- ingly, on the third day* after the operation (having properly armed themselves for the purpose), they went (unknown to their father) into the city, and suddenly falling on the inhabitants, put every male to the sword, Hamor and his son not excepted. They then searched the king's palace, where, finding their sister Dinah, they imme- diately brought her away ; after which they plundered the houses of the city, took both women and children captive, and possessed themselves of what property they could, as well in cattle as in other articles ; and such things as they could not take with them, they totally destroyed.! * This was the time, according to most physicians, when fevers generally attended circumcision, oct.* eioiied by the violent inflammation of the wound. The Jews themselves observe, that the pain was much more severe on the third day than at any other time after the operation. t Though the sacred historian only mentions Simeon and Levi to have been the perpetrators of this hor- rid act of cruelty, yet there is not llie least doubt but they had considerable assistance. They, indeed, iie HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 109 When Jacob (who was totally unacquainted with these unjustifiable proceedings till after they had taken place) first heard of them, he was greatly incensed against his sons, and very severely reprimanded them for committing so treacherous and barbarous an action. But Simeon and Levi paid little attention to their father's re- buke ; on the contrarv, such were their ideas of the crime committed in the violation of their sister's chastity, that they intimated to him the resentment they had shown was but just for so base an injury. It is not to be wondered at that this violent outrage, committed in the capital of the Shechemites, should exasperate the whole people of the country against the Is- raelites. This seems to have been the reason why the Almighty, soon after the transaction happened, commanded the patriarch to remove to Bethel, the place which he had dedicated to his immediate service. Though the sons of Jacob had wholly destroyed one colony of the Canaanites, yet there were great numbers bordering on the spot, who, either in their own defence, or in revenge for the cruel and unjust treatment of their countrymen, might give the good patriarch much disquiet, if not totally destroy him and his family. His omnipotent Creator, therefore, in order to secure him from danger, ordered him to go to Bethel,* there to fix his residence, and erect an altar to the same God who appeared to him when he fled from the presence of his brother Esau. The obedient and pious Jacob hesitated not to comply with the divine command , but, previous to his setting about the business, he thought it necessary to make a reformation in his family, and cleanse it from the pollutions that might be offensive in so sacred a place. To effect this, he strictly charged not only his own family, but all that belonged to him, to bring out their idols, or strange gods, then clean them- selves,! and change their garments, telling them they must go with all expedition to Bethel, the house of their God. They readily obeyed the patriarch's orders, and delivered up to him not only their idols,t but also their ear-rings,|| all of which Jacob buried in a deep hole under an oak§ near Shechem. Jacob, having thus cleansed his family from impurities, set out with them on his only mentioned because, being own brothers to Dinah both by father and mother, and consequently more concerned to resent the injury done to her honor, they are made the chief contrivers and conductors of it. It is, however, reasonable to imagine, that the rest of Jacob's sons, who were old enough to bear arms, as well as the greatest part of his domestics, were engaged in the execution of tins wicked exploit ; because it is scarcely conceivable how two men alone should be able to master a whole city, to slay all the men in it, and take all the women captives, who, on this occasion, may be supposed more than sufficient to have overpowered them. * Bkthkl.— The following brief but interesting notice of the site of Bethel has lately been afforded by Professor Robinson. After telling us that the site now bears the name of Beit-in, he proceeds to state that,— "It lies just east of the Nablous road, forty-five minutes northeast of Bireh. Here are ruins of very con siderable extent, and among them the foundations of several churches, lying on the point of a low hill be tween two shallow wadys, which unite below, and run off southeast into a deep and rugged valley. This was evidently a place of note in the early Christian ages, and apparently also in the days of the Crusades. It is now entirely uninhabited ; except that a few Arabs, probably from some neighboring village, had pitched their tents here for a time. In the western valley we spread our carpets, and breakfasted on the grass within the limits of what was once an immense reservoir. We obtained here from the Arabs butter of ex- cellent quality, which might have done honor to the days when the flocks of Abraham and Jacob were pas- tured on these hills."— Biblical Repository, April, 1839, p. 420. t The Hebrew word, which we translate clean, properly signifies, the washing of the body with water. As there is some analogy between external cleanliness and purity of mind, it may denote the cleansing of the soul by repentance from all those impurities whereby a man becomes morally polluted in the sight of God. in which view, this rite of washing the body with water was used as a sign of inward purification, not only among the idolatrous heathens, but also by the worshippers of the true God, both before and under the law. " Wash ye, make ye clean, put away the evil of your doings from before mine eyes, Isaiah i. 16. And as men should at all times have their souls adorned with this inward purity, so especially when they approach their Maker in the duties of his immediate worship. It was, therefore, highly commendable in Jacob, on this solemn occasion, to enjoin all under his care to cleanse and purify themselves particularly from idola- try, and from those guilty stains lately contracted by shedding innocent blood, as they would otherwise be unfit to hold an intercourse with their God ; as if he had said, " Put off your sordid apparel, especially those garments in which you were so lately defiled with blood, and put on your cleanest raiment, as an emblem of your being divested of all impure affections, and clothed with those internal graces and pious dispositions, which are the ornament of the soul, and render it comely in the sight of God. t The g reater part of these idols belonged to the Shechemitps ; but among them were those which Rachel nad stole from her father Laban, and which she had probably worshipped (unknown to her father) during her stay at Shechem. H The ear-rings and other jewels worn by these people were consecrated to the honor of that idol whom they worshipped ; and on them were engraven some figures. The reason of their wearing them was, r,o preserve t.tem (as they thought) from any danger or misfortune ; and from this act of idolatry we may sup- pose arose trie custom among the papists of wearing the relics and images of their saints. <> The oak here mentioned seems to have been the place where these servants of Jacob, who had stramre gods, used to meet ; and certainly no place could be more proper for burying their irioip *'<<»r> the spot on which tliev had worshipped them. 110 AN ILLUSTRATED journey to Bethel. In order to ensure theii safety, the Almighty, ever mindful of his promise to his chosen people, struck such a terror into the people belonging to the country through which they passed, that, notwithstanding the provocation given by the massacre at Shechem, not a single person presumed to interrupt them, and the\ travelled to their destined place without the least molestation. No sooner did Jacob arrive at Bethel,* than, agreeably to the divine command, he erected an altar, which he called El-beth-el ; and on which he performed the very row he had before made when on his journey from Canaan to Mesopotamia. A short time after Jacob had performed this act of worship, the Almighty was pleased to appear to him again, and to give him fresh assurances of his design to multiply his posterity, and to bestow on him the inheritance of the land of Canaan. As a lasting monument of this additional mark of the divine favor, Jacob erected a pillar of stone, which he cop^pr.rated with the usual form, by pouring on it wine and oil. After being some time at Bethel, Jacob, urged, by filial affection, resolved to leave it, in order to pay a visit to his ancient father at Mamre. Accordingly, taking with nim his family, they set out on their journey, intending to stop that night at Ephrath (afterward called Bethlehem), a small place not far distant from Bethel. But before they could reach the intended spot Rachel fell suddenly in labor, and having very- severe pangs, the midwife, in order to encourage her, bid her not fear, for she would have another son. IShe was indeed delivered of a boy, but expired immediately after, having but just a moment's space of time to give him the name of Benoni, which signifies " the son of my sorrow." But Jacob, unwilling to increase the remem- brance of so melancholy a circumstance, called him Benjamin, that is, "the son of my right hand," or " my strength;" intimating thereby his peculiar affection for this last pledge of his beloved wife. The remains of Rachel were deposited at the place where she died, and in order to perpetuate her memory r , Jacob erected a monument of stonef over her grave, which the sacred historian tells us was extant in his days. But this was not the only misfortune that attended Jacob on his journey to Mamre. After travelling some way farther, in order to refresh himself and family, he stopped and pitched his tents on a pleasant spot, at some distance from the tower of Edar.| During his stay here his eldest son Reuben, having taken a liking to Bilhah (the concubinary wife whirh Rachel had given to Jacob), made no scruple of defiling her. Though Jacob took no notice of this disagreeable circumstance at the time it oc- curred, yet he was greatly afflicted in his mind, and retained a painful sense of it even to his dying day, as is evident from a reproachful hint he gave him a short time before his death. || Though these aggravated griefs sat heavy on Jacob's mind, yet he continued his resolution of visiting his aged parent. He accordingly pursued his journey, and at length came to Mamre, the place of his father's abode. It is not to be doubted but, at their first meeting, a reciprocal affection displayed itself, as each must be happy in the sight of the other after so long an absence. With this circumstance the sacred historian concludes the life of Isaac, who, as * According to the sacred historian (though he does not mention any time) it appears that soon after Ja- cob's arrival at Bethel, Deborah (Rebecca's nurse) died there. What age she was we are not informed: but it is certain she must have been very old. as she came with Rebecca from Mesopotamia, when she was married to Isaac. Her remains were deposited beneath an oak (as was the custom in those days) called Allon-bachuth, from which the Jews have a tradition that Rebecca died on the same day with her nurse . that word, in the Hebrew language, signifying mourning. t We have no doubt that the original erection by Jacob was merely the most tall and shapely stone which could be found in the neighborhood. The site seems always since to have been marked by some sepulchral erection or other. That which now exists is such as those with which sheikhs and other persons of note are honored. Its date we can not find, but it is certainly modern. The structure which the travellers of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries figure and describe, had the same general shape, but it was open. in arches, on all sides. The best figure of it is in " Amico's Trattato delle Piante e Irnmagini di Sacr. E.lMzi di Terra Santa." 1620. And this was not very ancient ; for the travellers of the thirteenth centun (as Brocnrd) describe Rachel's sepulchre ds a ptjramidtd monument. I Some commentators aie of opinion, that by the tower of Edar is meant the field near Bethlehem where those shepherds were keeping their flock to whom the angels appeared, and gave information of the birth of our Saviour. Among others, one reason which induces them to think so is because the word Edar in the Hebrew tongue, signifies a flock: so that what is here called the tower of Edar should be ren- dered the tower of the flocks. Others are of opinion that by the tower of Edar is to be understood some place near Jerusalem ; it being spoken of by the prophet Micah as the place or stronghold of the daughters oi Sion. Se Micah iv. 8. i See Genesis xlix. 4 HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 11] lie infoims us, paid the debt of nature in the one hundred and eightieth year of his age, being rive years older than his father Abraham. He had been very infirm, and almost blind, fur a considerable time ; but was always respectable for his piety, tran- quillity, and submission to the will of Heaven. He was buried by his two sons, Esau and Jacob, in the cave of Machpelah, which Abraham purchased of Ephron as a buryitiff-place for his family. It is to be observed that the death of Isaac is here mentioned by way of anticipation, it being certain that he lived some years after Jacob's return from Mesopotamia. CHAPTER VII. HISTORY OF JOSEPH— JACOB AND FAMILY REMOVED TO EGYPT. The pious Jacob had not long enjoyed the company of his aged father, after his return from Mesopotamia, before a circumstance occurred which gave him great un- happiness. Joseph was his beloved child, as being the son of his dear departed Rachel, besides which, he particularly attracted the attention of his father from his very extraordinary genius. In consequence of these circumstances, Jacob, as a token of his peculiar love to his favorite Joseph, gave him clothes much richer than he did the rest; and, among others, one coat which was made of a changeable or party- colored stuff.* This naturally raised the envy of his brothers; besides which, they had for some time considered him as a spy, because he had told his father of some indiscretions committed by the sons of Bilhah and Zilpah, with whom he was most conversant, by frequently assisting them in the care of their flocks. From these cir- cumstances they treated Joseph with contempt, withheld from him the common offices of civility, and made it their constant study to perplex and torment him. But what completed the envy and resentment of Joseph's brethren, or, rather, pro- duced an irreconcileable hatred, was his innocently relating to them two dreams, the explanations of which seemed to portend his own future greatness. The substance of the first of these dreams was, that " as he was binding sheaves with his brethren in the field, his sheaf arose and stood upright, while their sheaves round about fell down, and, as it were, made obeisance to his." This dream being considered by his brethren as an indication of his pride and ambition, their malice was greatly in- creased, but still more so when they heard the substance of the second dream. " Behold," says he, " the sun and the moon and the eleven stars made obeisance to me." When Joseph related this last dream his father was present, on which the good old man, either to appease the anger of his other sons, or check that presump- tion which in young minds so naturally arises from good omens, reprimanded him in these words : " Shall I and thy brethren come to bow down ourselves to thee to the earth ?" But though Jacob thought proper to reprimand his son Joseph, for the reason here assigned, yet, in his own mind, he thought there was something very ominous in the dreams, and that they were predictions of events that would some time or other come to pass. After Joseph had related these dreams to his brethren (notwithstanding the repri- mand given him by his father), instead of their hatred being abated, they grew every * This party-colored tunic of Joseph has occasioned some speculation : but it would seem that the real point of interest has not been noticed. It would be desirable to know whether the art of interweaving a piece in various colors was at this time discovered or not. Judging from the information which this text gives, it would seem not ; for the word winch is constantly rendered "colors" may, as in the marginal reading, with more than equal propriety be rendered " pieces ;" which makes it probable that the agreeable effect resulting from a combination of colors was obtained by patchwork in the first instance, andin after times by being wrought with a needle. The value and distinction attached to such variegated dresses show that they were not common, and were worked by some elaborate process. This continued long after. In the time of David, such a dress was a distinction for a king's daughter (2 Samuel xiii. 18) ; and in Judges v. 30, we see ladies anticipating the return of a victorious general with " a p r ey of divers colors, of divers colors of needlework on both sides." We may, therefore, infei that in these times pe^pie generally did not wear variegated dresses, the common use of which must have been consequent oil tne discovery of the art of interweaving a variegated pattern in the original texture, or of printing it subsequently. Except in Persia, where a robe is usually of one color, most Asiatic people are partial to dresses in which various patterns are interwoven in stripes or flowers ; and party-colored dresses have necessarily ceased to form a istinction. The most remarkable illustration of this text which we have seen is given by Mr Roberts, vho states that in India it is customary to invest a beautiful or favorite child with " a coat of many colors," consisting of crimson, purple, and other colors, which are often tastefully sewed together. ]j t adds : " A child being clothed in a garment of many colors, it is believed that neither tongues nor evil spirits will injure him, because the attention is taken from the beautv of the person to that of the garment." 112 AN ILLUSTRATED da/ more and more exasperated ; so that they resolved at length to cut him off, and only waited lor a convenient opportunity for effecting their purposes. Some time after this, Jacob, having purchased some land near Shechem, sent all nis sons (Joseph excepted) to keep their flocks there. After being absent a long time, and no intelligence received of them by Jacob, he was very anxious for their welfare, fearing lest the inhabitants of the land should revenge on them the loss of their countrymen, who had been put to death by Jacob's sons. To remove these disagreeable apprehensions, he ordered Joseph to go to Shechem, and inquire after the health and welfere of his brethren, and return Avith all convenient expedition. Joseph, in obedience to his father's commands, set out for Shechem, which was about sixty miles distant from the place where his father now dwelt. When he came wghin some distance of Shechem, he happened to meet a stranger, of whom he made inquiry after his brethren. The stranger told him they had removed from Shechem some time, and were gone to a place called Dothan.* Joseph accordingly hastened to Dothan; and no sooner did his brethren see him approaching than their old malice revived, and they determined to embrace this opportunity of destroying him. " Behold" (says one of them to the rest), " this dreamer cometh. Come now, therefore, and let us slay him, and cast him into some pit, and we will say some evil beast has devoured him; and we shall see what will become of his dreams." This horrid design would certainly have been carried into execution had it not been for the interposition of Reuben, who used the most forcible arguments to dis- suade them from embruing their hands in the blood of their brother. As they were, however, determined to show some instance of their resentment, Reuben proposed that they should cast Joseph into the next pit, with a design, no doubt, of taking him out privately and conveying him safe to his father. This proposition being ap- proved of by the rest of the brethren, as soon as Joseph came up to them they im- meaiately seized him, and, after taking off his party-colored garment, threw him into a pit, which at .that time happened to be dry. As soon as this was done Reu- ben withdrew, in order to contrive some means for rescuing his brother, while the rest, insensible of remorse for the deed they had committed, sat down and regaled themselves with such provisions as the place afforded. They were satisfied in their minds that their base ends would soon be answered, and that Joseph must inevitably perish in the pit for the want of food. But the eye of Omnipotence beheld his dis- tress, and interposed in his behalf; for as Reuben had already been the means of preventing his immediate death, so Judah now became the means of delivering him out of the pit. It happened that while they were regaling themselves they espied at a distance a caravan of Ishmaelites, who were travelling from Mount Gilead into Egypt with spices and other merchandise.! The sight of these furnished Judah with a thought * This place is mentioned as a " city" in 2 Kings vi. 13—15. Eusebius says it was twelve miles south of Samaria. That it was somewhere north of Shechem would appear from the present text. What is meant by the "pit" into which Joseph was cast is an exhausted cistern, or reservoir, in which the rain-water is collected, and of which there are many in Palestine. Many of them are found to be empty in summer, the supply of water they contain being often soon exhausted. Dr. Richardson thus mentions the place which is pointed out as the scene of the affair recorded in this chapter: " Having cleared the intricate defiles of this part of the country, we got upon an extensive open field which bore an abundant crop of thistles, and on which several herds of black cattle were feeding. This, by some, is supposed to be the scene of the infamous conspiracy of which the liberty of Joseph was the temporary victim. A little farther on we ar- rived at Gib Youssouff, or the pit into which Joseph was cast by his brethren, being a ride of three hours and forty minutes from Mensura. Here there is a large Khan for the accommodation of travellers, and a well of A'ery excellent water, and a very comfortable oratory for a Mussulman to pray in." This place is about two and a half or three days' journey from Shechem, which is nearly equal to the distance between Hebron and Shechem ; so that the distance' from Hebron to Dothan, if this be Dothan. was about five or six days' journey, which, as Dr. Richardson observes, " is a long way for the sons of Jacob to go to feed their herds, and a still farther way for a solitary youth like Joseph to be sent in quest of them." But we do not consider this distance too great, particularly as we know the place was somewhere beyond Shechem. In- deed the doctor himself admits that it is a very likely place, particularly as it lies in what is still one of the principal roads from the Haouran and Mount Gilead to Egypt. Speaking of the same neighborhood (Nab- lous or Shechem), Dr. Clarke says : " Along the valley we beheld a company of Ishmaelites coming from Gilead, as in the days of Reuoen and Judah, 'with their camels, bearing spicery, and balm, and myrrh," who would gladly have purchased another Joseph of his brethren, and conveyed him as a slave to some Potiphar in Egypt. Upon the hills around, flocks and herds were feeding as of old ; nor, in the simple garb ot the shepherds of Samaria, was there anything to contradict the notions we may entertain of the appear- ance formerly exhibited by the sons of Jacob." He adds, that tiie mormng'after his arrival at Nablous, he .'net caravans corning from Grand Cairo, and noticed others reposing in the large olive plantations near the gates. t Midianites being also mentioned as denominating this company, we may infer that it was a mixed car- avan, and principally :omposed of Ishmaelites and Midianites. We might call them generally "ArasiaiW us the Ohaldee does. " Here," savs Dr. Vincent, "upon opening the oldest historv in the w^rld. we find HIS1JRY OF THE BIBLE. 113 in whal manner he mignt secure his brother Joseph from certain death, and at tht same time answer their ends by getting him totally removed. As the caravan ap- proached, he urged the iniquity of being instrumental to the destruction of their own the Ishmaelites from Gilead conducting a caravan loaded with the spices of India, the balsam and myrrh of Hadramaut ; and in the regular course of their traffic proceeding to Egypt for a market. The date of tliis transaction is more than seventeen centuries before the Christian era, and notwithstanding its anti- uuity, it has all the genuine features of a caravan crossing the Desert at the present hour." (Commerce and Navigation of the Ancients, vol. ii., p. 262.) We cannot at this moment enter into the question, whicr Dr. Vincent assumes, that the Arabians had already become the medium of communication between India and Egypt. As the subject divides itself into two parts, the commerce of the Arabians and that of the Egyptians, we postpone the former, and confine ourselves to a few remarks on the latter. Dr. Vincent calls the Egyptians, with great propriety, the Chinese of antiquity ; and the analogy between the two peo- ple might form a subject for very interesting discussion. In the present text we see a caravan of foreign- ers proceeding to Egypt, their camels laden with articles of luxury ; whence it is an obvious inference that Egypt had then become what it is always recorded to have been, the centre ol a most extensive land com- merce :— the great emporium to which the merchants brought gold, ivory, and slaves from Ethiopia, incense from Arabia, spices from India, and wine from Phoenicia and Greece : for which Egypt gave in exchange its corn, its manufactures of fine linen, its robes, and its carpets. In after-tirnes, the merchants of the west, of Greece and Rome, resorted to Egypt for its own products, and for the goods brought thither by the ori- ental merchants. But none of this was done by Egyptians themselves. We never, either in ancient or modern times, read of Egyptian caravans. This doubtless arose in a great degree from the aversion which (in common with all people who observe a certain diet and mode of life prescribed by religion) they enter- tained to any intercourse with strangers, and which reminds us continually of the restrictive policy of the Japanese in some respects, and of the religious prejudices of Hindoos and strict Mohammedans. Thus, it was a maxim among the Egyptians not to leave their own country, and we have ample evidence that they rarely did so, except in attendance upon the wars and expeditions of their sovereigns, even when their re- strictive policy and peculiar customs became relaxed under the Greek and Roman rulers of the country. "They waited," says Goguet, after Strabo, "till other nations brought them the things they stood in need of, and they did this with the more tranquillity, as the great fertility of their country in those times left them few things to desire. It is not at all surprising that a people of such principles did not apply them- selves to navigation until very late." Besides, the Egyptians had a religious aversion to the sea, and con- sidered all those as impious and degraded who embarked upon it. The sea was, in their view, an emblem of the evil being (Typhon), the implacable enemy of Osiris ; and the aversion of the priests in particular was so strong, that they carefully kept mariners at a distance, even when the rest of the nation began to pay some attention to sea-affairs. But besides their religious hatred to the sea, and political aversion to strangers, other causes concurred in preventing the cultivation of maritime commerce by the Egyptians The country produces no wood suitable for the construction of vessels. Therefore, when the later Egyp tians and the Greek sovereigns began to attend to navigation, they could not fit out a fleet till they had ob- tained a command over the forests of Phoenicia, which gave occasion to bloody wars between the Ptolemies and the Seleucidae for the possession of those countries. . The unhealthiness of the Egyptian coast, and the paucity of good harbors, may also be numbered among the circumstances which operated, with others, in preventing attention to maritime affairs. Moreover, all the nations who in those times traded in the Mediterranean were also pirates, who made it a particular branch of their business to kidnap men from tne coasts ; and it was therefore natural that a people who had no vessels with which to oppose them or re- taliate upon them, should allow them no pretence to land upon their shores. The indifference of the Egyptians to foreign commerce is demonstrated by the fact that they abandoned the navigation of the Red sea to whatever people cared to exercise it. They allowed the Phoenicians, the Edomites, the Jews, the Syrians, successively, to have fleets there and maritime stations on its shores. It was not until toward the termination of the national independence that the sovereigns of Egypt began to turn their attention to such matters. The parts of Lower Egypt were ultimately opened to the' Phoenicians and Greeks, by Psammeticus, about 658 years B. C. His son, Necho, for the purpose of facilitating com- merce, attempted to unite the Mediterranean and Red sea, by means of a canal from the Nile ; but desisted after having lost 100,000 workmen. This work was completed by the Persians, but turned out to be of little practical benefit, either from the failure of the eastern channel of the Nile, or from being choked by the sands drifted from the desert. Failing in this project, Necho contrived to pay great attention to navigation. He caused ships to be built both on the Mediterranean and Red sea, and interested himself in maritime discovery, with a view to the extension of the commercial relations of Egypt. He sent on a voyage of discovery those Phoenician mariners who effected the famous circumnavigation of Africa, sailing from the Red sea, and, after doubling the Cape of Good Hope, returning by the Mediterranean. The maritime powei of Egypt increased thenceforward, the clearest proof of which may be found in the fact, that in the reign of Necho's grandson, Apries, the Egyptian fleet ventured to give battle, and actually defeaced so experi- enced a naval power as that of the Phoenicians. The race of sailors which arose were, however, consid- ered as the lowest and most impure of the castes into which the Egyptian people were divided. In tiie next reign, that of Amasis, the sacred Nile was at last opened to the foreign merchants. Naucratis, a city of Lower Egypt, on the Canopean arm of the Nile, near the site afterward occupied by Alexandria, was assigned to such Greek traders as chose to settle in Egypt. The commercial states of Greece were also permitted to found temples or sanctuaries, in certain places, for the accommodation of their travelling merchants, and which might also serve as staples and marts for the merchandise which they should send into Egypt. This concession was found to have a most favorable operation upon the piosperity of Egypt, and in its ultimate consequences combined with other causes in working a great change in the character and habits of the population, which thenceforward became progressively modified by an infusion of Greek manners and ideas. Such concessions were not in the first instance made without limitations. The Greeks were obliged to enter the Canopean branch of the Nile, and were required to land at Naucratis. If by any accident a ship entered at any other mouth of the river it was detained, and the captain was obliged to swear that he had been compelled to enter against his will. He was then compelled to sail back for Nau- cratis ; and if this was prevented by the winds, he was required to discharge his cargo, and to send it round the Delta (more inland) in the small vessels in which the Egyptians navigated the Nile This re- striction must have ceased soon after, when the country was subdued by the Persians, and all the moutli9 of the Nile were equally thrown open. Its subjection to the Persians does not seem to have materially in- terfered with the growing maritime commeice of Egypt. But Herodotus, who was there in this period, 'emarks on the characteristic singularity which the Egyptians had carried into their marine and trade Their ships were built and armed after a fashion quite different from that observed by other nations and their rigging and cordage were arranged in a manner that appeared very singular and fantastic to the Greeks 114 AN" ILLUSTRATED brother, by which they would contract an eternal stain of guilt. He therefore ad- vised them to sell him to the Ishmaelites, by which means they would not only save his life, but likewise promote their own interest. This proposal being universally approved of, Joseph was taken out of the pit, and sold to the merchants for twenty pieces of silver ; and the merchants, on their arrival in Egypt, sold him again u Potiphar, one of the king's chief officers, and captain of his guards. Reuben, who was absent while this circumstance happened, came soon after to the pit, in order to assist his brother in making his escape ; but, astonished at not finding him there, he ran hastily to his brethren, rent his clothes, and upbraided himself as the cause of his being lost : " The child," said he, " is not, and whither shall I go V' In short, he bewailed himself to such a degree, that his brethren, in order to mitigate his grief, told him in what manner they had disposed of him ; upon which Reuben, finding it impossible now to recover him, joined with the rest, in forming a tale for their father which might take from them all suspicion of their being instrumental to the loss of his beloved Joseph. To effect this purpose, they killed a kid, and dipping Joseph's coat into the blood, took it to their father, telling him they had found it in the field, and were fearful it was their brother's. " This," said they, " have we found ; know now whether it be thy son's coat, or no." The good old patriarch no sooner saw the coat, than he was convinced to whom it belonged, and not suspecting that any human hand could be guilty of such an unnat- ural cruelty as to murder him, concluded that he had been unhappily devoured by some wild beast. This loss was the most severe he had ever sustained. When his beloved Rachel died, it was in a natural way ; but Joseph (according to his present apprehension) is, by a savage animal, barbarously torn in pieces before his time. His grief, therefore, knew no bounds; he rent his clothes, put on sackcloth, and mourned for his beloved son many days : nay, so excessive was his affliction, that when his children in general endeavored to comfort him, it availed nothing, and all the answer he made them was, that he could only cease to mourn when he should follow him in the path of mortality.* In conformity to the sacred historian, we must here make a short digression from the farther transactions of Joseph, in order to admit some occurrences which are ma- terially connected with the history, and, therefore, must not be suffered to pass un- noticed.! Some time before Joseph was sold into Egypt, Judah (his father's son by Leah), who had been the means of saving his brother's life, married a Canaanitish woman, named Shuah, by Avhom he had three sons, viz., Er, Onan, and Shelah. In process of time, when Er, his eldest son, grew up to years of maturity, he took him a wife whose name was Tamar ; but Er, being naturally of a very wicked dis- position, the Almighty was pleased to cut him off" before he had any children by his wife. In consequence of this Judah (agreeably to the custom of the country) advised Onan, his second son, to marry his brother's widow in order to preserve the succession of his family. Onan seemingly obeyed his father's orders, but not brooking the thoughts that any of his children should inherit his brother's name (which must have been the case had Tamar borne him any) he took a very wicked method of avoiding After all, the Egyptians were not themselves a people addicted to maritime commerce. The Greek rulers of Egypt indeed changed the entire system of Egyptian trade, and the new capital, Alexandria, became the first mart of the world, while the ancient inland capitals, which had arisen under the former system, sunk into insignificance. But it was the Greeks of Egypt, not the Egyptians, who did this. " They became.'" says Dr. V incent, " the carriers of the Mediterranean, as well as the agents, factors, and importers of ori- ental produce : and so wise was the new policy, and so deep had it taken root, that the Romans, upon the subjection of Egypt, found it more expedient to leave Alexandria in possession of its priviltges, than to alter the course of trade, or occupy it themselves." (The facts combined in this sketch of Egjptian trade, &c, have been drawn from the works of Vincent, Heeren, Reynier, Goguet, Rennel, and Hales.) * What an affecting idea is here conveyed to the mind of the reader ! The hoary patriarch rends hia clothes, covers nis aged body with sackcloth, and refuses to be comforted. Thus Achilles in Homer ex- presses his grief, on receiving the news of Patroclus' death. -With furious hands he spread The scorching ashes on his graceful head ; His purple garments, and his golden hairs, Those he deforms with dust, and these with tears." — Pope r Though the past and following events seem to be connected by the sacred writer, yet the marriage of Judah certainly took place long before Joseph was sold into Egypt ; and, in all probability, a short time afta Jacob's return from uis uncle Laban. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 115 it for which offence he was (as his brother had been before him) punished with sudden death. Shelah, the third son, bsing as yet too young for marriage, Judah desired his daughter-in-law Tamar to retire to her father's house, and there remain a widow, till his son became a proper age, at which time he would make him her husband. Tamar obeyed her father-in-law's commands, and waited till Shelah was come to man's estate ; but finding no signs of his intending to fulfil his promise, she deter- mined on revenge for her disappointment, which she effected by the following strat- agem. Shuah, Judah's wife, had been some time dead, and as soon as the usual time of mourning was expired, he went, accompanied by a particular friend, to Timnath, in order to participate of the accustomed amusements of sheep-shearing. Tamar, having received previous intelligence of his intended excursion, and the time of his going, threw off her widow's habit ; and dressing herself like a courtesan, she threw a veil* over her face, and then placed herself between two ways through one of which she knew Judah must necessarily pass in his road to Timnath. As soon as Judah saw her he took her to be what she appeared, and accordingly, in a very familiar manner, paid his addresses to her. Previous, however, to any far- ther intimacy, she insisted upon having some reward for her compliance, which he readily agreed to, and promised to send her a kid; but she having a farther design upon him, demanded a pledge for the performance of his promise, which was, his signet,! his bracelet, and his staff. Judah readily complying with this request, they retired together, the consequence of which was that Tamar soon after proved with child. Agreeably to the promise made by Judah to Tamar, previous to their intercourse, the former sent his friend Hirah (for that was his name) with a kid to redeem his pledge; but when he came to the place the woman was gone, nor could he, upon the strictest inquiry, learn that any such person as he described had been ever there. This circumstance greatly perplexed Judah, who, upon cool reflection, thought it most prudent to let her go with the pledges, fearing, if he should make farther search after her, it might injure his reputation. About three months after this Judah received intelligence that his daughter-in-law had played the harlot, and that she was certainly with child. Enraged at her incon- tinence, he ordered her to be brought forth, and, according to the laws of the country, publicly burat4 Tamar, instead of being alarmed at this dreadful sentence pronounced against her, only sent the pledges to Judah, and with them this message: "That the man to whom those belonged Avas the very person by whom she was with child." Judah, struck with confusion at the sight of the pledge he so well knew, and re- flecting on the injury he had done Tamar in not fulfilling the promise of giving her his son in marriage, he acknowledged her to be less culpable in the whole affair than himself. " She hath," said he, " been more righteous than I."|| Tamar's ends were answered in this stratagem, for Judah immediately took her home to his house, but never after had any intercourse with her. When the time of Tamar's delivery came, she was brought to bed of twins, whose oirths Avere attended Avith these singular circumstances. One of them having put * That veils were not peculiar to harlots, Dut worn by the most modest women in those times, there is not the least doubt : yet as harlots were not then allowed to enter into cities, they usually sat in the ■Niblic ways, and covered their faces with a veil, in order to conceal their infamy ; and some assert that the veils they wore differed from those used by modest women. Tamar assumed that character, most probably, to engage Shelah, who was her betrothed husband, and who she might expect would come with his father ; but, being disappointed of him, she gratified Judah, in order to be again taken into the family. t The word here translated a signet should have been a ring, which ornaments were then worn according to their different ranks. At that time there could be no occasion for signets, it being most probable that •vritisg was not then known. By the word bracelets is generally understood a girdle of twisted silk, wliicli either hung from the neck, or was fastened round the waist somewhat in the form of a child's sash. X It may appear stiange that Judah should have such authority as to order this punishment to be inflicted on his daughter-in-law Tamar. But it is to be observed that the ancients supposed every man to be judge or chief magistrate in his own family ; so that, though Tamar was a Canaanite, yet, as she married into Ju- dah's family, and brought disgrace upon it, she necessarily lay under the cognizance of him, who may be supposed, from what followed, to have suspended the sentence, till he had made farther inquiry into the nature of her offence. II He does not say Tamar was more holy or chaste, but more righteous or just ; that is, Judah, not keep- ing his promise in marrying her to Shelah, provoked her to lay this trap for him, resolving since he would not let her have children by Shelah, she would have them by him. Thus, though she may be deemed inori- wickei in the sight of God, she appeareth more just in the opinion of Judah. 116 AN ILLUSTRATED forth his hand, the midwife immediately tied around it a scarlet thread, in order to distinguish him as the first-born; but the child having withdrawn its hand, the other made its way, and came first into the world. This occasioned his name to be called Pharez, which signifies "breaking forth:" the other was called Zarah which im- plies " he ariseth," alluding to the sign he gave of his coming, by putting forth his hand. What farther circumstances occurred, after this, relative to Tamar, we are not in- formed ; but it is reasonable to suppose that she continued the remainder of her life in the house of Judah, and that she lived the Avhole time in a state of widowhood. Having, with the sacred historian, mentioned the before-mentioned particulars relative to Judah and his family, we shall, in like manner, now resume the history of Joseph, and relate the various adventures and enterprises that befell him during his residence in Egypt. From the time that Joseph had first admission into Potiphar's family, he conducted himself with the greatest diligence and fidelity. By his faithful services he so ob- tained the favor of his master, that, after some time, he not only dismissed him from every laborious employment, but made him superintendent of his whole property and committed the charge of his house solely to his care and direction. Joseph being then appointed principal manager of his master's affairs, both within doors and without, the Lord was pleased to bestow a blessing on the house of the Egyptian ; who, by means of Joseph, flourished exceedingly, and being sensible of the' cause of his very singular success, daily increased in his good offices toward his faithful servant. Thus circumstanced, Joseph had reason to hope for a comfortable life, though sold to slavery ; and to expect, in time, his liberty, as a reward for his truth and fidelity. But it pleased the Almighty farther to exercise his faith and patience, in order to prepare him for a still brighter display of his grace and goodness toward his chosen people. Joseph was now about twenty-seven years of age, of a comely form, beautiful com- plexion, and winning deportment. These united charms not only engaged the atten- tion, but also excited the love of his master's wife, who, when all tacit tokens to draw the youth into an indulgence of her unlawful flame failed, was so fired by her eager passion, that she broke through every rule of decency, and, in plain terms, courted him to her bed. But how great was her surprise when, instead of a ready compli- ance, as she probably expected, she found herself not only denied, but likewise severely reprimanded for her dissolute and illegal passion ! " Behold," said he, "my master wotteth not what is with me in the house, and he hath committed all that he hath to my hand. There is none greater in this house than I ; neither hath he kept back anything from me, but thee, because thou art his wife : how then can I do this great wickedness, and sin against God ?"* But this repulse, sufficient to have filled with shame a mind not entirely lost to honor and virtue, had no effect on this lewd woman, who determined still, if possible, to obtain her ends. After making several other fruitless attempts, at length a favorable opportunity offered for accomplishing her wishes. It happened one day that Poti- phar was engaged abroad on some particular business, and all the servants, except Toseph, were employed about their work in the adjoining fields. In the course of the day (having properly prepared herself for the purpose) Joseph's mistress called him to her apartment, which he had no sooner entered than she addressed herself to him in a language calculated to steal the soul from virtue, and melt the coldest con- tinence into the warmest desires. But Joseph's integrity was not to be shaken. Though her arguments were enforced with all the blandishments of art, they made * This answer was truly noble, and is highly worthy of imitation : it speaks a mind whose passions are in subjection to the ruling principle of reason and conscience ; a mind that had the most delicate sentiments of honor, and the most lively impressions of religion. His honest heart startles at the thought of commit- ting so foul a crime as adultery ; and the ingratitude and breach of trust with which it would have been accompanied in him, present it to his mind in the blackest colors ; so that these virtuous sentiments con- curring with his awful reverence of the Supreme Being, who beholds and judges all the actions of the sons of men, enabled him to repel this violent assault with the utmost horror and indignation. This is an ex- ample of the greatest probity and inflexible integrity ; an example worthy of the highest commendation. Joseph was then a servant in a strange country : he was tempted by an imperious woman : if he complied ne would be sure of concealment and rewards; he would be sure to enjoy his place, and be advanced; il he resisted, he must expect to be accused and treated as a criminal, be deprived of his place, of his liberty. of his fame, and perhaps of his life too. These are weighty considerations ; but he prefers chains, ignominy, and even death itself, to the crime of committing so heinous an action, and sinning against God. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 1! 118 AN ILLUSTRATED aot the least impression on him. On the contrary, he again expostulated with her ^n the heinousness of the crime, begging her not to desire him to commit an act which must be destructive to him and disgraceful to her. But all his reasonings were of none effect: instead of her passion being allayed it was farther inflamed, and at length, breaking through all decency, she caught him by his cloak, and attempted to compel him to compliance. He struggled with his mistress for some time, and find- ing he had no other way of escaping, he slipped himself from his garment, which he left in her hand, and precipitately fled. Fired with resentment at the supposed indignity, and fearful of the disgrace that would attend the discovery of her shameful passion, she resolved to shield herself by laying a malicious accusation against Joseph. Accordingly, she began by making a most horrid outcry, which immediately brought in all the servants who were within hearing to her assistance. As soon as they entered the roon sue showed them Jo- seph's cloak, and at the same time thus vehemently exclaimed : " See," said she, " he hath brought in a Hebrew unto us to mock us : he came in unto me to lie with rie." And farther to engage them in her cause when the affair should come to ex- amination, she craftily added: "And I cried with a loud voice, and when he heard it, he left his garment with me and fled." Having then prepared the servants to confirm her declaration, she laid the cloak by her, in order to produce it as an evi- dence against Joseph when his master should return. By the time Potiphar came home she had dressed up the story so well, and ex- pressed the pretended indignity put up«n her by the Hebrew* servant (as she called him) with such an air of resentment, that he made no doubt of the truth of her tale. The credulous husband, little suspecting his wife's treachery, was particularly pre- possessed with the circumstance of the cloak, and therefore, without making the least inquiry into the merits of the cause, immediately committed Joseph to the king's prison. Though the innocent Joseph was thus persecuted, in consequence of his base and treacherous mistress, and was thereby bereft both of friends and relations, yet he was not without that divine Friend who had hitherto protected him. He had not been long in prison before his virtuous and obliging deportment gained him the peculiar favor of the keeper, insomuch that he not only intrusted him with the management of the affairs belonging to the prison, but also with the custody of the prisoners themselves. Some time after Joseph's confinement, it happened that two persons of note (name- ly, the king's cup-bearer and his chief baker) were, for some offence or other,! com- mitted to the same prison, and being delivered to the care of Joseph, he attended them in person, and by that means an intimacy between them was soon established. Joseph, going one morning to their apartment, as he was accustomed to do, found them both in a very pensive and melancholy situation. On inquiring the cause of this sudden change, they told him that each had (the preceding night) a very extra- ordinary dream ; and that they were uneasy on account of being in a place where they could not have a person to interpret them. To allay their superstitious humor in trusting to diviners and soothsayers, Joseph told them that the interpretation of dreams did not depend upon rules of art ; but, if there was any certainty in them, it must proceed from a divine inspiration. Having said this, he desired that each would relate the particulars of what he had dreamed, and he would give them his opinion with respect to the interpretation. The cup-bearer told his dream first, the substance of which was as fullows : " That in his sleep he fancied he saw a vine with three branches, which, all on a sudden, budded, then blossomed, and at length brought forth ripe grapes: that he held Pharaoh's cup in his hand, pressed the juice into the same, and gave it to the kino-, who, as usual, took it and drank." This dream Joseph interpreted thus : " The three branches," said he, " denote three days, within which Pharaoh will restore thee to thy place, and thou shah, as usual, give him to drink, according to the duties of * She did not call Joseph by his own name, but that of the people to whom he belonged. This she did in order to increase her husband's rage against Mm, the Egyptians and Hebrews being, at this time, inveterate enemies to each other. t Some authors are of opinion, that the crime of which these men were accused was that of having em- bezzled tne king's treasure ; but the Targum says, they had attempted to poison him. Whatever were theii crimes, they must have been very great persons with respect to their birth; for, according to Dio^orus Sic ulus. none but the sons of the chiel" priests were admitted into those offices. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. liy thy office." He then told the cup-bearer that, if his interpretation proved true, he hoped he would, in his prosperity, remember him, and recommend his case to the king, since the truth was, he had been fraudulently taken from his own country, and thrown into prison, without having been guilty of the least offence. The baker, hearing so happy an interpretation of the cup-bearer's dream, was the more ready to relate his, which was to this effect: " That while, as he thought, he had on his head three wicker baskets, in the uppermost of which were several kinds of baked meats for the king's table, the birds came, and ate them out of the basket." The interpretation Joseph gave of this dream was, " that the three baskets (even as the three branches had done) signified three days ; but that, in the space of that time, the king, having inquired into his conduct, and found him guilty, would order him to be first beheaded, and afterward his body to be hanged on a gibbet, for the fowls of the air to devour his flesh."* As Joseph had foretold, so it came to pass ; for, three days after this, the cup- bearer was restored and the baker hanged. The cup-bearer, however, proved very ungrateful to Joseph, in not using the least endeavors to get his releasement, and he might probably have continued in prison the remainder of his life, had it not been for the following incident. When Joseph had been more than two years in prison, it happened that Pharaoh the king had in one night two very portentous dreams, which gave him the more uneasiness, because none of the Egyptian Magif (whom he consulted the next morn- ing) could give him the least explanation of their meaning. While the king was in this state of perplexity on account of his dreams, he received some agreeable intelli- gence from his cup-bearer, who, recollecting Joseph, told him that while he and the chief baker were under his majesty's displeasure in prison, each of them, in the same night, had a dream, which a young man, a Hebrew, then in prison with them, interpreted exactly, and as the events happened ; and that, in his opinion, he had a talent that way much superior to any that had been hitherto consulted. Pharaoh was so pleased with this intelligence, and so anxious to have his dreams explained, that he immediately despatched a messenger to the prison, with orders to bring Joseph before him. Accordingly, after having shaved himself, and put on his best attire, he left the prison, and being conducted to the palace, was immediately introduced to the king, who, after a short time, related to him his dreams as follows ■ " That, as he was walking on the banks of the river,:}: he saw seven fat kine come out of it, and feed on the meadow ; after which seven others, exceeding lean, and frightful to behold, came also to the river, and devoured the seven fat kine. That after this he dreamed again, and fancied he saw seven full ears of corn, proceeding all from the same stalk, which were, in like manner with the kine, devoured by seven others that were blasted and withered." When the king had finished relating his dreams, Joseph (after giving him to un- derstand that it was by the assistance || of God alone he was enabled to be an inter- preter of dreams) told him " that the seven kine and seven ears of corn signified the * It may appear strange that the sacred historian should mention the baker's being first beheaded, and af- terward hanged. But it is to be observed that this practice was common at that time. Hence Jeremiah says, "princes were hanged up by their hands," intimating that their heads had been previously cut off. See Lamentation v. 12. Also 1 Sam. xxxi. 9, 10. t The magicians, or interpreters of dreams, were, at that time, a regular body of people in Egypt, and always consulted with respect to their pretended knowledge of future events. Their method of interpre- tation was from an attentive consideration of the symbols or images that appeared in the dream. Thus, the best they could pretend was no more than conjecture ; but they always gave their answers to whatever questions they were asked in such ambiguous words that they could hardly be detected. t The river here mentioned was the Nile, so much celebrated in ancient history. This river has its rise in Numidia, and after running many miles northward through a country scorched with the violent, heat of the sun, it enters Upper Egypt with great force, and passes over a cataract or broken rock. Hence it continues its course still north, and receiving the addition of many other rivers, it falls over another cat- aract, and then continues its course to the Lower Egypt as far as Grand Cairo, after which it divides itself into three branches, in the form of the Greek letter A> and then empties itself into the Mediterranean sea. Once every year it overflows the greater part of Lower Egypt, and from that proceeds either scarcity or plenty. If the water rises too high, scarcity ensues, because it lies too long on the ground ; and if too low, then there is not a sufficiency to fertilize the soil. II The answer Joseph gave the king when he first asked him to interpret his dreams was exceeding mod- est, and much of the same nature with that given by Daniel to King Neouchadnezzar. See Daniel ii. 28, 29. He elevates the monarch's mind to the first cause of the dreams which so troubled him, and engages his attention by making him hope he should give him an answer, of which God himself was the author: " It is not," says he, " in me ; God shall give Pharaoh an answer of peace." Which was as much as to say, " I have no more skill than those already consulted ; from God alone the interpretation must proceed ; 'ino he. I trust, will give a favorable one to your dreams." 120 AN ILLUSTRATED same thing, and the repetition of the dream only denoted the certainty of the event : that, therefore, as the lean kine seemed to eat up the fat, and the withered ears ol corn to consume the full and flourishing ; so, after seven years of great plenty, othei seven years of extreme famine would succeed, insomuch that the remembrance of plenty" would be lost throughout the land of Egypt." After Joseph had thus interpreted the king's dreams, he advised him to improve the hints sfiven in them, by appointing some wise and prudent person over his whole kingdom, who should take care to build granaries and appoint officers under him in every province, and that these officers should collect and lay up a fifth part of each plentiful year's produce, that a proper supply might be had during the succeeding years of famine. This careful and prudent advice was highly approved of by the king, who, struck with the extraordinary foresight and sagacity of Joseph, did not long hesitate in fix- ing on the person thus recommended; for, turning first to his subjects, and then to Joseph, he thus respectively addressed them: " Can we," says he, " find such a one as this is ? a man in whom the Spirit of God is. Forasmuch as God has showed thee all this, there is none so discreet and wise as thou art : thou shalt be over my house ; and according to thy word shall all my people be ruled : only in the throne will I be greater than thou." Having said this, Pharaoh appointed Joseph his deputy over the land of Egypt, and immediately invested him with the ensigns of that high station. He took the ring from his own finger, and put it on Joseph's ; caused him to be clothed in a robe of fine linen, and put a golden chain about his neck. He ordered him to ride in the chariot next to his ; and that wherever he went heralds should go before, to give notice of his coming to the people, who should show their subjection to him by bend- ing the knee as he passed. Pharaoh having thus bestowed on Joseph the greatest power and highest honors, in order to attach him more strongly to his interest, and make him forget the very thoughts of ever returning to his own country, changed his name from Joseph tc Zaphnath-paaneah ;* soon after which he procured him an honorable alliance, by marriage, with Asenath, the daughter of Potipherah, priest, or prince of On.f Joseph's prediction began now to be fulfilled ; and the plenteous years having commenced, he entered upon the duties of the high office with which he had been invested. He made a progress throughout the whole kingdom, built granaries in all the principal places, and appointed proper officers to collect and lay up the stipulated quantity of provisions. The same method he invariably pursued every season of the fruitful years, till at length he had amassed such quantities of corn as even to exceed computation. During the seven years of plenty, Joseph had two sons by his wife Asenath, the first of whom he called Manasseh, intimating that God had made him forget all his toils; and the other he called Ephraim, because he had made him fruitful in the land of his affliction. The seven years of plenty bein°; expired, those of dearth commenced, according *n Joseph's prediction, and the famine was not only spread throughout the land of Egypt, but also the neighboring countries. But, through Joseph's provident care, under the blessing of Divine Providence, Egypt was so well furnished with provisions, as not only to supply its own inhabitants, but also foreigners, with bread and other necessaries of life. The king referred all who applied to him for these articles, to Joseph, who opened the storehouses, and sold to the Egyptians and others, in such quantities, and at such rates, as seemed to him most jusf and equitable. The famine having penetrated as far as the land of Canaan, and particularly affected that part of the country where Jacob resided, he, hearing there was corn to be bought in E^ypt, sent ten of his sons thither for that purpose. On their arrival they were * The generality of interpreters are of opinion, that this is a Coptic word, and implies a reveal er of secrets, alluding to Joseph's having interpreted Pharaoh's dreams. It was customary, at this time, for princes to give foreigners a new name, to denote their naturalization, to take away all invidious distinction, and do clare them worthy of their most intimate favor and protection. t On was a famous city in Egypt, situated between the Nile and the Arabian gulf, about twenty miles from Memphis, the metropolis of the kingdom. Here was celeb ited an annual festival, in honor of the :>un, from which it was afterward called H*' -opolis. The word we truncate prie.'t may signify one who fiiin'isi-ers at the altar, or one who governs in civil affairs : priests wet, ancient. v the rlv'cf men of Mit kli. srdo.-n • for kings themselves wer< priest* HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 121 directed to apply to Joseph for an order, whom they no sooner approached, than they bowed themselves before him,* as a token of reverence to his dignified office. Joseph, at first sight, knew his brethren, but did not choose, at present, to make himself known to them, intending to take this opportunity of punishing them for the ill-treatment he had received at their hands. The better to effect his purpose, in- stead of speaking to them himself, he appointed an interpreter, who, by his directions, with a severe look and angry tone of voice, asked them, whence they came. They answered, "From the land of Canaan to buy provisions;" upon which he charged them with being spies, who came thither for no other purpose but to dis- cover the weakness of the country. They replied, that they came with no other intent than purely to buy corn for their numerous family ; and that they were all the sons of one man,! who once, indeed, had twelve, but that the youngest was left at home, and the next to him was dead. But Joseph still insisted they were spies, and, to put their honesty to the test, made this proposition: "That, since, as they said, they had a younger brother at home, some one of them should be despatched to bring him, while the rest should be kept in confinement till his arrival; and if they did not assent to this he should consider them in no other light than that of spies and enemies." Having said this, he ordered them all to prison, there to remain till they should give a proper answer to the matter proposed. On the third day of their confinement, Joseph sent for them again, and, showing a more pleasant countenance than he had yet done, told them, by means of his inter- preter, that as himself feared God, and was desirous of acting justly by them, he was unwilling that their family should want provision, or that they themselves should suffer, if innocent. He therefore proposed, " That one of them should be confined as a hostage for the rest, while they returned with corn for the family; and that, when they came again, and brought their youngest brother with them, "the one con- fined should be immediately released, and all of them considered as men of honesty and integrity." Being reduced to a state of extremity, and knowing it was in vain to remonstrate with one, under whose immediate power they were, they unanimously, though no doubt with reluctance, agreed to this proposal. The interpreter was at this time absent, and, supposing no one else understood their language, they, imagining their present distressed situation was a punishment for their cruel treatment of their brother, began, in Joseph's presence, to condemn each other for their barbarous con- duct. " Justly," said they, " do we now suffer for our cruelty to our brother, to whom we refused mercy, though he begged it in the anguish of his soul; therefore God is just in sending upon us this distress." Reuben, who was not so culpable as the rest, told them, that all this mischief might have been prevented had they listened to his counsel, and not acted so inhumanly to their innocent brother, for whose sake it was no more than what they might expect, that vengeance, at one time or other, would certainly overtake them. Though Joseph could counterfeit the stranger in his looks, his mem, and his voice, yet he still retained the brother in his heart. The confusion and distress of his brethren awakened all his fraternal tenderness, and he was obliged to withdraw from their presence to give a vent to his passions: In a short time, however, he returned, and, after commanding Simeont to be bound in their presence, he sent him to prison. Having done this, he set all the rest at liberty, and ordered the officer who distributed the corn, to supply them with what they wanted, and, at the same time, unknown to them, to put each man's money into the mouth of his sack. * This manner of salutation was common in their own country, but not in use among the Egyptians : a sufficient proof that Jacob's family had little or no acquaintance with the inhabitants of the neighboring kingdoms. But by using the customary form of their family, they fulfilled the dreams of Joseph (as fa; as they had any relation to themselves) and no doubt brought those dreams to Joseph's remembrance. tThis part of their answer was certainly very pertinent, as it was not probable that a father would have sent his sons, and much less all of them, in one company, upon so dangerous an expedition : nor, that one particular person, or family, would have formed a design against so capital a kingdom as that of Egypt. t The Jewish Rabbies say, that Joseph determined to retain Simeon rather than any other, because it was he who threw him into the pit. This tradition is far from being improbable. It is certain that Keuben was desirous of saving Joseph, and Judah inclined to favor him ; so that h Simeon had joined with them, their authority might have prevailed over the rest to save him. We may add to this, that Simeon \\ as a violent man, as "is evident from his barbarous treatment of the Shechemites ; and that Joseph might think propel to defain liim. as it would least affiict his father. 122 AX ILLT"-TRA7ZD e ing punctually obeyed, they set out for Canaan, and at the close 01 tneir firs: day's journey, met with a circumstance they little expected- One of them opening his sack to give his ass provender, observed his money in the month of it, which, on examination, appeared to be the case with all the rest. This unexpected event gave them great uneasiness, and, looking confusedly at each other, thev ex- claime is this S : i hath done unto us ?" They imagined it to be a plot con- certed by the viceroy of Egypt, and that he intended, on their return, to make them a . : y accusing ihem of theft. Prosecuting their journey, they at length arrived at the habitation of their vene- rable parent, to whom they related all the particulars of their journey into the land E gypt. They informed him of the treatment they had received from the viceroy : that he had accused them of being spies, and that they had no method of clearing themselves, but by leaving Simeon bound in prison, as a pledge, till they should return with Benjamin, on which terms alone their innocence could be justified. The good old patriarch was sensibly affected at these melancholy tidings, and, in the affliction of his soul, thus complained: " That one way or other, he had been deprived of his children ; that Joseph was dead, Simeon was left in Egypt, and now they were going to take Benjamin from him likewise, which were things too heavy for him to bear." 7. e i : en, finding his father thus unhappily circumstanced, in order to mitigate his affliction, told him he need not be apprehensive of any danger from the absence of Benjamin. He begged that he would put him under his protection, and at the same time assured him, that if he did not bring him safe back, he would readily agree to the loss of his own two sons tor such defect. But this proposal had little weight with Jacob, and, instead of assuaging his grief, only contributed to augment it. Resolved, therefore, not to trust Benjamin with them, he answered Reuben as fellows : " My son," said he, " shall not go down with you, for his brother is dead, and he is left alone ; if mischief befall him by the way the which ye go, then shall ye bring down my gray hairs with sorrow to the grave."* In this state of doubt and perplexity did they spend their time, till the famine every day increasing, and their stock of provisions being nearly consumed, Jacob told his sons to go again into Egypt for a fresh supply ; but at the same time took no notice of their obligation to the viceroy to bring with them their youngest brother. Jacob's sons, knowing their departure without Benjamin would not only argue m them the greatest folly and rashness, but also expose them to the resentment of the viceroy, and, at the same time, thinking it impossible to obtain their father's consent, were reduced to the utmost dilpmma. Reuben had already tried his efforts in vain : Judah, therefore, now addressed him m more positive terms, urging at once the ab- solute and indispensable necessity of taking Benjamin with them, " as the viceroy had most solemnly declared they should not so much as see his nice, if, on their re- turn, he was not with them." Jacob, being now put to his last shifts for the preservation of his favorite son Benja- min, knew not how to act, and, in the fulness of his soul, reproved his sons for having informed the viceroy they had a brother. In answer to this Judah told him, that what was said upon that head proceeded from the simplicity of their hearts; that he inquired so minutely into their circumstances and family, that they could not possibly avoid giving the information he required ; and added, that they had little suspicion of his making so singular a demand. Judah, finding his father waver a little in his resolution, repeated the necessity of th iir going again into Egypt, and pressed him to consent to give up their brother Benjamin, solemnly promising that, at the hazard of his own life, he would take care. and return him safe into his hands. " Send the lad," said he, **with me, and we will arise and go; that we may live, and not die, both we, and those, and also our little ones : I will be surety for him ; of my hand shalt thou require him : if I bring him not unto thee, and set him before thee, then let me bear the blame for ever." From the strong importunities of Judah, and a proper reflection on the necessity of * Nothing can be more tender and picturesque than these words of the venerable patriarch. Still affected ar;:l. : .t :i: :.-- v.- ri". : -. : : :_s :■•£■! : "~i ?-3.::.el" ie :^r. :.:: ::_:•: : :' :ir.:.r -~ ::. 2tZ i ::-..:. ::.i : : . ; :e :. _.'..-£ p.rirt : : r. :~r. r. :-■« .:se: is :.e «_":»r5. .? :.: r.:re :':r.":j -t : . ir :.\i :: .; ::.rsf : ~: 5 ::.; "•'•": -T.-r" 5tt 1- - " r:r " It ... ' .r Z 7 / - . r lire" Zlrll T V . "5 5. .5 r i - r- --- L : "a.r.i.r.£ . s «:ie i:i::er.: =::: = :e= ir.i. .:. : i = tt z -i"? .: :■.:-.- --'. l:-e. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 123 affairs, Jacob was at length induced to comply, and therefore delivered up to them his son Benjamin. But before their departure he advised them, since it must be so, to take a double quantity of money with them, lest there should have been some mistake made in the other that was returned, and the price of what they had already bought demanded. He likewise told them to take some such presents as the country afforded, and what they imagined would be most acceptable to the viceroy. Having said this, he entreated Heaven for their safety, and then dismissed them with an aching heat t, though fully resolved to acquiesce in God's good Providence, whatever might be the event. On their arrival in Egypt, they immediately went to the king's principal granaries, and presented themselves before Joseph, who, seeing their brother Benjamin with them, gave orders to his steward to conduct them to his house, where he designed they should that day dine with him. They now began to have disagreeable appre- hensions, fearing this might be a contrivance against them on account of the money which was returned in their sacks. They, therefore, before they entered the house, acquainted the steward with the whole affair ; and, to demonstrate their honesty, told him, that besides the money which they found returned, they had brought more with them to buy a fresh quantity of provision. The steward, having been let into the secret, and perceiving the concern they were in, desired them not to make them- selves in the least uneasy. He told them, that what they found in their sacks they ought to look upon as a treasure sent from Heaven : he owned that he himself had fairly received their money, and gave them assurance that they would never hear more of it. To convince them that they might rely on what he said, he left them a short time, and then returned with their brother Simeon unbound: after which he acquainted them that they were that day to dine with his master; and, in the mean- time, showed them all the tokens of civility due to welcome guests. As the time was near at hand that Joseph was to come home to dinner, his brethren took care to have their present ready ; and, on his entering the apartment, they gave it him in the most humble and submissive manner. He saluted them with the greatest cordiality, and made anxious inquiry concerning the health and welfare of their aged father. To which they submissively replied: "Thy servant, our father, is in good health ; he is yet alive." Though Joseph addressed his brethren in general terms, his attention was prin- cipally fixed on his brother Benjamin, who was most near and dear to him. After inquiring of the rest if he was the youngest brother whom they had mentioned, without waiting for an answer, he saluted him in these words, " God be gracious unto thee, my son."* His passions were now raised to such a pitch, that, unable to contain the flood of tears that was ready to flow from his eyes, and fearing lest he should discover himself too soon, he retired into an adjoining apartment, and there gave a loose to his fraternal emotions. After a short time, having dried up his tears, and washed his face, that it might not appear he had wept, he returned to the com- pany, and gave immediate orders for the provision to be served up. In the room where the entertainment was provided were three tables ; one for Joseph alone, on account of his dignity ; another for his Egyptian guests, who would never eat with the Hebrews,! and a third for his brethren. These last were all placed in exact order according to their seniority, a circum- stance which greatly surprised them, for, not knowing their brother Joseph, they could not conceive by what means he had obtained so perfect a knowledge of their respective ages. During the entertainment Joseph behaved in the most courteous manner, not only to his brethren, but to the whole company. He sent from his own tablet messes to each of his brothers; but with this difference, that the one sent to Benjamin was five times larger than any of the rest.H This was another mystery they could not account * Joseph was the only brother of Benjamin by his mother Rachel. His calling him son, therefore, was only an appellation of courtesy used by superiors in saluting their inferiors, whom they styled sons, with respect to themselves, as fathers of the country. t The dislike which the Egyptians took to the Hebrews did not arise, as some have imagined, from the latter eating animal food, but from their low degree in life, being shepherds, an employment, which, though esteemed by the Hebrews, was despised by the Egyptians. t It was the custom among the ancients for all the provision to be placed on one table, and the master of the feast to distribute to very one his portion. II Joseph certainly did tnis not only to show his particular regard to Benjamin, but also to observe whether the lest would look upon their younger brother with the same envious eye as they had formerly done upou 124 AN ILLUSTRATED for ; however, they made themselves easy for the present, and enjoyed the repast which had been so bountifully prepared for them. The entertainment being over, Joseph's brethren took their leave, and made the necessary preparations for setting off, the next morning, to the land of Canaan, pleased with the thoughts of what had passed, and the satisfaction their aged parent would receive on their safe arrival. But Joseph had one more fright for them still in re- serve. He ordered his steward, when he filled their sacks with corn, to return their money (as he had done before) but into Benjamin's sack not only to put his money, but the silver cup likewise, out of which himself was accustomed to drink.* This being done, early the next morning they proceeded on their journey toward Canaan ; but they had not got far when Joseph ordered his steward to pursue them, and upbraid them with ingratitude in having so basely requited his master's civility as to steal away his cup. The steward did as he was commanded, and having overtaken them, accused them of theft. Conscious of their innocence, they were not in the least affected at the charge. As a test of their integrity they reminded the steward of their bringing back f he money which they found in their sacks in their former journey; and to obviate every suspicion of their being guilty of the accusation laid against them, they offered to stand search under the severest penalties: "With whomsoever of thy servants.'' said they, "it may be found, let him die, and we also will be my lord's bondmen. The steward took them at their word, but softened the penalty, by fixing it, thai :he person on whom the cup should be found should be his servant, and the rest con- sidered as blameless. Impatient to prove their innocence, every one hastily unloaded his beast, and, as they opened their sacks, the steAvard searched them ; when behold, to their great as- tonishment and surprise, the cup was found in the sack belonging to Benjamin. It was to no purpose for the poor youth to say anything in his defence : upon such a dem- onstration none would believe him. As they were all concerned in the disgrace, they rent their clothes, and, without attempting even to palliate the fact, loaded their asses, and, in a mournful manner, returned to the city. Joseph had remained at home in expectation of their return, and no sooner did thev approach his presence than they immediately prostrated themselves before him. Jo- seph, without giving them time to speak a word in their defence, charged them with the fact, and reprimanded them for their folly in committing a theft, which it was totally out of their power to conceal. " What deed," says ne, " is this ye have done ? Wot ye not, that such a man as I can certainly divine. "t Jn the midst of a general horror, Judah, in a very humble tone, addressed himself to Joseph in words to this effect: "We have nothing to offer in our defence; God hath detected our iniquity, and we must remain slaves with him in whose sack the cup was found." But Joseph interrupted him by declaring, that he could by no means do such injustice ; for that he only who stole the cup should be his slave, while the rest, whenever they pleased, were at full liberty to return to their father. Judah, encouraged by finding the viceroy somewhat softened, presumed farther to address him, which he "did in the most submissive and pathetic terms. He acquainted him with the whole case between them and their father, in relation to their bringing Benjamin into Egypt, to take away the suspicion of their being spies. He very feel- ingly described their father's melancholy situation for the loss of his son Joseph ; the extreme fondness he had for his son Benjamin ; the difficulty they were under to pre- vail with him to trust him with them, insomuch that himself was forced to become himself. The custom of allotting the largest portion at the banquets of the ancients to any particular pei sen, by way of preference, was practised in Homer's days, as appears from Agamemnon's" speech to Ido meneus : " For this in banquets when the generous howls Restore our blood, and raise the warrior's souls, Though all the rest with stated rales are bound, Unmixed, unmeasured, are thy goblets crowned." * Joseph ordered this cup to be privately put into Benjamin's sack, in order to make a farther trial of his brethren's temper, and to see whether, moved with envy, they would give up Benjamin, or endeavor to assist him in his danger. It is not likely (as some have thought) that he really designed to have made a pretence for detaining Benjamin ; or that he could be ignorant of his father's warm affection to his youngest son. + This was as much as to say, " You see by my office that I am one of the great ministers of state . while .he other diviners are preferred only from the college of priests. As I am, therefore, so superior to vhem could you be insensible that it wis in my power to divine, or detect your robbery .'" HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 125 security for his safe return ; and that, if he should go home without him, his father's life was so wrapped up in the child, that he would certainly die with grief. To pre- vent, therefore, so melancholy a scene, he offered himself as an equivalent for his brother. " I pray thee," said he, " let thy servant abide, instead of the lad, a bond- man to my lord, and let the lad go up with his brethren ; for how shall I go up to my father, and the lad be not with me ?" This moving speech, and generous offer, so operated on the passions of Joseph, that he could no longer contain himself: the force of nature shook his frame, and obliged him to throw off all disguise. Ordering, therefore, the rest of the company to de- part, that he might discover himself with more affectionate freedom, they were no sooner gone, than he burst into a flood of tears, and, looking earnestly at his brethren, pathetically exclaimed, " I am Joseph ; doth my father yet live ?"* Conscious guilt, at the very name of that Joseph whom they had so unnaturally treated, struck them dumb, as they now dreaded the power he had of resenting the injuries they had done him. But brotherly love overcame resentment, and banished every desire of revenge. Joseph, observing their confusion, bid them, in the most endearing manner, approach nearer to him, when he assured them, that he was the very brother they had sold into Egypt, and though he had assumed the dignity be- coming his office, he still retained the tenderness of a brother. To remove all fur- ther apprehensions of danger, he told them, that their selling him into Egypt, was directed by an unforeseen Providence ; and that they had no reason to be angry with themselves for doing it, since they were no more than the instruments in God's hand to bring about what his wise purpose had determined. That himself had no reason to resent it, since, by that means, he had been advanced to the honor and dignity of being governer of all Egypt. And, lastly, that neither his father, nor any of mV fam- ily, ought to murmur at it, since God appointed this method for the preservation of their lives.f Having said this, he told them that there were yet five years of the famine to come, and therefore he would advise them to hasten home, and, as soon as possible, bring their father, together with all the family, into Egypt. As an inducement for them to leave their own country, he desired them, from him, to address their father to this effect : " that God had made him lord of all Egypt, and that therefore he must not defer coming ; for he would provide Goshenf for the place of his habitation, and there would he carefully nourish not only him but all his family." He acknowledged that this relation must, of course, appear strange to his father ; but that he certainly would not doubt the testimony of so many eyewitnesses; and above all, that he would not fail to believe what was told him by his favorite son Benjamin. He then threw him- self upon Benjamin's neck, kissed him, and wept for joy ; and having a little recov- ered himself, he treated all the rest with like tenderness. His brethren being thus convinced that a perfect reconciliation had taken place between them, took courage, and conversed with him in a manner very different to what they had done previous to this happy discovery. The rumor had reached the king that Joseph's brethren were come ; and it is a pleasing evidence of the esteem in which he was held, and the regard which he had conciliated, that a domestic incident which was calculated to be a satisfaction to him, was highly agreeable to Pharaoh and all his court. The monarch sent for him, and authorized him to express the kindest attentions toward them, and the utmost anxiety for their welfare. He, as well as Joseph, saw that it would be best for them to come * There is certainly a distinguished beauty in this interrogation ; and the transition is finely wrought. The soul of Joseph was so full of filial affection for his father, that, before he had finished his sentence, he inquired after him, though but a short time before, they had told him he ^as alive. And how must such an abrupt declaration affect his brothers ! No wonder they were dumb for some time with astonishment, and jnable to answer the question asked. t These passages point out to us the very noble and just ideas which Joseph entertained concerning the providence of God: but, besides this, we may observe a peculiar generosity and tenderness of temper in this apology to his brethren, wherein he endeavors to remove every uneasy apprehension from their minds. Go^d hearts are always averse to giving- pain ; the same benevolence of disposition whicli makes them zealous to diffuse happiness, makes them tender of inflicting a momentary smart. Joseph was unwilling that his brethren should feel any alloy to their satisfaction which the present event afforded ; and therefore he turned, as it were, from their view the very thought and remembrance of their former unnatural behavior to him, and directed their attention to reflections which were equally comfortable and important. t This was the most fruitful part of all Lower Egypt, especially for pasturage ; and therefore the most commodious for those who were brought up shepherds and accustomed to a pastoral life. Besides this, it was very conveniently situated, being but a small distance from the city wheie Pharaoh kept his court. 126 AN ILLUSTRATED to Egypt, and ne nad tne consideration to direct that they should be werl supplied with provisions on the way, and that they should be furnished with carts,* in which the aged Jacob, with the women and young children, might pass from Canaan to Egypt with more comfort, than by the more ordinary means of conveyance. It is little to be wondered at that Joseph should very readily obey the king's com- mands. Accordingly, he furnished them with a proper number of carts for bringing (heir family and substance, together with a sufficient quantity of provision for theii journey as" well home as back again. He sent his father a present, consisting of ten asses laden with the choicest dainties Egypt afforded. To his brethren he gave each changes of raiment, but to Benjamin he gave five changes, together with three hun- dred pieces of silver. Having done this, Joseph dismissed his brethren, giving them, at the same time, a strict charge that they should not fall out by the way.i Thus supplied, and thus circumstanced, the sons of Jacob, with hearts full of joy, prosecuted their journey to Canaan. As soon as their a^ed father saw them, his drooping spirits revived, more especially when he beheld his sons Benjamin and Sim- eon, whose return he had little expected. But when they informed him that his son Josepn was likewise alive, and described the great pomp and splendor in which he lived, the good old patriarch was affected indeed ; and, unable to bear so much good news at once, fainted in their arms. When Jacob came again to himself, his sons showed him the presents sent by Jo- seph, together with the carts that were to carry him and his family into Egypt. The sight of these, with many particulars they related of their brother Joseph, revived his spirits ; his doubts and fears vanished, and, in an ecstacy of joy, he exclaimed, K * It is enough ! Joseph, my son, is yet alive : I will go and see him before I die." The necessary preparations being made, Jacob and his family left Hebron, and pro- ceeded on their journey toward Egypt. It might be supposed that the old man's anxiety to see so dear a son, and for whom he had so long mourned, would have made him proceed with the greatest expedition; but parental affection gave way to religious duties. Being desirous of making proper acknowledgments to God for the benefits already received, as well as to implore his farther protection, he stopped at Beersheba, and there offered up sacrifices to the Lord. The reasons of his choosing this spot on the present occasion were, because it was the place where Abraham and Isaac had lived so long : and at the same time it was in the way to Egypt, being the utmost boundary of Canaan toward the south. On the evening of the same day that Jacob had performed his religious duties at Beersheba, the Almighty appeared to him in a vision, bidding him not fear to go down into Egypt, since he would be with him and protect him, and in due time, bring his posterity out of it to take possession of the promised land. That as to himself, he should live near his beloved Joseph, die in his arms, and have his eyes closed by his hand.t * Carts.— The Egyptians had no chariots, except perhaps war chariots, suited to bear such a journey as this, and they would have been most unsuitable for the present purpose. Besides, the word for a chariot is different from that which is here employed, although a wheel-carriage of some kind or other is certainly indicated. To indicate that carriage, we have taken the word " cart," as preferable, upon the whole, to that of " wagon" — partly as being less definite. But it does not appear that the Egyptians had any carts, or any wheeled carriages save chariots of war, and light curricles for civil use. The Nile and the nume- rous canals offered such facilities for carriage and conveyance by water, that the use of carts and wagons does not appear to have been thought of. Carts are indeed represented in the paintings and sculptures of that ancient country ; but not as being in use among the Egyptians themselves, but by a people with whom they are at war, apparently a nomade people of Asia, ana who are represented as escaping in their carts. Now, we infer, that as the Egyptians had no carts of their own, those which were sent for Jacob were such as they had either taken in war from a people by whom they were used, or had been left behind .y the intrusive shepherd-race. As having been used by a pastoral people, they would seem to the king particularly suitable for the removal of a pastoral family. In connexion with preceding statements, and with the conjecture just offered, it deserves to be noticed that the next instance of carts which occurs in the scriptural history is found among the Philistines. 1 Samuel vi. 7. The first of our engravings repre- sents the only kind of wheel-carriage now used in Syria, and that chiefly for agricultural purposes. The second represents the carts of the Tartar nomades of Central Asia, whose usages ofter many remarkable resemblances to those of the patriarchs and the early pastoral races with which early Bible history makes us acquainted. t Joseph was no stranger to the tempers of his brethren, and therefore thought p;oper to reprove them in this gentle manner. Probably he suspected they might accuse each othe; with the cruelty they had exercised toward him, or throw envious reflections on Benjamin, because he had been eminently dis- tinguished above the rest t It must certainly have given great consolation to good old Jacob to nnd, fiom the promise of God, that Joseph was to attend him on his death-bed, and to close those eyes thai had often assisted him in contem- plating the beauties cf nature. The custom of closing the eyes of pei sons departed is verv ancient, ai: J they were usually the nearest and dearest friends who performed his last office. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. VJ- Modern Syrian Carts, of ancient form. Cart3 of the Tartar Nomades. 128 AN ILLUSTRATED Encouraged by this divine promise, Jacob left Beersheba, and cheerfully pursued iiis journey toward Egypt, his sons taking with them their children and wives in the carls which Joseph had sent for the purpose. They likewise took with them all their cattle and goods; and the whole number of souls descended from Jacob's loins amounted to three score and ten. As soon as they came to the borders of Egypt (and not far from the land of Go- shen) Jacob despatched his son Judah before them, in order to acquaint Joseph with their arrival. This intelligence was very agreeable to Joseph, who immediately or- dered his chariot to be got ready, and, with a retinue suitable to his high station, hastened to meet his father, whom he congratulated on his safe arrival at a place where it was in his power to make him happy and comfortable during the remaindei of his life. Words can not describe the expressions of filial duty and paternal affection that took place on this occasion. Tears of joy plentifully flowed on both sides. While the son was contemplating the goodness of God in bringing him to the sight of his aged parent, the father, on the other hand, thought all his happiness on earth completed in this interview ; and, therefore, in the fulness of his soul, he exclaimed, " Now let me die, since I have seen thy face, because thou art yet alive." These mutual endearments being over, and Joseph having paid his respects to the whole family, he told his father and brethren that he would go before and acquaint the king with their arrival. As he imagined Pharaoh would be desirous of seeing some of them, he gave them this caution : that in case he should ask of what occu- pation they were, their answer should be, that they were shepherds, as their ances- tors, for many generations, had been before them. By these means, he told them, he might secure the land of Goshen for their residence, which was not only one of the most pleasant parts of Egypt, but the best calculated for feeding their flocks and herds. Besides this, he said, there would be another material advantage, namely, that it would be a happy retreat from the insults of the Egyptians, who were known to have an utter detestation to those who followed a shepherd's life. Having given this caution, Joseph took with him five of his brothers, and after pre- viously informing Pharaoh that his father and family were arrived at Goshen, pre- sented them before the king. Pharaoh received them with great courtesy, out of re- spect to Joseph, and, among other questions, asked them of what occupation they were. They answered (agreeably to the directions given them by Joseph) that they were shepherds, as their ancestors, for many generations before, had been : that want of pasturage for their cattle, and sustenance for themselves, had made them leave Canaan, and they humbly beseeched his majesty that they might be permitted to set- tle in the land of Goshen, that part of the country being best adapted for the purposes of their employment. Pharaoh readily granted their request, and moreover told Jo- seph, that if any of his brethren were remarkable for their activity and knowledge, he might, if he thought proper, appoint them as superintendents over the royal shepherds. Joseph's project having so far happily succeeded, he, soon after, introduced his aged parent to Pharaoh, who after receiving him in a very courteous manner, among other questions, asked him his age. Jacob answered, he was a hundred and thirty ; upon which the king expressing some surprise from his appearing so strong and healthy, Jacob farther told him, that his life was -jot, as yet, near so long as some of his an- cestors, nor did he look so well as tlmse who were much farther advanced in life, which was owing to the great troubles and perplexities under which he had long la bored. Some other questions being asked, and the answers given, Jacob, after wish jig the king health and prosperity, took his leave, and returned to Goshen, where Jo- seph took care to supply him and his family with such an abundance of necessaries as made them insensible of the general calamity. While Jacob and his family were thus happily circumstanced, by means of the power and affection of Joseph, the Egyptians were in the utmost distress. The dreadful effects of the famine appeared more and more every day, and Joseph keeping up the corn at a very high price, in a short time all the money was brought into the king's coffers. When their money was gone, they were all (except the priests whu were furnished from the king's stores) obliged to part with their cattle, their houses, their lands, and, at length, even their liberty, for provision.* * Whatever those may think who have endeavored to depreciate the conduct of Joseph, it is certain tnat •here was no injustice in Joseph's making the Egyptians pay for the corn which he had bought with Pharaoh's money, and laid up with great care and expense In demanding their cattle, he had nios' HISTORY OF THE BIliLE 129 130 AN ILLUSTRATED All liiese Joseph purchased of the people m the king's name, and for the king s use and, to let them see that the purchase was m earnest, and that their liberties and properties were now become the king's, he removed them, from their former places )f abode, ' ito different, and very distant parts of the kingdom. In any other person such conduct might have been considered as arising from an immoderate zeal for absolute power in the king, and an advantage unjustly taken of the necessities of the people ; but so Joseph managed the matter as to gain the appro- bation both of prince and people. When the seventh and last year of the famine was come, he told them they might expect to have a crop the ensuing year; for that the Nile would overflow its banks, and the earth bring forth her fruits as usual. Having made this known, he distributed fresh lands, cattle, and corn to the people, that they might return to their tillage as before; but this he did on the following condition: that thenceforth the fifth part of all the produce of their lands should become the property of the king. "Behold," says he, "I have bought you this day and your land for Pharaoh. Lo, here is seed for you, and ye shall sow the land. And it shall come to pass in the increase, that you shall give the fifth part unto Pharaoh, and four parts shall be your own for seed of the field, and for your food, and for them of your household, and for food for your little ones." To these conditions the people willingly consented, imputing the preservation ol their lives to Joseph's care : "Thou hast saved," said they, "our lives; let us find grace in the sight of my lord, and we will be Pharaoh's servants." From this time it passed into a law, that the fifth part of the produce of the land of Egypt (except what belonged to the priests) should become the propenv of the crown. While Joseph was enjoying the fruits of his great success and policy, his family at Goshen (whom he failed not frequently to visit) became not only numerous, but ex- ceeding wealthy. The seven years of famine were succeeded by great plenty, the earth resuming its former fertility, and the whole land abounding in all the usual productions of nature. Seventeen of these years of plenty did Jacob live to see, at the expiration of which nature's lamp grew dim, and life was nearly exhausted; his decayed spirits warn him of his approaching fate, and each drooping faculty beats an alarm to death. When Jacob found himself thus circumstanced, he sent for his sen Joseph, whom he addressed in words to the following effect : " Though the desire of seeing a son so dear to me as you are raised to the height of Egyptian glory, joined to the raging famine which then visited our land, made me willingly come down into this strange country ; yet Canaan being the inheritance which God promised to Abraham and his posterity, and where he lies interred with my father Isaac, and some other of our family, in the ground which he purchased of the inhabitants for that purpose ; my last and dying request to you is, that you will not suffer me to be buried here, but swear to see me carried to Machpelah, and there deposited with my ancestors. Your great power with the king will easily obtain that favor, which is the last I have to ask." Joseph not only promised, but likewise swore, strictly to fulfil his father's request ; upon which the good old man was so perfectly satisfied, that, after thanking his son for these fresh assurances of his fidelity, he bowed himself in acknowledgment to God, who, besides all his other mercies, had given him this last token of his protec- tion, in assuring him, by Joseph's promise and oath, that he should be removed from Egypt into the promised land. Joseph, having thus satisfied his father in this particular, took his leave, but not without giving a strict charge to those who attended him, that, upon the very first appearance of danger, they should immediately send for him. He had been but a short time at court, before a messenger arrived with the dismal intelligence that his father was near expiring ; upon which, taking with him his two sons, Manasseh and Ephraim, he hastened with all expedition to visit him. As soon as the feeble patriarch imderstood that his son Joseph had arrived, it im- mediately raised his sinking spirits, and he became so far revived as to be able to sit upright in his bed- Desiring his favorite Joseph to approach near him, he began probably a view to save them ; for, as they had not corn for themselves, they could much less have it to their cattle ; and, therefore, this was the only way to preserve the lives of both, and to prevent that waste of the corn whicli must have been made if they had had the keeping and feeding of the cattle themselves Mid it is highly probable that he returned them their cattle after the famine, when they were fixed again in their several habitations — otherwise it would have been hardly possible for them to support then families and carry on their business HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 131 with recapitulating all the glorious promises which God had formerly made him concerning his posterity possessing the land of Canaan ; and after mentioning the death of Rachel, together with the place where her remains were deposited,* he spoke to the following effect: "How tenderly I loved my dear Rachel, all my family can testify; but this farther proof I now give you of my affection to her. You have two sons born in a foreign country and who, according to the usual order of inherit- ance, should have only the portion of grandchildren in the division of the promised land ; but, from this day forward, they shall be esteemed my sons, and, as heads of nvo distinct tribes (for they shall not "be called the tribe of Joseph, but the tribes of Ephraim and Manasseh), receive a double portion in that allotment. But it must not be so with the other sons which you may beget after these: they must come in only for the portion of grandchildren. And to you in particular 1 bequeath that tract of land which, by the force of arms, I took from the Amorites."f During the time Jacob was thus talking with Joseph concerning himself and children, he had not observed that Joseph's sons were with him, but spoke of them as if they had been absent. At length, turning to Joseph, and observing (as he thought) somebody with him (though he could not discern who it was, on account of Ills eyes being dim with age), he asked who he had with him. To which Joseph replied, his sons Ephraim and Manasseh, and at the same time, with great reverence, bowed himself to the ground. Jacob was greatly rejoiced at this intelligence, and immediately ordered them to be brought near, that he might bestow on them his blessing. Joseph obeyed his father's commands, and placed the children according to the order of their age, that is, Manasseh, as being the first-born, on the right, and Ephraim on the left: but Ja- cob, crossing his hands, laid his right (which carried with it the preference) upon the younger, and his left upon the elder of them. Joseph, observing this, and sup- posing it to proceed from a mistake, was going to rectify it; but his father told him that what he did was by divine direction, and therefore made Ephraim not only the first in nomination, but gave him a blessing much more extensive than that conferred on his elder brother. This conversation was hitherto private, being only between Jacob and his favorite son Joseph. But the good old patriarch, finding his dissolution near at hand, ordered all his sons to be brought before him, that, while he had strength to speak, he might take his last farewell, and not only distribute his blessing among them, but likewise foretell what should happen to them and their posterity in future times. Accordingly, all Jacob's sons being brought before him, he addressed them sep- arately, beginning with Reuben, the eldest. " R.euben," says he, " thou art my first-born, and, by right of primogeniture, enti- tled to many privileges and prerogatives in superiority over thy brethren ; but, for the crime of incest in polluting thy father's bed, both thou and thy tribe are totally degraded from the privileges of birthright." Having said this to Reuben, he next addressed himself to Simeon and Levi con- junctively ; telling them, that for their impious massacre of Hamor and his people, their tribes should he ever separate, and dispersed among the rest. " I will divide them," says he, "in Jacob, and scatter them in Israel."t Jacob, then turning to Judah, prophesied of him to this effect : That to his tribe should the sovereignty belong, and they should be situated in a very fruitful country : that from his name should the whole nation of the Jews derive their appellation ; and that the form of government which he then instituted should remain among them until the coming of the Messiah. || * It is probable that Jacob here mentioned to Joseph the place of Rachel's interment, in hopes that he might, at some convenient opportunity, remove her ashes to the cnve of Maehpelah. t There are many particulars in the lives of the patriarchs, and of others, which are not at all mentioned in scripture; and there are some instances of a transient reference to facts of this kind, to things which have been said and done, but are never i elated. Of this kind, it is -asonable to suppose, is the passage in question; at least, we have no mention in scripture of any portion of land taken from the Amorites by Jacob. All, therefore, which can be said upon the subject must be mere conjecture; of which the must probable is, that the parcel of ground near Shechem, which Jacob purchased of Hamor, is here meant, and which, probably, he took or recovered, by force of arms, from the Amorites, who, it seems, had seized on it after (lis removal to another part of Canaan. } This pmphecy was literally fulfilled ; for the Levites were scattered throughout all the other tribes, and Simeon had only a part of the land of Judah for his residence. || The words in the text run thus : — Judah, " thou art he whom thy brethren shall praise ; thy father's children shall bow down before thee. The sceptre shall not depart from Judah, nor a lawgiver from 132 AN ILLUSTRATED Of Zebulun, Jacob prophesied that his tribe should be planted near the sescoasts, and have harbors convenient for shipping;* and of Issachar, that his should prove a pusillanimous people, and be lovers of inglorious ease more than of liberty and renown.f Jacob, having predicted the fate of, and bestoAved his blessings on, the children descended from Leah, proceeds next to those of his two concubinary wives. He be- gan with Dan, the son of Bilhah, whose posterity, he foretold (though descended from a handmaid) should have the same privileges with the other tribes, become a politic people, and greatly versed in the stratagems of war.| Of Gad's posterity he between his feet, until Shiloh come ; and unto him shall the gathering of the people be." Many commenta- tors have written largely on this remarkable prophecy related by Jacob to his son Judah. From the time that our first parents ate of the forbidden fruit, we have seen that the promised seed was, one ape after another, more and more circumscribed, although Us salutary effects were to be the same. It is first called the seed of the woman ; it is next consigned over to Seth ; Shern, the younger son of Noah, gets the preference : afterward Abraham is made choice of; from Isaac, the son of Abraham, it goes to his second son Jacob ; and here Jacob, by the spirit of prophecy, conveys it to the posterity of Judah. There are several things to be attended to in this remarkable prophecy, and such as are of the utmost importance for us to know. First, we are told that Judah's brethren should praise him, and that his hand should be in the neck of his enemies. This was remarkably fulfilled in the local situation of the tribe of Judah ; for their being so near the Arabians, obliged them to be continually on their guard ; and as they were for the most part successful, so it may be justly said that the hand of Judah was in the neck of his enemies, and that his brethren praised him for standing up in their defence. Secondly, it is here said that ins father's children should bow down before him, and certainly nothing was ever more literally fulfilled. David, in whose family the royal sovereignty was placed, was of the tribe of Judah, and to him all the other tribes bowed down. But the prophecy conveys a further idea, namely, that from Judah, according to the flesh, the Messiah should come, to whom all nations should bow down ; and in the book of Revelations he is called the lion of the tribe of Judah. Thirdly, "the sceptre shall not depart from Judah." &c. ; by which we are to understand that there should never be one wanting to sway the regal sci ptre. or exercise sovereign authority in the tribe of Judah, till that glorious and Divine Person came, whose kingdom was to have no end, and to whom the people were to be gathered ; for the Messiah is, in many places of scripture, called the "desire of all nations." Such is the natme of this remarkable prophecy ; and now, in order to prove the concurring authenticity of the Mosaic and Gospel history, let us see in what manner it has been fulfilled. During the time of Joshua's wars with the Canaanites, the tribe of Judah was more distinguished for its valor than the others ; and it appears, from the book of Judges, that they were always the most forward to engage with the common enemy. When it is said that "the sceptre shall not depart from Judah," it implies that it should depart from all those of the other tribes who should enjoy it. Thus it departed from the tribe of Benjamin on the death of Saul ; and it-is wpII known that the ten tribes were carried away captive, and incorporated with other nations, while that of Benjamin put itself under the protection of Judah From the time of David till the taking of Jerusalem by Nebuchadnezzar, Judah exercised the regal authority ; and although ten of the tribes, who followed the idolatry of Jeroboam, had kings, yet they were for the most part subject to those of Judah. It is true, the Jews "ere also carried captive to Babylon; but during the seventy years they were in that country, they were so far from being treated as slaves, that they were allowed to build houses, and lived in such affluence, that many of them refused to return to their owji country when permssion was granted them. When Cyrus, the emperor, issued his orders for them to return to the land of Judea, they had ruiers among them, for they were expressly mentioned in the royal proclamation. It is certain, that after returning from their captivity they were not so free as before, because they were frequently oppressed by the Persians, Greeks, and Romans; but, for all that, they lived as a distinct people, under their own laws and government. It continued to be the same under the Asmodean princes , and it is well known that Herod the Great married Manamne. the last female of that line; and in the la'erendof his reign the Messiah was born. It is true, the Romans, in some cases, deprived them of ti. power of judging in cases of treason ; but, notwithstanding, we find, in the cases of our Saviour and the apostle Paul, that the Roman prautors or governors never proceeded to judge a criminal till he was condemned by the rulers of the people. The learned Dr. Suaw says, the blessmgs given to Judah were very differer t from all those bestowed on the other tribes. The mountains in Judea abound with so much wine, oil, and milk, that one is surprised at the fertility of a place which, at a distance, has the appearance of barrenness. Grapes and raisins are sent annually in great quantities from Hebron to Egypt, besides several other sorts of fruit. From these observations, will not the impartial reader declare that this prophecy has been literally fulfilled? and is not the present melancholy state of the Jews a striking proof of its authenticity ? Till the Messiah came, they had a regal government , but, because they rejected him, they are now scattered up and down through all nations, without being permitted to enjoy the priviieges of any nation whatever. Sureh this should convince us that no human testimony can overthrow the evidence Drought in support of the Mosaic and Gospel histories. * It is remarkable that Zebulun is mentioned by Jacob before Issachar, who was the eldest ; but this distinction, it is probable, arose from his great superiority and merit. Zebulun's portion of the country was likewise very preferable to Issachar's ; for, besides the advantage he had in common with him, and that our Lord chiefly resided in his tribe, and was thence called a Galilean, he is here promised a seacoast. with harbors commodious for ships. If Jacob had been present at the division of the promised land, he could naidly have given a more exact description of Zebulun's lot; for it extended from the Mediterranean sea jti the wes* to the lake of Tiberias, or sea of Galilee, on the east. t Of all the tribes of Israel, that of Issachar was distinguished for being the most indolent. That part of the country which fell to their share was exceeding fertile ; but that fertility only served to enervate the people, so that when they were invaded by foreign enemies, they soon became an easy prey to them, and were often obliged to pay tribute. t The words in the text are, " Dan shall be a serpent by the way, an adder in the path ; that bitcth the horse's heels so that his rider shall fall backward." It is to be observed, that the part of Canaan which the descendants of Dan inhabited was noted for serpents of a particular species, who were so cunning that thev used to lie in wait to bite the feet of passengers. This very justly alluded to the disposition of Dan's descendants, who, when enured in war, frequently did more execution by craft and stratagem than by force of arms. It is the opinion of the Jews that the prophecy of Dan's destroying his enemies by cunning was more particularly fulfilled, when Sampson, who was of that tribe, pulled down the temple, wnicf crushed himself and the Philistines to death. See Judges svi. 30 HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 133 foretold, that they should be frequently infested with robbers, but should overcome at last.* Of Asher's, that they should Le situated in a pleasant and fruitful country ;t and of Naphtali's, that they should spread their branches like an oak, and multiply exceedingly.! Jacob, having now done with those children begotten on Leah and his concubinary wives, next directs his attention to the sons of his beloved Rachel. Turning himself to Joseph, he first took some notice of his past troubles, and then set forth the future greatness of his descendants; after which he bestowed his benediction on him in words to the following effect: " The Lord," says he, " even the God of thy fathers, shall biess thee with the dew of heaven and with the fatness of the earth, with the fruit of the womb," that is, with a numerous posterity, " and with plenty of all sorts of cattle. May all the blessings promised to me and my forefathers be doubled upon Joseph's head; may they outtop and outstretch the highest mountains; and prove to him more fruitful and more lasting than they."|| The only one now remaining to receive Jacob's blessing was his youngest son Benjamin, who, no doubt, from having been a great favorite with his father, expected a suitable distinction from the rest of his brethren ; but, whether Jacob foresaw that no extraordinary merit or happiness would attend this tribe, or that it should after- ward be blended with that of Judah, and consequently share the blessing of that tribe, so it was that he only prophesied of him that his descendants should be of a fierce and warlike disposition ; and, " like a ravenous wolf, should shed the blood of their enemies, and in the evening divide the spoil."*) The good old patriarch having thus (by divine direction) foretold the fate of his descendants, he bestowed his blessing on each of his sons separately ; after lvhich he reminded them all (but more especially Joseph), that it was his most earnest re- quest they would bury him among his ancestors, in the cave of Machpelah, which had been purchased by Abraham, and where not only the remains of him and his wife Sarah were deposited, but likewise those of Isaac and Rebecca, and where he had also buried his wife Leah. Having given this last charge, the pious Jacob laid himself gently down in his bed, a short time after which he calmly resigned his soul into the hands of Him who gave it. He died in the one hundred and forty-seventh year of his age, during the fast seventeen of which he resided in Egypt. The loss of so good a father must undoubtedly be very afflicting to the whole family, but none of them expressed their grief with such filial affection as the pious Jose} h, who could not behold his aged parent's face, though dead, without kissing and bathing it with his tears. Having thus given vent to his passions, and some- what recovered himself, he ordered the physicians (according to the custom of the country) to embalm his father's body, and then set about making the necessary preparations for his funeral. The time that Jacob's family mourned for their father was seventy days, during * The tribe of Gad had their portion of land on the frontiers of the Jewish territories, so that they were continually exposed to the incursions of the bordering Arabs; but, in the course of time, they became so expert in war, that they always repulsed them. t The l.nbe of Asher possessed that part of the country which reached from Zidon to Mount Carmel : it was so beautiful and fertile a spot, that it not only abounded with all kinds of provisions, but also with the choicest, fruits, and most luxuriant productions of the earth. t In the territories allotted to the tribe of Naphtali was the country of Genesarat ; which (.losephus says) was looked upon as the utmost effort of nature in point of beauty. It was also remarkable for producing some of the best wines in all Palestine. In one part of the prophecy, as related by Moses, it is said, " Naph- tali is a hind let loose ;" the meaning of which is, that the peopie should be exceeding swift in the pursuit sf their enemies, which, indeed, was the case, in a very peculiar manner, with this tribe. i1 The fruitfulness promised to Joseph in the great increase of his posterity was exemplified in the pio digious number of his two-fold tribe, Ephraim and Manasseh. At the first numbering of the tribes, these produced 72,700 men capable of bearing arms. (See Numb. i. 33-35.) And at the second numbering, 85,200 "'Numb. xxvi. 34-37), which by far exceeded the number of either of the other tribes. Q History sufficiently justifies the truth of this prediction relative to the tribe of Benjamin, for they alone maintained a war with all the other tribes, and overcame thern in two battles, though they had sixteen tc one. It must, however, be observed, that the comparison does not only respect mere valor and fortitude in defending themselves, but also fierceness in making wars and depredations upon others. But what is chiefly to be regarded in this prophecy is, that the tribe of Benjamin should continue till the final destruc tion of the Jewish po'.ity. For since the natural morning and evening can not with the least propriety be here understood, and as the Jewish state is the subject of all Jacob's prophecy, we must consider the morn ing and the night as the beginning and final period of that state ; and, consequently, that the tribe of Benjamin would exist till Sluloh came. And this prophecy was fully accomplished ; for, upon the division oi the kingdom after Solomon's death, the tribe of Benjamin adhered to that of Judah, and formed one people with it; continued to share the same fortune, and by that means existed till the destruction of Jerusalem bythi- Romans, which happened many years after the other ten tribes were no longer a people 134 AJN ILLUSTRATED which Joseph never appeared at court, it being improper for him so to do on sucn an occasion. In consequence of this, he requested some of the officers about the king to acquaint him that his father, previous to his death, had enjoined him, upon oath, to bury him in a sepulchre belonging to their family, in the land of Canaan; and that therefore he begged permission that he might go and fulfil his last com- mands; after which he would return to court with all convenient expedition. Pharaoh not only complied with Joseph's request, but (in compliment to him and his family) gave orders that the chief officers of his household, together with some of the principal nobility of the kingdom, should attend the funeral ; who, joined with his own, and his father's whole family, some in chariots and others on horseback, formed one of the most pompous processions ever seen on a similar occasion. On their arrival in the land of Canaan they halted at a place called " the thresh- ing-fioor of Atad,"* where they continued seven days mourning for the deceased. The Canaanites, who inhabited that part of the country, observing the Egyptians mixing themselves in these obsequies, were astonished, and imagining them to be the principals concerned in the funeral lamentation, could not forbear exclaiming. " This is a grievous mourning to the Egyptians !" whence they called the name of the place Abel-Mizraim, which signifies " the mourning of the Egyptians." This solemnity being ended, they proceeded on their journey, and at length, arriv ing at the field of Machpelah, they deposited the remains of Jacob in the cave with his ancestors, after which the whole company returned in solemn procession to Egypt. During the life of Jacob, Joseph's brethren thought themselves secure ; but now their aged father was no more, their former fears returned, and suggested to them the just revenge Joseph might yet take for the great injuries he had received from their hands. In consequence of this, they held a consultation together in what man- ner to proceed for their own security ; the result of which was to form a message (purporting to have been delivered by Jacob), and send it to their brother. This was accordingly done, and the substance of the message was to the following effect: " Thy father commanded, before he died, saying, Thus shall ye say to Joseph : For- give, I pray thee now, the trespass of thy brethren and their sin; for they did evil unto thee ; but pardon them, not only for my sake, but because they are the servants of the God of thy father." When Joseph read this message, such was his compassionate and forgiving tem- per, that he could not refrain from weeping. To remove, therefore, the fears and apprehensions of his brethren, he immediately sent for them, and, receiving them with the same kind affection as when ciieir father was alive, excused the actions they had formerly committed to his prejudice in the most obliging manner ; and, in order fully to remove their ill-founded fears, dismissed them with the assurance that they should always find in him a constant friend and an affectionate brother. Though Joseph lived fifty-four years after his father's death, yet the sacred histo- rian does not mention any farther particulars of him except the following ; namely, that he lived to see himself the happy parent of a numerous offspring in his two sons, Ephraim and Manasseh, even to the third generation ; during which time, it is reasonable to suppose, he continued in high favor with his prince, and in a consider- able employment under him. When Joseph grew old, and found his death approaching, he sent for his brethren, and, with the like prophetic spirit that his father Jacob had done, told them that God, according to his promise, would not fail bringing their posterity out of Egypt into the land of Canaan. At the same time he made them swear, that when it should please God thus to visit them, they should not forget to carry his remains with them, that they might be deposited in the burial-place of his ancestors. The pious Joseph, having thus bound his brethren by oath to convey his remains to his native land, soon after departed this life, in the one hundred and tenth year 01 his age. In compliance with the injunction laid, his brethren had the body im- mediately embalmed, put into a coffin, and carefully secured, till the time should come when the prediction was to be fulfilled of their leaving Egypt, and possessing the land of Canaan. Thus have we finished the life of the great patriarch Joseph, who is certainly one of the most distinguished characters to be met with either in sacred or profane his- * Tins place is supposed to have been situated about two leagues from Jericho, on the other side of th« Jordan, and about fifty miles from Hebron HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 135 ioG AN ILLUSTRATED tory. To enliven what has already been said of him, we shall conclude t'nis chapter with some general reflections and observations on the whole of his conduct ; and like- wise point out some of the most distinguished writers, whose accounts of him justly corroborate that given by the sacred historian. It is observable that Moses is more diifuse on the history of Joseph, than on that of any other of the patriarchs: indeed, the whole is a master-piece of history: there is not only in the manner throughout such a happy, though uncommon mixture of simplicity and grandeur (which is a double character so hard to be united as is sel- dom met with in compositions merely human), but it is likewise related with the greatest variety of tender and affecting circumstances, which would afford matter for reflections useful for the conduct of almost every part and stage of the life of man. Consider him in whatever point of view or in whatever light you will, he must appear amiable and excellent, worthy of imitation, and claiming the highest applause. You see him spoken of in the sacred books with the highest honor; as a person greatly in the favor of God, and protected by him wherever he went, even in so ex- traordinary a manner as to become the observation of others, — as one of the strictest fidelity in every trust committed to him, — of the most exemplary chastity and honor, that no solicitation* could overcome, — of the most fixed reverence for God, in the midst of all the coriuptions of an idolatrous court and kingdom, — of the noblest reso- lution and fortitude, that the strongest temptations could never subdue, — of such ad- mirable sagacity, wisdom, and prudence, that made even a prince and his nobles consider him as under divine inspiration, — of that indefatigable industry and diligence which made him successful in the most arduous attempts, — of the most generous compassion and forgiveness of spirit, that the most malicious and cruel injuries could never Aveaken or destroy, — as the preserver of Egypt and the neighboring nations, and as the stay and support of his own father and family, — as one patient and hum- ble in adversity, — moderate in the use of power and the height of prosperity, — faith- ful as a servant, dutiful as a son, affectionate as a brother, and just and generous as a ruler over the people ; — in a word, as one of the best and most finished characters, and as an instance of the most exemplary piety and strictest virtue. CHAPTER VIII. LIFE AND MISSION OP MOSES — DEPARTURE FROM EGYPT. The distinguished happiness which the descendant" of Jacob had possessed during the power invested in their great protector Joseph, was, after his death, materially interrupted by the accession of a new king to the throne of Egypt. This monarch beheld, with a jealous eye, not only the prosperity, but also the great increase, of the Israelites, and began to fear that, in case of an invasion, they might possibly take part with the enemy, and thereby divest him of his regal dignity. In consequence of these conjectures Pharaoh summoned a council of his principal nobility, to whom he stated the absolute necessity of taking some measures to lessen not only the power, but also the great increase of the Israelites, who wre to be con- sidered as strangers in the land where they now dwelt, and, in time, might be preju- dicial to the public weal. The council agreed in opinion with the king; upon which it was resolved not only to impose heavy taxes on them, but to confine them likewise to the hard labor of bearing burdens, digging clay, making bricks, and building strong fortresses in differ- ent parts of the kingdom ; by means of which their spirits would be sunk, their bodies empoverished, and the great increase that had for some time taken place among them in a great measure stopped.* Ko sooner was this resolution formed than it was carried into execution. The wretched Israelites were set about the laborious employ to which they were assigned, and that they might not be negligent in the execution of their business, taskmaster; were set over them, whose natural dispositions were so cruel, that they did all in their power to make their lives truly miserable. * hi our engraving on the previous page the woman in the foreground is employed in baking bread at the very usual kind of oven — a hole in the ground. The other women are weaving. Both are the principal employments of women among the pastoral tribes, and were such among the Hebrews. It will be remem tered that the hangings for the tabernacle were woven by 'he women, in the wilderness. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 137 Urn such was the goodness of God in behalf of the poor Israelites, that Pharaoh's project was far from succeeding to his wishes; for the more they were oppressed, the more they multiplied. This so aggravated the king, and increased his jealousy to such a degree, that, in order to obtain his purposes, he hit upon another expedient. He sent for two of the most eminent of the Egyptian midwives (whose names were Shiprah and Puah), to whom he gave a strict charge, that whenever they were called to do their office to any Hebrew woman, if the child were a male they should pri- vately strangle it, but if a female, they might let it live. The midwives, touched with the cruelty of this injunction, and fully satisfied in their minds that it was better to obey God than man, paid no regard to Pharaoh's orders, but saved both male and female alike. Irritated at their disobedience, the king sent for them, and reprimanded them for their conduct in very severe terms; but they excused themselves by telling him that the Hebrew women were so much stronger in dxsii constitutions than the Egyptians, and so lively, that they were gen- erally delivered before they could reach them. The judicious as well as humane conduct of the Egyptian midwives was very ac- ceptable to God ; but Pharaoh was highly incensed against them, considering the excuse they made as a mere evasion. He therefore determined not to trust them any longer, but to try another expedient, which might more effectively answer the intended purposes, and totally extirpate the whole male race of the Hebrews. To accomplish this end, he issued out an edict,* commanding that every male born among the Israelites should be thrown into the river and drowned, but that all the females should be saved. It is not to be wondered at that so barbarous an edict should greatly afflict the already distressed Israelites, and that they should concert various methods whereby they might secure their offspring from the consequences of so inhuman a decree. That methods of this nature were used, will appear from the following circum- stances. Some years before this cruel edict was published, one Amram, of the house of Levi, married a woman named Jochebed, of the same tribe. The first child they had was a daughter, whom they called Miriam, and about four years after she was delivered of a son, whom they named Aaron. In the time of this cruel persecution jrichebed was delivered of another son, who being a child of most exquisite beauty, she was particularly anxious for the preservation of its life. In hopes of accomplishing her wishes, she concealed the child in her house for three months ;f but, not being able to secrete him any longer, and fearful that he would fall into the hands of those appointed to drown the male children, she at length re-olved to commit him to the Providence of God. Accordingly, having made a little ark or boat of rushes,! and well plastered it, both within and without, with pitch or bitumen, she put the child into it, and going privately down the river, left it among the flags by the bank, placing his sister Miriam at a proper distance to observe the event. But the Providence of God soon interposed in behalf of the helpless infant. A short time after the mother had left it, Pharaoh's daughter, || attended by the maids 01 * It is the opinion of most commentators, and the learned in general, that this inhuman edict was so ab- horred by the Egyptians, that 1hey scarce ever put it in execution ; and that it was recalled immediatel) aftisr the death of the king who enacted it; which time Eusebius and others place in the fourth year aftei the birth of Moses. t Josephus, in speaking of this circumstance, relates the following story: "That Amram, finding his wife with child, and fearing the consequences of the king's edict, prayed earnestly to God to put an end to that dreadful persecution ; and that God appeared to him and told him, that he would, in due time, free his peo- ple from it, and that the son, who shortly would be born unto turn, should prove the happy instrument of their glorious deliverance, and thereby eternise his own name." That this made him conceal him as long as he could, but fearing a discovery, he resolved to trust him to the care of Providence, arguing to this ef- fect : that if the child could be concealed (as it was very difficult to do and hazardous to attempt) they must be in danger every moment, but as to the power and veracity of God, he did not doubt of it, but was assured, that whatever he had promised he would certainly make good ; and with this trust and persuasion he was resolved to expose him. t Though his ark, or boat, is said to have been made with rushes, it is most probable that it was formed with rlajs of the tree papyrus, of which the Egyptians made their paper, and which grew particularly on the banks of the Nile. Clemens Alexandnnus expressly says, that the vessel was made of papyrus, the product of the country : and his assertion is confirmed by several other profane writers. i| Josephus calls this princess Thurmuthis ; and from him Philo, who adds, that she was the king's only daughter and heir ; and that being some time married without having issue, she pretended to be big wiln child, and to be delivered of Moses, whom she owned as her natural sen. That he was esteemed so is evident, from what the Apostle to the Hebrews says, namely, " That when Moses was grown up, he scorn d to be ihousrht the son of Pharaoh's daughter." See Heb. xi. 94. 138 AN ILLUSTRATED honor, came to the river to bathe herself, and seeing the basket at some distance, she ordered one of her attendants to go and bring it out of the flags. Her orders were immediately obeyed, upon which, no sooner did she uncover the child than it made its mourning complaint to her in a flood of tears. This circumstance, joined to the extraordinary beauty of the infant, so moved her heart with companion, that (notwithstanding she perctived it was one of those children whom her father, in his edict, had ordered to be drowned) she determined to preserve it. and declared her mtention of having it brought up under her direction. By this time Miriam, the child's sister, had mixed herself with the attendants of 'he princess, and observing with what tenderness she looked upon he<- brother, and at the same time hearing her intimate her desire of procuring a prop-r nursp for it, she very officiously offered her service to procure one. The prince?? accepted this offer, and ordered her to go immediately and bring the person with her, and *he would waii her return. Accordingly, the girl hastened with all expedition to the mother, and soon bringing her to the place, the princess delivered ibe child into her hands, ordering her to take the utmost :are of it. and at the same time told her. that whatever expenses attended the rearing of it. she would defray. This, no doubt, was a welcome bargain to the mother, who, taking the child home with her, nursed i; openly, her fears being removed by having a royal protection for its security. "When the child was of a proper age, his mother took him to court, in order to show him to the princess. The graces of his person, joined to the beautiful vet noble simplicity of his countenance, so engaged her attention, that she adopted him as her own son, and gave him the name of Moses. 4 That he might be perfectly accom- plished, she kept him constantly at court, where he was instructed in all the learning and discipline, both civil and military, used among the Egyptians, and in every other respect treated in a manner becoming the dignity f a prince of the blood. t Moses continued to live in Pharaoh's court till he arrived at the age of maturity, when he resolved to leave it, and associate himself with his persecuted brethren the Israelites. Observing their wre T ched state of servility, and the cruel manner in which they were treated by their merciless taskmasters, he was greatly affected; and to such a degree was his indignation raised, that, seeing one day an Egypt's- 1 treat a Hebrew in a very cruel manner, he immediately stepped up to his assistance, and, not perceiving any person near, slew him, and buried his body in the sand.} As he was walking out the next day he met with two Hebrews, in strong contest with each other; upon which he admonished them to consider that they were breth- ren, and endeavored to decide the quarrel between them. But he who was t.: : as- gressor, instead of listening to his advice, treated it with contempt, and upbraided him with having been guilty of murder in killing an Egyptian. Moses (little suspecting that any one had seen the transactions of the preceding day) was greatly alarmed at this circumstance, being apprehensive as it was known by one, it would circulate from him among the multitude, and that it could not be lon reasonably suppose that the Egyptian whom Moses slew, through indignation at his brethren's wroiisrs. was one of the task-masters. It has been questioned how far this action of Moses was justifiable. Le Clerc observes, that, as the Egyptian king authorized the oppression of the Israelites, it was rra e-w : app.y to hirn for redress of their grevances. The civil magistrate, who ought to have protects innocence, was himself become the oppressor, and. consequently, the society, being degenerated into a confederacy, in oppression and injustice, it was as lawful to use private force and resistance, as against a band of robbers and cut-throats. However, we are to remember, that the Divine hand was in all tnis : and that thus the way was preparing for the grand deliverance of Israel from Egyptian oppression : -.a is supposed to be 'hat pari of Arabia Petnea. which bordered on the laud of Goshen, and whose metropolis (called Petrea) was situated not far from Mount Iloreb. It is generally agreed that the people it this country originated from Midian. the fourth son of Abraham by Keturah, from wnom they ww - aa didiaii'tes HISTORY OF THE BIBLh. 139 This was the happy spot where majesty, guarded only by rural innocence, submit- ted to the humble office of a shepherd, and a crook, instead of a sceptre, graced the hand of the peaceful monarch. Here Jethro (the principal man of the country), in quality both of prince and priest, enjoyed the blessings of a quiet reign, and whose daughters (laying aside the distinction of their birth) took more delight in the inno- cent employment of tending their father's flocks, than in all the gayeties of a luxuri- ous court. In the plains of Midian was a well to which it was common for all the neighboring people to drive their flocks to water. Moses, having reached this spot, and being greatly fatigued, after quenching his thirst with the water, sat himself down to rest. He had not been lon^ here before the seven daughters of Jethro came to draw water for their flocks; but they had no sooner filled their vessels than some rude shep- herds, who came on the like errand, being resolved to have their turn first served, violently seized on the water drawn by the damsels, and thereby greatly frightened them. Moses, disapproving of such ill conduct in the men, interposed in behalf of the women, and, obliging the shepherds to retire, drew more water for them, and gave it to their flocks. The damsels, in the most engaging manner, made their acknowledgments to him for his services, after which they took leave and hastened home. Jethro expressed great surprise at the quickness of his daughters' return; upon which they informed him that they had met with a stranger at the well, who not only assisted them, but likewise protected them from the insults of several rustics, who had forcibly taken from them the water they had drawn for their cattle. After hearing this story, and not seeing the person who had thus gallantly defended them, Jethro reprehended his daughters for being guilty of ingratitude and incivility, and asked what had become of the generous stranger. They answered they had left nim at the well, upon which he ordered them immediately to return, and invite him home. The daughters obeyed their father's command, and Moses being introduced into the house of Jethro, he treated him with every mark of the most distinguished re- spect. And so pleased was Moses with the courteous reception he met with, that, after a short time, he expressed his willingness to take up his abode with him and become his shepherd. Jethro very readily accepted this proposal, and, to attach Moses the more strongly to his interest, gave him his daughter Zipporah in mar- riage. By this wife he had two sons, the eldest of whom he called Gershom, which signifies a " stranger," alluding to his own condition in that country. The younger he called Eliezar, which signifies " God is my help," in grateful acknowledg- ment of God's having delivered him from the hands of Pharaoh. After Moses had been some few years in Jethro's family, the king of Egypt, who was upon the throne at the time he left the country, died ; but this was not produc- tive of the least benefit to the persecuted Israelites ; his successor was no less a tyrant than himself, and their miseries, instead of being mitigated, were daily in- creased. At length their complaints reached heaven; the Almighty, remembering the covenant which he had made with their forefathers, looked upon them with an eye of compassion ; and having resolved, in his secret providence, to make Moses the principal instrument in bringing about their deliverance, he began to prepare him for so distinguished an undertaking. As Moses was one day attending his father-in-law's sheep, they happened to stray much farther than usual, upon which he followed them as far into the desert as Mount Horeb. He had no sooner arrived here than the angel of the Lord appeared to him in a flame of fire out of the midst of a bush. So uncommon a sight greatly startled Moses, but what increased his astonishment was the continuance of the bush unconsumed, notwithstanding it appeared to be wholly encompassed with flames. After reflecting some time on this extraordinary circumstance, Moses resolved to approach nearer the bush, in order, if possible, to discover the cause of its seeming tc burn, and yet appearing not to be in the least damaged. But the Almighty, to pre- vent his irreverent approaches, and to strike the greater awe and sense of the divine presence into him, called out of the bush, and forbade him drawing near; and, to make him still more sensible of the sacredness of the place, commanded him to take oThis sandals, because the ground on which he stood was holy. Moses immediate J y obeyed the divine order, upon which the Almighty discovered UO AN ILLUSTRATED hm.self to him in these words: "I am i he God of thy lather, the God of Abraham the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob." The frightened Moses was struck nritli such reverence of the divine Majesty, and fear of the effects of his presumption, thai he immediately fell on the ground and covered his face, being unable to sustain the relulgency of the divine presence. When Moses had a little recovered himself, the Almighty, in words to this effect, addressed him : " I have seen." said he. " the affliction of my people which are in Egypt, and have heard their cry by reason of their taskmasters: for I know their sorrows. And I am come down to deliver them out of the hand of their oppressors. ind to conduct them to the promised land, a land flowing with milk and honey. Thee have I chosen to be the instrument in this great work : therefore be of good courage, for I will send thee to Pharaoh, to demand liberty of him for my people the children of Israel." Moses had long laid aside all thoughts of attempting to rescue his brethren, the Israelites, from their thraldom ; nor had he any opinion of his own abilities, should he make the attempt, to succeed in so difficult an undertaking. Wherefore, when the Almighty proposed the thing to him. he endeavored to excuse himself, bv urging his meanness and insufficiency to take upon him the character of a divine ambassa- dor. " Who am I." said he, "that I should go unto Pharaoh, and that I should bring forth the children of Israel out of Egypt?" But this difficulty the Almighty removed, by assuring him that he would be with him, and assist him in every step he took ; that he would enable him. however perplexed and arduous the task, to accomplish it ; and for a token of his veracity herein, told him that within a small compass of time he should see those very people, who were now in slavery, set free and worshipping him 0:1 that very mountain. Still unwilling to undertake the task, Moses desired to know what he should say to the people, and by what name he Was to call the person who sent him on the message. To which the Almighty replied, that he should tell him it was an eternal, independent, self-existing Being, the God of Abraham. Isaac, and Jacob, by which name he had ever gone, and by which he would continue to go, to all eternity. He then ordered him to go into Egypt, where, on his arrival, he should first assemble together the chief of the Israelites, and acquaint them with his business : afrer which he should go directlv to the king, and demand of him their liberty, at least for three days, that they might retire into the wilderness, in order to sacrifice to their God. This request, he told Moses, the king would not at first grant, but in the end he would be glad to consent, when he should see the divine power displayed in a vari- ety of miracles which would take place on sundry occasions. " I will exert myself/ said he, " in many miraculous operations on him and his subjects, and at last he shall permit you to depart : but you shall not go away empty, for ye shall be loaded with the spoils of the Esryptians." It might be thought that such solemn assurances, even from the mouth of God himself, would have been sufficient to have gained a ready compliance ; but Moses, either from the ideas he entertained of the difficulty of the enterprise, or from diffi- dence of his own abilities, was still desirous of declining the task, and objected, that when he came into Egypt the people would probably doubt his word, and consider 'aim as an impostor. This objection God immediately removed by showing him a miracle. Asking him what he had in his hand, he replied, a rod; upon which the Almighty ordered him to throw it on the ground, which he had no sooner done than it was immediately turned into a serpent. Moses, frightened at this sudden change of his rod. attempted to run away ; but God. to encourage him, bid him take it up by the tail, which he had no sooner done than it resumed its former shape: and to convince him, at the same time, that he should not want credit with the Israelites, he gave him a com- mission to perform the same miracle before them when he should get into Egypt. Still farther to remove Moses's scruples, the Almighty was pleased to give him another instance of his great and distinguished power. He ordered him to put his hand into his bosom, which he accordingly did, and on pulling it out, it was covered ■ all over with leprosy. He then told him to put his hand into his bosom a^ain, which he likewise did. and on taking it out the leprosy was gone, and it became as clean as at first. This miracle he likewise commissioned Moses to show the Israelites; and moreover, to 3rm him sufficientlv bevond all doubt, he was pleased to empower HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. l4 j him with a third miracle. " If," says he, " they will not believe these two former, thou shalt take of the water of the river, and pour it upon dry land, and the water shall become blood." Notwithstanding these solemn and repeated assurances of the Divine aid, favor, and protection, Moses still endeavored to waive the important office, urging as a farther plea that he wanted eloquence, the great qualification of an ambassador; and that since God had condescended to talk to him, he was much more deficient in his speech than before. But this obstacle the Almighty was likewise pleased to remove, by jtutting Moses in mind of his omnipotence. " Who," said he, "hath made man's mouth ? or who maketh the dumb, or deaf, or the seeing, or the blind ? have not 1 the Lord ? Now therefore go, and I will be with thy mouth, and teach thee what thou shalt say." Hitherto Moses had some shadow of pretence for his unwillingness to go into Egypt ; bui now, all his objections being answered, he, in very plain terms desired to be excused from the enterprise, and begged of God that he would be pleased to appoint some other person in his stead. So long as Moses had anything to plead in excuse for not going, God heard him patiently, and graciously condescended to remove his doubts; but, when all this was done, and he at length gave an absoluie refusal, the Almighty was greatly displeased, though at the same time he did not display any instance of his resentment. On the contrary, he resumed Moses's last objection (which he had already answered in general), and showed him, in a more particular manner, how he should supply that defect: "Is nor," said he, "Aaron, the Levite, thy brother? He is eloquent,* and I will appoint him to meet thee. Tell him what I have said; and be assured that I will always assist you both, and direct you what to say. He shall be the orator, and thou shalt be to him instead of God. And to strengthen thy commission, and give thee credit among thy people, take this rod in thy hand, for with it shalt thou be enabled to perform many miracles." Every obstacle being removed, and the most evincing demonstrations of a miracu- lous power, together with the protection of Divine Providence, given to Moses, he was at length prevailed on to accept the commission. He accordingly went first to his father-in-law, Jeihro, and, without telling him the occasion, requested permission to go and visit his brethren, who were then in 'he land of Egypt. Jethro readily consenied to Moses's request ; upon which, taking his wife and children with him, he proceeded on his journey. He had not, however, gone far, when an angel appeared to him, and with a stern countenance, and flaming sword in his hand, threatened to kill him, because, either from the persuasions of his wife or from his own neglect, he had not yet circumcised his younger son Eliezar. As soon as Zipporah understood the cause of the Divine displeasure, she immediately took an instrument made of a sharp flint, and with it circumcised the child ; which being done, the angry vision, after giving signs that God was appeased, disappeared.! While Moses was on his journey to Egypt, Aaron, by a Divine revelation, was informed thereof, and ordered to go and meet him in the wilderness. Aaron obeyed the Divine command, and met his brother at a small distance from Mount Horeb. After mutual embraces and endearments, Moses opened to him the purport of his commission, the instructions he had received from God, and the miraculous works he was empowered to perform. * Moses excelled in wisdom and conduct ; Aaron, his brother, in eloquence. Such is the wise order of Providence, which has dispensed different gifts to different persons, that they may each he assisting to one another, and knit more firmly the bind of society ! Thus Polydamus in Homer, Iliad 13, tells Hector, God gives to different men different accomplishments: "To some the powers of bloody war belong, To some sweet music, and the charm of son?; To few, and wondrous i'^w, h«s God assigned A wise, extensive, all-considering mind." — Pope. t The best interpretation that can be given of this extraordinary circumstance is. that Moses having deferred the circumcision of his youngest son (perhaps in compliance to his wife), God was peculiarly offended with him (or such neglect; not only because Moses knew that no child could be admitted a member of the Jewish community, nor be entitled to the blessings of God's covenant with those people, without circumcision; but also because his example was of the greatest consequence : for who would have regarded the law, if the law. giver himself had neglected it? Zipporah, therefore, conscious of her husband's danger, as well as of her own negligence, immediately performed the office herself; in consequence of which the cause being removed. God's anger also ceased ; and he suffered Moses to pursue his journey. Zipporah is supposed to have p, ;r formed the office, because Moses was in too great a consternation to do it himself 142 AN ILLUSTRATED The two brothers, being thus joined in the same commission (though Moses wa& the sovereign), repaired with all expedition to Egypt. Immediately on their arrival they called an assembly of the chief elders of the Israelites, to whom Aaron declared the'message which God had sent by Moses; while the latter, to confirm the truth of his divine mission, wrought the several miracles which God had appointed in the presence of the whole assembly. In consequence of this, they all appeared fully convinced that he was a true prophet come from the God of their fathers, who had at length commiserated their afflictions, and sent him now to deliver them from their bondage ; and, with this persuasion, they all knelt down and worshipped God. A few days after this, Moses and Aaron went to Pharaoh's court, and, having obtained admission to the king, requested of him that he would permit the Israelites to go three days' journey into the wilderness, in order to perform a solemn service to the Lord their God. But the haughty tyrant not only refused complying with their request, but most impiously arraigned the divine prerogative, and called in question the existence of the only wise and true God in these presumptuous words : " Who is the Lord, that I should obey his voice to let Israel go ? I know not the L,urd, neither will I let Israel go." Pharaoh suspected that the Israelites had a design of revolting from nis service, and that they had been laying schemes to get out of his dominions. This to him was an argument that they had too much leisure time from business, and that the most effectual way to check their contrivances would be to curtail their vacant hours ; he therefore ordered greater tasks and more work to be laid on them. He repri- manded Moses and Aaron for going among the people and interrupting them in their employments ; and strictly charged the task-masters not to allow them any more straw, and yet to exact the same tale of bricks from them without abatement. The task-masters acquainted their under-officers with this severe injunction, who immediately communicated it to the people, and they were accordingly forced to wander about the country to seek for straw, the task-masters, at the same time, exacting from them their usual numoer of bricks; and when they were unable to perform their task, the under-officers, who were Israelites, and whom the task-mas- ters had set over them, were called to account and punished. Not knowing whence this unreasonable severity proceeded, whether from the royal edict or the rigor of the task-masters, the under-officers addressed the king himself, and, in the most humble manner, laid their grievances before him. But so far were they from receiving any redress, that the answer returned them was — that ' the king would have his edict fully executed, and insisted on having their full number of bricks, though he was resolved* not to allow them any straw." This answer greatly afflicted the poor Israelites, insomuch that they were almost driven to despair. On their return from the king they r happened to meet Moses and Aaron, and supposing them to be the cause of the additional burden laid on them, expressed their grief and resentment in words to this effect: "That they had taken rare to infuse an odium into the king against them, and given him a plausible handle r o destroy them, which they wished to God might fall on their own heads." These bitter expressions greatly afflicted Moses, who, retiring to a private place, addressed himself to God in this humble expostulation : " Why," said he, " Lord, nast thou thus afflicted the people ? For since I spoke to Pharaoh in thy name, he hath treated them with more severity than before, and they are more unlikely to br delivered than ever." The great concern Moses had for the oppression of the Israelites was certainly tht cause of his forgetting the promise which God had given him, as also what he had foretold relative to the perverseness of Pharaoh. But, notwithstanding this, the Almighty was pleased to give him fresh assurances of his divine intentions of removing the Israelites from the state of bondage: "I am the Lord," said he, "the Almighty God, that appeared unto Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob. Was I not known to them by my name Jehovah ? Be assured that I the Lord, who made a covenant with them to give their posterity the land of Canaan, have heard their complaints and remembered my promise. Therefore, say thus to the children of Israel, I am Jehovah, who exist only of myself, and give existence to all beings. Tell them I will deliver them from the Egyptian slavery' , with the power of my Almighty arm, and inflict heavy judgments on them that oppress them. Nor will I only deliver you all trom this bondage, but I will take you under my immediate protection : ve shall be HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 143 my people, and I will be your God. I am Jehovah, the Lord, that promiseth this, and that can and will do it." Encouraged by this gracious and divine declaration, Moses immediately repaired to the Israelites, to whom he delivered his message as God had commanded. But such was, their affliction of mind, in consequence of the increase of their servitude, and which they attributed to have arisen from him, that they paid no attention to what he said. They were prejudiced against him, and rather looked upon him as an enemy ilr»:i as one who was desirous of procuring their enlargement. The Almighty, fully resolved to pursue the ends of his Providence, again com- manded Moses to go to the king of Egypt and demand the liberty of the Israelites. Having been so roughly dismissed from Pharaoh's presence before, and so unkindly rejected by the Israelites, Moses endeavored to decline the errand by drawing an argument from each circumstance : " Since," says he, " the children of Israel, thine own people, would not hear me, though what I offered was so much to their advan- tage, how can I expect that so wicked a prince as Pharaoh is should pay any atten- tion to so insignificant a person* as I am, and in a matter so much to his loss ?" To remove this objection, the Almighty was pleased to address himself to Moses in words to this effect : " Consider," said he, " I have made thee as a Godf to Pharaoh and Aaron, thy brother, shall be thy interpreter, or orator. Thou shalt tell him all that I have commanded thee, and ye shall demand of Pharaoh the deliverance of my people. And that thou niayest not be discouraged by a repulse, as before, take notice that Pharaoh shall give no credit to what thou sayest, that I may thereby show my power and wonders to him and his people, and deliver the children of Israel by the strength of my hand. For since Pharaoh has begun to harden his heart in con- temptuously treating me and abusing my people, I will now permit him to go on in his obstinate humor, that I may exert my power in miraculous operations in the land of Egypt Therefore, when ye come into Pharaoh's presence, and he shall demand a miracle of you, to convince him of the truth of your mission, thou shalt direct Aaron to cast his rod on the ground before Pharaoh, and it shall be turned into a serpent." In consequence of these instructions, Moses and Aaron went again to the king, and repeated their demand of his dismissing the Israelites. Pharaoh desired them to show him some miracle, whereby he might be induced to believe, that the God, of whom they had so much spoken, had really sent for them. Upon this Aaron threw down his rod, which had no sooner touched the ground, than it was changed into a living serpent. Though Pharaoh was somewhat surprised at this incident, yet he was determined, if possible, to make it appear of no great importance. To effect this, he sent for his principal magicians, whom he ordered to try, if, by their magical arts, they couid cause the like transmigration. They obeyed the king's commands, and, to his great satisfaction, their attempts succeeded. They threw down their rods, which were im- mediately changed into serpents, only with this remarkable circumstance, that Aaron's rod swallowed up (while in the figure of a serpent) all those of the magicians, after which it resumed its accustomed form. It might have been supposed, that this would have been sufficient to have convinced the proud monarch of the superior power of the God of Israel ; but his heart was so averse to the thoughts of parting with the Hebrews, that it did not in the least affect him. As this miracle made no impression on the obstinate tyrant, the Almighty resolved to make use of more forcible scourges, and to afflict the Egyptians with such a suc- * It is remarkable, that in the text Moses here calls himself an uncircumcised person, or rather a man whose lips had not been circumcised. See Exod. vi. 12. By this we are to understand, that lie meant no more than that he was not possessed of that fluency of speech which was necessary on so important an oc- casion. The word circumnstd is phraseologically used by the Hebrews on several occasions, as when they call any one uncircumcised in heart, mind, or tongue, they wean no more than that the person spoken of is not so perfect in these particulars as might be wished. Besides, as circumcision was the first and greatest sacrament among them, so uncircumcision was esteemed the greatest scandal and disgrace. The phrase *,heretore, naturally and clearly expresses the humble opinion Moses had for himself, his unfitness for such an office, and his inability to persuade or prevail with so haughty a monarch as Pharaoh. t The word here translated a God, signifies a prince, a counsellor, or governor; and as Moses was to work many wonders in the land of Egypt, so there is no doubt but Pharaoh would look upon him as a person endued with supernatural power. It was then beginning to grow common with the heathen nations, particu- larly the Egyptians, to rank their great men among the number of their gods ; and, therefore, when the Lord here speaks to Moses, he does not say that he made him an object of worship, but only that he would end«n him witn so much power, that the Egyptians would look upon him as a Gcd. l44 an illustrated cession of plagues as should compel them to dismiss the long-enslaved Israelite? Having observed to Moses, that Pharaoh's heart was hardened, he ordered him to take the rod, which had been turned into a serpent, and (in company with his brother Aaron) to throw himself in the way of Pharaoh, at his usual time of coming to the banks of the river Nile. That as soon as he saw the king, he should again "demand of him the liberty of the Israelites ; and that if he still continued obstinate, as a far- ther sign that they were messengers from God, he should give the rod to Aaron, who, by striking it on the water, should immediately change it into blood. In obedience to the divine command, Moses, at the time appointed, went to the bank of the river, soon after which the king arriving, he accosted him in words to this effect : " That he was sent from the Almighty God of the Hebrews, to demand the release of the Israelites, and that if he did not comply with his request, but still remained obstinate, his God should not only afflict him for his perverseness, but bring down the most heavy judgments on his people." The infidel prince, regardless of the order of God, by these two appointed mission- aries, still persisted in his resolution (so little did the first miracle operate on his mind) of detaining the Israelites, and continuing them in their wretched state of bondage. Finding all remonstrances in vain, Moses delivered his rod to Aaron, who, striking the water with it, as God had commanded him, it changed into blood, and so continued for the space of seven days, by means of which the fish were suffocated, and the inhabitants compelled to dig for water to allay their thirst. As it was known that Moses received his education among the Egyptians, Pharaoh concluded, that all this was performed by magic skill. Wherefore, calling for his magicians, he put them upon the like trial ; who, taking some water out of the wells they had dug, so artfully changed its color, as to make it appear like blood. Though this was but a delusion, yet Pharaoh was satisfied in his own mind that what Moses and Aaron had dune was aot the effect of any supernatural power, but a mere trick of art; and therefore still resolved not to permit the departure of the Israelites. But the Almighty was pleased to display still farther miracles before this impious and obstinate tyrant. When the seven days were expired, and the waters had re- sumed their natural qualities, Moses, at the command of God, accosted Pharaoh again, aud renewed his solicitations for the delivery of the Israelites, threatening, on his re- fusal, to bring upon the land such prodigious numbers of frogs, as should visit him and his subjects in their most private recesses. Pharaoh, regardless of these threats, defied him ; upon which Moses ordered Aaron to take his rod, and stretch forth his hand with it over the rivers, which in an instant affected all the waters of Egypt, that, not waiting for the slow productions of nature, the animated streams unburdened themselves upon the land in shoals of frogs, which immediately invaded all parts of the country, and infested even the royal palace itself.* The obstinate and perverse king had again recourse to his magicians, who, by their mimic power, so deluded Pharaoh as to make him believe they had wrought the like miracle. This hardened his heart for a time; but the loathsome plague continuing, and pursuing his people wherever they went, he was at length forced to apply to Moses and Aaron, to whom he promised that the Israelites should have their liberty, provided their God would remove so infestuous a plague. " Entreat ihe Lord," said he, " that he may take away the frogs from me, and from my people ; and I will let the people go that they may do sacrifice unto the Lord." Moses demanded the time when this should be put to an issue, upon which the next day was conjunctively agreed on. Accordingly, Moses, in order to fulfil his part of the contract, after leaving Pharaoh, retired to a private place, and, addressing himself to God, humbly besought him to remove the plague of the frogs from the laud of Egypt. The Almighty was pleased to listen to Moses's solicitations: the frogs soon died, which the people gathered together in heaps ; but they were so numerous, that before they could be removed, the scent, which was exceeding obnoxious, spread it- self throughout the whole country. * This plague of the frogs, as well as that of the water being changed into blood, was excellently adapted to subvert the superstitions of Egypt, and to demonstrate the over-ruling power of the Almighty , for as the Dank ol the river Nile was the grand scene of the magjcal operations of the Egyptians, in which bloi»i and frogs made a principal part of the apparatus ; so, by commanding that rive to produce such an infinite mul- titude of these creatures to annoy them, God, with wonderful propriety, adapted their chastisement to the nature of their crimes: for frogs were not only the instruments of their abominations, but likewise the em blenu ■> those impure demons whom they invoked by their incantations HISTORY" OF THE BIBLE. 145 10 146 AxN ILLUSTRATED As Moses had now fulfilled his part of the contract, he naturally expected thai Pharaoh would have performed his; but the impious monarch, vainly imagining that the artillerv of divine vengeance was now exhausted, unfaithfully broke his word. nnd still refused to let the Israelites depart. This breach of promise so offended the Almighty, that he resolved to treat the haughty tyrant in a more severe manner than he had hitherto done. As yet God had given him previous notice of the judgments he intended to denounce, that he mighi have the opportunity of escaping them; but now, without giving him the least inti- mation of his design, he commanded "Moses to direct Aaron to stretch out his rod, and strike the dust with it, that it might become lice throughout all the land of Egypt. Aaron had no sooner obeyed the divine command, than the animated dust was imme- diately turned into swarms of vermin, which not only infested the human species, bur also the beasts of the field. Pharaoh again had recourse to his magicians, who (though they had faintly imitated the former plagues) now attempted this in vain: they owned their art outdone, and acknowledged this to be the inimitable work of a divine hand. But notwithstanding this, Pharaoh's heart was so hardened, that he would not pay the least attention to the solicitations of Moses ; upon which the Almighty was pleased to give him another summons, in words to this effect : " Rise up," says he to Moses, " early in the morning, and meet Pharaoh as he comes to the river : tell him, Thus saith the Lord : let my people go, that they may serve me, or I will send swarms of Hies upon thee and thy people, which shall fill their houses, and cover the face of the earth. And that thou may est know, that this is brought as a judgment upon thee and thy subjects, for oppressing my people, I will, on that day, separate the land of Go- shen, in which my servants dwell, from the rest of Egypt, that the Hies shall not mo- lest them." Moses, in conformity to the divine command, delivered this message to Pharaoh, whose obstinacy and perverseness were so great, that he still refused the Israelites to depart. In consequence of this, the next day, clouds of swarming insects filled the air, which in numberless troops descended to the earth, and, with their unusual noise, surprised and affrighted the wretched inhabitants. All attempts to remove this dread- ful calamity proved vain and fruitless ; their most private recesses could not secure them from the poisonous stings of these obnoxious animals, and a succession of pain- ful misery invaded them on all sides. The magicians beheld, with confusion, ibis direful plague, and no more attempted to offer any imitation. A general horror was spread throughout the whole country, and every part echoed with the cries of tortured men and cattle. Not being able longer to endure this dreadful calamity, and finding no likelihood of its being removed, the obstinate Pharaoh sent for Moses and Aaron, and, in a s^illen dissatisfied tone, bade them go and sacriSce to their God ; but with this injunction, that they should not pass beyond Lhe bounds of Egypt. He was desirous of obtaining relief, but, at the same time, was unwilling to part with a people, from whose slavery he had reaped such great advantage. Being a stranger to the true God, he did not conceive that the Israelites could not acceptably sacrifice to their God while under Egyptian bondage. Moses, desirous of convincing rather than inflaming, the infidel prince, prudently answered : " We can not sacrifice to our God in this land, for that would be an affront to the Egyptians,* and they will be revenged on us. Permit us, therefore, to avoid their resentment, by going three days' journey into the wilderness, where we can sac- rifice to our God in the manner he hath commanded." In reply to this, the haughty monarch said, " If nothing else will serve you but tc go into the desert. I will let you go ; but remember, it must not be far. And in re- turn for this concession, I desire you will entreat your God to remove the plague." Moses promised to intercede for him, but at the same time cautioned him to be sin- cere in what he said, and not violate his engagements as he had before done. Leav- ing Pharaoh, Moses retired to a proper place, where he addressed himself to God, be- • The meaning of this expression is, that the animals which they were to sacrifice to the Lord, being those which were worshipped by the Egyptians, it would be such an affront and abomination to them, as Aould endanger the lives of the Israelites. Herodotus tells us, that the Egyptians esteemed it a profana- lion to sacrifice any kind of cattle except swine, bulls, ca'ves. and geese ; and that heifers, rams, and goats (the usual sacrifices of the Israelites;, were, by them, held sacred. It is, therefore, no wonder that tnc Israelites should wish to offei up their sacrifices in a place detached from the sight of the Egyptians, iustlv suspecting, that had they not, it might have been attended with fatal consequences HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 147 seecnmg him to remove the plague of the flies. His prayers were accordingly heard, and the insects soon took their flight. But this obstacle was no sooner removed, than the haughty tyrant reassumed his former obstinacy, and peremptorily forbid the Is- raelites worshipping their God in the way and manner he had directed. This additional provocation so incensed the Almighty against Pharaoh, that he again sent Moses to him with this message : " Tell him," said he, " Thus saith the God of the Hebrews, let my people go, that they may serve me, or be assured I will visit all thy cattle that are in the field with a grievous murrain; and to make thee still more sensible of my Omnipotence, I will, by a wonderful distinction, preserve the cattle of my people, while I destroy those of the Egyptians." Pharaoh paid no more attention to this message than he had done to the former, in consequence of which, the very next day, this awful threat was most severely exe- cuted. The generous horse loathed his full manger and loved pastures, and sunk be- neath his rider ; tke ass and camel could no longer support their burdens, or bear their own weight; the laboring ox fell dead before the plough; the harmless sheep died bleating, and the faithful dogs lay gasping by them. Though this was certainly a most horrid spectacle, yet it made not the least im- pression on the hardened Pharaoh, who still resolved to brave Heaven with his impi- ous perverseness. Remembering what Moses had said of the preservation of the Is- raelites' cattle, he sent to Goshen to learn how it had fared with them, and was assured that not one of their cattle had died, or received the least infection. This circumstance was certainly sufficient to have convinced him that it was no casualty, but a direct judgment upon him, seeing that it exactly answered the divine prediction. But not- withstanding this, his heart was so callous, that he still preserved the resolution of not suffering the Israelites to depart. These means proving ineffectual, the Almighty, in order to make some impression on the mind of this impious monarch, determined to afflict him and his people with a plague, and that without giving him the least notice of his intentions. He accoru- ingly commanded Moses and Aaron to take ashes of the furnace, and throw them into the air in the presence of Pharaoh. This was accordingly done, upon which the ashes soon spread the dire contagion, and the tainted air infected the Egyptian blood with its pernicious influence. The most inveterate biles and ulcers appeared on their flesh, and their whole constitution became a noisome spring of sores. So universal was this plague, that even the magicians (who, it is probable, would willingly have once more tried their skill) were affected, and that in such manner, that they dared not appear in public. Pharaoh's obstinacy, which before proceeded from an implacable hatred to the chosen people of God, now arose from the mere hardness of his heart, and notwith- standing he must be sensible that the present plague was the immediate effect of a divine and supernatural direction, yet he continued firm in his resolution of detaining the Israelites. But the Almighty, determined to make some impression on him, ren dered the very powers of Heaven subservient to his divine purpose, giving this charge to his servant Moses : " Go," says he, " early in the morning, to the king of Egypt, and tell him, that I, the God of the Hebrews, demand the liberty of my people, that 'hey may worship me; which, if he refuse, he may be assured that I will shower my plagues upon him and his people ; and I will make him know that I am the only God on earth. Say farther to him : If, when lately I smote the cattle with a murrain, I had smitten thee and thy people with pestilence, thou hadst been cut off from the earth. But I have reserved thee to show my power, and by the judgments I shall in- flict will I make known my name to all the world. Oppress not, nor detain my peo- ple ; for if thou dost, to-morrow, by this time, unless thou submitteth thyself, I will send such a storm of hail from heaven upon Egvpt as never wns known since it has been a nation. And that thou mayest not lose what cattle the murrain left, which being not in the field escaped that plague, send thy servants, and let them drive them under shelter ; for upon every man and beast, which shall be found in the field, the storm shall fall, and they shall surelv die." So careless, as Avell as impious, was Pharaoh, that even this declaration would not make him submit, though his own life, as well as those of his people, was in immi- nent danger. But some of them, who had been witnesses of the dreadful wrath of God, made a prudent use of the divine caution, and, housing their cattle in time, they were preserved from the general destruction. 148 AN ILLUSTRATED The appointed time being come, Moses, in obedience to the divine command. .vavcd his rod in the air, which soon began to rrurmur in imperfect sounds, till the full charged clouds, with impetuous force, burst and discharged themselves in such horrid peals of thunder, as to shake the whole frame of nature. This was succeeded by a stormy shower of hail, which covered the ground with the scattered remains of trees and houses, and the dead bodies of men and beasts. Nor did the divine vengeance stop here: the heavens discharged a body of liquid fire, which, darting on the ground, glided over the waters, and filled every place with the most dreadful horror. The haughty tyrant began now to be impressed with those sensations to which he had hitherto been a stranger. Seeing all nature, as he imagined, ready to dissolve, he melted into penitence, and, sending for Moses and Aaron, confessed himself guilty. " 1 have sinned this time," said he; " the Lord is righteous, and I and my people are wicked. Entreat the Lord that there be no more mighty thunderings and hail ; and 1 will let you go, and ye shall stay no longer." Moses promised to comply with this request, but at the same time assured him, he knew there was no sincerity in his heart ; and that his seeming repentance was only the effect of his fright. Moses, however, in conformity to his promise, addressed himself to the Almighty beseeching him to remove the plague ; which was no sooner done, than his prediction was verified : for, when Pharaoh found the storm was ceased, and all was calm and serene, his fears totally vanished, his perverseness returned, and he resolved still tc keep the Israelites in a state of bondage. The Almighty was now pleased to make another trial, and to send his servant Mo- ses to apprize the haughty and perfidious tyrant of his intentions. The message he delivered to Moses was prefaced by his reasons (as, indeed, he had done before) why he permitted Pharaoh to continue in his obstinacy; the substance of which, togethei with the message itself, was to this effect : " I have," says he, " hardened Pharaoh's heart, and the hearts of his servants, that I may show these my wonders before them, and that thou mayest tell, in the hearing of thy sons, and the Israelites to succeeding generations, what prodigies I have wrought in Egy r pt, that ye may all know that I am the Lord, the Almighty Jehovah. Wherefore, go to Pharaoh, and tell him, Thus saith the Lord God of the Hebrews, Why dost thou persist in thy obstinacy ? Let my peo- ple go, that they may serve me, or I will bring the locusts into thy land to-morrow, which shall come in such swarms, as to cover the surface of the earth, and devour all tne products of it that have escaped the former plagues. And this shall prove such n plague as none of thy predecessors ever saw." This message Moses carefully delivered to Pharaoh in the presence of his nobles, and, not receiving any answer to it, he retired. As soon as he was gone, Pharaoh's courtiers, still sensibly impressed with the late calamities, and fearful that he was about to call down more plagues upon them, very roughly accosted their king, desiring him to let the Israelites go and serve their God, lest, for his obstinacy, not only him- ^if, but also the whoJe people of his kingdom, should be total! v destroyed. The importunity of Pharaoh's courtiers prevailed more than God's ihieats and judg- ments. He immediately despatched a messenger afrer Moses and Aaron, who ac- cordingly returning, he told them they might go and serve their God ; but under this limitation, that it should only be the men, forUiat all the women and children should be left behind. This, however, would not do for Moses : he insisted that all the Is- raelites should go, both old and young, sons and daughters ; nay, and their flocks and herds ; " for," said he, " we must hold a feast to the Lord, and all must be at it." Pharaoh considered this demand as not only peremptory, but insolent : he therefore bade them look to it, and consider well what they insisted on ; after which, in a very threatening manner, he dismissed them. This repulse occasioned another judgment to be inflicted on the miserable subjects of an infidel king; for Moses, by the divine command, stretched out his hand, with the rod in it, and immediately a scorching wind blew all that day and the succeeding night; the consequence of which was, the next morning there appeared endless le- gions of locusts, which, in a short time, so devoured the fruits of the earth, that it became, as it were, quite naked: the happy productions arising from the fertile Nile, and all that bountiful nature afforded, were carried off by these airy pillagers, and nothing appeared but horror and desolation throughout the land of Egypt. The hardened Pharaoh was more sensibly affected at this plague, than he had been at any of the former. He plainly saw that the destruction of the fruits of the earth HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 149 must be succeeded by the destruction of man and beast. Wherefore, sending for Moses and Aaron, he, in a more suppliant manner, addressed them in words to this effect : " I have, indeed, offended Jehovah your God, in refusing to obey his command, and you, in so often breaking my word with you : forgive me this offence, and entreat your God to avert this judgment, that I and my people perish not by devouring famine." Moses, once more compassionating the case of the justly afflicted king, addressed himself to the Almighty in his behalf, and the locusts, by the force of a strong westerly wind, were driven into the Red sea. But this plague was no sooner removed than Pharaoh's obstinacy and contempt of God's commands returned, and he again refused the departure of the Israelites. All these methods to reduce Pharaoh to an obedience of the Divine commanu proving ineffectual, the Almighty commanded Moses to stretch forth his hand toward heaven, that there might be a universal darkness, such as before had never been known, throughout the land of Egypt. Moses obeyed the Divine command, immediately on which such solid and thick clouds of darkness invaded the sky, that nature seemed at once to be involved in one dreadful eclipse : the sun no longer enlightened the lower world with his cheerful beams ; the moon, with the stars, no more illuminated the air ; and so dismal was the aspect of all things, that nature appeared as if about to return to her original chaos. This dreadful scene of horror lasted three days, and the haughty Pharaoh was so affected at it, that though he had long stood immoveable against the threats and judgments of God, yet he now, fearing a universal dissolution, and frightened at the continual terror of this long night, began seriously to relent, and sending for Moses, thus addressed him : — " Ye may go," said he, " with your little ones, and serve the Lord ; but, for my security, I would have you leave your flocks and herds behind." But this not being absolutely consistent with the Divine command, Moses would not accept it. He told Pharaoh that it was the express command of their God to remove with all their substance ; and that they knew not in what manner they were to offer sacrifice to their God, nor should they "till they came into the wilderness. The haughty tyrant, incensed at the non-compliance of Moses to what he esteemed a distinguished indulgence, commanded him to be gone, and, with great austerity, told him if he ever appeared before him again, it should cost him his life. Moses promised Pharaoh he should never again see his face ; but, by the Divine command, he once more visited him, and that with a message more severe than any he had yet delivered. " Tell him," says the Almighty to Moses, " in the hearing of his people, Thus saith the Lord, About midnight will I go out into the midst of Egypt. And all the first-born in the land of Egypt shall die, from the first-born of Pharaoh that sitteth upon his throne, even unto the first-born of the female servant that is behind the mill;* and all the first-born of beasts. And there shall be a great cry throughout all the land of Egypt, such as was never before, nor shall be again. But the children of Israel shall not be in the least affected, that ye may know the distinction made by the Lord between you and them. And all thy servants shall come down unto me, saying, Get thee out, and all the people that follow thee ; and after that will I go out myself." Moses delivered this messao-j to Pharaoh in the manner he had been commanded. But the haughty tyrant defied his threats, and still persisted in his obsiinacy that the Israelites should not depart from Egypt ; upon which Moses, finding him inflexible, turned away and left him. Previous to the carrying of this last sentence into execution, the Almighty instructed Moses and Aaron in what manner to direct the people to prepare the passcver, which * It was usual lor the lowest slaves to be employed in the drudgery of the n.ill ; and therefore the prophet Isaiah uses this idea, to express the abject state of slavery to which Babylon should be reduced : " Come- down, and sit in the dust, O virgin daughter of Babylon : sit on the ground, take the mill-stones and grind meal." Isaiah lvii. 1, 2. Dr. Shaw observes, that most families in those countries still grind their wheal and barley at home, having two portable mill-stones for that j.arpose ; the uppermost whereof is turned round by a small handle of wood, or iron, which is placed in the nm. When the stone is large, or expedi- tion is required, then a second person is called in to assist ; and, it is usual for the women alone to be con« oerned in this emplovment, who seat themselves over against each other, with the mill-stones between them. We may see not only the propriety of the expression in this verse, of sitting behind the mil/, hut tin- force of another. Matt. xxiv. 41, that "Two women shaM be grinding at the mill; the one shall be fakeu and the other left.'* lou AN ILLUSTRATED was to be a feast in commemoration of their departure out of Egypt, and was to be neld on the day preceding that event.* The directions which, by the Divine com- mand, Moses gave to the people on this occasion, were to the following effect : that every family of Israel (or, if the family was too small, two neighboring families joining together) should, on the tenthf day of the month, take a lamb, or kid, and having shut it up till he fourteenth day, then kill it. That the lamb, or kid, should be a male not above a year old, and without any manner of blemish : that, when they killed it, they should catch the blood in a vessel, and, with a bunch of hyssop dipped in it, sprinkle the side posts of the outer door, after which they should not stir out of the house till the next morning. In the meantime, they were to eat the lamb, or kid (dressed whole and without breaking a bone of it), neither raw nor sodden, but roasted, with unleavened bread and bitter herbs ; that if there was more than they could dispense with, they were to bury it; and, lastly, that the posture in which they were to eat it was to be in a hurry, with their clothes* on their shoulders and their staves in their hands, as if they were just upon the point of going to depa r t. The tremendous night was not long delayed. While the Jews were celebrating this newly instituted feast — at midnight — the destroying angel Avent forth in a pesti- lence, and smote all the first-born in the land of Egypt, — "from the first-born of Phar- aoh, that sat on his throne, to the first-born of the captive that lay in the dungeon ; and all the first-born of cattle." And there was a great cry in Egypt — lamentation and bitter weeping — for there was not a house in which there was not one dead. The effect of this dreadful blow was exactly such as Moses had foretold. The king, his nobles, and the Egyptian people, rose in sorrow from their beds that night. The shrieks of the living, with the groans of those about to die, breaking in upon the still- ness of the night — the darkness of which must greatly have aggravated the horror and confusion of that hour— made the people fancy they were all doomed to destruc- tion, and that the work of death would not cease till they had all perished. The king himself was filled with horror and alarm. Without truly repenting his obduracy, he bitterly lamented its effects. It appeared to him that the only method of arresting the progress of the destruction was to send the Hebrews instantly away — in the fear that every moment they tarried would prove the loss of a thousand lives to Egypt. He therefore sent to Moses and Aaron by that very night — that hour — to tell them, "Gel you forth from among my people, both ye and the children of Israel ; and go and serve the Lord as ye said; take also your flocks and herds, and begone ; and bless me also." And the Egyptian people also, says the scriptural narrative, were urgent upon them, to semi them away in haste ; for they said, " We are all dead men." In their anxiety to get them off, lest every moment of their stay should prove the last to themselves or those dear to them, the Egyptians would have done anything to satisfy and oblige them. This favorable disposition had been foreseen from the beginning, and the He- brews had been instructed by Moses to take advantage of it, by borrowing ornaments of precious metal — " Jewels of gold and jewels of silver," with rich dresses, from the Egyptians. On the principle that, " all that a man hath he will give for his life," there can be no doubt but that, under circumstances which made them consider their own lives in jeopardy, and when the losses they had sustained were calculated to make their finery seem of small value in their sight, the Egyptians were quite as ready to * These directions given by the Almighty to Moses are introduced by the following passage : " This month shall be unto you the beginning of months ; it shall be the first day of the first month of the year to you." The Jews, like most other nations, began their year, before this event, about the autumnal equinox, in the month Tifri after their harvest and vintage : but that which was their first month, now became their seventh ; as the month of Abib, which answers principally to our March, was, by God's appointment, and in commemoration of this their deliverance, constituted the first month of their sacred year. Abib signi- fies the green corn; and the month was so named, because, about this time, the corn in those countries be- gan to ripen, t The pissover, or feast was to be celebrated on the fourteenth day of the month, so that four days were allowed previous to its being held. In after-times the Jews did not begin their preparations till the thir- teenth, or the day preceding the passover : but here, they are ordered to prepare on the tenth day of the month, not only because this being the first time of the celebration of the passover, they might require more time to prepare for a ceremony entirely new, but because, being to depart from Egypt suddenly, and in great haste, they might be perfectly ready, and have no hinderance to make them neglect any part of the duty enjoined. X These clothes were slight thin garments, resembling those which the Arabs now wear, and which the) call hijkes. " These hykes," says Dr. Shaw, "are of various sizes, and of different qualities and fineness The usual size of them is six yards long and two broad. It serves them for a complete dress in the day ; and, as they sleep in their raiments, as the Israelites did of old (Deut. xxiv. 13) it serves likewise for tlieu bed and covering at night." HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 161 152 AN ILLUSTRATED 'end as the Helnews to borrow. The women also were authorized to borrow from the Egyptian females : and we may easily believe that their exertions added much to the large amount of valuable property which was extracted from the fears ui the Egyptians. With whatever understanding these valuable articles were given and re- ceived, the ultimate effect is, that in this final settlement, the Hebrews received some- thing like wages — though, as such, inadequate — for the long services they had ren- dered to the Egyptians.* So eager were the Egyptians to get them off, that, between persuasions, bribery, and gentle compulsion, the whole body had commenced its march before daybreak, although it was not till midnight that the first-born had been slain. They had "no time even to bake the bread for which the dough was ready; and they were, therefore, obliged to leave it in their dough bags, which they carried away, wrapped up in their clothes, with the view of preparing their bread when an opportunity might be offered by their first halt. Hurried as they were, they forgot not the bones of Joseph, which they had kept at hand, and now bore away with them. On they marched, driving before them their cattle and their beasts of burden, laden with their moveables and tents ; and themselves, some, doubtless, riding on camels, some on asses ; but, from the great number of these required for the women and the children, most of the men doubtless marched on foot. Thus, laden with the spoils of Egypt, they went on their way rejoicing, leaving the Egyptians to the things which belong to mourning and the grave. We are told that the number of the Israelites who on this eventful night com- menced their march was " about six hundred thousand men on foot, besides women and children." The description of " men on foot" denotes, as elsewhere appears, men fit to bear arms, excluding therefore not only those who are too yomig, but those who are too old for such service. As this prime class of the community is usually in the proportion of one fourth of the whole population, the result would give nearly two miLions and a half as the number of the posterity of Jacob. This number is so very high, that it has seemed incredible to maay. We must confess, that it is difficult to realize the presence of so vast a host, with their flocks and herds, and to form an idea of the immense area they would cover, were only standing-room given to them, much more where encamped under tents ; — and when we further consider the length and breadth of their moving body on a march, as well as the quantities of water they would require, we may be tempted to conclude that a much smaller number would amply justify the promises of God, and would render many circumstances in the en- suing portion of their history more easy to be understood. Besides this, the ancient manner of notation afforded temptations and facilities for the corruption of numbers, whence it happens that the most disputed texts of Scripture, and those in which, as the copies now stand, there are palpable contradictions, are those which contain nu- merical statements. We are not insensible to these considerations, and have endeav- ored to assign them all the weight which they are entitled to bear. But seeing thai the present number, high as it is, has some support from collateral evidence, and from * The "Borrowed" Jewels.— Much learning and labor have been bestowed on explanations of tlii> transaction. The most general improvement which has been suggested is, that we should assign the sense of "ask," or "demand," to the word which most versions translate into "borrow:" and the meaning will then be, that the Hebrews availed themselves of the consternation in which they saw the Egyptians, to de- mand these valuable articles, in compensation for the long service they had rendered, in this explanation one little circumstance is forgotten, which is, the probability that these precious articles were obtained from persons who had never any direct benefit from, or interest in, their services. It seems to us that not so much as is commonly supposed :s gained by this alteration. We prefer to adhere to the more received view of the case ; because that seems more in agreement with all the circumstances which surround the transaction. The explanation proceeds on the notion that the Israelites had avowed their intention to es cape ; for, had it been presumed that they intended to return, it would have been a piece of the grossest and most fatal madness in them to "demand" this valuable property from the Egyptians in a compulsory man ner. But their intention to withdraw altogether was never avowed while they were in Egypt. Moses never avowed it. Even when rather closely pressed on the subject, he persisted, at least by implication, that there was no other object than that of holding a feast to Jehovah at the distance of three days' journey into the wilderness, and the ulterior intention was not distinctly avowed by the move which was madt from " Etham on the edge of the wilderness." This, therefore, only being the avowed object of the Israe. ites, it must have seemed perfectly natural to the Egyptians that they should wish to appear as richly attired as possible at the great feast they were about to celebrate ; and as natural, that they should borrow such articles as they, in their state of bondage and poverty, did not possess. The consternation they were in ai the death of their first-born, and their haste to get the Hebrews away, precluded mucli deliberation. Bui oy the time the Israelites moved from Etham there had been leisure for reflection, and they manilested then sense that the substance with which they parted on that occasion had only been lent, ly the haste wlucli tliev ma.lt to recover it, as soon as they became assured that the Hebrews intended to escape. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 153 Departure from Egypt. the considerations to which we have already adverted, and. above all, reflecting that the present number is a positive circumstance, whereas all alteration could only be conjec- tural,* we deem it the best and safest course to take the number as we find it in the pres- ent copies of the Pentateuch. But besides the descendants of Jacob, there was a large " mixed multitude," which went out of Egypt on this occasion. Who they were is not clearly stated ; but it would appear that the mass was formed of foreign slaves, belong- ing to the principal persons among the He- brews, with a good number, probably, be- longing to the Egyptians, who were glad to lake the opportunity of escaping with the Israelites. Besides this, there were mani- festly a considerable number of Egyptians of the poorer class, who perhaps expected to better their condition in some way, or had other very good reasons for leaving Egypt : indeed, as it did not turn oat that the Israel- ites were anything the better for their pres- ence, we are free to confess that we think it likely they were chiefly such thieves, vaga- bonds, adventurers, and debtors, as could no longer stay safely in Egypt. The circumstance that Moses was so well acquainted with the number of the Israelites before they left Egypt, intimates that an ac- count of their numbers had not long before been taken by the Egyptians. That ingeni- " So conjectural that while some strike off one cipher. (educing 600,000 to 60,000, others are not content without taking off two, thus reaching the certainty to the very convenient and manageable number of 6,000 Another conjecture lias been that the 600,000 includes all the population, and n/it merelv the men fit to bear arms; but this is precluded bv the terms of the text. 1 '■••sides women and rliilmcr. " 154 AN ILLUSTRATED ous people einpioyed very early, if ihey did not invent, the practice of taking -* census of what is called the effective part of the population ; and from them, unquestionably, the Israelites, under the direction of Moses, adopted this useful custom. In all such enumerations, in ancient times, the women and children were not included, and theii number is never stated. But probably they were able to form an estimate of the pro- portion which the numbered part of the population bore to the whole; although their conclusions in this matter must have been more uncertain than our own, which have been found on repeated actual enumerations of portions of the entire population which were never included in the ancient enumerations. The point from which the Hebrew host started on their march was Rameses, one of the " treasure cities" which they had built for Pharaoh in the land of Goshen, and which seems to have become the chief place in the territory they occupied. The difficulties in tracing their march begin at the very first stage. There are two preliminary questions, satisfactory information on which would much assist us in understanding the early part of their journey. The first is, the situation of Rameses, frcm which they started; and the second, the point to which their journey was, in the first instance, directed. On the first point no very satisfac- tory information can be obtained. It is, indeed, not quite clear that any "particular locality is intended, or whether the land of Goshen, in the large indefinite'sense, may not be denoted by " the land of Rameses.'" But some information is reflected upon the first by the answer to the second of these questions, which answer is, that the destination which was in the first instance contemplated, was doubtless the wilder- ness of Sinai. The land of Goshen appears most evidently to have bordered on, if it did not include, part of the tract over which the nearest and most convenient road to the peninsula of Sinai from the banks of the Nile has always passed. This is nearly the line in which, in after ages, a canal was made connecting the Kile with the Gulf of Suez ; and that, while it is the nearest route, it is the only one which offers a sup- ply of water, is a consideration which doubtless as much recommended it in ancient times to those going from Egypt to Sinai or Arabia, as it does now recommend it to the great caravan of pilgrimage which yearly journeys from Cairo to Mecca. The route of this caravan is the same, as far as the head of the Gulf of Suez, as one would take which proceeds to the Desert of Sinai. We shall therefore presume that this was the route taken. If the Hebrews were to have gone direct to take possession of the Promised Land, their nearest road would have been " by the way of the Philistines ;" that is, by the usual route from Egypt to Gaza. But the Philistines were unquestionably the most powerful and warlike people then in Palestine, and there was already some ill blood between them and the Israelites, and would be likely to offer a most formidable op- position to them at the v~ry first step of their progress. The Hebrews were in fact altogether unfit to face such enemies, or any enemies whatever: they were not yet even fit to be a nation; and therefore, histead of being at once led to their promised heritage, it was the divine will that they should be conducted into the desert, there to be trained, disciplined, and instructed, so as to fit them for their future destinies. Moses knew that their first destination was the wilderness of Sinai; for when the Lord appeared to him in Horeb, it was announced that the bondaged children o^ Abraham should be brought to worship God in that very mountain. The Hebrews left Rameses and proceeded on their way. And now it appeared that the Lord provided against their going astray, by placing a miraculous column of cloud to go before them by day and mark out their road ; while by night it became a column of fire, and gave light to all the camp. This was important, also, as evin- cing that Moses was not acting by his own authority, and that, however highly he was entitled to their confidence and respect, they had a more unerring Guide and a more exalted Protector. Their first day's journey brought them to Succoth. We relinquish the notion which we once entertained that Succoth may have been at or near the place (Birket el Hadj, or Pilgrim's Pool) where the great pilgrim caravan encamps and makes its final arrangements for its journey. We think it, upon the Avhole, more likely that the point from which the Hebrews departed in the first instance may have been ir that neighborhood. Succoth, therefore, must be sought somewhere about a day's journey in the direction toward Suez. The name denotes tents or booths, and \i \s HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 155 hMiiii lis. \\k\ 156 AN ILLUSTRATED useless to seek its site, as the name appears only to denote a place where caiavans passing that way usually encamped. Their next resting-place of which we are told was "Etham, on the edge of the wilderness." But in this, as in other cases, we are not to suppose that the places which are named are the only places at which they rested; and in the present in- stance the distance may suggest that this Etham was the third rather than the second encampment. The halting-places of caravans are in these desert regions so much determined by the presence of wells, that, in connexion with the circumstance of its being situated " on the edge of the wilderness," there is not much difficulty in con- cluding that Etham is represented by the modern Adjeroud, which forms the third stage of the pilgrim's caravan, and where there is an old fortress, a small village, and copious well of indifferent water. This place is about eleven miles to the northwest of Suez. The neighborhood seems indeed to be on the edge of the wilderness: for what M. du Bois-Ayme says of Bir-Suez (which he identifies with Etham) is true also of Adjeroud, that, in effect, it appears to be toward the extremity of the desert: for hence the sea is seen to make a bend to the west, and by joining the high chain of Mount Attaka to terminate the desert to the south. The journey to this point had been for the most part over a desert, the surface of which is composed of hard gravel, often strewed with pebbles. They had now arrived near the head of the Red sea, and also, as Ave suppose, ai the limit of the three days' journey into the wilderness for which they had applied. It is therefore evident that their next move must decide their future course, and con- vey to the Egyptians a clear and decisive intimation of their intentions. If they designed to do as they had all along declared to be their only wish, they would stay at this place, and proceed to celebrate the feast to Jehovah, of which so much had been said: but, if they intended to escape altogether, they would resume their jour- ney, and, passing by the head of the Red sea, strike off into the desert. And here God, who knew that the king of Egypt had so far recovered his consternation that he was determined to pursue and drive them back, if they made any move indicating an intention to escape, directed a move which must have been most unexpected to all parties, and which could not to any indifferent spectator have seemed tiie result of the most gross and fatal infatuation. About the head of the Gulf of Suez a desert plain extends for ten or twelve miles to the west and north of the city of that name. On the west this plain is bounded by the chain of Attaka, which comes down toward the sea in a northeasterly direc- tion. Opposite Suez this chain is seen at a considerable distance, but, as we advance southward, the mountains rapidly approach the sea, and proportionately contract the breadth of the valley; and the chain terminates at the sea, and seems, in the distant view, to shut up the valley at Ras-el-Attaka, or Cape Attaka, twelve miles below Suez. But, on approaching this point, ample room is found to pass beyond ; and on passing beyond we find ourselves in a broad alluvial plain, forming the mouth of the valley of Bedea. This plain is on the other or southern side nearly shut up by the termination of another chain of these mountains, which extend between the Nile and the western shore of the Red sea. Any further progress in this direction would be impossible to a large army, especially when encumbered with flocks and herds, and with women, children, and baggage; and this from the manner in which the rocks, the promontories, and the cliffs advance on the western shore. And, besides, any advance in this direction would be suicidal to a body desiring to escape from Egypt, as they would have the Red sea between them and Arabia Proper, and could only get involved among the plains and valleys which separate the mountain chains of Egyptian Arabia. The valley of Bedea, which opens to the Red sea in the broad plain to which we have brought the reader, narrows as it proceeds westward toward the Nile. It forms a fine roadway between the valley of the Nile and the Red sea, and, as such, has in all ages been one of the most frequented routes in all the country, being traversed by ail parties and caravans which desire to proceed from the neighborhood of Cairo, 01 places to the south of Cairo, to Suez, or to places lying beyond the head of the gulf. Now, the Hebrew host being at Etham, and their next step thence being of tlu utmost importance they were directed, not — as might obviously have been expected — to pass round the head of the gulf into the Sinai peninsula, but to proceed south- ward, between the mountains of Attaka and the western shore of the gulf, and, aftei HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 15; ■■;% ■V w|||||$ 158 AN ILLUSTRATED passing the Ras-cl-Attaka, to encamp in the plain into which the valley of Bedea opens. The more thoroughly any one makes himself acquainted with the topogra- phy of this region, the more obvious and reasonable, we are persuaded, will seem tu him this explanation of the text — " Turn and encamp before Pi-ha-hiroth [the mouth of the ridge], between Migdol and the sea, over against Baal-zephon: before it ve shall encamp by the sea." As the names Migdol and Baal-zephon are not now recognisable anywhere about the head of the gulf,* no facts or inferences can he de- duced from them; but an important confirmation is derived from the circumstance that we are told that, in consequence of the move which was made, the Hebrew host were shut up between the sea and the mountains, without any means of escape, unless through the sea, when the retreat in the rear was cut off. Many have thought they found cause to wonder at this extraordinary movement, which placed the Hebrews in a position of such inextricable difficulty, forgetting that this was the very purpose of God, that the prospect of an extraordinary advantage might tempt the Egyptians on to their own destruction, and bring them within the reach of those agencies by which God intended to act against them. The wonder which the reader may feel is exactly the wonder which the king of Egypt felt, anc 4 by which he was led on to his ruin. The movement was made ; and the thousands of Israel encamped in the plain of Bedea. The days which had passed had given the Egyptians time to recover from some portion of their panic ; and their first feeling of unmixed horror and alarm gave place to considerable resentment and regret, on the king's part, that he had so suddenly conceded all the points which had been contested between him and Moses, and had allowed them all to depart ; and as for his subjects, such of them as had a profitable interest in the labors of the Israelites would, to some extent, join in the king's feel- ings, as soon as their bondsmen took any course to intimate that they intended to escape ; and the same intimation would not fail to alarm those who had " lent" to the Hebrews their "jewels of silver and jewels of gold," and who by this time had found leisure to think that they had too easily parted with their wealth. Thus i« seems that the course which the Israelites might take after their arrival at Etham was regarded with much anxiety by the Egyptians, who took care to be informed of all their movements. When, therefore, the king heard not only that they had taken a decisive move from Etham, but, through some astonishing infatuation, had so moved as to become " entangled in the land," and " shut in by the wilderness," he hastened to avail him- self of the extraordinary advantage which they had placed in his hands. " He made ready his chariot, and took his people with him." He mustered not less than six hundred chariots, which are said to be " all the [war] chariots of Egypt." This is in correspondence with the sculptures, which show that the Egyptians made great use in war of such chariots as our engraving exhibits. A large body of infantryi was also assembled,- and the pursuit commenced. Their light, unencumbered ms.ch was no doubt much more quickly performed than that of the Israelites to the same place. One of the citations in Eusebius from the lost history of Manetho, the Egyptian priest, says: " The Heliopolitans relate that the king with a great army, accompanied by the sacred animals, pursued after the Jews, who had carried off with them the sub- stance of the Egyptians"\ This takes notice, of two facts not mentioned by Moses, but not at all disagreeing with his statement, namely, that, for their protection against the God of Israel, the Egyptians took with them their sacred animals, by which means the Lord executed judgment upon the [bestial] gods of Egypt, as had been foretold (Exod. xii. 12) ; and then that to recover the substance which the Hebrews nad "borrowed" was one of the objects of the pursuit. We do not agree with those who think that the king of Egypt came upon the * Mizdol was probably a tower, as the name imports, and may seem to have been on the mountains which hem in the valley. Baal-zephon, meaning the Northern Baal or Lord, would seem to have been a town or temple situated somewhere in the plain of Medea, or over against it on the eastern shore of the sea. t These must be intended by "his army." as distinguished from his " chariots and horsemen " Our engra- ving, (p. 161 ) composed from Egyptian sculptures and paintings, shows Egyptian soldiers with the equipments and°arnis of different corps. Tiie man in the foreground with the round'studded shield is. however, not an Egyptian, but belongs to a nation, the soldiers ofwhich are often seen righting as auxiliaries along with those of Egypt. A native Egyptian soldier, if he has any shield, lias it round at the upper end and squr>'« at the lower. The charioteer in the background is known to be a king by his head dres* t • P-td. Evang." lib x. cap. 27. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 159 L60 AN ILLUSTRATED encamped Hebrews through the valley of Bedea, in the plain at the mouth of which they were encamped. As he was so glad to find how they had "entangled them- selves in the land,' 1 he was not likely to take a course which would deprive him of all the advantages derivable from their apparent oversight. This he would do bv coming upon them through the valley of Bedea; for this would have left open t'c them the alternative of escaping from their position by the way they entered: whereas, by coming the same way they had come, he shut up that door of escape, and, if they fled before him, left them no other visible resource but to march up the valley of Bedea, back to Egypt, before the Egyptian troops. That this was really the advantage to himself which the king saw in their position, and that it was his object to drive them before him back to Egypt through this valley, or to destroy them if they offered to resist, we have not the least doubt ; and it is unlikely that he" would take any road but that which would enable him to secure these benefits. The Egyptians, being satisfied that they had secured their prey, and that it wa- impossible for their fugitive bondsmen to escape but by returning to Egypt, were in no haste to assail them. They were also, themselves, probably wearied by their rapid march. They therefore encamped for the night — for it was toward evening when they arrived — intending, probably, to give effect to their intentions in the morning. As for the Israelites, the sight of their old oppressors struck them with terror. There was no faith or spirit in them. They knew not how to value their newly- found liberty. They deplored the rash adventure in which they had engaged ; and tneir servile minds looked back with regret and envy upon the enslaved condition which they had so lately deplored. Moses knew them well enough not to be sur- prised that they assailed him as the author of all the calamities to which they were now exposed. " Is it because there Avere no graves in Eswpt," said they, " that thou hast taken us away to die in the wilderness? Is not this the word that we did tell thee in Egypt, saying, Let us alone, that we may serve the Egyptians ? For it had oeen better for us to serve the Egyptians than to die in the wilderness." This is one specimen of a mode of feeling and character among this spiritless and perverse people of which Moses had seen something already, and of which he had soon occa- sion to see much more. One might be disposed to judge of their feelings the more leniently, attributing them to the essential operation of personal slavery in enslaving '.he mind, by debasing its higher tones of feeling and character, did we not know that the same characteristics of mind and temper constantly broke out among this remark able people very long after the generation which knew the slavery of Egypt had passed awsy. Moses did not deign to remonstrate with them or to vindicate himself. It seems that the Divine intention had been previously' intimated to him; for he answered, with that usual emphasis'of expression which makes it a pleasure to transcribe his words: "Fear ye not: stand still, and see the salvation of the Lord, which he will show to you this day: for the Egyptians whom ye have seen to-day ye shall see no more again for ever. The Lord shall fight for you, and ye shall hold your peace." They were pacified by this for the present; but there is good reason to suspect, that if measures of relief had long been delaved, they would have giver, up Moses and Aaron io the Egvptians, and have placed themselves at their disposal. But measures jf relief were not long delayed. When the night was fully come, the Lord directed Moses to order the people to march forward to the sea; on their arriving at wmich. ihe prophet lifted up his rod upon the waters, over which instantly blew a powerful east wind, by which they Avere divided from shore to shore, so that the firm bottom ol hard sand appeared; offering a dry road in the midst of the sea, by Avhich they might pass to the eastern shore. At that instant, al=o, the pillar of fire which had gone before the HebreAvs to guide them on their Avay was removed to their rear, and, being thus betAveen them and the Egyptians, it gave light to the former in their passage, Avhile it concealed their proceedings and persons from the latter.* It thus happened that some time passed before the Egyptians disco\ r ered that the Israelites Avere in motion. When they made this discovery, the king determined to * According to a well-known optical effect, by which we can see by night all that stands between us and he light, but nothing that lies beyond the li^ht. No doubt the piliar gave good light to the Egyptians them- selves, but did not enable them to see the Israelites. In like manner the Israelites, doubtless, could no! *ee the Egyptians. A little attention to a matter so perfectly obvious would have spared us some spot uln tions. such as ttat which gives the pillar a cloudv side and a flaming side. < a VI if \l L w tfi o a } * if H 1 \* S P 14. Paschal Lamb killed. 15. Passover. 16. First-fruits of barley harvest presented to the LORD. 21. Last day of the Passover. Zif, or Iyar, 1 Kings vi. 1. April. 2d. 8th. Sivan, Est. viii. 9. May. 3d. 9th. 6. Pentecost. First-fruits of wheal offered to the LORD. Tammuz, Ezek. viii. 14. June. 4th. 10th. Ab. July. 5th. 11th. Elul. Neh. vi. 15. August. 6th. 12th. 9. Solomon's Temple taken by the Chaldeans ; and the sec- ond Temple afterward by the Romans. Ethanim, or Tisri, 1 Kings viii. 2. September. 7th. 1st. 1. Feast of Trumpets. 10. Day of Atonement. 15. Feast of Tabernacles 22. Last day of the feast Marchesvan, or Bui, 1 Kings vi. 38. October. 8th. 2d. Chisleu, Zech. vii. 1. November. 9th. 3d. 25. Feast of the Dedication of the second Temple. Tebeth, Est. ii. 16. December. 10th. 4th. Sebat, Zech. i. 7. January. 11th. 5th | Adar, j Est. iii. 7. Ve-Adar, 1 or Second Adar, is here added when necessary February 12th. 6th. 14 and 15. Feast of Purim, Est. ix. 18-21. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 17D Costume of the High Priest. 180 AN ILLUSTRATED atler the departure of the Israelites from Egypt, the tahernacle was, by God's imme- diate command, set up, and all its rich furniture disposed in the proper places that had been appointed. But no sooner was this done, than the pillar of the cloud (which is called the Glory of the Lord) covered the whole, so that Moses himself, foi some time, was not able to enter it. The Almighty, at length, promising Moses to enter the tabernacle, gave him in- structions (which he communicated to th* 1 people) in what manner (according to this new institution) he was to be worshipped by sacrifices and oblations ; what festivals were to be observed, and how celebrated; what meats were foroidden ; what the in- stances ol" uncleanness were ; and what the degrees of consanguinity prohibited in marriage. The creatures appointed to be offered in sacrifice were of five sorts, namely, oxen, lambs, goats, doves, and young pigeons, all of which were to be males and without blemish. The person who presented the offering was to do it at the altar, laying his two hands on the head of the creature, and then cutting its throat. The blood Avas to be received in a basin, and with it the priest was to sprinkle the vessels and cor- ners of the altar, throwing the principal part at the foot of it. The victim was to he flayed, cut in pieces, and laid on the altar, where, either the whole, or some part of it (according to the several sorts of sacrifice), was to be burnt. Libations were likewise added to the sacrifices. All the wine, or flour, offered with the victims, was called effusion, or pouring out. There was to be also a separate offering of fine flour and oil, baked on an iron, or in a pan, and sprinkled with oil and frankincense. The sacrifices were of four sorts, namely, 1. The burnt-offering, every part of which was to be consumed by fire on the altar, after washing the feet and entrails. 2. The peace-offering, of which only the inward fat or tallow was to be burnt on the altar, made up with the liver and kidneys, and the tails of the lambs. The breast and the right shoulder belonged to the priests, the rest to him who offered the sacrifice, 3. The sacrifice of sin, committed either wilfully or ignorantly. In this the priest was to take some of the blood of the victim, dip his finger in it, and sprinkle seven times toward the veil of the sanctuary. The same parts of the victim were to be burnt on the altar in this as in the former sacrifice ; the rest, if the sacrifice was of fered for the sin of the high-priest, or for the people, was to be carried without the camp to be burnt there, with the skin, the head, the feet, and the bowels. If it was for a private person, the victim was to be divided, one half to the priest, and the other to him who offered the sacrifice. 4. The sacrifice of oblation was to consist either of fine flour, or incense, or cakes of fine flour and oil baked, or the first-fruits of new corn. With the things offered were always to be oil, salt, wine, and frankincense, the latter of which was to be thrown into the fire. Of the other things offered the priest was to take the whole, one part of which he was to burn, and the other to convert to his own use. With respect to their festivals, the first and grand one to be observed was the Sab- bath, which they were to keep in the strictest manner, dedicating it wholly to rest, and not doing any kind of business whatever. The passover was likewise to be observed with great solemnity. It was to begin on the fourteenth day of the March moon ; and for the seven days it lasted they were to eat only bread unleavened. The first day after the passover they were to offer new ears of corn ; and on the fifteenth day was to be held another feast, called the harvest festival, on which they were to offer in thanksgiving two loaves made of new wheat, as the first-fruits of the harvest. The first day of the seventh month (which was the first of the civil year) was also to be held as a very solemn festival, in remembrance of the departure of the Israelites from Egypt. On the tenth of the same month wa? to be kept the feast of expiation, on which day the priests were to go into the sanc- tuary, and offer two goats, one of which was to be there given up as a solemn sacri- fice for sin; but the other was to be carried, not only out of the tabernacle, but with out the camp, also, and was therefore to be called the scape-goat. On the fifteenth of the same month was to begin the feast of tabernacles, which was to last eighi days, being kept as a memorial that the Israelites had been accustomed to live^ in tents. The whole time was to be spent in mirth, and each day the people were to walk r^und the altar with boughs in their hands. HISfORY OF THE BIBLE. 181 The Hi^h Priest on the Day of Atonement, and a Levite. 182 AN ILLUSTRATED With respect to animal food they were to be very careful in making a proper dis- tinction between beasts that were clean, and those that were otherwise, it being law- ful for them to eat the first, but not the last. Two qualifications were required for reckoning a beast clean, which were, that it should have a cloven foot, and that it should chew the cud ; so that it was unlawful for them to eat swine's flesh, or rabbits and hares, the former not chewing the cud, and the latter not having cloven feet. All birds of prey were forbidden ; and it was unlawful for them to eat blood, or the flesh of beasts strangled. Among the laws relative to uncleanness, leprosy was to be reckoned the greatest, of the nature and quality of which the priest was to judge, and to dispose of the party as he should think proper. Some uncleannesses were to be removed by washing theii garments and bodies, and others by offering up sacrifices. The laws relating to matrimony were principally th ese. They were forbidden to marry strange women. One man might have several wives ; but the persons with whom it was not allowed to contract matrimony were, the father, mother, mother-in-law, sis- ter bv the father or mother's side, son's or daughter's daughter, father's wife's daugh- ter, father or mother's sister, uncle, daughter-in-law, brother's wife, wife's sister or daughter, or grandson or granddaughter. It was, however, not only lawful, but a command enjoined, that the brother should marry the brother's widow, provided he died without issue. Moses, having communicated these, and some other ordinances, to the people, pro- ceeded next, agreeably to the divine command, to consutu <_ his brother Aaron high- priest, and to fix the order of priesthood in his son and their posterity. In the exe- cution of this ceremony Moses robed them, anointed their heads with oil, and made them offer sacrifices for sin. The function of the priests in general, was, to offer sac- rifice to the Lord, but the high-priest's was of a particular nature. He was to go once a year, on the day of expiation, into the sanctuary, clad in his priestly garments, there to burn incense before the ark, and sprinkle the blood of the offering seven times, with his finger. All the tribe of Levi were appointed to assist the priests in the ser- vices of the tabernacle; and to the whole were appoinied particular allowances for their subsistence. But if any, either of the priests or Levites, had any bodily imper- fection, they were to be excluded from the function, but, at the same time, permitted to enjoy the rights and privileges of their birth. The obligations they lay under were these : they were not to drink any wine, or any other intoxicating liquors, when they were to officiate in the tabernacle : they were not to marry a woman who had been divorced or prostituted ; and lastly, they were not to attend funerals, unless those of their own fathers, mothers, sons, daughters, brothers, or maiden sisters. On the eighth day after Aaron had been appointed to the office of high-priest, he offered his first burnt-offering for himself and the people. This was very acceptable to the Almighty, who was pleased to testify his approbation by sending fire upon the altar, which consumed the offering in the sight of the people, who, with loud shouts and acclamations, expressed their joy for so singular a circumstance, and prostrated themselves on the ground in humble adoration before the Divine Majesty. The fire thus miraculously kindled was, by the divine command, to be kept perpet- ually burning, and no other to be used in all the oblations to be made to God. But Nadab and Abihu, two of Aaron's sons, forgetful of their duty, took their censers, and putting common fire in them, laid incense thereon, and offered strange fire before the Lord. For this flagrant violation of the divine command, the Almighty was so of- fended, that, as a just punishment, he immediately struck them dead with lightning. To strike a terror into the rest of the priestly order, and deter them from disobedience to the commands of God, Moses ordered the people to take their dead bodies from the sanctuary, and carry them out of the camp in the same condition they found them. He likewise charged Aaron and the rest of his sons, not to mourn for Nadab and Abi- hu, in shaving their heads, or rending their clothes; but that they should leave those marks of mourning to the rest of the people, from whom they ought to distinguish themselves in this, as well as in other points, in reverence to that holy anointing, whereby they had been consecrated to the Lord, and thereby separated from their brethren. A short time after the melancholy circumstance last related, another awful proo> was given of the danger of incurring the displeasure of the Almighty. This was exemplified in the case of 3ne, whose mother's name was Shelomith, an Israelitisb niSTORY OF THE BIBLE. 183 IS4 AN ILLUSTRATED woman of the tribe of Dan, but whose husband was an Egyptian, but supposed to have become a proselyte to the house of Israel. This young man quarreled with another, and a battle "ensuing, Shelomith was worsted. Fired with resentment ai being conquered, he in the height of his passion, cursed and blasphemed the name of the Lord ; upon Avhich being apprehended and brought before Moses, he ordered him into custody till he should know from the Lord what punishment to inflict on him for his transgression. Though the third command in the decalogue forbade the taking of God's^name in vain, yet this blasphemous cursing being an offence of a higher na- ture, against which no positive law was yet provided, Moses had recourse to the Lord, who was pleased to tell him thus : " Bring forth," says he, " him that cursed without the camp, and let all that heard him lay their hands upon his head,* and let all the congregation stone him." In obedience to the divine command, Moses ordered the sentence to be immediately put in execution ; and a law was thereon made, that whosoever should, from that time, blaspheme the name of the Lord, whether he was an Israelite, or a stranger, should be stoned to death. CHAPTER X. ENCAMPMENT OP ISRAELITES — MTJRMURTNGS — KORAH'S SIN. While the Israelites lay encamped in the wilderness of Sinai, the Almighty or- dered Moses, assisted by Aaron, and the heads of the respective tribes, to make a general muster of the people, in order to ascertain the number of those who were able to carry arms. This was accordingly done, when the number of true born Is- raelites appeared to be 603,550 men,f exclusive of the tribe of Levi. These were, by the express command of the Almighty, exempted, being designed for the peculiar service of the tabernacle, not only to take charge thereof, and of all the vessels be- longing to it, but likewise to take it down upon every remove, to guard it safe on the way, and to put it up again at such places as should be appointed for encampment. The Israelites being thus mustered, Moses and Aaron, by the express command of G-od, appointed the manner of their encampment, which was not only to take place now, but to be continued ever after, as follows : The whole body was divided into four grand camps, each consisting of three tribes, under one standard, and so placed as entirely to enclose the tabernacle. The standard of the camp of Judah was first. It consisted of the tribes of Judah, Issachar, and Zebulon, (the sons of Leah), and was pitched on ihe east side of the tabernacle, toward the rising of the sun. On the south side Avas the standard of the camp of Reuben, under which were the tribes of Reuben and Simeon (the sons of Leah likewise), and of Gad, the son of Zil- pah, Leah's maid. On the weit side was the standard of the camp of Ephraim, under which were tht tribes of Ephraim, Manasseh, and Benjamin. On the north side was the standard of the camp of Dan, under which were the tribes of Dan and Naphtali (the sons of Bilhah, Rachel's maid), and of Asher (the son of Zilpah). Between the four great camps and the tabernacle were four lesser camps, consist- ing of the priests and Levites, under whose immediate care and protection the tab- ernacle was placed. On the east side were encamped Moses and Aaron, with Aaron's sons, who had the charge of the sanctuary. * This way of laying hands on the heads of criminals may seem to arise from several causes. 1. That tney were witnesses of the fact, and that the person condemned suffered justly ; protesting, that if he were innocent they desired that his blood might fall on their own heads. 2. They put their hands on the head o die criminal in token of an expiatory sacrifice ; for idolatry, blasphemy, and such grievous crimes, if thev were not punished, they expected would attract a guilt, not only on the witness, but the whole nation rthich by the death of the criminal, as by a victim, might be expiated. 3. That the criminal was the jus: cause of his own death. t The uges of these men were, from twenty years old to fifty ; and the exact number in each tribe was as follows : In the tribe of Reuber, 46,500; Simeon, 59,300 ; Gad, 45,650 ; Judah, 74.600.; Issachar, 54,400 ; Zebuloi', 57,400; Ephraim, 40,500 ; Manasseh, 32,200; Benjamin, 35,400; Dan, 62,700; Asher, 41,500 ; Naphtali. 53 - 100 ; total 602.550. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 185 § ! : 1S6 AN ILLUSTRATED On the souih side were the Kohathites, a pan of the Levites, descended from Ko hath, the second son of Levi. On the west side were the Gershonites, another part of the Levites, descended from Gershon, Levi's eldest son. On the north side were planted the Meiarites, the remaining part of the Levites who descended from Merari. Levi's youngest son. Such was the manner of the encampment of the Israeli:es. being the only regulai description of one which the Bible contains ; but. from incidental allusions, we may gather that the camps which the Hebrews in after-times formed in their military op- erations, differed in several respects from the present, the admirable arrangement of ;vhich is easily perceived, although some difference of opinion exists as to a few ol .he details. EAST.— FIRS T DIVISION— CAMP OF JTDAH: 156,400. do o JTDAH. o o CD 74,600. c l> = »o ] SSACHAR, ANT) ZMBVLVN, 54,400. 57,400. 1 £ H < Q •. c r ^ < o MOSES. AARON, AXD THE PRIESTS. V 1 f- z _ — ~ BC = 3 i 38 a a 5 < J - - z 1— i X w CD > 2 - 1— i j '-: c o 53 > HO Q CO £ O < ~1 5 2 60 = II > ~ 3 H OS Z Q > 3 HH h - V. t a ? O o - •0?9'S p3 2 - 'SHIXOHSHZS * 53 ^^t r=3 o i | ! •OOf'cg O.vroS 2 'NLIKTXXaa dXT ( H3SSYM¥1i Pn Oi c 'OOC-'Of I** z 'kivhhjij o •OOl'SOT .'IMIYH HJ3 JO dOttVO— NOISIAIQ a 1 IIHI— VLS3LM The diagram above will exhibit the apparent order better than a verbal descrip- tion, however minute. It is thus seen that the camp was formed in a quadrangle, havinor on each side three tribes under one general standard. How these tribes were placed with regard to each other is not very clear; some fix the leading tribe in the centre, and the two others on each side ; but the description seems rather to indi- cate that the leading tribe extended along the whole exterior line, and that the two other tribes pitched beside each other, within. The only other alternative seems tc be, to suppose that the two minor tribes also extended in full line, the last tribe men- tioned in each division, being the innermost. The collective encampment enclosed o HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 18' 188 AN ILLUSTRATED large open square, in the centre of which stood the tabernacle. The position which the tabernacle thus occupied still remains the place of honor in grand oriental camps and is usually occupied by the tent of the king or general. The distance between it and the common camp was indicative of respect; what the distance was we are not told, except by the Rabbins, who say that it was two thousand cubits, and apparently ground this statement upon Josh. iii. 4. The interval was not however wholly va- cant, being occupied by the small camps of the Levites, who had the charge and cus- tody of the tabernacle, and pitched their tents around it ; the tents of Moses, Aaron and the priests, occupying the most honorable place, fronting the entrance to the tab ernacle, or rather to the court which contained it. The Jewish writers say that the circumference of the entire encampment was about twelve miles ; a statement whicl would seem sutficiently moderate when we recollect the hollow square in the centre and consider the vast extent of ground required for the tents of two millions of peo- ple. This regular and admirable arrangement of so vast a host, under their ensigns, around the tabernacle, must have given a most striking and impressive appearance tc the camp, as viewed from the hills. We know the effect which the view of it pro- duced upon one person, who did view it from the hills, and then broke forth in rap- ture, exclaiming, " How goodly are thy tents, Jacob ! and thy tabernacles, Israel ! As the valleys are they spread forth, as the trees of lign-aloes which the Lord hath planted, and as cedar trees beside the waters." (Num. xxiv. 5, 6.) The encampment being thus formed, the next consideration was, to regulate the mode of marching, which was accordingly done as follows : Whenever they were to decamp (which was always to take place as soon as the pillar of the cloud left the tabernacle) the trumpet was to be immediately sounded, and, upon the first alarm, the standard of Judah being raised, the three tribes which belonged to it were to set forward. On the movement of these the tabernacle was to be taken down with all convenient expedition, and the Gershonites and Merarites were to attend the wagons with the boards and staves belonging to it. This being done, a second alarm was to be given by the trumpet, on which the standard of Reu- ben's camp was to advance with the three tribes belonging to it. After these were to follow the Kohathites, bearing the sanctuary, which, because it was more holy, and not so cumbersome, as the pillars and boards of the tabernacle, was not to be put into a wagon, but carried on their shoulders. Next was to follow the standard of Ephraim's camp, with the tribes belonging to it; and, last of all, the other three tribes, under ihe standard of Dan, were to bring up the rear. A short time after these matters were adjusted, the pillar of the cloud gave the Is- raelites a signal to decamp. On their beginning to move, agreeably to the order pre- scribed, Moses addressed himself to God. "Rise," said he, " Lord, and let thine en- emies be scattered ; and let them that hate thee flee before thee. And when the ark of the covenant (by which they were directed when to stop) rested, he added "Re- turn, Lord, unto the many thousands of Israel." After marching for three days in the wilderness of Sinai, the Israelites began to complain of the fatigues of their journey, and to relate their grievances, with great asperity, to Moses. This so offended the Almighty, that he sent down fire from heaven, which destroyed all those who were situated in the extreme parts of the camp. The rest were so terrified at this circumstance, that they immediately applied to Moses, at whose intercession the fire ceased, but, in remembrance of the incident, he called the place Taberah, which, in the Hebrew language, signifies burning. But this instance of the divine power had little effect on the dissatisfied Israelites. They made heavy complaints for want of flesh for food ; and intimated to Moses how much happier they were when in the land of Egypt, where, though in a state of bondage, they could possess a variety of articles necessary for the preservation of life. Moses had often heard them murmur, and patiently borne with it, but now that they were grown so numerous, and the greatness of their numbers demanding still more care and vigilance to govern them than what came from the assistance of the magistrates appointed by the advice of his father-in-law Jethro, he became exceedingly uneasy, and, in an address to God, represented the great and heavy burdens under which" he labored, in having the management of so numerous and dissatisfied a people. No sooner did the Almighty hear the complaints of his faithful servant, than he immediately gave him relief, by ordering him to choose seventy men from among the elders of Israel, and to bring them with him to the tabernacle of the congregation HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. • 189 " There," said he, " I will come down and talk with thee, and I will give them a portion of the same spirit with which I have inspired thee; and they shall bear the burden of the people with thee." In conformity to the divine command, Moses selected seventy of the elders, sixty- eight of whom he conducted to the tabernacle, whither they had no sooner arrived, than the Almighty was pleased to fulfil his promise, by inspiring them with the like kind of spirit he had given to Moses, and by which they were enabled to prophesy. Nay, so extensive was this inspiration, that though the other two came not out with the rest to the tabernacle, but remained in the camp, yet they received the same im- pression of the spirit with the rest, and, in like manner, prophesied. This circum- stance so surprised a certain young man in the camp, that he immediately hastened 'o the tabernacle, to acquaint Moses that Edad and Medad (which were the names of the two elders left behind) were prophesying in the camp. Joshua (who was to- tally unacquainted with the operations of the Lord by his spirit) was likewise greatly surprised, and, thinking it a derogation of his master, likewise ran to the tabernacle, and advised Moses to restrain them from that power which only belonged to himself. But Moses reproved him for his conduct in these words: " Dost thou," said he, " en- vy them on my account ? Would to God that all the Lord's people were inspired, 1 and that they might be endued with the spirit of prophecy!" The murmurings of the people for want of Mesh still continued, and to such a neight did their fury arise, that they beset Moses's tent on all sides, and, in the most tumultuous manner, demanded of him to relieve their necessities. Thus circumstanced Moses applied himself to God, to whom he intimated the little probability there was of supplying so numerous a body of people with the article requested. The Almighty was pleased to promise that he would remove this evil ; and at the same time gently rebuked Moses in these words : " Is the Lord's hand," said he, " waxed short ? thou shalt see now whether my word shall come to pass unto thee or not." It was not long before this divine promise was fulfilled ; for the Almighty causing a south wind to arise, it drove prodigious quantities of quails from the seacoast to within a mile of the camp, which being taken by the people, they feasted on them in the most greedy manner. But God soon called them to a dreadful account for their insolent demand of flesh, and their distrust of his providence: for while they were regaling themselves with these dainties, he visited them with a severe plague, of which great numbers died, and were buried on the spot where they fell. In consequence of this circumstance the place was called Kibroth-Hattaavah, which signifies the graves or sepulchres of lust and concupiscence. From this place the Israelites marched to Hazeroth, where they had not been lon2 before another circumstance occurred of a very disagreeable nature. Aaron and his sister Miriam, observing the great power their brother Moses had over the people, and that God chiefly made use of him in the delivery of his sacred oracles, began to look upon him with an eye of envy. To give some eolor to their conduct, they pretended to fall out with him, on account of his having married a foreigner, whom they con- temptuously called an Ethiopian ; and, to lessen his importance, and at the same time enlarge their own, they added, " What, hath the Lord spoken only to Moses ? hath he not spoken also by us V Moses saw the discontent of his brother and sister ; but considering it only as a personal pique, took no notice of it. The Almighty, however, being greatly offended at their conduct, thought proper to interpose, and convince them that such behavior to his faithful servant was of the most heinous nature, and should not pass unnoticed. Ordering, therefore, Moses, Aaron, and Miriam, to attend at the door of the tabernacle, he sharply rebuked the two latter for their insolence, asking them, how they durst speak against his servant Moses ? '" You," said he to Miriam, " have shared in the prophetic office, and to you have I declared my will in dreams and visions ; but with Moses I have conversed more familiarly, and I will speak face to face with him, and show him as much of my glory as he is capable of seeing." Thus Moses had the secret satisfaction of finding himself justified by his divine protector ; but Aaron, to his great confusion, beheld his sister Miriam made a dreadful example of God's anger. She was suddenly afflicted with a most dreadful and in- veterate leprosy ; upon which Aaron, addressing himself to Moses, acknowledged the 190 AN ILLUSTRATED sin tl jy had committed, begged pardon, and solicited him to intercede with God in bclui.i of his sister, that the leprosy might be removed, and her former health restored. Moses, who was naturally of a meek disposition, and ever ready to pardon an in- jury offered to himself, made no hesitation at complying with Aaron's request. His intercession had the desired effect: the Almighty was pleased to promise that the evil should be removed ; but as the offence was of a public nature, he ordered her to be turned out of the camp for seven days, in the manner of a common leper, in order to deter others from committing the like seditious practices. Soon after Miriam's return to the camp, the Israelites removed to the desert of Pa- ran; whence, after several encampments, they reached Kadesh-Barnea, situated on the frontiers of the land of Canaan. On their arrival at this place, Moses, by the divine command, selected twelve men, one from each tribe, whom he ordered to go as spies into the promised land, to take a view of the country. He charged them to make a diligent examination into the strength of its cities and inhabitants, the nature and fertility of its soil, and the prin cipal articles it produced, some of the latter of which he told them to bring with them on their return. With these instructions the twelve spies set forward on their journey, and proceeded from the entrance of the country on the north, to its extremity on the south. In their way back they passed through a valley remarkable for its fertility in vines, and there- fore called the valley of Eschol, which signifies a cluster of grapes. Attracted by the beauty of the fruit, they determined to preserve some and carry it to the camp. They cut down a branch, on "which was only one cluster of grapes, but of such an immod- erate size, that they were obliged to lay it on a pole, and carry it between two of them. Nor was this the only product of this happy soil : the golden fig and beauti- ful pomegranate adorned the trees, and a variety of other fruits (of which they took samples with them) loaded the luxuriant branches. The spies having, in the compass of forty days, taken a view of the whole country ©f Canaan, returned to the camp of the Israelites ; and, after showing them the fruits of the land, gave them an account of the observations they had made in the course of rheir journey. " We have been," said they, " in the country to which you sent us. It is a fertile and plentiful land ; but the inhabitants of it are powerful. There are ^reat cities with strong walls. We have seen those men of the race of Anak, war- like men, and of a gigantic stature. The Amalekiti «: inhabit the south part of the land ; the Hittites, Jebusites, and Amorites, the mouniains ; and the Canaanites, the banks of the river Jordan." The people were highly pleased with that part of the account relative to the fer- tility of the country ; but when they reflected on its strength, with the size and num- ber of its inhabitants, they were greatly alarmed, and expressed their fears at being brought to a place where they were in the most imminent danger. But Caleb and Joshua (two of t"he twelve who were sent to view the country) endeavored to remove their fears, by saying, " Let us make ourselves masters of the country, for we are strong enough to conquer the inhabitants." This had the desired effect, and might have produced happy consequences, had it not been for the cowardly disposition of the other ten, who, perceiving that the ac- count given by Caleb and Joshua had fired the people with a design of becoming the possessors of the country by a speedy conquest, began to retiact from their former accounts, to paint matters in the worst light, and to represent it as a thing impossi- ble, both by reason of the strength of its fortified towns, and the valor and gigantic stature of the inhabitants. This cowardly representation defeated all the arguments used by Caleb and Joshua in favor of the enterprise. The Israelites, one and all, cried out they could never hope to overcome such powerful nations, in comparison of which they looked on tnemselves as mere grasshoppers and reptiles. In short, their murmurings grew to such a height by the next morning, that a return to Egypt was thought more advisa- ble than to face such an enemy ; and they went so far as to deliberate on a propel person who should reconduct them into the land of their former thraldom. This perverseness of the people greatly afflicted Moses, who, finding them bent on their own ruin, and fearful that some dreadful consequence would follow, prostrated himself on the ground (as did also his brother Aaron) in the presence of the whole HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 191 £ <^^#^fe 192 AN ILLUSTRATED assembly, and besought of CJod that he would be merciful in his judgments on the people for their sin and ingratitude. Caleb and Joshua expressed their grief by rending their clothes ; and endeavored, in the most forcible manner, to convince the people that their fears were ill founded, and that they might, by putting their trust in God, overpower their enemies, and make themselves masters of the promised land. " The land" (said they) " that we pass through is indeed a rich and fertile land, abounding with all things necessary for life. If we please the Lord he will bring us into this land, and giv^e it us. Dc not, therefore, by rebelling against him, forfeit his promise and protection. Nor be afraid of the people of the land, whom we shall as surely conquer as we eat our food, and with as much ease. The Lord is with us, and we have nothing to fear." But so far was this speech from making any impression on the perverse and obsti- nate Israelites, that, in a tumultuous manner, they called out to stone Caleb and Joshua ; and which they would certainly have done, had not the glory of God at thai instant visibly appeared before all the people, in the tabernacle of the congregation. As soon as Moses saw this he prostrated himself before the Lord, who, being highly incensed against the Israelites for their perverse conduct, threatened to send n pestilence that should totally extirpate them, and at the same time told Moses that he would make him a prince of a more numerous and powerful nation. The pious Moses (as he had several times done before) became again an interces- sor for the people. He in the most earnest manner solicited the Almighty to pardon their offences, and represented the consequences that might follow should he totally destroy them : the substance of his solicitations and observations was in words to this effect : " thou everlasting Jehovah, who appearedst to Abraham, to Isaac, and Ja- cob, and who wast graciously pleased to promise that their children should inherit the land of Canaan, look in mercy on this people, whom neither promises will en- courage, nor threatenings deter from disobeying thee. Lord, turn away thy fierce anger, for thou art a God of mercy, and I will trust in thee to spare this wicked, this rebellious people." These arguments and expostulations in some measure averted the divine vengeance, the Almighty promising Moses not to put his first design into execution. But as the ingratitude and infidelity of the people had become intolerable (notwithstanding God's constant care in providing against their wants, screening them from their enemies, and preserving them from all dangers), he declared that not one of those who had murmured, from twenty years old and upward, should ever enter the promised land ; Dut that they should wander with their children about the wilderness for the space of forty years, in which time they should all pay the debt of nature, and that their children should have those possessions which, had they not been so disobedient, they might have enjoyed themselves. As for the ten false spies, who were the immediate authois of this defection, they were all destroyed by a sudden death, and became the first instances of the punish- ment denounced against the body of the people. Caleb and Joshua, who had not only done their duty in giving a faithful account of their observations, but also endeavored to remove the ill-concerted intentions of the people, were preserved. For this their conduct they received the divine appro- bation, as also a promise that they should live to enter and inherit the promised land. When Moses related these particulars to the people their tempers were greatly altered, and they expressed their uneasiness for the offence they had committed by putting on the deepest mourning. Supposing that their forwardness now would make some atonement for their former cowardice, they assembled themselves together the next morning, and offered to go on the conquest. " We are ready," said they, " to go to the place whereof the Lord has spoken to us." But this offer, instead of arising from any natural courage, took place only from a presumptuous rashness. This Moses well knew, and therefore endeavored all he could to dissuade them from so ill judged an enterprise. He told them it was con- trary to God's express command, and therefore could not prosper; that by their late undutiful behavior they had forfeited his assistance and protection, without which it was impossible for them to succeed; and that, as the Amalekites and Canaanites? had gained the passes of the mountains before them, every attempt must prove abortive. But all this admonition had no weight with the obstinate Israelites. Notwitli HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 193 standing the ark of the covenant was not with them; notwithstanding Moses, their general, was not at the head of them ; yet out they marched to the top of the moun- tains, where, the enemy surprising them, they were immediately thrown into the greatest disorder, prodigious numbers were slain, and the rest obliged to save them- selves by flight ; nor did they stop till they came to a place called Hormah. Though it was but eleven days' journey hence to Kadesh-bamea, yet, for their disobedience, they were so interrupted as to be nearly two years in getting to the place whence they came. Many remarkable circumstances occurred during the stay of the Israelites in the wilderness. The first recorded by the sacred historian is an instance of the divine severity on a man who, by a post-fact law, was adjudged to be stoned to death for violating the sabbath, by gathering sticks on that day. Though a particular injunc- tion had been laid on the people to keep this commandment in the strictest manner, vet no penalty had been annexed to the violation of it. The people, therefore, who brought the offender before Moses, were ordered to keep him in custody till he should know the divine pleasure concerning sabbath-breakers. The Almighty was pleased to return for answer, that such transgressors should be stoned to death; upon which the offender was immediately conducted out of the camp, and the sentence executed. The next material circumstance that occurred was a violent rebellion raised by Koran, great-grandson of Levi, and consequently one of the heads of that tribe. This ambitious person, having long envied Aaron, on account of him and his family being raised to the highest office in the priesthood, and to which he thought himself had an equal title, was always caballing against him, till at length he bad brought over two hundred and fifty eminent persons to his interest, among whom were Dathan and Abiram, two of the chiefs of the tribe of Reuben. As soon as Korah thought matters properly ripe for an open rupture, he appeared at the head of the faction, and publicly upbraided Moses and Aaron with an unjust amDinon, in usurping that power to themselves of which he thought himself entitled to a part ; and that the arbitrary measures they pursued were injurious to the people, by depriving them of their just and natural liberties. This strange and unexpected address so surprised Moses, that he immediately pros- trated himself on the ground, in which situation he lay for some time.* At length he arose, and, with great steadiness and magnanimity, informed them that the next day the Lord would decide the controversy, and would make it appear who were his servants, who were holy, and who the proper persons to be admitted into his divine presence. He then, with his usual calmness and serenity of mind, argued the matter with them, and, in the most mild manner, rebuked them for the impropriety of theii conduct. He was rather more severe on Korah (who was the author of the defec- tion) than the rest; and concluded with addressing them conjunctively in words to this effect : " Hear me" (says he), " ye sons of Levi. Is it a matter of so light con- cern, that the God of Israel hath distinguished you from the rest of Israel, to admit you to the more immediate service of the tabernacle, and to stand before the congre- gation and minister to them ? Is not this an honor sufficient to satisfy your ambitious spirit, but that ye must aim at the priesthood too ? This is the cause of your clam- ors; and for this ye have moved the people to sedition. But, be assured, whatever ye may pretend against Aaron, this insult is against the Lord, as it is against his dis- pensations that ye murmur and conspire." Dathan and Abiram were at some distance when Moses thus talked with the rest of the conspirators ; and therefore, supposing they had been drawn into the plot at the instigation of Korah, he sent for them privately, with a design of arguing the matter with them in the mildest terms. But instead of a civil answer, he received the following haughty message : " Is it " (said they) " a matter of so small moment, that thou hast brought us out of a land which flowed with plenty, to kill us in the desert? Thou affectest dominion, and wouldst make thyself prince over us also. Notwithstanding thy fair promises, thou hast not brought us into a land that flows with milk and honey, nor given us any inheritance of fields and vineyards ; but when * It is very reasonable to imagine, that Moses (who was well acquainted with the gracious and ready assistance of God in time of need) was, during the time of his being on the ground, applying himself to the Lord for protection against this mutinous body of people. And it" is likewise reasonable to imagine, that while he lay in this humble posture God appeared to him, and gave him comfortable advice in what manner he should conduct himself; as he soon after spoke to them with great courage, and to vindicate himselr, nut the matter between him and them upon trial the next day. 13 194 AN ILLUSTRATED we were ready to take possession of the promised land, thou didst turn us back into this barren desert, to repeat the fatigues and hardships we had before undergone. We will not come." These unjust reproaches highly provoked Moses, but, instead of returning any ill language to them, he addressed himself to God, saying : " Respect not thou then offering . I have not taken one ass from them, neither have I hurt one of them." He then summoned Korah and all his companions to meet him and Aaron the next day at the tabernacle, and to bring with them their censers ready prepared with incense to appear before the Lord. Accordingly, early the next morning, Moses and Aaron went to the tabernacle, whither Korah also repaired at the head of his party, with each man a censer in his hand, and attended by a prodigious multitude of people, who, in all probability, went as spectators of this singular contest. The first thing that attracted their attention was the amazing splendor that issued from the cloud over the tabernacle, from which God called to Moses and Aaron, ordering them to withdraw, that he might inflict that punishment on the rebellious crew they justly deserved. Moses and Aaron, knowing that the multitude who attended on this occasion did it only to gratify their curiosity, and at the same time lamenting that they should equally suffer with the wicked Korah and his party, prostrated themselves before God, and interceded for their protection. '* God" (said they), " thou God of the spirit of all flesh, shall one man sin, and wilt thou be angry with all ?" Their prayers were no sooner offered than heard ; and the Almighty, being pleased to listen to their solicitation, commanded them to tell the people to withdraw. Frightened at the amazing splendor that issued from the cloud, they readily obeyed this order, and retired at some distance from the tents of Korah and his two principal associates, Dathan and Abiram, who stood in a daring manner near their own tents, attended by their wives and families. As soon as the multitude had retired to a proper distance, Moses addressed them in words to this effect : " By this" (said he) " you shall know that the Lord has commissioned me to do what I have done, and that I have undertaken nothing of my own head. If these men" (meaning Korah and his party) "die the common way of nature, or be visited as other men, then take it for granted the Lord hath not sent me; but if he deal with them after a strange and unusual manner, and the earth, opening her mouth, swallow them up alive, then shall ye understand that these men have provoked the Lord." No sooner had Moses spoken these words than the earth was suddenly convulsed, and the surface of it opening, Korah and his two adherents, Dathan and Abiram, to- gether with their families and substance, were all swallowed up alive, and, the ground closing on them, they perished. When the people who stood round them saw their dismal fate they were greatly frightened, and cried out, "Let us fly, lest the earth swallow us up also. 1 ' In the mean time God, to punish the rest of these rebellious people, who had pro- fanely attempted to offer incense contrary to the law, sent down fire from heaven and destroyed the whole two hundred and fifty men that had joined with Korah. To perpetuate the memory of this judgment, as well as to deter, for the future, any but the sons of Aaron from presuming to burn incense before the Lord, Moses, by the divine command, ordered Eleazar, Aaron's son, to gather up the censers of the dead, and to have them beat into broad plates as a covering for the altar, assigning this as a reason : " That it might be for a memorial to the children of Israel, that no stranger, or any that was not of Aaron's family, should presume to offer incense be- fore the Lord, lest he died the death of Korah and his company." It might have been supposed that so dreadful a punishment would, at least for some time, have kept the Israelites within the bounds of their obedience ; but no sooner were they recovered from iheir fright than they again began to murmur, and to accuse Moses and Aaron with having (as they called the late mutineers) murdered people of the Lord." Moses and Aaron, well knowing the turbulent temper of the people, and fearing they might proceed to some violent outrage, took sanctuary in the tabernacle, which they had no sooner entered than the Almighty commanded them to withdraw from the rest of the congregation, for that in a short time he would destroy them. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 195 In consequence of this, Moses and Aaron immediately prostrated themselves on the ground, and earnestly implored of God to spare the people; but, early as they were in their supplication, the divine vengeance was before them, for the Almighty, provoked by the repeated rebellions of the people, had already sent a pestilence among them. As soon as Moses observed this, he ordered Aaron to take a censer, put fire and incense in it from the altar, and hasten to the congregation to make aronement for the sins of the people. Aaron did as Moses commanded, and standing between the dead and the living, he prayed for some time, and the plague ceased. But notwith- standing the very short time this calamity lasted, yet with such violence did it rage, that the number carried off by it amounted to fourteen thousand and seven hundred persons. Though God had thus in two instances punished the people for their wickedness, yet, knowing that the minds of many of them were, by the insinuations of Korah and his accomplices, still prejudiced against Aaron and his family, on account of their being invested with the priesthood, he was pleased to put an end to all controversy on this head by the following miracle. He commanded Moses to take a rod from each tribe, and to write upon it the name of the prince of that tribe to whom it be- longed, and to write Aaron's name on that of the tribe of Levi; that, when this was done, he should lay up the twelve rods in the tabernacle, before the ark of the testi- mony, until the next morning, when some miraculous change should be seen that would determine in whose family the priesthood should be established. Moses, who never failed paying an immediate obedience to the divine command, did as he was ordered ; and going next morning to the tabernacle, brought out the twelve rods in the presence of all the people. Eleven of the rods were in the same state as when he put them into the tabernacle, but the twelfth (which belonged to Aaron) had a very different appearance, for it had not only budded, but likewise blossomed, and bore ripe almonds. A convincing proof to the people that God had singled out Aaron and his family to the priestly office. In memory of this remarkable decision, God ordered Aaron's rod to be laid up m the ark of the covenant, that, by the people's seeing it, they might not again rebel, but remain satisfied with those whom he had been pleased, in so distinguished a manner, to appoint to the priestly office. After the establishment of the high-priest's office in Aaron and his family, the Is- raelites moved about, from one place to another, in the wilderness, but chiefly about the mountains of Idumsea, until God, by shortening the period of human life, had taken away almost all that generation, " of whom he had sworn in his wrath," as the Psalmist expresses it, xcv. 2., " that they should not enter into his rest." And, in- deed, great reason had he to be angry with them, since, during the remainder of their peregrination, they were guilty of many more murmurings than Moses has thought proper to record, which, nevertheless, are mentioned, with no small severity, by other inspired writers. See Amos v. 26 ; Acts vii. 43. As the time, however, of their entrance into the land of Canaan drew near, they advanced into the wilderness of Sin, and pitched their camp at Kadesh,* where Mir- iam,! sister to Moses and Aaron, died, and was buried. The Israelites had not been long at Kadesh, before they were greatly distressed for water, upon which (as they had before done on similar occasions) they exclaimed, with great vehemence, against Moses and Aaron, saying, "Why have ye brought the Lord's people into the wilderness to kill them and their cattle? Why did you per- suade us to leave the fertile land of Egypt to bring us into this barren place, which affords neither water to quench our thirst, nor fruits to satisfy our hunger ? Would to God we had perished with our brethren before the Lord." The impatience and dissatisfaction of the Israelites greatly perplexed Moses and Aaron, who, as was their usual custom on such occasions, addressed themselves to God, beseeching him to remove the present distresses of the people. The Almighf * This was not Kadesh-Barnea, the station or encampment of the Israelites on the confines of the northern part of Canaan ; but another Kadesh, situated on the confines of Idumaea and not far from the Red sea. t Miriam was the eldest of the three, and was nearly a hundred and thirty years old. Eusebius assures us. that in his time her tomb was found at Kadesh, a small distance from Petrea, the capital of Arabia Petre •». Several of the ancients are of opinion that she died a virgin, and that she was the legislatrix and governess of the Israelitish women, as Moses was the legislator of the men. 196 AN ILLUSTEATED was pleased to listen to their request : he ordered Moses to take his rod, and, with the assistance of Aaron, assemble the people together ; which having done, he shoulJ speak to the rock in their sight, and it should immediately produce abundance ol water. Agreeably to these orders, Moses and Aaron assembled the people before the rock, who, no doubt, readily attended in expectation of having those grievances removed of which they had so greatly complained. Hitherto Moses had paid an exact and abso- lute obedience to all the commands God had enjoined him ; but now (however it hap- pened) he made some deviation from his instructions, and thereby committed the greatest miscarriage of his whole life. He was ordered to speak to the rock before the people ; but, instead of so doing, he spoke to the people, saying, " Hear now, ye rebels ; must Ave fetch you Avater out of this rock ?" In doing this, he expressed im- patience and heat of spirit, Avhich Avere in direct opposition to that humility he had hitherto possessed. This conduct of Moses was highly offensive to God, as appeared from his first striking the rock Avithout its having the least effect. HoAvever, on striking it a second time, the Avater issued from it in great abundance, and not only the people, but like- wise the cattle, Avere plentifully supplied with that necessary article they had so much wanted. Though this Avas the first time that Moses had made the least deviation from the divine injunctions, yet it pleased the Almighty to make him sensible of his fault, and to inflict a punishment on him for his disobedience. Considering Aaron also as con- cerned with him in the transgression, he denounced this sentence against them con- junctively. " Because," said he, " ye believed me not, to sanctify me in the eyes of the children of Israel, therefore ye shall not bring this congregation into the land, which I have given them." From this unhappy accident, the place Avas called Meri- bah, Avhich, in the HebreAV language, signifies, chiding or strife. Though Moses had committed this offence, and received the divine chastisement, yet he still preserved the command and government of the people. Intending to de- camp from Kadesh, as a necessary precaution in order to secure the safety of the peo- ple, he sent messengers to the king of Edom (upon whose borders they then Avere) requesting permission to pass through his territories, assuring him that they Avould not commit any hostilities, nor give the least molestation to any of his subjects. But the haughty Edomite Avas so far from granting his request, that he came out with a poAverful army to oppose him ; upon which Moses, after decamping from Kadesh, took another Avay, and marched to Mount Hor, near the borders of Edom, Avhere tliey pitched their tents, and for some time encamped. The time noAv draAving near, that the Israelites were to penetrate the promised land /"into which the Lord had told Aaron he should not enter because of his trans- gression at Meribah), God gave Aaron notice that his dissolution was near at hand, that ne might the more properly prepare himself for so aAvful an event. As a neces- sary introduction, the Almighty commanded Moses to take Aaron, and Eleazar his son (Avho was to succeed him in the office of high-priest), and conduct them to the lop of the mount, Avhere he should strip Aaron of his priestly garments, and put them upon Eleazar his son. Moses having obeyed these commands, Aaron, in a very short time after, gave up the ghost ;* and Avhen the people heard that he was dead, they mourned for him thirty da vs. CHAPTER XI. FIERY SERPENTS — BALAAM — APPROACH TO CANAAN — DEATH OP MOSES, \V hile the Israelites lay encamped near Mount Hor,f Arad, one of the kings of Canaan, who dwelt in the south, being informed of their situation, and that they in- * lie was buried on the spot where he died, it being the ancient custom to bury peisons of eminence in high places. See Jos) ua xxiv. 30 ; Judges li. 9. This event happened in the fortieth year after the Israel- ites left Egypt, on the first day of the fifth month, which answers to our July, at which time Aaron was one hundred and twenty-three years of age. See Numb, xxxiii. 38, 39. t This name seems to have been anciently borne by the whole range of Mount Seir, and, when super- seded by the latter denomination, continued to be preserved in the name of the particular summit on winch Aaron died. Topographical Drobabilities concur with local traditions in identifying this Mount llor HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 107 198 AN ILLUSTRATED tended visiting his dominions, went out with a considerable army to interrupt their progress. Accordingly, coming up with them, an engagement took place, in which the Israelites were worsted, and some of them made prisoners. In consequence of this repulse, the Israelites made a vow to God, promising, if he would deliver these people into their hands, they would utterly destroy their cities. Their divine protector was pleased to listen to their request ; for, upon their engaging the Canaanites a second time, they obtained a complete victory, took possession of their cities, and put all the inhabitants to the sword. Elated with this success the Israelites decamped from Mount Hor, and took their route by the Red sea, marching round Edom, through which they had been refused a passage by the king of the country. As the way was long, the passes difficult, and the country barren, they, forgetting their late success, and reflecting only on the pres- ent inconveniences, relapsed into their old humor of murmuring, and heavily com- plained both against God and Moses. " Wherefore," said they, " have ye brought us up out of Egypt to die in the wilderness ? for there is no bread, neither is there any water, and our soul loatheth this light bread." As a punishment to the Israelites for this fresh instance of their impiety and dis- trust, God sent among them prodigious numbers of fiery serpents, whose stings wers so venomous, that those who were bit by them died ; and by this plague, great num- bers of the Israelites, in a very short space of time, were carried off. This dreadful calamity so alarmed the people, that they flew to Moses for protec- tion, acknowledging the offence they had committed, and beseeching him to intercede with God in their behalf. Moses, pitying their distress, readily complied with their request ; upon which the Almighty was pleased to order him to make a serpent of brass resembling those by which they were afflicted, and to set it up on a high pole ; telling him, at the same time, that such as were bitten, if they looked up to this ser- pent, should be healed. Moses obeyed the divine command, and though the serpents did not cease biting, that the people might be more sensible of their transgression, yet, on looking up to the brazen serpent, the force of the sting lost its effect, and the person afflicted soon recovered. The Israelites, after making various marches and encampments, between the coun- tries of Moab and Ammon, without committing the least hostility, at length came to the borders of that part of the country inhabited by the Amorites. Hence Moses sent ambassadors to Sihon their king, requesting permission to pass through his country, and promising, at the same time, not to commit any depredation, or give him the least disturbance. The Amorite prince, fearful of admitting so formidable a body into the heart of his with the high mountain which rises conspicuously above the surrounding rocks in the vicinity of Petrea, the ancient capital of the Edomites or Nabathaeans, which is in a valley (Wady-Mousa) that cuts the range of Seir about halfway between the Gulf of Akaba and the Dead sea, but rather nearer to the formei than to the iatter. This mountain, whose rugged pinnacle forms a very striking feature in one of the most interesting scenes in the world, is of very difficult and steep ascent, which is partly artificial, rude steps or niches being in some places formed in the rock. Dr. Macmichael, who visited the spot in 1818, in com- pany with Mr. Bankes and Captains Irby and Mangles, says that it took his party one hour and a half to ascend its almost perpendicular sides. If this were really Mount Hor, as there seems little reason to doubt, the high-priest, before he lay down and died on that mountain, must have been able to mark out with his eye much of that wild region in which the Israelites had, for so many long years, wandered to and fro. From its summit. Mount Sinai might clearly be distinguished in the south ; while the boundless desert, marked by so many wonderful transactions, in which he had borne a conspicuous part, spread its wide expanse before him on the west. The supposed tomb of Aaron is enclosed by a small modern build- ing, crowned with a cupola, such as usually cover the remains of Moslem saints. At the time of the above risit, this spot formed the residence of an old Arab hermit, eighty years of age, the one half of which he had lived upon the mountain, from which he seldom descended, and where he chiefly subsisted through the charity of the native shepherds. He conducted the travellers into the building, and showed them the tomb, which lay at the further end of the building, behind two folding leaves of an iron grating. This monument, which is about three feet high, is patched together with fragments of stone and Marble, and covered with a ragged pall. On the walls near the tomb are suspended beads, bits of cloth, leather, and yarn, with paras and similar articles, left as votive offerings by the Arabs. The old Arab lighted a lamp of outter, and conducted the travellers to a grotto or vault underneath, which is excavated in the rock, but contains nothing remarkable. The Arabs are in the habit of offering sacrifices to Haroun (Aaron), gener- ally of a goat. When, however, they make a vow to slaughter a victim to him, they do not go to the top of the mountain, but think it sufficient to complete their sacrifice at a spot from which the cupola of the tomb is visible in the distance ; where, after killing the animal, they throw a heap of stones over the blood'that flows to the ground, and then feast on the carcase. The services thus rendered to the tornt of Aaron afford a striking picture of the debasing superstitions into which the Arabs have fallen. Burck- hardt. who, in his Mosiem character, sacrificed a goat, says, that while he did so his guide gave utteiai:ce to such exclamations as the following: " O, Haroun ; look upon us ! it is for you we slaughter this victim O, Haroun, protect us and forgive us ! O, Haroun, be content with our good intentions, lor it is but a lear goat ' O, llarrun, smooth our paths : and praise be to the Lord of all creatures "' HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 190 Kingdom, positively denied the Israelites a passage; and thinking it better policy to attack than be attacked, gathered what force he could, and marched out to give them battle. They met near a place called Jahaz, when a desperate engagement ensued, ill which the Amorites were totally defeated, and the whole body put to the sword. The Israelites pursuing their conquests made themselves masters of the most consid- erable places belonging to the Amorites, particularly Heshbon, which, with the vil- .ages about it, Sihon had before taken from the Moabites. From Heshbon the Israelites marched toward Bashan (taking several other places in their way belonging to the Amorites, particularly a large city called Jaazer) where the giant Og, another king of the Amorites, resided, and who, on the approach of the Israelites, drew out his gigantic troops in order to give them battle. Fearful lest the Israelites should be discouraged at the sight of this formidable army, Moses, by the command of God, bade them be of good spirits, and not entertain the least apprehen- sions of danger, for that God would deliver them into their hands, and they should make as easy a conquest over them as they had done over King Sihon. Animated at this intelligence, the Israelites marched with all expedition against the Amorites, whom they attacked with such success as to obtain a complete victory, and not only the whole of the people, but likewise King Og and his sons, were put to the sword. They then seized on the principal parts of the country, and utterly destroyed the inhabitants, reserving only the cattle and spoil of the cities, as they had done be- fore in the case of Sihon. Encouraged by these successes, the Israelites marched to the plains of Moab, and encamped on the bank of the river Jordan, nearly opposite to Jericho. The approach of these victorious strangers struck a terror among the people wherever they went, and the fame of their late success against the Amorites threw Balak, the king of Mo- ab, and all his people, into the most dreadful consternation. Balak, knowing himself too weak to engage the mighty force of Israel himself, formed a strong alliance with his neighbors the Midianites, and a consultation was held between the heads of each, what steps should be taken to avoid the common danger, and to secure themselves against these bold invaders. The result of this consultation was, that messengers should be sent to Balaam, a noted magician, who lived at Pethor, a city of Mesopotamia, to invite him by bribes to come to Moab, and, by cursing the Israelites, prevent their proving successful in that part of the country. In consequence of this determination, a select number of the principal people, both of Moab and Midian, were despatched to Balaam with many valuable presents, and with orders that they should, if possible, bring him with them to Moab, that, by his enchantments and curses, he might destroy the power of the Israelites, and thereby secure them from every kind of danger. As soon as these deputies arrived at Pethor they delivered their message to Ba- laam, who desired them to tarry with him that night, for that he could not give them any answer till he had consulted the Lord. The Almighty, knowing the se- crets of Balaam's heart, asked what men they were that were with him. To which he replied, " They are some whom the king of Moab hath sent to me, to let me know that there is a people come out of Egypt which cover the face of the earth ; and to desire me to come to him and curse them, in hopes that he may then be able to overcome them and drive ihem away." To this God made answer, " Thou shah net go with them ; thou shalt not curse the people, for they are blessed." Not daring to disobey the divine command, Balaam arose early in the morning, and going to the deputies, dismissed them, saying, " Be gone to your own country, for the Lord refuseth to give me leave to go with you." The deputies, on their return to Moab, misrepresented Balaam's answer to the king; for, instead of telling him that God had refused to let him come, they told him that Balaam himself had refused to come. In consequence of this, Balak, suggesting that either the number and quality of his messengers did not answer Balaam's ambi- tion, or the value of the presents his covetousness, resolved, if possible, to remove this obstacle by gratifying both. He accordingly despatched the chiefs of his nobility to Balaam, sending by them much more considerable presents than before, and at the same time this message: " Let nothing," said he, " hinder thee from coming to me , for [ will promote thee to very great honor, and give thee whatsoever thou shalt ask, if thou wilt but come and curse this people." Balaam, being naturallv of a very avaricious disposition, accepted the present* 200 AN ILLUSTRATED from tne deputies, but evaded complying with their request, by assuring them thai lie durst not, on any account whatever, couuteract the divine will. However, in order to amuse and Hatter them with expectations, he desired them to tarry a little while he made farther inquiries of the Lord, and, if he thought proper to admit his going, he would readily attend them. The Almighty had at first given Balaam a positive answer, and it was certainly the highest disobedience and presumption to attempt the reversing it by a farther application. Howevei, blinded by covetousness and ambition, he again addressed himself to God, who (provoked at his obstinacy and presumption) was pleased to give him this answer: " If the men," said he, "come to call thee, rise up and go with them ; but yet the word which I shall say unto thee, that shalt thou do." With this permission Balaam arose in the morning, and, saddling his ass, set for- ward with the messengers on their journey to Moab. On the road he was met by an angel with a drawn sword in his hand, whom, though he perceived not, his ass plainly saw, and being startled, turned aside in order to avoid him. With some dif- ficulty Balaam beat his ass into the road again, soon after which the angel placed himself in a narrow passage between two walls which enclosed a vineyard. The ass, who was equally startled as before, not knowing how to avoid the angel, ran against one of the walls and crushed Balaam's foot, upon which he was so provoked that he beat him with great severity. At length the angel removed, and fixed him- self in a place so very narrow that there was no possibility of passing him ; upon which the ass made a full stop and fell beneath his rider. This enraged Balaam still more; and as he was beating the poor animal in the most unmerciful manner, God was pleased to gtve the ass the faculty of speech, who expostulated with his master on his severe treatment in words to this effect : " What," said he, " have 1 done to thee, that thou shouldst beat me these three times ?" — " Because," said Ba- laam, " thou hast deserved it in mocking me : had I a sword in my hand I would kill thee." The ass replied, "Am I not thine ass, upon which thou hast been ac- customed to ride ever since I was thine ; did I ever serve thee so before ?" While Balaam was thus conversing with his ass, God was pleased to open his eyes, and let him see the angel standing in the way, with a naked sword in his hand. Terrified at so unexpected a sight, Balaam fell on his face, acknowledged his offence, asked pardon for it, and offered, if his journey was displeasing to God, immediately to return. That his journey was displeasing to the Almighty he certainly could not be igno- rant, because, in his first address, God had expressly interdicted his going. He Avas pleased, however, to suffer him to proceed, that some kind of advantage might be raised out of this man's wickedness, and to make him, who was hired to curse, the instrument of pronouncing a blessing on his people. When Balak heard that Balaam was on the road, he went himself to receive him on the confines of his dominions. As soon as Balak saw him, he in a friendly man- ner blamed him for not coming at his first sending, which Balaam excused on ac- count of the restraint that had been laid upon him by the Almighty. Balak then conducted him to his capital, where he that day publicly entertained him in the most sumptuous manner; and the next morning conducted him to the high places conse- crated r o the idol Baal, whence he might take an advantageous view of the camp of the Israelites. After being here some short time, Balaam ordered seven altars to be erected, and seven oxen, together with the like number of rams, to be prepared for sacrifice. Ba- laam, having offered an ox and a ram on each altar, left Balak to stand by the sacri- fices, while himself withdrew at some distance to consult the Lord. On his return he addressed the king, in the presence of the whole company, in words to this effect: " Thou hast caused me, king," said he, " to come from out of the mountains of the east to curse the family of Jacob, and bid defiance to Israel. But how shall I curse those whom God hath not cursed ? and how shall I defy those whom the Lord hath not defied ? From the tops of the rocks I see their protector, and from the hills I behold him. Behold, this people shall be separated to God, and distinguished from all other people in religion, laws, and course of life: they shall not be reckoned among the nations." He then set forth the great prosperity and increase of the Isra- elite^ and concluded by wishing that his lot, both in life and in death, might be liKe HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 201 p^^f::?)W f 202 AN ILLUSTRATED unto theirs. "Let me die," said he, 'the death of the righteous, and let my last end be like his." Balak, alarmed as well as incensed at these words, which were quite contrary to what he had expected, passionately said to Balaam, " What hast thou done ? I sent for thee to curse mine enemies; but, instead thereof, thou hast blessed them." Ba- laam excused himself by urging the necessity of his instructions, from which, he said, it way not in his power at that time to make the least deviation. Not discouraged at this rebuff, Balak, thinking that a change of place might pTo- iluce a change of fortune, or better success, conducted Balaam to the top of Mount Pisgah, in order to try whether he could thence fulfil his wishes by cursing the Israelites. Balaam, willing to please the king, had seven other altars erected here, and a bul- lock and ram offered on each. As soon as the sacrifices were ready he withdrew, as hefore, to consult the Lord, from whom he received fresh instructions. On his return to Balak and his attendants, the king, big with expectation of the result, asked what the Lord had spoken. Balaam, with the most serious countenance and solemn tone of voice, answered as follows: " Consider," said he, "0 Balak, thou son of Zippor, consider that God, who hath already blessed Israel, and forbidden me to curse them, is not like a man that he should renounce his promise, or repent of what he does. Hath he promised, and shall he not perform ? or hath he spoken, and shall he not make it good ? Behold, I have received commission to bless, and he hath blessed, and I can not reverse it. He does not approve of afflictions or outrages against the posterity of Jacob, nor of vexation or trouble against the posterity of Israel. The Lord his God is with him, and the shout of a king is in him. God hath brought them out of Egypt ; he hath, as it were, the strength of a unicorn. Surely no en- chantment can prevail against Jacob, nor any divination against Israel. So that, considering what God will work this time for the deliverance of his people, all the world shall wonder and say, What hath God wrought, who hath put his people out of the reach of fraud or force, and turned the intended curse into a blessing ! And to show their future strength and success, the people shall rise up as a great lion, and lift themselves up as a young lion. They shall not lie down until they eat of the prey, and drink of the blood of the slain." Balak was so mortified at this speech that, in the height of his passion, he forbad c Balaam either to bless or curse ; but after his indignation was somewhat abated he changed his mind, and desired him to make a farther trial at another place. Ac- cordingly, Balaam was conducted to the top of Mount Peor, where fresh altars were raised and fresh sacrifices offered ; but all to no purpose. Balaam well knew the positive will of God in this case was to bless, and not to curse. He did not there- fore, as before, retire for farther instructions, but, casting his eyes on the tents of the Israelites, thus exclaimed : "How goodly are thy tents, O Jacob, and thy taberna- cles, Israel !" He then, in proper and significant metaphors, foretold their extent, fertility, and strength, and that " those that blessed them should be blessed, and those that cursed them should be cursed." Balak, enraged to hear Balaam, whom he had sent for to curse the Israelites, thus three times successively bless them, could no longer contain himself, but, clasping tiis hands together, bade him haste and be gone, since, by his folly, he had both abused God and defrauded himself. " I thought," said he, " to have promoted thee to great honor, if thou hadst answered my design in cursing Israel; but the Lord hath hindered thy preferment." Balaam, in excuse, made use of the same arguments he had done before, namely, that he could not run counter to the divine commands, but must speak what the Lord had put into his mouth. He then, in expectation of obtaining some reward from the king, notwithstanding he had not answered the purposes for which he was sent, offered to advertise him of what the Israelites would do to his people in subse- quent ages ; which being accepted by Balak, he prophesied as follows : " That a star should come forth from Jacob, and a rod from Israel ; that it should smite the chiefs of Moab, and destroy the children of Seth ; that Edom should fall under its power ; that the Amalekites should be totally destroyed, and the Kenites made captives." Having said this Balaam left the king, but without receiving any reward, as he had expected, for his predictions. Vexed at this disappointment, and considering the [sraelites as the occasion of it, he determined to wreak his vengeance on them. He HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 203 knew that their prosperity depended on their strict observance of the divine laws, and that there was no way to bring a curse on them but by seducing them from their duty. To accomplish, therefore, his wicked design, he advised both the Moabites and Midianites to send their daughters into the camp of the Israelites, that they might first entice the people into lewdness, and then into idolatry ; by doing of which they would infallibly be deprived of that divine assistance that had hitherto protected them. This wicked stratagem, being highly approved of by the Moabites and Midianites, was immediately put into execution, and in some measure attended with the wished- for success. Many of the Israelites were deluded by these strange women, not only to commit whoredom with them, but also idolatry, by assisting at their sacrifices, and worshipping their gods, even their god Baal-peor. These offences were highly displeasing to God, who, as a punishment on the peo- ple, commanded Moses to take the chiefs of those who had worshipped Baal-peor, and hang them up in the sight of the people, without paying respect either to friend- ship or kindred. This was accordingly done, and the number that suffered was about one thousand. But the divine justice did not stop here, for those who had committed whoredom were visited with a dreadful plague, which in a short time carried off no less than twenty-four thousand persons. These severe punishments opened the eyes of the sinful Israelites, who assembled at the door of the tabernacle, and, with the most expressive sense of affliction, be- wailed their folly and wickedness in suffering themselves to have been deluded by a strange people who were their mortal enemies. While the whole congregation were thus situated at the door of the tabernacle, they were surprised with an instance of the most unparalleled boldness and depravity in one of the chiefs of the tribe of Simeon, named Zimri, who, in the sight of Moses and all the people, brought with him a young Midianitish princess, named Cozbi, into the camp, and, with all the actions of gallantry, conducted her to his tent. This impious as well as insolent behavior particularly engaged the attention of Phineas, the son of Eleazer the high-priest, who, fired with a just indignation, sud- denly arose, and taking a javelin in his hand, ran to Zimri's tent, and put a period to their lives, by running them both through the body at the same instant. After this zealous act of Phineas, the plague, which God had sent among the peo- ple for their lewdness and impiety, ceased. And Phineas not only received the high- est commendation for his conduct among the people, but also from God, who was pleased to appoint a perpetual settlement of the priesthood on him and his posterity. The disorders among the Israelites being thoroughly quelled, and the offenders pun- ished, Moses by the direction of God, proceeded to take vengeance on the Midianites, who, by their conduct, had been the authors of the late calamities among the people. He ordered a detachment to be made out of 12,000 choice men, a thousand out of each tribe, whom he sent against the Midianites. Among them was the zealous Phineas, who took with him the ark, together with the sacred trumpets, the latter of which were to be blown, during the time of action, to animate the people. The army of the Israelites was but small compared with the great numbers they had to oppose ; but God, who put them on the expedition, was pleased to crown their attempts with such success, that conquest took place wherever they went. They vanquished five kings, whom, with their men, they put all to the sword. Among the slain was thewiAed prophet Balaam,* who, though he had before escaped the sword of the angel, could not now avoid the common danger, but fell a victim to his own baseness. In every city where the Israelites made a conquest,. they destroyed not only the for- tified places but likewise all the buildings, took all the women and children prisoners, and seized on their cattle, flocks, and goods. The Israelites, having thus vanquished their enemies, and loaded themselves with the spoils of conquest, returned in triumph to the camp, where they were met by Moses, Eleazer the high-priest, and all the elders of the different tribes, who con- gratulated them on the occasion, and the people testified their joy by the loudest ac- clamations. * It is evident, from this circumstance, that if Balaam did return to his own country when lie left Balnk, he dia not continue long there ; but it is Tiuch more urobable that he never did return, but dwelt with the winces ol Midian, in order to give them counsel. 204 AX ILLUSTRATED But when Moses saw the women captives, remembering what damage they had done by alluring the Israelites into idolatry, he thought it unsafe that their lives should be spared. He therefore ordered that all those who had ever known man, together with all the male children, should be put to the sword, and none but virgins be saved aliv-e. These orders were accordingly executed, and (as a proof of the importance of the victory) the number of virgin captives amounted to two and thirty thousand. After this Moses gave orders that the conquerors should abide seven days without the camp, and that both the soldiers and spoils should pass through the ceremonies of a legal purification. When the time of purification was expired. Moses, by the command of God, tork an account of the whole booty that had been taken from the Midianites. This he di- vided into two equal parts, one of which he gave to the soldiers who had taken it, and the other half to the rest of the people who stayed at home. Out of the division given to the soldiers he ordered a five hundredth part to be paid as a tribute to Elea- zer the high-priest, as a heave-offering to the Lord : and out of the other part allotted to the people, a fiftieth, both of persons and beasts, to be given to the Levites. The plunder of cattle and flocks consisted of 670,500 sheep, 72,000 oxen, and 31 ,000 asses, besides a great quantity of rich goods and ornaments. And, what makts the victory still more miraculous is. that not one man among the Israelites was slain in the battle, as appeared from the report afterward made on a general muster of the whole that went out to war. The officers of the army were sensible that, in saving the Midianitish women, they had committed a great transgression. They therefore presented a prodigious quantity of jewels, and other rich spoils, both as an expiatory offering to atone for their offence, and in gratitude to God's goodness for having given them so great and signal a victor}'. The Israelites were now hi possession of all thai part of the country which lay on the east side of the river Jordan. It was a very fertile spot, and stored with good pasturage, in consequence of which the tribes of Reuben and Gad, together with the half-tribe of Manasseh, requested of Moses that they might be permitted to settle there, it being particularly commodious for the feeding of their flocks and cattle. Moses, thinking this request arose from their pusillanimity, and that they were de- cirous of continuing in a country ready gained, and thereby avoid giving their assist- ance in farther conquests, was exceeding angry, and blamed them for offering a pro- posal su discouraging to the rest of the tribes. They told him they had no other rea- son for wishing to continue where they were than what they had already advanced, and that though they were desirous of settling there with their families, yet they wished not to decline the fatigues of war. They promised, in the most solemn man- ner, that a quota should go with the army into the land of Canaan, and contribute all the assistance they were able in reducing that country which had been so long prom- isecj. and that when these matters were accomplished, and not till then, would they desire to return to their families in the plains of Moab. On this reason, and on these promises, Moses told them their request should be granted. As the Israelites were now in the neighborhood of Canaan, and the time very near of their entering that country to take possession of it, Moses called a general assem- bly of the people, to whom he enumerated the several stations and removes they had made from the time of their leaving the land of Goshen in Egypt, till their arrival in the plains of Moab. He then, by the direction of God, pointed out the limits of what they were to conquer, and appointed the distribution of the whole among the different tribes to be bv lot, assigning the chief management of it to Eleazer the hi°:h-priest, and Joshua, the general of his army. In the division ol the country Moses assigned forty-eight cities, together with their suburbs, to be inhabited by the Levites, and withal ordered, that six of them should be made cities of refuge, whither the innocent manslavpr who had killed his neigh- bor by chance, might betake himself, and where he should remain in safetv till the death of the high-priest, when he was at full liberty to go where he pleased with equal safety as when in the city of refuge. At the same time Moses made all proper provision that the wilful murderer should certainly be put to death. But in this, and all other capital cases, he made it a law that none should be convicted upon the evi- dence of any single person. A law was likewise made, that every daughter who should possess an inheritance in any tribe of the children of Israel should be married to one of the tribes of his father, that so the Israelites might every one enjoy the in- HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 20* 111 206 AN ILLUSTRATED heritanee of nis father , and the inheritance not to be transferred to another tribe. Tms was grounded on a law made before, which empowered daughters to inherit land where the heirs male should be deficient ; and was the case of the daughters of Ze- lophehad (a descendant of Manasseh, the son of Joseph), who, by this additional law, were required to marry within the family of their father's tribe. The forty years' travels of the Israelites being now nearly expired, Moses, consider- ing that the then generation were either sprung up since the law was given at Mount Sinai, or too young to remember and understand it, thought proper to repeat the whole to them, that they might not be deficient in performing those duties so religiously en- joined. Accordingly, on the first day of the eleventh month, and in the fortieth year from their departure out of Egypt (being then encamped on the plains of Moab, by the banks of the river Jordan) Moses called all the people together, to whom he briefly related all that had befallen their fathers since the time of their leaving Egypt ; the gracious dealings of God with them ; their continual murmurings and rebellions against him ; and the many severe judgments that followed thereupon, even to his own ex- clusion from the promised land. He then gave them a summary of all the laws which the divine goodness had calculated for their happiness; and, after repeating the deca- logue almost word for word, he reminded them of the solemn and dreadful manner in which it was delivered from Mount Sinai, and of the manifold obligations they lay under to a strict observance of it. He encouraged them to be faithful to God, by as- suring them, that, if they kept his commandments, they should not fail of having in- numerable blessings heaped on them; but at the same time he threatened them with all manner of calamities if they departed from them. He then, in the name of the Lord, renewed the covenant which their fathers had made with God at Mount Horeb ; commanded them to proclaim, on the mountains of Gerizim and Ebal,* beyond Jor- dan, blessings on such as observed the covenant, and curses on those who broke it: and to erect an altar there, on Avhich should be written, in legible characters, the terms and conditions of the covenant. These, and several other directions relative to their future conduct in the land of Canaan, did Moses not only deliver to the people by word of mouth, but likewise or- dered them to be written in a book, which he committed to the care and custody of the Levites, who, by God's appointment, laid it up on the side of the ark, there to remain a witness against the people should they afterward rebel. Such was the care and concern of Moses for the future welfare of the people : and that they might never want a proper fund of devotion, he composed a song, or poem, which he not only repeated to them, but likewise gave orders that they should all learn by heart. In this song he expressed, in a very elegant manner, the many ben- efits which God had bestowed on his people ; their ingratitude and forgelfulness of him, the punishment wherewith he had afflicted them; and the threats of greater judgments, if they persisted in provoking him by a repetition of their follies. The whole of this beautiful song runs from the first verse of the thirty-second chapter of Deuteronomy to the forty-third. The time was now near at hand when a period was to be put to Moses's earthly peregrinations. The Almighty had before told him, that he should not conduct the people into the promised land because of his error at the waters of Meribah : he therefore now commanded him to go up to the mountains of Abarim,f and there take a view of the land of Canaan, which he had promised to his forefathers, Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob ; and farther told 1 m, that after he had so done, he should die there, as his brother Aaron had done on M >unt Hor. Moses humbly submitted to the will of the Almighty, and, as a necessary prepara- * These two mountains (of which we give a beautiful and correct representation, p. 205), are so near each oth«r,that they are only separated by a valley of about two hundred paces wide, in which is situated the town of snechern. They are much alike in length, height, and form : their figure is semicircular, and on the side of Shechern they are so steep that there is not the least shelving* they are at most about half a league in length. But notwithstanding they are so much alike in the particulars mentioned, they are ve,y different in one instance ; namely, Ebal is desolate and barren, whereas Gerizim is beautiful and fruitful. t These mountains were situated in the country of the Moabites, between the two rivers Arnon and Jor- dan, and commanded a most extensive prospect of the land of Canaan. One part of these mountain!) was distinguished by the name of Nebo, as appears from Deut. xxxii. 49, but if we compare this with Deut. xxxiv. 1, we shall find that Nebo and Pisgah were one, and the same mountain. If, therefore, there was any distinction between the names it was probably this, that the top of the mountain was more peculiar.} CHiled Pisgah, which signifies to elevate or raise up, and, therefore, may very properly denote 1 he top or sum mtt. of any mountain. Not. far from Nebo was Beth-peor, which was probably so called from some deity oi that nirne worshipped bv the Moabites. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. W)7 '^08 AN ILLUSTRATED tion to the execution of this last command, took a solemn farewell of the people, be- stowing a prophetic blessing on each tribe, in like manner as Jacob had done a short time previous to his death. The Almighty had before appointed Joshua to succeed Moses in his commission ; and to prevent any disputes after his death, Moses first laid his own hands upon Joshua, and then presented him to Eleazer the high-priest, who, in a solemn form of admis- sion, and in the presence of all the people, accepted him as leader and general of the Israelites ; after which Moses gave Joshua some instructions relative to his office, and one more especially which concerned his consulting God, by way of Urim and Thum- mim,* on matters of emergency. Having adjusted these matters, Moses, in conformity to the divine command, retired to Pisgah, the most elevated situation on Mount Nebo, directly opposite to Jericho, whence he might take a full view of the country, which God had promised to Abra- ham's posterity. At this time he was a hundred and twenty years of age, notwith- standing which, his natural strength and vigor were not abated, nor had his eyesight in the least failed him. He was, therefore, able to survey the beauteous prospect which the delightful plains of Jericho, and the fair cliffs and lofty cedars of Lebanon, afforded him ; and having done this for some time, he at length resigned his soul into the hands of seraphim, who Avere waiting to convey it to a more happy Canaan than that which he hrwl been surveying. The Almighty was pleased to pay the funeral honors to the remains of this great prophet himself, by burying him in a valley in the land of Moab opposite to Beth-Peor, and that in so secret a manner, that the place of his interment was never yet discovered. Thus died the illustrious and pious Moses, the most eminent servant of God, and ihe great conductor of his chosen people, who, as soon as they knew of his death, la- mented the loss of him with the greatest solemnity, weeping and mourning for him in the plains of Moab for thirty days. CHAPTER XII. JOSHUA BECOMES LEADER — CONQUEST OP CANAAN. Un the death of Moses, Joshua, being appointed to succeed him in the government of the Israelites, was installed into the kingly office by Eleazer, the high-priest, and with the universal approbation of the people. To encourage him in the great work he had to undertake, the Almighty expressly commanded him (as he had done his servant Moses) to lead the people over the Jordan, telling him that every place on which they should tread should be their own, and that no man should "be able to stand against him : that in like manner as he had been with Moses, so he would be with him, and that he might be assured he would never forsake him. Encouraged by these divine assurances, Joshua ordered the officers to proclaim throughout the camp, that within a few days they should pass the Jordan, in order to possess the land which the Almighty had promised them, and that therefore they should provide themselves with proper necessaries on the occasion. He then called together the leaders of the tribes of Reuben and Gad, and the half-tribe of Manasseh, * Urim and Thummim, signifying lights and perfections, formed the oracle of God put into the sacred breastplate of judgment of Aaron, by which the Divine will was to be sought on solemn occasions: but while learned men have offered many and various conjectures, it is not agreed what they were, as it is not fully declared by Moses, Exod. xxviii. 30, Lev. viii. 8. Josephus supposes that they were the twelve pre cious stones of the breastplate, on which were engraven the names of several tribes of Israel, Exod. xxviii 15-21 ; and that God gave answers to the high-priest inquiring before the most holy place, by an extraordi nary glory illustrating the letters : but others are of opinion that they were given by an audible voice from the Shekinah, in the cloud of glory over the mercy-seat, Psal. lxxx. 1, xcix. 1. This oracle, it is believed, was not used during the life of Moses, as God spake to him directly, Exod. xxxiii. 11, Num. vii. 89 ; and afterward only in national difficulties, by the high-priest only, and not for any private person, Num. xxvii 21, Josh, vii. 6-15. This sacred instrument is supposed to have been destroyed with the temple of Solomon if not before ; as the Jews acknowledge that it did not exist in the second temple, Ezra ii. 13, Neh. vii. 65 The rabbins indeed say, that it continued in use only under the tabernacle, 1 Sam. xxviii. 6: they have a maxim that the Hoiy Ghost spoke to Israel under the tabernacle by Urim and Thummim ; under the first temple by prophets ; and after the captivity of Babylon, by the Bath-kol, or Daughter of the voice ; meaning -i \oice from heaven, as at the baptism, and transfiguration of Christ, Matt. iii. 17, xvii. 5 ; 2 Pet. i. 17. r .See Engraving (p. 207).— The costume is Egypto-Syrian— that is Egyptian, with such modifications as the Syrians appear to have giver, it in adopting it from the Egyptians It has been verv carefully studied HISTORY OF THZ BIBLE. 209 ^Iiom he reminded of the promises they had made to Moses, and entreated them, not only for his sake, but also their own, to fulfil their engagements. They faithfully promised to comply with his request, and that they would be equally obedient to him as they had been to his predecessor. Opposite to Joshua's camp stood the city of Jericho, which of course must be the first place he would have to attack after passing the river Jordan. As a necessary precaution, he sent two spies to take a view of the strength and situation of that city, and to learn the disposition of the inhabitants. They accordingly entered Jericho, and being considered as strangers come thither to gratify their curiosity, were permitted to perambulate the streets without the least molestation. On the close of the day they took up their residence hi the house of a woman named Rahab, where, after refreshing themselves, they retired to rest. In the meantime, information had been given the king that there were two spies in the city, and that they had concealed themselves in the house of Rahab. On this the king immediately despatched proper officers to seize them; but Rahab (who had been previously informed of it), before their arrival, had secreted the two spies under some stalks of" flax on the roof of the house. When the messengers arrived and related their business, Rahab told them there had been such people at her house, but she knew not who they were, nor whence they came ; that a short time after dark, and before the gates of the city were shut, they departed ; and, as they could not be got far, it would be no difficult matter to overtake them. The messengers, believing Rahab's story, left her, and immediately set out in pursuit of the spies. As soon as they were gone, Rahab uncovered her guests, told them what had passed, and pointed out the great danger to which she had exposed herself and family for their protection. In return for this kindness, she exacted from them an oath, that when the city should be invested by the Hebrews, they should preserve her and her relations from the general destruction. To effect this, they told her that when she found the city attacked, to shut herself up with her family in her house, and that, in order to distinguish it from the rest, she must hang a scarlet thread to the door, which signal should be communicated to the general, who would, no doubt, give such directions as to secure her from all danger. This being agreed on, Rahab, for the better security of her guests, let them down into the street by a rope fastened to the window, so that they made their escape unper- ceived. She advised them immediately to fly to the mountains, and there conceal themselves for three days, in which time the messengers, finding their endeavors ineffectual, would relinquish the pursuit. The two spies took Rahab's advice, and the consequences turned out as she had predicted ; for, after two days' search, the messengers, despairing of success, gave over the pursuit and returned to Jericho. At the close of the third day the two spies left the mountains, crossed the Jordan, and arriving safe at the camp of Joshua, gave him a faithful account of their expedition ; adding, that for certain the Lord had delivered the country into their hands, for the people were quite dispirited at the name of the Israelites. Pleased with this intelligence, Joshua, early the next morning, left Shittim, and conducted his army within a small distance of the place where it was intended they should cross the river Jordan. Here he communicated to every tribe the order to be observed in their march. He told them that when they saw the ark of the Lord carried by the priests, the whole army should then move and follow it, that they might know the way by which they were to go ; and that they should leave a space of two thousand cubits between them and the ark. That when the priests were got into the middle of the channel, they should there stand still till the whole multitude were got safe on the opposite shore ; and, to prepare themselves properly for this remarkable passage, they were all enjoined to sanctify themselves, by washing their clothes, avoiding all impurities, and abstaining from matrimonial intercourse the preceding night. He also, by the direction of the Almighty, appointed twelve men (one out of each tribe) to choose twelve stones from the middle of the river where the priests were to stand with the ark, and there to set them up (that they might be seen from each side of the river when the waters were abated) as a monument of this great miracle ; and to take twelve others with them to be erected on the land for the like purpose. J4 210 AN ILLUSTRATED Having given these necessary orders, early the next morning, which was the tentli day of the first month, the whole army proceeded on their march. The priests with the ark went first ; and as soon as they touched the river with their feet, the rapidity of the stream abated; the waters above went back, and rose on heaps for a consider- able distance, while those below continued their course the contrary way, so that there was a passage opened of about sixteen miles for the Israelites to pass. The priests stood with the ark in the middle of the channel till the whole multitude had got on the other side, when, having raised the twelve stones as Joshua had com- manded, they left the bed of the river, on which the waters immediately returned, and resumed their natural course. The Israelites, having by this miraculous passage gained the plams of Jericho, encamped in a place afterward called Gilgal,* where Joshua erected the twelve stones, which had been brought from the Jordan, as a monument to posterity of the Almighty's interposition in assisting them to pass that river. This extraordinary event being soon circulated through the adjacent parts of the country, the people were filled with the greatest amazement ; and when the kings of the Amorites (who were on the west side of the Jordan) and the kings of the Canaanites (who inhabited those parts next the sea) heard of it, their hearts sunk for fear, and their courage failed them. Soon after Joshua had encamped his army, God commanded the rite of circum- cision (which had been neglected for almost forty years) to be renewed, that the people might be properly qualified to partake of the ensumg passover.f This order being obeyed, the Lord said unto Joshua, " This day r have I rolled away the reproach of Egypt [i. e. uncircumcision] from off you, wherefore the name of tne place is called Gilgal [i. e. rolling] unto this day." As the Israelites were now arrived in a country where there was a sufficiency of com for unleavened bread, God insisted upon the observance of his ordinances, and resolved that all things should now go in a regular way. He therefore ceased to sup- ply them any longer with manna, but left them for the future to enjoy the products of" the promised inheritance. Joshua, previous to his marching his army against Jericho, went from the camp alone, in order to reconnoitre the city, and to discover which would be the most advantageous way of approaching it. While he was making his observations, on a sudden there appeared before him a person resembling a man, but with a lustre in his face that indicated he was more than mortal. In his hand he held a flaming sword, and his whole appearance far surpassed anything of human nature. Un- daunted at this unusual sight, Joshua advanced toward him, and demanding of what party he was, the vision replied, of the host of the Lord,+ of which he was captain and guardian. On this answer, Joshua immediately threw himself prostrate on the ground, when the vision, after ordering him to loose the sandals from his feet, pro- ceeded to instruct him in what manner he would have the siege carried on, that the Canaanites might see it was not the arm of flesh alone by which they would be defeated. The instructions Joshua received were these : that for six successive days the whole army should march round the city, with seven priests before the ark, having in their hands trumpets made of rams' horns. That on the seventh day, after the army had gone round the city seven times, upon signal given, the priests were to blow their trumpets as loud as possible, and the people, on a sudden, to set up a great shout; at which instant the walls of the ^ity should fall to the ground, and they might walk into it without the least obstruction. Having received these orders from the Divine messenger, Joshua returned to the camp, and early the next morning marched with his whole army against Jericho, f] * This place received its name from the rite of circumcision, which had been long disused, being here re- newed. It lay about two miles to the northeast of Jericho, and St. Jerome tells us, that in his time it was greatly venerated by the inhabitants. t This was the third time of their celebrating that festival. The first was at their departure out of Egypt • and the second at their erecting the tabernacle at the foot of Mount Sinai. J It is the opinion of the best commentators, both ancient and modern, that the person here called the captain of the Lord's host, was no other than an angel, or messenger from God, who was pleased in this manner to appear to Joshua, both to encourage and direct him. il Jericho, " the city of paim trees" (Deut xixiv. 3), derives all its importance from history. Though now only a miserable village, containing about thirty wretched cottages, which are inhabited by half-naked Arabs, it was one of the oldest cities in Palestine, and was the first place reduced by the Israelites on en- tering the Holv Land. It was rased to the giound by Joshua, who denounced a curse on the person who should rebuild' it, Josn. vi. 20-26. Five hundred and thirty years afterward this malediction yvas literal tj HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 211 212 AN ILLUSTRATED The place was strong, well provided, and full of inhabitants, who had retired into it, and seemed resolved to make a vigorous defence. But Joshua had an irresistible force on his side. He strictly obeyed the orders he had received, and the promises made him were amply fulfilled; for, on the seventh day, as soon as the people shouted, after going round the city seven times, the walls suddenly fell to the ground. In consequence of this, the Israelites immediately entered the place, and put every living creature to the sword, except Rahab and her relations, who, being preserved as had been directed by Joshua, agreeably to the promise made by the spies, were placed without the camp of the army. In the city were found great quantities of gold, silver, and brass, the whole of which was of immense value, and being gathered together as Joshua had ordered, he presented it to the priests, to be deposited in the sacred treasury. Having destroyed all the inhabitants, Joshua ordered the city to be set on fire, which was accordingly done, and the whole reduced to a heap of ashes. He like- wise denounced a heavy curse on any person who should ever after attempt to rebuild it. That whoever should take upon him to lay the first stone might be punished by the loss of his eldest son ; and whoever should finish the work, his youngest. Notwithstanding Joshua had taken the greatest precaution to prevent private plunder in the taking of Jericho, yet one Achan, of the tribe of Judah, committed a violent depredation, by taking to himself the rich cloak of the king of the Canaan- ites, two hundred shekels of silver, and a wedge of gold of fifty shekels. He secreted these treasures in a pit he had dug in his tent, foolishly supposing the fact would be no more noticed by G-od than it was known by his companions. But in this he soon found himself mistaken. About twelve miles from Jericho (to the east of Bethel) was a small city called Ai, which Joshua knowing to be neither populous nor well defended, he detached a small body of men to take it. Bnt they did not find the conquest so easy as they had imagined ; for no sooner did they approach the place than the inhabitants imme- diately sallied out upon them, and having slain some, the rest were so frightened that they betook themselves to flight, and were pursued by the enemy within a small distance of their own camp. This defeat, though small, struck a universal damp on the spirits of the people: and Joshua, in particular, was so afflicted that he had recourse to the Almighty, whc told him there was a latent cause of his displeasure among the people : that some of them had taken of the accursed thing, and also of those things which were devoted to the Lord, and, instead of bringing them to the treasury of God, had concealed fulfilled upon Hiel of Bethel 1 Kings xvi. 34, who rebuilt the city, which soon appears to have attained a considerable degree of importance. There was a school of the prophets here in the days of Elijah and JEli- sha, both of whom seemed to have resided much here. In the vicinity of Jericho there was a large but un- wholesome spring, which rendered the soil unfruitful, until it was cured by the prophet Elisha, 2 Kin#s, ii. 21. In Ezra ii. 34, and Neh. vii. 36, we read, that three hundred and forty-five of the inhabitants of Jericho, who had been carried into captivity, returned to Judea with Zerubbabel, and in Neh. iii. 2, we find them at work upon the walls of Jerusalem. Jericho appears to have continued in a flourishing condition during several centuries. In the time of ou Saviour it was inferior only to Jerusalem in the number and splendor of its public edifices, and was one o' the royal residences of Herod misnamed the Great, who died there. It was situated in the hollow or bot- tom of the extensive plain called the " Great Plain," (which circumstance marks the propriety of the ex- pression "going down to Jerusalem," in Luke x. 30), and is about nineteen miles distant from the capital of Judea. In the last war of the Romans with the Jews, Jericho was sacked by Vespasian, and its inhab- itants were put to the sword. Subsequently re-established by the emperor Hadrian, A. D. 138, it was doomed at no very distant period to experience new disasters : again it was repaired by the Christians, who made it an episcopal see ; but in the twelfth century it was captured by the Mohammedans, and has not since emerged from its ruins. Of all its magnificent buildings there remains part of only one tower, th« dwelling of the governor of the district, which is seen in the middle of our engraving, and which is tradi- tionally said to have been the dwelling of Zaccheus the publican, who dwelt at Jericho (Luke xix. 1, 2). The steep mountainous ridge in the background of our engraving is called the mountain of Quarantania, ?.nd is supposed to have been the scene of our Saviours temptation, Matt. iv. 1-10. Here Dr. Shaw is of opinion that the two spies of Joshua concealed themselves, Josh. ii. 16. This mountain commands a dis- tinct and delightful view of the mountains of Arabia, and of the Dead sea, and of the extensive and fertile plain of Jericho. According to Mr. Maundrell, Quarantania is a most miserable, dry, and barren place, con- sisting of rocky mountains so torn and disordered, as if the earth had here suffered'some great convulsion. On the left hand, looking down a steep valley, as he passed along, he saw ruins of small cells and cottages, the former habitations of hermits who had retired thither for penance and mortification ; for which purpose .- more comfortless and abandoned place could not be found in the whole earth. The particular mountain- ous precipice, whence " all the kingdoms of the v/orld and the glory of them" were shown to Jesus Christ, is, as the evangelist describes it, " an exceeding high mountain" Matt. iv. 8, and in its ascent not only diffi- cult but dangerous • it has a small chapel at the top, and another about half way down, founded on a pro- jecting part of the rock. Near the latter are several caves and holes, excavated by the hermits, in whieh they kept their fast of Lent in imitation of that of Jesus Christ. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 213 them for their own use. He likewise told Joshua that no success could attend the house of Israel till the accursed thing was removed ; and discovered to him the means whereby the offender might be discovered and properly punished. Agreeably to the Divine instructions, Joshua, early the next morning, set about the business of discovering the thief, who had brought so great an evil on the people. For this purpose, he ordered all the tribes to assemble before the altar, where, first casting lots among the tribes, it appeared the thief belonged to that of Judah. They then proceeded from tribe to family, from family to household, and from household te» particular persons; when the criminal was at length discovered to be Achan, who, on Joshua's admonition, made an ample confession of the whole. "I have," says he, " sinned against the Lord God of Israel ; for when I saw among the spoil a royal gar- ment and two hundred shekels of silver, with a wedge of gold of fifty shekels weight, my covetousness prompted me to take them ; which I did, and hid them in the earth in the midst of my tent." On this frank confession, Joshua sent messengers to examine Achan's tent, who, finding the treasures, brought them away, and laid them before the people. The offender being thus fully convicted, they took him, together with his family (whom they considered as accomplices in his crime), his cattle, tent, and all his moveables, and conducted them to a neighboring valley (called from that time, in allusion to this man's name, the valley of Achor), where they were first stoned to death, and their bodies afterward reduced to ashes. They likewise burnt all their goods and utensils, and erected over the whole a pile of stones, to perpetuate the memory of the crime, and to deter others from committing the like offence. The Divine vengeance being appeased by the sentence executed upon Achan, God commanded Joshua to make another attempt on the city of Ai, assuring him that he should be no less successful than he had been in the attack on Jericho. As an encouragement to the soldiers, he allowed them the plunder of the city and cattle, and, in order the more easily to facilitate the conquest, particularly enjoined Joshua to place a party of men in ambuscade near the city. Agreeably to these instructions, Joshua selected thirty thousand men, out of which he sent away by night five thousand to conceal themselves between Bethel and Ai, who, on a signal given by him (which was to be the holding up of a spear with a banner upon it), were immediately to enter the city and set it on fire. Early the next morning, Joshua marched with his army before the north part of the city. As soon as the king of Ai perceived him, he immediately sallied out of the town with his troops, followed by the greater part of the inhabitants, all of whom had been so elated with their former success, that they did not doubt of soon making an easy con- quest. They accordingly fell on the Israelites with great fury, who at the first onset Sfave way, and retreated a considerable distance from the city. But this was only a temt to draw the enemy into the plain; and therefore, as soon as Joshua saw that by this stratagem the city was pretty well emptied, he gave the signal to the ambuscade, who, finding it defenceless, immediately entered and set it on fire. The ascent of the smoke convinced Joshua that his men had got possession of the place ; upon which he suddenly turned about and faced the enemy, who, little expecting the Israelites would rally, were so surprised that they began to think of retreating to the city. But when they saw it all in flames, and the party who had set it on fire just going to fall upon their rear, they were so dispirited that they could neither fight nor fly; in consequence of which they were all cut to pieces by the Israelites, who, immediately marching to the city, put all they found in it to the sword : the whole number, men, women, and children, slain that day, amounted to twelve thousand. The king of Ai being taken prisoner, was ordered to be hung on a gibbet till sunset ; after which his body was taken down and buried under a great heap of stones near the entrance of the city. The cattle and spoil taken from the enemy were (according to the Divine appointment) divided among the soldiers, who so effectually destroyed the city as to leave it a mere heap of rubbish. As Joshua was now but a small distance from the mountains of Gerizim and Ebal, he bethought himself of the command, which had been given him by Moses, relative to the reading of the law (with the blessings and curses thereunto annexed), from those two mountains. He accordingly went to Mount Ebal, where he erected an al- tar, on which he offered up sacrifices to God for his late victories. He likewise caused an abridgment of the law, or some of the most remarkable parts of it, to be engraww 214 AN ILLUSTRATED on stones ; and afterward read the whole of it to the people, as had been commanded by Moses. The great success of Joshua against the cities of Jericho and Ai, and the dreadful slaughter made among the inhabitants, had so alarmed the kings of the respective provinces on that side the river Jordan, that they confederated together, and entered into a league for their mutual defence. But the Gibeonites, foreseeing the destruction that awaited them, and being apprehensive that all resistance would be in vain, re- solved to make a peace with the Israelites, which they effected by the following strat- agem : They selected a certain number of artful men, who were instructed to feigu themselves ambassadors come from a very distant country, in order to obtain a league with the people of Israel. To make this story appear plausible, they were dressed in tattered garments, with old clouted shoes on their feet ; and their provision consisted of dry musty bread, which they carried in old sacks, with some wine in bottles, all tarnished and torn. In this woful-appearing plight they arrived at G-ilgal, the place where the army of the Israelites was at this time encamped. Being introduced to Joshua, they told him, that from the many miracles which God had wrought for the Israelites in the land of Egypt, and the wonderful successes wherewith he had blessed their arms against every power that had opposed them in coming to that place, their states and rulers had sent them, from a very remote coun- try, to form a league of friendship with them, and that on such conditions as were customary with their forefathers. They then pointed to their garments, which they solemnly assured Joshua were quite new when they sat out on their journey, but that the length of it had reduced them to the state in which they then appeared. This stratagem had the desired effect : The plausible story of these feigned ambas- sadors gained such credit with the Israelites, that they entered into an amicable alli- ance with them ; and Eleazer, the high-priest, with the princes of the respective tribes, solemnly ratified the treaty, the whole multitude assenting to the oaths made by their leaders. When the business was over, the Gibeonites took their leave, and hasted home with the glad tidings of their successful expedition. Three days after the departure of these ambassadors, the whole plot was discovered, when it appeared that the Gibeonites were inhabitants of Canaan, and that they re- sided at a small distance from Jerusalem. This discovery greatly alarmed Joshua, who immediately sent for their governors, and reproached them for having practised such a deception ; to which they replied, that they were compelled to do it in their own defence, as they knew they should otherwise share a similar fate with the in- habitants of Jericho and Ai. Joshua was desirous of having the league cancelled ; but as it was confirmed by a solemn oath, this could not be done, without incurring the divine displeasure. It was therefore resolved, in order to appease the people, that, as a punishment for the imposition, the Gibeonites should ever after be kept in a state of bondage, by being made hewers of wood and drawers of w^ater. This sentence they received without the least murmur, humbly acquiescing in whatever was thought proper to be imposed upon them by the Israelites. When the confederate princes (who were five in number, the principal of whom was Adonizedek, king of Jerusalem) heard of the separate treaty made by the Gib- eonites, and the artful manner in which it was obtained, they resolved to be revenged on them for their desertion of the common cause. Accordingly they joined all their forces, and marched toward the city of Gibeon, with a firm resolution of totally de- stroying it. When they came within a small distance of the place, they pitched their tents, intending to begin the attack early the next morning. In the meantime the Gibeonites (not daring to trust to their own strength) despatched a messenger to Joshua, imploring his immediate assistance, as they must otherwise inevitably fall into the hands of the Canaanites. Joshua lost no time in complying with their request. He immediately set out wrh his army, and after marching the whole night, arrived, the next morning, at the spot where the enemy were encamped. The appearance of so formidable an army, and so unexpected, had such an effect on the Canaanites, that on Joshua's making "an at- tack they immediately gave way, and were entirely routed, many being killed, and the rest betaking themselves to a precipitate flight. " God had all along encouraged Joshua by promising him success; and therefore, as the confederate forces were en- deavoring to escape, there fell a most violent storm of hail, the stones of which were so large that more people were destroyed by them than what fell by the swerd HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 215 joshua was so desirous of totally extirpating the Canaanites, and so elevated with the manifest interposition of the Almighty, that while he was in chase of them, he begged, in the most fervent manner, that the sun and moon might stand still till he had ac- complished his wishes. Notwithstanding the singularity of this request, God was pleased to grant it; so that this was the most memorable day that ever happened, the Almighty condescending to alter the course of nature to answer the purposes of man. The confederate kings, finding themselves closely pursued, and likely to be either slam, or made captives, concealed themselves in a cave, near Makkedah, a city be- longing to the tribe of Judah ; intelligence of which being given to Joshua, he ordered the mouth of the cave to be blocked up, and a guard placed over it, to prevent their escape. In this situation they remained till Joshua returned from pursuing the fugi- tives, when he ordered the cave to be opened, and the kings to be brought forth, and nung upon trees till the evening. This was accordingly done, when their bodies were taken down, and thrown into the cave ; so that the place they had chosen for their sanctuary became their sepulchre. After this signal victory, Joshua proceeded to the southern parts of Canaan ; in which, having soon reduced the most considerable places, and put the inhabitants to the sword, he returned, with his victorious army, to the camp at Gilgal. The great fame of Joshua being now spread throughout Canaan, several princes of the northern parts, at the instigation of Jabin, king of Hazor, confederated together, and raised a great army to engage the Israelites, which they encamped at Berotha, a city of the Upper Galilee, not far from the waters of Merom. This, however, did not in the least intimidate Joshua, who, in pursuance of the instructions which God had given him (namely, that he should not only destroy them, but also their horses and chariots), immediately took the field, marched toward the enemy, and fell so suddenly on them, that they were totally routed, and, except some few who escaped into the country, were all put to the sword ; after which he ham-strung their horses and burnt their chariots. Jabin, king of Hazor, who had been at the head of the confederacy, and was taken prisoner, he put to death, and ordered his city to be burnt to the ground ; but the other cities whose inhabitants were slain in the action, he left standing, and gave the cattle and plunder to the soldiers. After defeating this powerful army, Joshua pursued his route to the most distant parts of Canaan ; and, by degrees, subdued all the inhabitants of the country. He slew all their kings, who were thirty-one in number, together with the Anakims, or giants, of whom he left none remaining, except in Gaza, Gath, and Ashdod. Joshua, having now extended his conquests as far as he thought necessary at pres- ent, resolved to divide the country he had taken among the nine tribes and a half who were yet unprovided for, and to dismiss the two tribes and a half (namely, those of Reuben, Gad, and the half- tribe of Manasseh) who had assisted him in the wars, and whose habitations had been settled by Moses on the east side of the river Jordan. In consequence of this resolution, Joshua appointed commissioners to take a survey of the captured land, and ordered them to report the state of it with all expedition. These messengers having executed their commission, returned, at the expiration ol seven months, to Joshua, to whom, having delivered their report, he, assisted by Ele- azer the high-priest, the elders, and the princes of the respective tribes, divided the whole country into equal portions, for which (according to God's direction) each tribe cast lots ; but as some of the tribes were larger, and some territories richer than others, he took care to adjust the proportion of land to the largeness of the tribe, and the number of families in each ; so that, notwithstanding they cast lots, the divisions were all made as equal as possible. As soon as Joshua had thus divided the country on the west side of the Jordan, he took up his residence at a small place near Shiloh, where after the wars the tabernacle was set up, that he might have the opportunity, as occasion should offer, of consulting the divine oracle. After being here a few days, Joshua assembled together the auxiliaries (namely, the tribes of Reuben and Gad, with the half-tribe of Manasseh), and gave them an honorable dismission. "He acknowledged the great services they had done him in nis wars with the Canaanites, and highly applauded their courage and fidelity. He exhorted them, as they were now going to be separated from the tabernacle, to be diligent in their duty to God, and to bear always in mind those laws which he had given them by his servant Moses. He advised them to distribute a share of the rich 216 AN ILLUSTRATED booty they had got among their brethren on the other side the Jordan ; because, though they did not partake of the troubles of the Avar, they had nevertheless been of infinite service in protecting their families during their absence." With these acknowledg- ments and exhortations, together with many sincere wishes for their prosperity, Joshua dismissed them, and they immediately departed for their own country. As soon as these two tribes and a half arrived on the opposite side of the river Jor- dan, they erected an altar near the place where they and their brethren had miracu- louslv passed over, not for any religious use, but as a memorial to succeeding genera- tions, that though they were parted by the river, they were of the same descent and religion, and held an equal right to "the tabernacle at Shiloh, and to the worship of God performed there, as their brethren on the other side the Jordan. This had like to have proved of fatal consequences, for the latter, either from being misinformed, or misapprehending the intent of the altar being erected, fell into a violent rage, con- sidering ihem as apostates from the true religion; and, in order to punish them, as- sembled their forces at Shiloh, with a resolution of immediately declaring war against them. But before they proceeded to these extremities, their rulers advised them to suspend the execution of their wrath till they had sent a deputation in order to know their reason for building such an altar. This being agreed to, they sent Phineas, the son of Eleazer, with ten princes, one out of each tribe, to expostulate with them on their conduct. On their arrival Phineas accosted them in very severe terms, charging them with idolatry and rebellion against the Lord. He reminded them of the calamities which God had formerly sent upon them for their worship of Baal-peor ; and that, if he had been so severe upon them for the of- fence of one man (namely, Achan only) what might they not expect, when two tribes and a half were going to make a general revolt ? He then concluded by saying, "If ye have done this from any apprehension that the land ye possess on this side the Jordan is unclean, or less holy than ours, because the tabernacle is on our side, return and settle among us where the tabernacle resteth : but by no means rebel against the Lord, nor us, in building you an altar, besides the altar of the Lord." The Reubenites, Gadites, and 3Ianassites, concerned to hear the ill opinion which their brethren had conceived of them, protested their innocence of any idolatrous in- tention, and made a solemn appeal to God, that so far were they from setting up an altar in opposition to his, that the only design of the structure they had raised was, fo perpetuate their right to the service of the tabernacle, and to secure it to their latest posterity. From this answer the deputies were fully convinced that the accusation laid against their brethren was totally groundless, and instead of having committed a crime, that they had only given an instance of their sincere attachment to their religious duties. The deputies, therefore, after taking a friendly leave, returned to Shiloh, and having rrommunicated the particulars of all that had passed to the people, they expressed the ■rreatest satisfaction at the result of the embassy; and the angry thoughts of war were immediately changed into peace and brotherly affection. On the other hand, the Reubenites and their brethren, to prevent any future jealousy, or suspicion, called the altar they had erected Ed, intending it as a standing witness (for so the word sig- nifies) that though they lived at a distance from the rest of their brethren, yet they had all but one origin, and one God. who was the common God and father of all Israel. This matter being adjusted, and the Israelites quietly settled in the possession of their conquests on both sides the river Jordan, Joshua disbanded his forces, and retired to Shechem. No particular occurrence took place from this period till the death of Joshua, which happened about twenty years after. He was at this time far advanced in years, and finding his dissolution near at hand, he convened a general assembly of the princes •and magistrates, with as many of the common people as could be gathered together. As soon as they were met, he harangued them in a verv pertinent discourse on the great benefits and protection they had received from the hand of Providence. He pointed out to them in what manner he had preserved them, even in the midst of dangers : and that he had not only relieved them in all their wants and distresses, but had removed them from the most abject, to the most prosperous situation in life. In gratitude to so great a protector and benefactor, he exhorted them to a faithful observ- ance of his laws, and invited them to renew their covenant with God, which their forefathers had made. This being done in very ample and significant terms, he re- HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 217 curded the covenant in the book of the law, and set up a great stone under an oak, near a place of religious worship, as a testimony against them, should they ever aftei deny God's service. A short time after this Joshua paid the debt of nature, in the one hundred and tenth year of his age. He was buried at Timnathserah, in Mount Ephraim, which city, on the division of the land among the tribes, was given to him by the Israelites, as an acknowledgment for the great services they had received from his administration. Much about the same time died Eleazer, the high-priest, who was likewise buried in one of the hills of Ephraim, which had been given him by the Israelites, and which afterward descended to Phineas, his son, and successor in the priesthood. These two funerals, so near the same time and place, reminded the Israelites of the bones of Joseph, which, at his request, had been brought out of Egypt, but not yet interred. They therefore took this opportunity of performing the funeral obsequies of their great progenitor in Shechem, where Jacob had purchased a piece of ground of the sons of Hamor, and which afterward became the inheritance of Joseph's pos- terity. CHAPTER XIII. WARS — IDOLATRY — STORY OF RUTH — DEBORAH'S HEROISM — GIDEON. From Joshua to Samuel (a period of about four hundred and seventy-four years) the condition of the Israelites varied according as the fundamental law of the state was observed or transgressed, exactly as Moses had predicted, and as the sanctions of the law had determined. The last admonitions of Joshua, and the solemn renewal of the covenant with Je- hovah, failed to produce all the effect intended. That generation, indeed, never suf- fered idolatry to become predominant, but still they were very negligent with respect to the expulsion of the Canaanites. Only a few tribes made war upon them, and even they were soon weary of the contest. They spared their dangerous and cor- rupting neighbors, and, contrary to express statute, were satisfied with making them tributary. They even became connected with them by unlawful marriages, and then it was no longer easy for them to exterminate or banish the near relatives of their own families. The Hebrews thus rendered the execution of so severe a law in a manner impossible, and wove for themselves the web in which they were afterward entangled. Their Canaanitish relatives invited them to their festivals, where not only lascivious songs were sung in honor of the gods, but fornication and unnatural lusts were indulged in as part of the divine service. These debaucheries, then con- secrated by the religious customs of all nations, were gratifying to the sensual appe- tites ; and the subject of Jehovah too readily submitted himself to such deities, so highly honored by his connexions, and worshipped in all the neighboring nations. At first, probably, a symbolical representation of Jehovah was set up, but this was soon transferred to an idol, or was invoked as an idol by others. Idolatrous images were afterward set up, together with the image of Jehovah, and the Israelites fondly imagined that they should be the more prosperous if they rendered homage to the ancient gods of the land. The propensity to idolatry, which was predominant in all the rest of the world, thus spread itself among the chosen people like a plague. From time to time idolatry was publicly professed, and this national treachery to their king, Jehovah, always brought with it national misfortunes. However, it does not appear that any form of idolatry was openly tolerated until that generation was extinct, which, under Joshua, had sworn anew to the covenant with Jehovah. After that the rulers were unable or unwilling any longer to prevent the public worship of pagan deities. But the Hebrews, rendered effeminate by this voluptuous religion, and forsaken by their king, Jehovah, were no longer able to con- tend with their foes, and were fore I to bend their necks under a foreign yoke. In this humiliating and painful subje aon to a conquering people, they called to mind their deliverance from Egypt, the ancient kindnesses of Jehovah, the promises and threatenings of the law: then they forsook their idols, who could afford them no help, — they returned to the sacred tabernacle, and then found a deliverer who treed them from their bondage. The reformation was generally of no longer duration than the life of the deliverer. As soon as that generation was extinct, idolatry again crept 218 AN ILLUSTRATED iu by the same way, and soon became predominant. Then followed subjection and oppression under the yoke of some neighboring people, until a second reformation prepared them for a new deliverance. Between these extremes of prosperity and adversity, the consequences of their fidelity or treachery to their divine king, the He- brew nation was continually fluctuating until the time of Samuel. Such were the arrangements of Providence, that as soon as idolatry gained the ascendency, some one of the neighboring nations grew powerful, acquired the preponderance, and sub- jected the Hebrews. Jehovah always permitted their oppressions to become suffi- ciently severe to arouse them from their slumbers, to remind them of the sanctions of the* law, and to turn them again to their God and king. Then a hero arose, who inspired the people with courage, defeated their enemies, abolished idolatry, and re- established the authority of Jehovah. As the Hebrews, in the course of time, became more obstinate in their idolatry, so each subsequent oppression of the nation was al- ways more severe than the preceding. So difficult was it, as mankind were then situated, to preserve a knowledge of the true God in the world, although so repeat- edly and so expressly revealed, and in so high a degree made manifest to the senses.* After this general view of the whole period above referred to, we may proceed to the historical details from which that view is collected. Soon after the death of Joshua, and while the contemporary elders still lived, the Israelites made some vigorous and successful exertions to extend their territory. The most remarkable of these exertions was that made by the tribe of Judah, assisted by that of Simeon. They slew ten thousand Canaanites and Perizzites in the territory of Bezek, the king of which, Adoni-bezek (literally, " my lord of Bezek"), contrived to make his escape ; but he was pursued and taken, when the conquerors cut off his thumbs and great toes. Now this, at the first view, was a barbarous act. It was not a mode in which the Hebrews were wont to treat their captives; and the reason for it — that it was intended as an act of just retaliation, or, as we should say, of po- etic justice — appears from the bitter remark of Adoni-bezek himself: — " Three score and ten kings, having their thumbs and great toes cut off, gathered their meat under rny table: as I have done, so God hath requited me." This proves that, as we have already on more than one occasion intimated, the war practices of the Israelites — especially in the treatment of their captives — were not more barbarous, and, in many respects, less barbarous, than those of their contemporaries ; and that even their pol- ished neighbors, the Egyptians, were not in this respect above them. Adoni-bezek died soon after at Jerusalem, to which place he was taken by the conquerors. They at this time had possession of the lower part of that town, and soon after succeeded in taking the upper city, upon Mount Zion, which the Jebusites had hitherto retained. They sacked it and burned it with fire. But as we afterward again find it in the occupation of the Jebusites, down to the time of David, it seems they took advantage of some one of the subsequent oppressions of Israel to recover the site and rebuild the upper city. Eleazer the high-priest, as we have seen, did not long survive Joshua ; and the remnant of the seventy elders, originally appointed by Moses to assist him in the government of the nation, soon followed them to the tomb. While these venerable persons lived, the Israelites remained faithful to their divine King and to his laws. But soon after their death the beginnings of corruption appeared. A timely attempt was made to check its progress by the remonstrances and threatenings of a prophet from Gilgal. But although they quailed under the rebuke which was there admin- istered, the effect was but temporary. The dowmward course which the nation had taken was speedily resumed ; and it is strikingly illustrated by some circumstances which the author of the book of Judges has given in an appendix contained in the last five chapters of that book, but which we shall find it more convenient to intro- duce here in their proper chronological place. The history of Micah furnishes a very interesting example of the extent to which even Israelites, well disposed in the main, had become familiarized with superstitious and idolatrous practices, and the curious manner in which they managed to make a monstrous and most unseemly alliance between the true doctrine in which they had been brought up, and the erroneous notions which they had imbibed. A woman of Ephraim had, through a mistaken zeal, dedicated a large quantity of * John, b. iii. sect 30 HISTORY OF TIIE BIBLE. 219 siiver (about five hundred and fifty ounces) to the Lord, intending that her son should make therew.'h a teraph, in the hope that by this means she might procure to her house the blessings of One who had absolutely forbidden all worship by images. Her son Micah knew not of this sacred appropriation of the money, and took it for the use of the house. But on learning its destination, and hearing his mother lay her curse upon the sacrilegious person by whom she supposed it had been stolen, he became alarmed, and restored her the silver; and received it again from her with directions to give effect to her intention. This he did. He provided a teraph, and all things necessary to the performance of religious services before it, including vest- ments for a priest. He set apart one of his own sons as priest, until he should be able to procure a Levite to take that character. He had not long to wait. It would seem that the dues of the Levites were not properly paid at this time; for a young Levite, who had lived at Bethlehem, felt himself obliged to leave that place and seek elsewhere a subsistence. Happening to call at Micah's house, he gladly ac- cepted that person's offer to remain and act as priest for the recompense of his victuals, with two suits of clothes (one probably sacerdotal), and eleven shekels of silver. Micah was delighted at this completion of his establishment, and, with most marvellous infatuation, cried, "Now I know Jehovah will bless me, seeing I have a Levite to be my priest." Things went on tranquilly for a time. But it happened that the tribe of Dan could not get possession of more than the hilly part of its terri- tory, as the Amorites retained the plain, which was the most rich and valuable part. They therefore sought elsewhere an equivalent territory which might be more easily acquired. Having ascertained that this might be found in the remote but wealthy and peaceable town and district of Laish, near the sources of the Jordan, a body of six hundred men was sent to get possession of it. From the persons they had previ- ously sent to explore the country, they had heard of Micah's establishment ; and so far from manifesting any surprise or indignation, they viewed the matter much in the same light as Micah did himself. They envied him his idol and his priest, and re- solved to deprive him of both, and take them to their new settlement. They did so, notwithstanding the protests and outcries of the owner : and as for the Levite, he was easily persuaded to prefer the priesthood of a clan to that of a single family. His descendants continued long after to exercise the priestly office, in connexion with this idol, at Dan, which was the name the conquerors gave to the town of Laish: and it is lamentable to have to add, that there is good reason to suspect that this Levite was no other than a grandson of Moses. It would seem that the tribe of Benjamin had much the start of the other tribes m the moral corruption, in the infamous vices, which resulted from the looseness of their religious notions, and from the contaminating example of the heathen, with whom they were surrounded and intermixed. A Levite of Mount Ephraim was on his way home with his wife, whom he was bringing back from her father's house in Bethlehem; and, on the approach of night, he entered the town of Gibeah, in Benjamin, to tarry till the next morning. As the custom of the travellers was, he remained in the street till some one should invite them to his house. But in that wicked place no hospitable notice was taken of them until an old man, himself from Mount Ephraim, but living there, invited them to his home. In the night that house was besieged by the men of the place, after the same fashion and for the same purpose as that of Lot had been, when he entertained the angels in Sodom. The efforts of the aged host to turn them from their purpose were unavailing; and, as a last resource, the Levite, in the hope of diverting them from their abominable purpose, put forth his wife into the street. She was grievously maltreated by these vile people until the morning, when they left her. She then went and lay down at the door of the house in which her lord lay ; and when he afterward opened it — s>he was dead. The Levite laid the corpse upon his beast and hastened to his home. There was a rather mysterious custom, in calling an assembly, by sending to the different bodies or persons which were to compose it a portion of a divided beast (see 1 Sam. xi. 7) ; and it then became awfully imperative upon the party which re- ceived the bloody missive to obey the call which it intimated. To give a horrible intensity to the custom in this case, the Levite — a man of obviously peculiar charac- ter — divided his wife's body into twelve parts, and sent one portion to each of the tribes of Israel. The horror-struck tribes, on receiving their portion of the body, and 220 AN ILLUSTRATED hearing the statement which the messengers delivered, agreed that such a thing had not before been heard of in Israel, and hastened to the place of meeting, which was Mizpeh. In the great audience there assembled, the Levite declared his wrongs; which when they had heard, the thousands of Israel vowred not to return to their homes until they had brought the offenders to condign punishment. And to express the earnestness of their purpose, they appointed one tenth of their whole number to bring in provisions for the rest, that the want of victuals might not, as often happens in Oriental warfare, oblige them to disperse before their object was accomplished. But, in the first instance, they sent messengers throughout the tribe of Benjamin, explain- ing the occasion of their assembling, and demanding that the offenders should be delivered up to justice. This th e Benjamites were so far from granting that the whole tribe made common cause with the people of Gibeah, and all its force was called out to repel any attempt which the other tribes might make against them. Considering that the force of the eleven tribes amounted to four hundred thousand able men, whereas the Benjamites could bring together no more than twenty-six thousand, the hardihood of this resistance is well worthy of remark, if it does not make out the claim of the Benjamites to that character for indomitable courage which they appear to have acquired. Probably the influence of that acknowledged charac- ter upon their opponents, together with their own peculiar skill in the use of the sling, formed their main reliance. Among them were seven hundred left-handed men who could sling stones to a hair's breadth and not miss. The Israelites committed one fatal oversight in this undertaking. Although the affair was of such grave importance, they neglected to consult their divine King, without whose permission they ought not to have supposed themselves authorized to act as they did. They first decided on war, and then only consulted him as tc the manner it should be conducted. The consequence was that they were twice defeated by the Benjamites, who sallied from the town of Gibeah against them. Corrected by this experience, they applied in a proper manner to learn the will of their King; and then the victory was promised to them. In their next attempt the Israelites resorted to the same familiar stratagem of am- buscade and of pretended flight, when the besieged sallied forth against them, as mat whereby the town of Ai had been taken by Joshua, and with precisely the same result. Eighteen thousand Benjamites, " men of valor," were " trodden down with ease' 1 by the vast host which now enclosed them. The rest endeavored to escape to the wilderness, but were all overtaken and destroyed, with the exception of six hun- dred who found shelter among the rocks of Rimmon. The conquerors then went through the land, subjecting it to military execution. They set on fire all the towns to which they came, and put to the sword the men, the cattle, and all that came to hand. But when the heat of the conflict and execution had subsided, the national and clannish feelings of the Israelites were shocked at the reflection that they had extin- guished a tribe in Israel. It was true that six hundred men remained alive among the rocks of Rimmon ; but it was not clear how the race of Benjamin could be con- tinued through them, as, at the very commencement of the undertaking, the Israel- ites had solemnly sworn that they would not give their daughters in marriage to the Benjamites. They had now leisure to repent of this vow ; although, with reference to the vile propensities exhibited by the people of Gibeah, it was quite natural that in the first excitement such a vow should have been taken. But now they were sincerely anxious to find means of repairing their error, and to provide the survivors with wives, that the house of Benjamin might not be wholly lost. It was found that the summons whereby the tribes had been assembled hail been unheeded by the men of Jabesh-Gilead, whereby they had exposed themselves to the terrible doom which the very act of summons denounced against the disobe- dient. That doom was inflicted, save that all the virgins were spared to be wives for the Benjamites. But as these were still insufficient, the unprovided Benjamites were secretly advised to lie in wait in the vineyards near Shiloh, when they attended the next annual festival at the tabernacle ; and when the young women of the place came out in dances, as at such times they were wont, they might seize and carry off the number they required. The men followed this advice. And when the fathers and brothers of the stolen maidens began to raise an outcry, the elders, by whom the HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 221 measure had been counselled, interposed to pacify them, and persuaded them to over- look the matter, in consideration of the difficulties by which the case was surrounded The Benjamites then returned to their desolated cities, and rebuilt and re-occupied ihem as they were able. But from this time Benjamin was the least, although not the least distinguished, of all the tribes. At length (B. C. 1572) the idolatries and demoralization of the Israelites had become so rank, that a fiery trial was judged necessary for their correction. A king named Cuslian-rishathaim, reigning in Mesopotamia, had extended his power far on this side the Euphrates. He now advanced into Canaan, and, either by victory or menace, rendered the Hebrews tributary. They remained under severe bondage for eight years. At the end of that time, Othniel — that relative of Caleb who has already been mentioned — was incited to put himself at the head of the people and attempt their deliverance. The garrisons which the Mesopotamians had left in the country were suddenly surprised and slain ; the armies of Israel again appeared in the field, and, although at first few in number, they fought at every point the troops opposed to them ; and when their numbers were increased by the reinforcements which poured in from all quarters on the first news of probable success, they hazarded a general action, in which they obtained a complete victory over the Mesopotamians, and drove them beyond the Euphrates.* Othniel remained the acknowledged judge, or regent, of the divine king for forty years. During his administration, the people remained faithful to their God and king, and consequently prospered. But when the beneficial control which Othniel exercised was withdrawn by his death, they fell again into idolatry and crime, and new afflictions became needful to them. The instruments of their punishment, this time, were the Moabites. By a long peace, this nation had recovered from the defeats which they had suffered from the Amorites before the time of Moses ; and, perceiving that the Israelites were not invin- cible, Eglon, the king of Moab, formed a confederacy with the Ammonites and Amalekites, and, with this help, made an attack upon them — probably under the same pretences which we shall find to have been employed on a subsequent occasion. He defeated the idolatrous Hebrews in battle, subdued the tribes beyond Jordan, and the southern tribes on this side the river, and established himself in Jericho, which he must have found a convenient post for intercepting, or at least checking, the com- munications between the eastern and western tribes. At that place the conquered tribes were obliged to bring him presents, or, in other words, to pay a periodical tribute. This subjection to a king who resided among them was still more oppres- sive than that from which they had been delivered by Othniel ; and it continued more than twice as long — that is, for eighteen years. This oppression must have been par- ticularly heavy upon the tribe of Benjamin, as it was their territory to which Jericho belonged, and which was therefore encumbered by the presence of the court of the conqueror. It was natural that those whose necks were the most galled by the yoke, should make the first effort to shake it off. Accordingly, the next deliverer was of the tribe of Benjamin. His name was Ehud, one of those left-haaded men — or rather, perhaps, men who could use the left hand with as much ease and power as the right — for which this tribe seems to have been remarkable. He conducted a deputation which bore from the Israelites the customary tributes to the king. It seemed that men with weapons were not admitted to the king's presence : but Ehud had a two-edged dagger under his garment ; but as he wore it on the right side, where it is worn by no right-handed man, its presence was not suspected. When he had left the presence and dismissed his people, Ehud went on as far as the carved images which had been placed at Gilgal. The sight of these images, which jhe Moabites had probably set up by the sacred monument of stones which the Israelites had there set up, seems to have revived the perhaps faltering zeal of the Benjamite, and he returned to Jericho and to the presence of the king, and intimated that he had a secret message to deliver. The king then withdrew with him to his " summer- parlor," which seems to have been such a detached or otherwise pleasantly-situated apartment as are still usually found in the mansions and gardens of the East, and to which the master retires to enjoy a freer air, and more open prospects, than any other part of his dwelling commands, and where also he usually withdraws to enjoy * This paragraph is partly from Josephus, whose account is here in agreement with, while it fills up, the brief notice which the Book of Judges offers 222 AS ILLUSTRATED his siesta during the heat of the day. It is strictly a private apartment, which nt one enters without bemg specially invited ; and accordingly it is said of this, that it was an apartment "which he had for himself alone." As the king sat in this parlor, Ehud approached him, saying, "I have a message from God to thee." On hearing that sacred name, the king rose from his seat, and Ehud availed himself of the oppor- tunity of burying his dagger in his bowels. The Benjamite then withdrew quietly, bolting after "him the door of the summer-parlor; and as such parlors usually com- municate by a private stair with the porch, without the necessity of passing into or through the interior parts of the mansion, there was nothing to impede his egress, unless the porters at the outer gate had seen cause for suspicion. The scripture, as is frequently the case, mentions this as an historical fact, without commendatory or reprehensive remark ; and we have no right to infer the approba- tion which is" not expressed. No doubt Ehud's deed was a murder ; and the only excuse for it is to be found in its public object, and in the fact that the notions of the East have always been, and are now far more lax on this point than those which Christian civilization has produced in Europe. There all means of getting rid of a public enemv, whom the arm of the law can not reach, are considered just and proper. No one can read a few pages of any oriental history without being fully aware of this ; and it is by oriental notions, rather than by our own, that the act of Ehud must, to a certain extent, be judged. The servants of Eglon supposed that their lord was taking his afternoon sleep ir his summer-parlor, and hence a considerable time elapsed before his assassination was discovered. In the meantime, Ehud was able to make known the death of the king, and to collect a body of men, with whom he went down to seize the fords of the Jordan, that the Moabites in Canaan might neither receive reinforcements from their own country nor escape to it. Confounded by the death of their king, they were easily overcome. All who were on this side the Jordan, ten thousand in number, were destroyed — not one escaped. This deliverance secured for Israel a repose of eighty years, terminating in the year B. C. 1426, being 1S2 years after the passage of the Jordan. At or toward the end of this period of eighty years, a first attempt was made by the Philistines to bring the southern tribes under their yoke. But they were unable to accomplish their design, having been repulsed on their first advance, with the loss of six hundred men, by Shamgar and other husbandmen, who fought with ox-goads,* being then employed in the cultivation of the fields. It is about this time that the story of Ruth, which occupies a separate book in the Hebrew scriptures, is placed by Usher and other chronologers. Being episodical, and only slightly connected with the historical narrative, we can not follow the details of this beautiful story ; but the intimations of the state of society, and of the manners and ideas of the times, which it contains, are, even historically, of too much import- ance to be overlooked. The scene of the principal part of the story is m Bethlehem of Judah. A famine in the land drives an inhabitant of this iown, with his wife and two sons, to the land of 3Ioab, which, in consequence of the victories under Ehud, seems to have been at this time in some sort of subjection to the Israelites. The man's name was Elimelech, his wife's Naomi, and the sons were called 3Iahlon and Chilion. The woman lost her husband and two sons in the land of 3Ioab, but the childless wives of her sons, who had married in that land, remained with her. One was called * " At Khan Leban the country people were now everywhere at plougn in the fields in order to sow cotton Twas observable that in ploughing they used goads of an extraordinary size ; upon measuring of several, I found them to be about eight feet long, and, at the bigger end, six inches in circumference. Thev are armed at the lesser end with a sharp prickle for driving the oxen ; and at the other end with a small spade or paddle of iron, strong and massy, to clear the plough from the clay that encumbers it in working. Ma* v-° not hence conjecture that it was with such a goad as one of these that Shamgar made that pro- digious slaughter? I am confident that whoever should see one of these implements will judge it to be a weapon not less fit, perhaps fitter, than a sword for such an execution. Goads of this sort I always saw ased hereabouts, and also in Syria : and the reason is because the same single person both drives the oxen and also holds and manages the plough, which makes it necessary to use such a goad as is described abow to avoid the incumbrance of two instruments."— Maundrell. 110 HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 223 224 AN ILLUSTRATED Orpah, and the other Ruth. At the end of ten years, Naomi determined to return home, but, with beautiful disinterestedness, exhorted the widows of her two sons tc remain in their own land with their well-provided friends, and not go to be partakers of her destitution. Orpah accordingly remained : but nothing could overcome the de- voted attachment of Ruth to the mother of her lost husband. To the really touching representations of Naomi, her still more touching reply was, " Entreat me not to leave thee, or to return from following thee : for whither thou goest, I will go ; and where thou lodgest. I will lodge; thy people shall be my people, and thy God my God* where thou diest, will I die, and there will I be buried; the Lord do so to me, and more also, if aught but death part thee and me." This strong and unmistakable ex- pression of most beautiful and true affections, could not be repelled by Naomi. They took their homeward way together. It was barley harvest when Naomi and Ruth arrived at Bethlehem. Ruth, anxious to provide in any little way for their joint subsistence, soon bethought herself of going forth to seek permission to glean in some harvest field. It happened that the field where she asked and obtained this permission, from the overseer of the reapers, be- longed to Boaz, a person of large possessions in these parts. Boaz himself came in the course of the day, to view the progress of the harvest. He greeted his reapers, M Jehovah be with you ;" and they answered him, " Jehovah bless thee." His attention was attracted toward Ruth, and he inquired concerning her of his overseer, who told him that this was " The Moabitish damsel that came back with Naomi out of the land of 3Ioab," and related how she had applied for leave to glean after the reapers. Boaz then himself accosted her, and kindly charged her not to go elsewhere, but to remain in his fields, and keep company with his maidens till the harvest was over. He had enjoined his young men not to molest her. If she were athirst she might go and drink freely from the vessels of water provided for the use of the reapers. Ruth was aston- ished at all this kindness, and fell at his feet, expressing her thanks and her surprise that he should take such kind notice of a stranger. But he said, " It has been fully shown me, all that thou hast done to thy mother-in-law, since the death of thy hus- band ; and how thou hast left thy father and thy mother, and the land of thy na'tivity, and art come unto a people which thou knowest not heretofore. Jehovah recompense thy deed : and a full recompense be given to thee from Jehovah, the God of Israel, under whose wings thou art come to trust." She answered, "Let me find favor in thy sight, my lord, for that thou hast comforted me, and for that thou hast spoken friendly unto thine handmaid, though I be not like one of thine handmaidens." When the meal-time of the harvest people came round, Boaz invited her to draw near and eat of the bread, and dip her morsel in the vinegar with them. He also handed her some new corn parched, which was considered rather a luxury, and there- fore Ruth reserved part of it for Naomi. All these little incidents, beautifully descriptive of the innocent old customs of har- vest time, bring strongly before the mind of one who has studied the antiquities of Egypt, the agricultural scenes depicted in the grottoes of Eleithuias, in which so many of the usages of Egyptian agriculture are represented. There we see the different processes of cutting with the reaping hook, and of plucking up the stalks ; gleaners ; water refrigerating in porous jars (placed on stands) for the refreshment of the reapers ; the reapers quenching their thirst ; and women bearing away the vessels in which drink has been brought to them at their labor. When Ruth returned home in the evening with the result of her day's gleaning — an ephah of barley — Naomi was anxious to know how it happened that her labors had been so prosperous: and when she heard the name of Boaz, she remarked thai he was a near kinsman of the family ; and advised that, according to his wish, Ruth should confine her gleaning to his fields. So Ruth gleaned in the fields of Boaz, until the end not only of the barley, but of the wheat harvest. When the harvest was over, Naomi, who was anxious for the rest and welfare of the good and devoted creature who had been more than a daughter to her, acquainted her with what had lately engaged her thoughts. She said that Boaz was so near of kin that he came under the operation of the levirate law, which required that when a man died childless, his next of kin should marry the widow, in order that the first child born from this union should be counted as the son of the deceased, and inherit as his heir. It was, therefore, no less her duty than a circumstance highly calculated 10 promote her welfare, that Boaz should be reminded of the obligation which devolved HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 226 16 226 AN ILLUSTRATED upon him. But as it was not wished to press the matter upon him, if he were averse to it, it was necessary that the claim should, in the first instance, be privately made. In such a case, Ruth, a stranger very imperfectly acquainted with the laws and habits of the Israelites, could only submit herself to Naomi's guidance. She told Ruth thai Boaz was engaged in winnowing his barley in the thrashing-floor ; which, of course, was nothing more than a properly levelled place in the open air. Naomi conjectured he would rest there at night, and told Ruth to mark the spot to which he withdrew, and advance to claim the protection he was bound to render. All happened as Naomi had foreseen. Boaz, after he had supped, withdrew to sleep at the end of the heap of corn ; and after he had lain down, Ruth advanced and placed herself at his feet : and when he awoke at midnight, and with much astonishment, asked who she was, she answered, " I am Ruth, thy handmaid : take therefore thy handmaid under thy protection, for thou art a near kinsman." Those who, measuring all things by their own small and current standards, regard as improper or indelicate this procedure of one " Who feared no evil, for she knew no sin," need only hear the answer of Boaz to be satisfied. " Blessed be thou, of Jehovah, my daughter .... And now, my daughter, fear not: for all my fellow-citizens do know that thou art a virtuous woman." He added, however, that there was a person in the town more nearly related to her deceased husband ; and on him properly the levirate duty devolved : but if he declined it, then it fell to himself, and he would certainly undertake it. It being too late for Ruth to return home, Eoaz desired her to remain in the thrashing-floor for the night. Early in the morning he dismissed her, after having filled her veil with corn to take to Naomi. In those times, and long after, it was customary to transact all business of a public nature and to administer justice in the gates. When there was little use of written documents, this gave to every transaction the binding obligation which the presence of many witnesses involved ; and thus also justice was easily and speedily adminis- tered among the people, at the hours when they passed to and fro between the fields and the city. And such hours were, for this reason, those at which the judges and elders gave their attendance in the gates. — (See engraving, p. 225.) Boaz therefore went up to the gate ; and requested ten of the elders, there present, to sit down with him as witnesses of what was to take place. When the " near kins- man" passed by, he called him to sit down with them. He then questioned him as to his willingness " to raise up the name of the dead upon his inheritance." This he was not willing to do, " lest he should mar his own inheritance ;" and therefore he was glad to relinquish his prior claim to Boaz, which he did by the significant action of drawing cfThis own shoe and giving it to him. This action was usual in all trans- actions of this nature, and it may well be interpreted by the familiar idiom which would express Boaz as being made, by this act and with reference to this particulai question, to stand in the shoes of the person who had transferred to him his rights and duties. Boaz then declared all the people there present at the gate to be witnesses of this transfer, and they responded, " We are witnesses." After this Boaz took Ruth to be his wife ; and the fruit of this union was Obed, the grandfather of David, of whom, according to the flesh, came the Saviour of the world. From the repose which this narrative offers, one turns reluctantly to renewed scenes of war, oppression, and wrong. It may be doubted that the authority — such as it was — of any of the judges ex- tended over all the tribes. Hardly any of the oppressions to which the Israelites were subject appear to have been general, and in most cases the authority of the judge ap- pears to have been confined to the tribes he had been instrumental in delivering from their oppressors. There is, for instance, not the least reason to suppose that the au- thority of Ehud extended over the northern tribes, which had not* been effected by me oppression of the Moabites, from which he delivered the south and east. The eighty years of good conduct which followed this deliverance, is therefore only to be understood as exhibited by the tribes which were then delivered. The northern tribes, and in some degree those of the centre and the west, were meanwhile falling into those evil practices, from which it was necessary that distress and sorrow should bring til em back. And therefore they were distressed. The northern Canaanites had, in the course of time, recovered from the effects ol thai grPiii overthrow which they sustained in the time of Joshua. A new Jabin, HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 227 reigning like his predecessor in Hazor, by the lake Merom, rose into great power. His general, Sisera, was an able and successful warrior; and his powerful military force contained not fewer than nine hundred of those iron-armed chariots of war which the Israelites regarded with so much dread. With such a force he was ena- bled, for the punishment of their sins, to reduce the northern tribes to subjection, and hold them tributary. Considering the character of the power which now prevailed over them, there is reason to conclude that this was the severest of all the oppressions to which Israel had hitherto been subject. The song of Deborah conveys some inti- mations of their miserable condition. The villages and open homesteads, which were continually liable to be pillaged, and the inhabitants insulted and wronged by the Ca- naanites, were deserted throughout the land, and the people found it necessary to con- gregate in the walled towns. Travelling was unsafe ; in consequence of which the high-ways were deserted, and those who were obliged to go from one place to another, found it necessary to journey in bye-roads and unfrequented paths. At the places to which it was necessary to resort for water, they were waylaid and robbed, wounded, or slain : and, to crown all, they were disarmed ; among forty thousand in Israel, a shield or spear was not to be found. The details of this picture are exactly such as are offered by the condition of any oppressed or subjugated population, at this day, in the east. The government itself may be content with its tribute ; but it will be obliged to wink at, because unable to prevent, the far greater grievances, the exactions, rob- beries, insults, woundings, deaths, to which the people are subjected by the inferior officers of government, by bands of licentious soldiers, and by an adverse and trium- phant populace, — all of whom look upon them as their prey and spoil, as things made only to be trampled on. Such oppression the Israelites endured for twenty years. They then remembered that, to them, trouble was the punishment of sin; and that there was one able and willing to deliver them, if they would but turn themselves unto him. They did turn, and their deliverance was certain from that hour. In those days a pious and able woman, well acquainted with the divine law, became an important person in Israel. Her name was Deborah, and she abode under a palm- tree in the southern part of Ephraim. Her high character for piety and wisdom oc- casioned the Israelites to resort to her for counsel and for justice ; and it is not unlikely that her salutary influence contributed to move the people to that repentance which prepared the way for their deliverance. When their punishment had thus wrought its intended object, the divine king made known to the prophetess his intention to de- liver the house of Israel from its bondage ; but seeing mat she, as a woman, could not personally lead the Israelites to battle, she sent to a person of the tribe of Naph- tali, named Barak, and communicated to him the instructions she had received. These were, that he should bring together, at Mount Tabor, ten thousand men of the tribes of Naphtali and Zebulun, and with them give battle to the forces of King Jabin. Barak, being fully aware of the difficulty of assembling and arming a respectable force, and recollecting the greatness of that power he was to oppose, rather shrunk from the enterprise. He, however, offered to undertake it, if Deborah would afford him the benefit of her influential presence, but not else. She consented ; but, to rebuke the weakness of his faith, she prophesied that Sisera — the redoubted captain of King Ja- bin's host — should not be slain in fight with him, or be taken captive by him, but should fall by a woman's hand. They went into the north together, and the required number of men from Naphtah and Zebulun readily obeyed their call and marched to Mount Tabor. These two tribes had probably been selected on the ground that they were likely to engage more readily in this service, in consequence of their vicinity to the metropolitan seat of the oppressing power having rendered the yoke of servitude more galling and irri- tating to them than to the other tribes. As soon as Jabin's general, Sisera, heard of the Hebrew force assembled on Mount Tabor, he brought forth his nine hundred chariots, and assembled his whole army, not doubting to surround and cut in pieces a body of men so comparatively small. The Hebrews were in general much afraid of war-chariots, to drawn battles in open plains they were unaccustomed, and the disparity of numbers was in this instance very great. Yet, encouraged by the assurances of victory which Deborah conveyed, Barak did not await the assault of Sisera, but marched his men down from the moun- tain into the open plain, and fell impetuously upon the adverse host. In Oriental warfa^p the result of the first shock usually decides the battle, and the armv is lost 228 AN ILLUSTRATED which then gives way or has its ranks broken. So it was now. At the first shock the vast army of Sisera was seized with a panic terror. The soldiers threw away their arms, and sought only how they might escape ; while the chariots, drawn by terrified horses, impeded the retreat of the fugitives, and added to the confusion and the loss. The carnage among the Canaanites was horrible ; and, besides those who perished by the sword, vast numbers of them were swept away by the sudden over- flow of the river Kishon. Sisera himself fled in his chariot across the plain of Esdra- elon ; but, fearing that his chariot rendered him too conspicuous, he dismounted and continued his flight ou foot. At last he came to a nomade encampment, belonging to Heber the Kenite, one of the descendants of those of the family and clan of Jethro, who, with the brother-in-law of Moses, entered the land of Canaan with the Israel- ites, and enjoyed the privilege of pasturing their flocks in its plains. Heber was from home, but his wife knew the illustrious fugitive, and offered him the protection of her tent. This, as the Kenites had been neutral in the war, Sisera did not hesi- tate to accept. He knew that the tent of a Bedouin, and especially the woman's portion of it, was a sanctuary, which the owner would sooner perish than allow to he violated, and that infamy worse than death awaited him who allowed injury to befall the guest or fugitive who was admitted to its shelter. Being a thirst, Sisera asked for water ; but instead of this she gave him sour milk — the best beverage an Arab tent contains, and the refreshing qualities of which are well known to those who have travelled in the East. This, with his fatigue, disposed Sisera to sleep. As he slept, the thought occurred to Jael (that was the woman's name) that the greatest enemy of the now victorious Israelites lay helpless before her; and that it was in her power to win great favor from the victors, by anticipating the almost cer- tain death which awaited the chief captain of Jabin's host. Having no weapon, she took a mallet and one of the long nails by which the tent cords are fastened to the ground, and stealing softly to the place where he lay, she smote the nail into his temple, pinning his head to the ground. Barak, passing that way soon after, in pur- suit, was called in by Jael, and he beheld the redoubted Sisera dead at his feet- slain ignominiously by a woman's hand. He might then have pondered whether, had Sisera been the victor and himself the fugitive, the same fate might not have been his own. When we reflect that " there was peace between Jabin, king of Ha- zor, and the house of Heber the Kenite," and that it was in the knowledge that he deserved no wrong at their hands, that Sisera accepted the shelter which Jael offered ; and when, moreover, we consider that the emir, Jael's husband, had no interest in the result, save that of standing well with the victorious party, it will be difficult to find an\ ->ther motive than that which we have assigned — the desire to win the favor of the vicu ■<* — for an act so grossly opposed to all those notions of honor among tent- dwellers on which Sisera had relied for his safety. It was a most treacherous and cruel murder, wanting all those extenuations which were applicable to the assassina- tion of King Eglon by Ehud. The time is gone by when commentators or historians might venture to justify this deed. Our extended acquaintance with the East enables us to know that those Orientals whose principles would allow them to applaud the act of Ehud, would re- gard with horror the murder, in his sleep, of a confiding and friendly guest, to whom the sacred shelter of the tent had been offered. That Deborah, as a prophetess, was enabled to foretell the fall of Sisera by a woman's hand, does not convey the divine sanction of this deed, but only manifests the divine foreknowledge; and that the same Deborah, in her triumphant song, blesses Jael for this act, only indicates the feeling, in the first excitement of victory, of one who had far more cause to rejoice at the death of Sisera than Jael had to inflict it. The triumphant song of Deborah has attracted great and deserved attention as a noble " specimen of the perfectly sublime ode." The design of this ode seems to be twofold, religious and political: first, to thank God for the recent deliverance of Is- rael from Canaanitish bond.^e and oppression; and, next, to celebrate the zeal and alacrity with which some of me tribes volunteered their services against the common enemy'; and to censure the lukewarmness and apathy of others who stayed at home, and thus betrayed the public cause; and, by this contrast and exposure, to heal those fatal divisions among the tribes which were so injurious to the public weal. It con- sists of three parts : — first, the exordium, containing an appeal to past times, where Israel was under the special protection of Jehovah, as compared with their late ilis- HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 229 astrous condition; next, a recital of the circumstances which preceded and those that accompanied the victory; lastly, a fuller description of the concluding event, the death of Sisera, and the disappointed hopes of his mother for h's triumphant return. The admired conclusion is thus : — " The mother of Sisera gazed through the wiu^-jw, Through the lattice she, lamenting, cried, 4 Why is his chariot so long in coming 1* W T herefore linger the steps of his steeds V Her wise ladies answered their mistress, Yea, she returned answer to herself, — 'Have they not sped, and are dividing the spoil ? To every chief man a damsel or two? To Sisera a spoil of various colors, A spoil of various-colored embroidery, A spoil of various-colored embroideries for the neck.' — So let thine enemies perish, O Jehovah ! But let they who love thee become As the sun going forth in his strength. "t From the animadversions which this ode contains, it is easy to collect that only those tribes which were actually subject to the oppression, and even only those on which the oppression the most heavily fell, were willing to disturb themselves by engaging in warlike operations against the oppressor. It does not appear that the southern tribes and the tribes beyond Jordan were directly affected by the subjugation of the northern tribes; and even of those under tribute, the tribes more remote from the seat of King Jabin seem to have been more at ease than the others. All these were loath to come forward on this occasion; and, in genera), we find that, among the Hebrews of this early period, there was little if any of that high-spirited and hon- orable abhorrence of a foreign yoke, which is, under God, the surest safeguard of a nation's independence. It was not the yoke itself they hated, but its physical weight upon their shoulders; and that weight must be very heavy before they could be roused to any great effort to shake it from them. The iron which entered their souls in Egypt still rusted there. Tbese sectional divisions— or rather this want of a general and sympathizing union among the several members of the house of Israel — were the obvious secondary cause of the miseries and oppressions under which different portions of that great body did from time to time fall ; and this disunion itself was the natural and inevita- ble result of the neglect of the law, as a whole, and especially of those provisions which were, in their proper operation, admirably calculated to keep the tribes united together as one nation. It would be ridicuious to say that the theocratic policy was a failure. That which was not fairly and fully tried can not be said to fail. Ruin to the people did not come from the system itself: and that ruin did come from the neglect of its conditions, rather shows how well that system was calculated to form a happy and united people. The victory of Deborah and Barak over Sisera gave to Israel a long repose from the aggressions of the nations west of the Jordan ; for although their peace began again to be disturbed after forty years (in 1336 B. C.), the invasion was then from the east. At the latter end of the forty years which followed the victory over Sisera, the * The original is highly figurative ; " Why is his chariot ashamed to come ?" t " The first sentences exhibit a striking picture of maternal solicitude, and of a mind suspended and agi- tated between hope and fear. Immediately, impatient of delay, she anticipates the consolations of he. friends ; and, her mind being somewhat elevated, she boasts with all the levity of a fond female, — 'Vast in her hopes and giddy with success.' Let rs here observe how well adapted every sentiment, every word, is to the character of the speaker. She makes no account of the slaughter of the enemy, of the valor and conduct of the conqueror, of the multitudf- of the captives, but ' Burns with a female thirst of prey and spoils.' Nothing is omitted which is calculated to attract and engage the passions of a vain and trifling woman , slaves, gold, and rich r.pparel. Nor is she satisfied with the bare enumeration of them, she repeats, she amplifies, she heightens every circumstance ; she seems to h?ve the very plunder in her immediate pos session ; she pauses and contemplates every particular. To add to the beauty of this passage, there is alsc. an uncommon neatness in the versification ; great force, a^curicy, and perspicuity in the diction ,■ and the utmost elegance in the repetitions, which, notwithstanding their apparent redundancy, are conducted with the most perfect brevity. In the end, the fatal disappointment of female hope and creduluy, tacitly insin aated by the unexpected apostrophe, — ' So let thine enemies perish, O Jehovah !' is rxj ressed more forcibly by this very silence of the person who was -ust speaking, that it. could possibly ha\«7 been by all the powers of lansuagre." — Lowtii. 230 AN ILLUSTRATED Israelites had again relapsed into their evil and idolatrous habits. This was par- ticularly the case of the tribes beyond Jordan, whose repose had been of longer dura- tion than that of the western tribes, for it does not appear that the oppressions of King Jabin had extended to them. Their punishment was this time particularly heavy, and came from an unexpected quarter. The pastoral tribes dwelling on the borders of the land and in the eastern deserts — the Midianites, Amalekites, with other tribes of Arabia — came swarming into the land " like locusts," with countless flocks and herds, and pitching their tents in the plains and valleys. Arriving by the time the products of the soil began to be gathered in, they remained until the final ingatherings of the year, when the advance of winter warned them to withdraw into their deserts. Thus their cattle grew fat upon the rich pastures of the land, while those of Israel were starved; and the men themselves lived merrily upon the grain which the Hebrews had sowed, and upon the fruits which they had cultivated: and as, besides this deprivation of the suste- nance for which they had labored, such lawless crews are always ready for any kind 01 great or small robbery and exaction, the Israelites were obliged to abandon the open country, and to resort to the walled towns, to intrench themselves in strongholds, and even to seek the shelter of the caves among the mountains. Even those who ventured to remain in occupation of their own allotments, were afraid to have it known that they had in their possession any of the produce of their own fields. All this while it does not appear that there was any open war, or any military operations. The invaders bore all before them, and had entirely their own way, by the mere force of the intimidating impressions which their numbers created. Countries or dis- tricts bordering on the desert are still subject to similar visitations, where the local government is not strong enough to prevent them, or where the preoccupation of the border soil by Arabs in the state of semi-cultivators, does not form an obstacle (as it does not so always) to the incursions of pure Bedouins. Down to a very recent date the very country east of the Jordan, which suffered the most on the present occasion, suffered much from the periodical sojourn and severe exactions of the Bedouin tribes, These incursions of the Midianites were repeated for seven years. By this time the oppression had become so heavy that the Israelites, finding by bitter experience the insufficiency of all other help, cried to Him who had delivered them of old : their cry was heard. A prophet was commissioned to point out to them that their diso- bedience had been the cause of their sufferings, and to give to them the promise of a new deli cerance. The hero this time appointed to act for the deliverance of Israel, was Gideon of Manasseh. His family was exposed to the general suffering occasioned by the pres- ence of the Bedouin tribes, — so much so, that having retained possession of some corn, they dared not thrash it out for use in the ordinary thrashing-floor, but, to con- ceal it from the knowledge or suspicion of the invaders, were obliged to perform this operation silently and secretly, in so unusual a place as the vineyard, near the wine- press. The thrashing-floors were watched by the Midianites at this time, when the harvests had been gathered in ; but no regard was paid to the vineyards, as the sea- son of ripe grapes Avas far off. Gideon was engaged in this service when " the angel of Jehovah" appeared to him standing under an oak which grew there. When ap- prized of his vocation to deliver Israel, the modest husbandman would have excused himself on the ground of his wanting that eminence of station which so important a service appeared to demand ; and when silenced by the emphatic " I will be with thee" from his heavenly visitant, he still sought to have some certain tokens whereby he might feel assured, and be enabled to convey the assurance to others, that his call was indeed from God. Accordingly, a succession of signal miracles were wrought to satisfy his mind and to confirm his faith. The refection of kid's-flesh and bread, which the hospitable Gideon quickly got ready for the stranger, was, as he directed, laid upon a rock before him, and when he touched it with the end of his staff, a spontaneous fire arose by which it was consumed, as a sacrifice, and at the same time the stranger disappeared. After this, at the special desire of Gideon, " a sign" of his own choosing was granted to him. A fleece which he laid upon the thrashing-flooi (in the open air) was saturated with dew, while the soil around was all dry; and again, condescending to his prayer, the Lord was pleased to reverse this miracle, by exemp'.mg the fleece alone from the dewy moisture which bespread the ground Gideon was satisfied. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 231 Vet the family from which the deliverer was chosen was not less tainted by the sins than visited by the punishments of Israel ; for Joash, the father of Gideon, had erected an altar to Baal, at Ophrah, the town of his residence, at which the people of that place rendered their idolatrous services to that idol. This altar Gideon was directed to destroy, and in its place to erect, over the rock on which his offering had been consumed, an altar to Jehovah. It would seem that Joash himself was brought back to his fealty to Jehovah by the first of the miracles we have related, of which, probably, Gideon was not the sole witness: for when the men of Ophrah, early in the following morning, arose to render their worship to Baal, and, finding his altar overthrown, demanded the death of Gideon, his father stood forward to vindicate his conduct. He undauntedly retorted the sentence of death against the idolaters them- selves, for their apostacy from Jehovah. By demanding the punishment of Gideon for his act against Baal, they recognised in fact the fairness of the punishments de- nounced by the law against those individuals tv cities which turned away from Jeho- vah to serve other gods ; and this, coupled with the derision of Joash at the impotency of Baal to vindicate or avenge his own cause, so wrought upon the people of that place, that they were among the foremost to gather to him when he sounded the trumpet of war. He then sent messengers throughout his own tribe of Manassek (on both sides the Jordan), as well as through those of Asher, Naphtali, and Zebulon. And so cheerfully was the call obeyed, that Gideon soon found himself at the head of thirty-two thousand men. With this force Gideon marched to the mountains of Gilboa, where he found vast multitudes of the enemy encamped before him in the plain of Esdraelon. This fine plain had probably been before their favorite resort ; but ihey seem to have congregated there in unusual numbers as soon as they heard of Gideon's preparations. And now that the people might have no cause to attribute their deliverance to their own numbers and prowess, it pleased the divine King of Israel to reduce this important army to a mere handful of spirited men. In the first place, Gideon was directed to proclaim liberty for all who now, in sight of the enemy, were fearful and faint-hearted, to return to their own homes. This proclamation, according to the law (Deut. xx. 8), ought in all cases to have been made ; but it seems that from some reason or other (perhaps either from ignorance of the law, or from supposing that it was net intended to apply to such a case as the present), it would not have been made by Gideon without the special command which he received. Such a law, or practice, however inapplicable, or even ruinous, it might prove under the military systems and tactics of modern Europe, was well calculated to act bene- ficially in the warfare of those early times; for as everything then depended on the individual courage and prowess of those engaged, " the faint-hearted" were more likely to damage than assist those on whose side they appeared; as their conduct was tolerably certain to bring about results fatal to themselves, and discouraging to their more valorous companions. In the present instance the result was, that al- tnough the men composing the army of Gideon had come forward voluntarily, above two thirds of them were so intimidated in the actual presence of danger, that they took advantage of this permission to depart to cheir own homes. Of the thirty-two thousand, only ten thousand remained with Gideon. Yet as these were men of valor, as evinced by their determination to remain, room for vain-glorious boastings was still left, and therefore Gideon was informed that the number was still too large, and that a further reduction must be made. The process of this second selection was very curious. All those were dismissed who, in drinking at the watering-place, stooped down to drink in large draughts of water at the surface ; but those who merely " lapped" the water, or took it up in the hollow of their hands to drink, were retained. The different methods of drinking have been supposed to have distin- guished the self-indulgent from the more manly and active men. The latter — those who took up the water in their hollowed hands — were but three hundred out of the ten thousand ; and these were declared sufficient for the enterprise. The night after this, Gideon, with his faithful follower Phurah, went down to the camp of the enemy, in consequence of an intimation that he would there hear matter for his encouragement. What he heard was one soldier, just awakened, telling a dream to his companions. He had dreamed that he saw a barley-cake roll down from the hills to the Midianitish camp, where it overthrew the first tent to which it came. The interpretation which the other gave was — " This is none other than ibe 232 AN ILLUSTRATED *word of Gideon, the son of Joash, a man of Israel, into whose hand God delivereth Midian and the whole camp." Several facts are indicated by this incident ; such as the stress generally laid upon dreams in that age, as indicative of contingent results, — the honor attached to the office of spy, as one of danger, and which was therefore, as in the Mosaic age, as- signed to, or undertaken by, the very chief persons in the army, — and the truly Ori- ental want of sentinels and pickets, even in the face of the enemy. This indeed may have been noticed on many former occasions ; and to this astonishing neglect of a precaution which seems to us so obvious and so simple, may be attributed the facility and success of those sudden surprises of which we so often read in the military his- tory of those early ages. Gideon no sooner heard the dream and its interpretation than he understood and accepted the sign. He returned to his own small band, and proceeded to carry into immediate execution a remarkable stratagem which had already been suggested to him. He divided his three hundred men into three companies. Every man was pro- vided with a trumpet in one hand, and in the other a pitcher containing a lighted lamp. They were then stationed in silence and darkness at different points on the outside of the enemy's camp. Then, on a signal given by Gideon, all the three com- panies, at the same instant, blew their trumpets, exposed their lamps, broke the pitchers which had concealed them, and then continued shouting, " The sword of Jehovah and of Gideon !"* The terrible din and crash which thus suddenly broke in upon the stillness of midnight, with the equally sudden blaze of light from three hun- dred lamps, which illumined its darkness, struck an instant panic into the vast host of Midian, suggesting to them that the lamp-bearing trumpeters (whose numbers must have been greatly magnified in the confused apprehension of men just awaken- ed) were but the advanced guard of the Hebrew host whom they were lighting to the attack on the camp. They therefore fled in all directions, through the openings between the three companies. In their midnight flight, not doubting that the He- brews had fallen upon them, they mistook friends for foes, and vast multitudes of them perished by each other':, swords. The survivers, in their further flight, came up with the several par'les which had been dismissed by Gideon to their homes, and these committed a terrible slaughter among the fugitives. Gideon also sent messen- gers desiring the Ephraimites to seize the various fords of the Jordan, between the tAvo lakes, and thereby prevent the escape of any of the fugitives eastward, which was the direction they would naturally take. In this terrible overthrow no less than one hundred and twenty thousand of the various tribes of " the children of the east" perished; and so completely were the Midianites subdued, that from that time they were never ible " to lift up their heads any more." A remnant of fifteen thousand, headed by their emirs, Zebah and Zalmunna, man- aged to escape across the river (probably before the Ephraimites had seized the fords), and having reached a distance where they deemed themselves safe from further pur- suit, they ventured to encamp. But Gideon himself, with his faithful three hundred, continued the pursuit even to that distance — even into the land of the tent-dwellers — and falling suddenly upon the camp, which lay carelessly secure, the already scared Midianites were completely overthrown. The two emirs themselves were taken alive and brought before Gideon. He had formed, for those times, the singularly generous intention to spare their lives ; but when he gathered, from their own lips, that they had created a case of blood-revenge between himself and them, by putting to death, near Mount Tabor, his brethren, " the sons of his own mother,"! he, as the legal avenger of their blood, slew these emirs with his own hand. Gideon seems to have been a man eminently qualified for the high and difficult station to which he was called. Firm even to sternness, where the exhibition of the stronger qualities seemed necessary, and in war " a mighty man of valor," we are called upon in his case, more frequently than in any other which has occurred, to admire his truly courteous and self-retreating character, and that nice and difficult tact — difficult, because spontaneously natural — in the management of men, which is a rarer and finer species of judgment, and by which he was intuitively taught to say * The hint of this watchword was taken from the interpretation of the Midianitish soldier's dream, ' 'A\e sword of Gideon," to which Gideon, with equal piety and modesty, prefixed, " the sword of Jehovah." t The emphasis lies in the probability that his father had children by other wives than Gideon's mother To be her children, therefore, constituted a far dearer tie than to be his father's children in the general souse. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 233 the properest word, and do the properest deed at the most proper time. This is the true secret of hi? ultimate popularity and influence, which much exceeded that enjoyed by any judge before him. Some instances of the qualities which we have indicated have already appeared, and others will presently occur. The Ephraimites who had guarded the Jordan, having performed all that their duty required, hastened to join Gideon in the pursuit of the Midianites. They met him on his return, and laid before him the heads of Oreb and Zeeb,* two emirs of Midian, whom they had taken and slain. This tribe of Ephraim, which was, after that of Judah, the most important in Israel, was exceedingly jealous of its superiority, and was, therefore, not a little annoyed that an obscure Abiezrite should have under- taken so great an enterprise as that now happily completed, without consulting them. They now took occasion to remonstrate with him sharply on the subject, but were soon pacified by his modest and good-tempered answer. " How little have I done now in comparison with you," he said. " Is not the gleaning of the grapes of Ephraim better than the vintage of Abiezer? God hath delivered up the princes of Midian, Oreb and Zeeb ; and what have I been able to do in comparison with you ?" Gideon knew what Solomon taught long after, "A soft answer turneth away wrath." When he had crossed the Jordan in pursuit of the fugitives, he was anxious tc obtain for his small band — " faint, yet pursuing" — refreshments from the town of Succoth, which he passed, and afterward from that of Peniel ; but he was in both cases refused. The inhabitants seem to have been fearful of bringing upon them- selves the vengeance of the Midianites, to whom they had for seven years been sub- ject, and against whom they held it to be very unlikely that he would succeed with so small a force. They not only refused, but added insult to injury. Instead of chastising them on the spot, he coolly told both that he would do so on his return; and he now kept his promise. Coming upon Succoth by surprise, before the sun was up, he took the chief persons of Succoth, and, as he had threatened, scourged them to death with thorns and briars. Of Peniel he made a still severer example, for he beat down the fortress-tower of that city, and put to death the men belonging to it The Israelites, in the warmth of their gratitude, offered to make Gideon their king, and to continue the crown to his descendants. This proposal, which clearly shows how unmindful the Israelites had become of the great political principle of the the- ocracy with which they were so unwarrantably ready to dispense, was nobly rejected by Gideon, who replied to it in the true spirit of the theocracy. "I will not reign over you, neither shall my son reign over you ; Jehovah, he shall reign over you." But while thus alive to the true political character of the Mosaic institutions, he was not equally cognizant of the religious obligations of that system. When he was called to tiis great work at Ophrah, he had been instructed to build an altar on the rock on which his offering had been accepted, and himself to offer sacrifices there. This probably led him to conclude that it would be right to form a religious estab- ment at that spot, for the worship of God by sacrifice. A more perfect acquaintance with the principles of the law would have taught him otherwise. However, to this object he applied the produce of the golden ear-rings of the Midianites, which, at his special request (not unlike that of Aaron, Exod. xxxii. 2), were cheerfully granted to him by the army as his share of the spoil. The weight being one thousand seven hundred shekels, the gold thus obtained must have been worth upward of fifteen thousand dollars of our money ; and the " ephod" which he is described as having made with it, probably included not only " the priests' dress," as the word signifies, but a regular sacerdotal establishment in his own town, where sacrifices might be constantly offered. For this purpose such a sum as he applied to it must have been fully requisite. It has been disputed whether Gideon himself officiated as priest, or, like Micah, engaged a Levite for that purpose. The latter S( ems the more likely supposition, unless from having been once directed to offer sacrifice, Gideon concluded he had a superior claim to discharge that office. However well intended this establishment may have been in the first instance, this was a most mistaken and dangerous step, resembling, in its principle, the establish- ment which the Danites had formed in the north. It infringed upon the peculiar claims of Shiloh, the seat of the Divine Presence; and the result of these and all attempts to form separate establishments affords ample illustration of the design with * The names mean crow and wolf. It would seem tnat the chiefs of the Midianites (like the North American Indians) took the names of animals, as significant of qualities to which they aspired. 234 AN ILLUSTRATED which the formal worship of God by sacrifice was confined to one particular locality, It proved " a snare to Gideon and his family," in worshipping the true God in an improper manner. It became popular to " all Israel," who resorted to Ophrah to render that worship aud service which was due only at the sacred tabernacie ; and, with the predisposition to idolatry, it is not wonderful that, free at this place from the restraint and supervision which the worship at Shiloh imposed, the service at this place soon became associated with idolatrous ideas and objects, until at last it degenerated into rank idolatry after the death of Gideon. He survived and ruled Israel forty years after his victory over the Midianites, and during all this time the tranquillity of Israel appears to have been undisturbed. CHAPTER XIY. MURDER OF GIDEON'S SONS — JEPTHA's VICTORY — SAMSON. Gideon left no less than seventy sons by his numerous wives, besides one spunous son called Abimelech, by a concubine (whom Josephus calls Drumah) who belonged to Shechem. A bastard among seventy legitimate sons was not likely to be pleasantly circumstanced when his father was dead, and it is not surprising that he soon with- drew from among them to his mother's relations at Shechem. They seem to have been persons of some consideration in that place. After the death of Gideon, the history, without stating the fact, seems to require us to suppose that his sons had been invited to take the government, or to share it among them; and that they, actuated by the same noble, because disinterested regard for the principles of the theocracy which had influenced their father, had declined the offer. But Abimelech, " a bold, bad man," was of a different spirit. He soon saw the advantage which he might take of the existing posture of affairs. Prompted by him, his uncles and other maternal connexions suggested to the chief people of Shechem his willingness to undertake the charge which the people gener- ally were anxious to see in the hands of a son, or some of the sons, of Gideon. They suggested whether it were not much better that one man should reign over them, than that they should be subject to all the sons of Gideon, seventy persons in number; and if the government of one man was to be desired, who had so strong a claim to their preference and attachment as one so closely connected with them as Abimelech ? These suggestions had their weight upon the leading men of Shechem, particularly the consideration that he was " their brother." They supplied him with money out of the treasury of Baal-berith, whose worship seems to have been that to which the Israelites were at this time the most inclined. The sum was not large,* but it served him to hire a set of unprincipled men, prepared for any undertaking he might propose. And, with the usual short-sightedness of wicked men, thinking to concentrate in his own person the attachment of the Israelites to the house of Gideon, as well as to extinguish that which was likely to be the most active opposition he would have to encounter, Abimelech marched his troop to Ophrah, where he put to death all his brethren, the sons of Gideon, with the exception of the youngest, named Jotham, who managed to escape. This is the first example of a stroke of barbarous policy which has since been very common in the history of the East. In the firs f instance it had the effect he intended ; for on his return to Shechem, the people ol that place assembled and anointed Abimelech king, close to a pillar of stone that stood near that town — perhaps the same which Joshua had set up there as a memo- rial of the covenant with God. When Jotham was made acquainted with this, he repaired secretly to the neigh- borhood of Shechem ; and, taking advantage of some festival which brought the inhabitants together outside the town, he appeared suddenly on a cliff overlooking * Seventy shekels of sib er, about equal to forty dollars of our money. But proper allowance must be made for a great difference in the real value of money, although the precise amount of that difference can not be stated. t Gaza, a principal city of the Philistines, given to Judah by Joshua, Josh. xv. 47, Judg. i. 18 : it lay about sixty miles southwest of Jerusalem, three miles from the Mediterranean sea, and near to the confines of Rgypt, Gen. x. 19. Gaza is famous for some of the exploits and the death of Samson, while in possession of Ihe' Philistines, Judg. xvi. 1-21. Being a border town, its changes were many in the course of ages. Alex- ander the Great made it desolate, as predicted ; but it was rebuilt nearer to the sea ■ and in its vicinity, the Ethiopian noblemen was baptized by Philip, Acts viii. 26. Gaza as a sea-port, has teen called thft " Ke\ jf Syria :" it is now ca'lcd Rassa. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. L'.'M 236 AN ILLUSTRATED the valley in which they were assembled, and, in a loud voice, called their attention to his words. He then delivered that earliest and very fine parable which represents the trees as making choice of a king : The olive refused to leave its oil, the fig-tree its sweetness, and the vine-tree its wine, to reign over the trees (thus intimating the refusal of Gideon's sons) ; but the upstart bramble (representing Abimelech) accepts, with great dignity, the offered honor, and even proposes the conditions of its accept- ance. These are exquisitely satirical, both in their terms and in their application; — " If ye truly intend to anoint me king over you, come, take shelter under my shadow ; and if not, let fire come out of the bramble and devour the cedars of Lebanon." That they might be at no loss to understand his meaning, Jotham gave the obvious moral," in which he included a bitter rebuke of the ingratitude of the people to their deliverer, all whose sons, save himself, they had slain ; together with an inti- mation, which proved prophetic, of the probable result. He then fled with all haste, in fear of Abimelech ; and ultimately settled beyond his reach, at Beer, in the tribe of Benjamin. Abimelech reigned three years in Shechem, during which he so disgusted the men by whom he had been raised to that bad eminence on which he stood, that they ex- pelled him from their city. In return, he, with the aid of the desperate fellows who remained with him, did his utmost to distress the inhabitants, so that at the season of vintage they were afraid to go out into their vineyards to collect their fruits. Hearing of these transactions, one Gaal went over to Shechem with his armed fol- lowers and kinsmen, to see how they might be turned to his advantage. We know not precisely who this person was, or whence he came ; but there are circumstances in the original narrative which would suggest that he was a Canaanite, descended from the former rulers of Shechem, and that his people also were a remnant of the original Shechemites. He came so opportunely, that the people very gladly, accepted his protection during the vintage. In the feats which followed the joyful labors cf that season, Gaal, who seems to have been a cowardly, boasting fellow, spoke con- temptuously of Abimelech, and talked largely of what he could and would do, if authority were vested in him. This was heard with much indignation by Zebul, or e <&f the principal magistrates of the city, who lost no time in secretly sending to apprize Abimelech how matters stood, and advised him to show himself suddenly before the city, when he would undertake to induce Gaal to march out against hi? a. Accordingly, one morning, when Zebul and other principal persons were with Gaal it the gate of the city, armed men were seen descending the hills. Zebul amused Gaal till they came nearer, and then, by reminding him of his recent boastings, compelled him to draw out his men to repel the advance of Abimelech. They met, and no sooner did Gaal see a few of his men fall, than, with the rest, he fled hastily into the city. Zebul availed himself of this palpable exhibition of impotence, if not cow- ardice, to induce the people of Shechem to expel Gaal and his troop from the town. Abimelech, who was staying at Arumah, a place not far off, was informed of this the next morning, as well as that the inhabitants, although no longer guarded by Gaal, went out daily to the labors of the field. He therefore laid ambushes in the neigh- borhood ; and when the men were come forth to their work in the vineyards, two of the ambushed parties rose to destroy them, while a third hastened to the gates to prevent their return to the town. The city itself was then taken, and Abimelech caused all the buildings to be destroyed, and the ground to be strewn with salt, as a symbol of the desolation to which his intention consigned it. The fortress, however, still remained, and a thousand men were in it. But they, fancying that it was not tenable, withdrew to " the strong-hold of the temple of Baal-berith," which had the advantage ol standing in a more elevated and commanding position. This, it will be noted, is the first temple which we read of in scripture. On perceiving this, Abime- lech cut down the bough of a tree with his battle-axe, and bore it upon his shoulder, directing all his men to do the same. The wood was deposited against the entrance and walls of the strong-hold, and, when kindled, made a tremendous fire, in which the building and the thousand men it contained Avere destroyed. To follow up this victory, Abimelech marched against Thebez, another revolted town. As before, he took the town itself with little difficulty, but all the people had The Victor greeted. turn her father from his purpose, or en- couraged him to seek those evasions which others have since discovered for him. With unexampled magnanimity she cried, " My father, if thou hast opened thy mouth to Jehovah, do with me according to that which thou hast spoken for as much as Jehovah hath taken vengeance for thee upon thine enemies, upon the Ammonites." All she desired was that she might be al- lowed for two months to wander among the mountains, with her companions, to bewail that it was not her lot to be a bride and mother in Israel. At the end of that time Jephthab. " did with her according to his vow." It is much to be regretted that the re- luctance of the sacred writer to express in plain terms the dreadful immolation which we believe to be thus indicated, has left the whole matter open as a subject of dis- pute. The early Jewish and Christian writers (including Josephus) made no question that Jephthah, under a most mis- taken notion of duty, did, after the manner of the heathen, really offer his daughter in sacrifice ; but the ingenuity of modern criticism has discovered the alternative that she was not immolated on the altar, but was devoted to perpetual virginity in the service of the tabernacle. It must be confessed that the subject is one of such difficulty, as to render it hard to reach a positive conclusion. But on anxiously con- sidering the question, we are sorry to feel constrained to adhere to the harsher al- ternative. ■^^ i M Mi. X%- \ 118 ^! 8«S & \ jm^mm^ 240 AN ILLUSTRArJSD There was no institution among the Jews under which practical tffectcoulc 1 be given to the alternative which modern interpretation has provided ; and even had not this been the case, there was, at the time that this devotement to the tabernacle must have taken place, no access to the tabernacle from the east ; for Jephthah was about that time waging a bitter war with the tribe of Ephraim, in whose territory, at f-hi- loh, the ark was situated. This posture of affairs would preclude him from receh ing from the priests those instructions and remonstrances w,hich would have prever>ted that piteous immolation which he deemed his vow to require. We are persuaded that the more thoroughly any one makes himself acquainted with the spirit of the time, the state of religion, the nature of the ideas which then prevailed, the peculi- arities of the ecclesiastical polity among the Hebrews, and the character of Jephthah himself, — the more strong will be his conviction that the infatuated hero really did offer his daughter in sacrifice, and the greater will the difficulty seem of providing any other alternative. The opinion of the Jews themselves is also entitled to some weight ; and at a time when they abhorred the idea of human sacrifices, they not only state it as an unquestionable fact that this sacrifice did take place, but ascribe the" deposition of the line of Eleazer from the high-priesthood, and the substitution of that of Ithamar, to the circumstance that the existing pontiff did not take meas- ures to prevent this stain upon the annals of Israel. We must consider how long the minds of the Israelites had been saturated with notions imbibed from the surrounding heathen, which implies the neglect, and conse- quent ignorance, of the divine law ; and that among those ideas and practices that of the superior efficacy of human sacrifices occupied a prominent place. We may also reflect that a rough military adventurer, like Jephthah, had been even more than usually exposed to contaminating influences: such persons are also usually found to be superstitious, and are seldom capable of apprehending more than certain broad and hard features of such higher matters as are presented to their notice. Jephthah knew that human victims were generally regarded as in a peculiar degree acceptable to the gods; and as historical facts are in general more familiarly known than dogmas, it was probably unknown to him that human sacrifices were abhorrent to Jehovah, while he was certain to know that Abraham had been expressly commanded by God him- self to offer his beloved Isaac upon the altar; and although the completion of this act was prevented, it would be remembered that the patriarch obtained high praise because he had not withheld even his only and well-loved son from God. That Jeph- thah made such a vow at all, corroborates the view we take of his character. It was superstitious; and it implies his imperfect knowledge of the law, which would have apprized him of various alternatives which would render the fulfilment of his vow incompatible with obedience to the law. But to such a mind the literal accomplish- ment of a vow — whatever its purport — will appear the first of duties ; and in the ful- filment of such a vow as this, it would seem that the greater his own anguish, the more deeply the iron entered into his own soul, the more meritorious, and the more acceptable to God, the act of the offerer was deemed. The virgins of Israel instituted an anniversary commemoration of four days, which they spent in celebrating the praises and bewailing the fate of Jephthah's daughter. The misunderstanding with Ephraim, to which we have incidentally alluded, was similar to that which the tact of Gideon had averted on a former occasion. That haughty and overbearing tribe had been called to the war in the first instance, but re- fused to take part in the enterprise : but when that enterprise proved successful, they were astonished and mortified that Israel had been delivered by the Gileadites with- out their assistance. They then assembled tumultuously, and with many contempt- uous and abusive expressions toward the Gileadites in general, and toward Jephthah in particular, they threatened to burn his house over his head, because he had not called them to the last decisive action. The conqueror stated the matter as it actu- ally happened ; for his rough nature would not permit him to smooth down theii ruffled plumes, as Gideon had done on a similar occasion. And then, finding that they were still bent on mischief, he called out the Gileadites, who were highly exasperated at the reflections which had been cast upon them as " fugitives of Ephraim," — " a base breed between Ephraim and Manasseh." A battle took place, in which the Ephraimites were signally defeated. They had crossed over to the eastern side of the Jordan, and, after the victory, the Gileadites hastened to seize the fords of that river, to intercept those of the fugitives who attempted to return to their homes. But as HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 241 Israelites of all the tribes were constantly passing the river, a test was necessary to distinguish the Ephraimites from the others. It is remarkable that the test chosen was that of pronunciation. When any man approached to cross the river, he was asked, "Art thou an Ephraimite?" If he answered " No," they said, " Then, say SAibboleth" (water-brooks) ; but if he were really an Ephraimite, he could not pro- nounce the sh, but gave the word as "Sibboleth;" and was slain on the spot. This incident is curious, as showing that lingual differences had already arisen by which particular tribes could be distinguished. In like manner a Galilean was, in the time of Christ, known at Jerusalem by his speech. In this disastrous aifair the loss of the Ephraimites amounted to forty-two thousand men. Such a success could be no matter of triumph to the unhappy Jephthah. His troubled life was not long protracted. He died after he had judged Israel six years. B. C 1247. After Jephthah follow the names of three judges, the silence of the record concern- ing whose actions may be understood to indicate a period of tranquillity and ease. These were Ibzan, of Bethlehem in Ephraim, for seven years; Elon, a Zebulonite, for ten years ; and Abdon, an Ephraimite, for eight years. Under the repose of these administrations, however, the Hebrews again insensibly relapsed into idolatry. For this they were brought under a rigorous servitude to their western foes, the Philis- tines, which (in its full rigor) lasted for forty years. This people had so recruited their strength since the days of Shamgar, that they now take a very conspicuous place in the Hebrew history, forming by far the most powerful and inveterate enemies the Israelites had yet encountered. They contir tied much longer than any other power had done to wield the weapon by which tht iniquities of Israel were chastised; for it was not until the time of David that the deliverance was completed. When we read of the corrupt state of the nation at large, it Avould be a grievous error to infer that all had departed from God. There are various intimations that, in the worst times, not a few families were to be found religious and well regulated, and which maintained among themselves the faith of the one only God, and followed with exactitude all the requirements of the law. Thus, at a later day, when the prophet deemed that he was himself the only one by whom Jehovah was acknowl- edged, God himself knew that there were in Israel seven thousand persons whose knees had not been bowed to Baal. (1 Kings, xix. 18.) But although these were the salt of Israel, they could not preserve the mass from such putrefaction as required that it should be cast forth and trodden under foot. And now, about the same time that the Israelites were cast forth to be trodden under foot by the Philistines, it pleased their offended King, while with the one hand he punished his revolted subjects, to provide with the other for the beginnings of their deliverance at a future day. For about that time the angel of Jehovah appeared to the wife of Manoah, a Danite, who had been barren, and promised her a son, who was to be a Nazarite (a person consecrated to God) from the womb, and that in time he should begin to deliver Israel from the yoke of the Philistines. Accordingly, the woman gave birth in due season to a son, on whom the name of Samson was bestowed. As the child grew, it became manifest that the most extra- ordinary bodily powers had been given to him : while, to prevent undue exaltation of spirit from the consciousness of superior powers, it was known to him that his gifts had no necessary dependance on the physical complication of his thews and sinews, but on his condition as a Nazarite, and on the unshorn hair which formed the sign and symbol of that condition. It is from the twentieth year of his age, which was also the twentieth of the bondage to the Philistines, that we are to date the commencement of Samson's vin- dictive administration. He proved to be a man of ungovernable passions; but, through the influence of his destiny to begin the deliverance of Israel, it was so ordered that even his worst passions, and even the sorrows and calamities which these passions wrought upon himself, were made the instruments of distress and ruin to the Philistines. The fact that the territory occupied by the tribe of Dan, to which Samson belonged. immediately adjoined the country of the Philistines, in consequence of which he be- came well acquainted with that people, ministered occasion for most of his opera- lions against them. And first — in the Philistine town of Timnath, Samson had seen a young woman with whom he was so well pleased that he resolved to obtain liei 1G 242 AN ILLUSTRATED for his wife. But as such matters were always adjusted between the parents of the respective parties, he went home and desired his father and mother to secure this woman for him. His parents would much have preferred that his choice had fallen on one of the daughters of his own people; but, seeing his determination was fixed, they yielded, and went back with him to Timnath. It was on this journey that Samson gave the first recorded indication of the prodigious strength with which he was endowed, by slaying, without any weapon in his hands, a young and fierce lion by which he was assailed. At Timnath the proposals of his parents were favorably received by the parents of the damsel Samson sought in marriage. It was necessary, by the customs of the time and country, that at least a month should pass between such a proposal and the celebration of the marriage. At the expiration of this time, Samson, again accom- panied by his parents, went down to Timnath to claim his bride. On the way he turned aside to see what had become of the carcass of the lion he had slain on the former journey. In that climate the carcasses of animals left dead upon the ground are speedily devoured by jackals and vultures, and other beasts and birds which feed on carrion. Even insects contribute largely to this service. Accordingly, Samson found only the clean skeleton of the lion, partially covered with the undevoured hide. In the cavity thus formed a swarm of bees had lodged and deposited their honey. At wedding-feasts it was at that time usual for the young men then assembled together to amuse themselves by proposing riddles — those who were unable to solve the rid- dle incurring a forfeiture to him by whom it was proposed, who himself was liable to a similar forfeiture if his riddle were found out. The adventure with the lion suggested to Samson the riddle which he proposed — " Out of the eater came forth food, and out of the fierce came forth sweetness." For three days they vainly tried to discover the meaning of this riddle ; and at last, rather than incur the heavy for- feiture of " thirty shirts and thirty suits of raiment," they applied to the bride, and threatened destruction to her family if she did not extract from her husband the re- quired solution, and make it known to them. He was very unwilling to tell her, declaring that even his father and mother were ignorant of it. But she put in prac- tice all the little arts by which women have ever carried their points with men usu- ally weak — as Samson was, with all his corporal strength — and by her tears, and reproaches of his want of love and confidence, she so wearied him that he at length gave her the information she desired. The guests were consequently enabled, within the given time, to answer — " What is sweeter than honey ? What is fiercer than a lion?" But Samson was well convinced that the wit of man could never have dis- coveied the true solution without a knowledge of the circumstances, which they could only have obtained by tampering with his wife. He exclaimed indignantly — "If ye had not ploughed with my heifer, ye had not found out my riddle !" He did not, however, as he might have done, refuse the. payment of the forfeiture he had thus unexpectedly incurred; but to obtain it he went and slew thirty of the Philistines near Ascalon, and gave their raiment to the persons who had expounded his riddle. He then returned to his own home, without again seeing his wife, with whose con- duct he was deeply disgusted. But after some time his resentment subsided, and he went down to Timnath to revisit his wife, with a present of a kid. But he found that in the mean time she had been given in marriage to a man among the Philistines, who in former times had been his most dear and familiar friend, and whom, in that character, he had chosen to act as his paranymph, or brideman, at the wedding. The incensed hero rejected with indignation the offer of the father to give him his youngest daughter in lieu of the woman he had married ; and regarding, probably, the treatment he had received as in some degree resulting from the insolence of superiority, and from the contempt in which the Philistines held the people they had so long held in subjection, he con- sidered himse.'f justified in avenging his own injuries upon the Philistine nation, as part and parcel of the wrongs his nation suffered. This mode of taking his revenge was no less remarkable than effective. He obtained three hundred jackals, and tying them together, with a firebrand between their tails, let them loose. The affrighted animals, being so bound as to be obliged to run side by side, hastened for shelter to the fields of standing and ripened corn, which, at that dry season, when the corn was ripe, was easily kindled into a blaze. As the tortured jackals took different directions. tie con flair ration was very extensive; nor was it confined to the standing com, hut HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 243 wrought much damage among the olive-grounds and vineyards, and consumed the corn which had been cut down and heaped for the thrashing-floor. When the Philistines understood the immediate cause of this act of hostility on the part of Samson, they went and burned his wife and her father's house with fire ; thus punishing them for that breach of faith to which they were first led by the fear cf this very punishment. If this act was intended to appease Samson, it had not that effect; for it did not prevent him from taking an opportunity which offered of dis- comfiting, with much slaughter, a considerable number of men belonging to that nation. He then withdrew to a strong rock called Etam, in the tribe of Judah. To that place he was pursued by a large body of Philistines, whose presence occasioned great alarm to the Judaites. But when they understood that Samson individually was the sole object of this incursion, they most shamefully undertook of themselves to deliver him up to his enemies. Accordingly, three thousand of them went up to him, feeling assured that he would not act against his own people. They told him they were come to bind him, and to put him into the hands of the Philistines. It strikingly illustrates the opinion Samson had of his own countrymen — an opinion which the circumstances justified — that before he consented to be bound, he obliged them to swear that they would not kill him themselves. He then allowed them to bind him securely with two new ropes, and to take him down to the Philistines. When he was led to their camp they raised a triumphant shout against him. As he heard that shout, " the Spirit of Jehovah came mightily upon him ;" he burst his strong bands asunder as easily as if they had been tow burnt with fire, and seizing the jaw- bone of an ass which lay at hand, he flew upon the Philistines, and, with no other weapon, routed the whole thousands which had come against him, slaying many of their number. They only lived who fled. As Milton makes the hero observe — " Had Judah that day join'd, or one whole tribe, They had by this possess'd the towers of Gath, And lorded over them whom now they serve But what more oft, in nations grown corrupt, And by their vices brought to servitude, Than to love bondage more than liberty, Bondage with ease than strenuous liberty ; And to despise, or envy, or suspect, Whom God hath of his special favor raised As their deliverer ? If he aught begin, How frequent to desert him, and at last To heap ingratitude on worthiest deeds." — Samson Agonistes Proudly confident in his strength, Samson was not deterred from going again among the Philistines, as soon as a motive occurred in the indulgence of that blind passion which had already brought him into much trouble, and which was destined to be his ruin. He went to Gaza, to visit a harlot of that place. His arrival was soon knoAvn , and although this was a different state from that which had been the scene of his former exploits, the authorities of the place were too sensible of the importance of destroying this implacable enemy of their nation, to neglect the advantage which his folly had placed in their hands. The city gates were closed to prevent his escape; and a strong guard was placed there to surprise and kill him in the morning. Sam- son, however, anticipated their plan; and, rising at midnight, he went boldly to the gate, forced it from its place, and, by way of bravado, carried it off entire, posts, bars, and all, to the top of a hill on the way to Hebron. The guards were too much astonished and terrified to molest or pursue him. After this Samson did not again venture into the territory of the Philistines, but sought at home the indulgence of those blinding passions which make the strongest weak. " He loved a woman in the vale of Serek," so celebrated for its vines. Her name was Delilah, and she was probably of Israel, although Josephus, to save the credit of his countrywomen, makes her a "Philistine. The Philistines themselves took an anxious interest in all the movements of Samson, and were soon acquainted with this new besotment, of which they prepared to take advantage. A deputation, con- sisting of a principal person from each of the five Philistine states, w T ent up the valley to the place where he was. And now, we observe, it was not their object to get possession of his person while he retained all his strength, but to ascertain how that strength might be taken from him. They were well persuaded that a strength so greatly exceeding all they knew or had ever heard of, and to which that possessed by the few descendants of Anak who lived among them could not for an instant be 244 AN ILLUSTRATED compared, must be supernatural — the result of some condition which might be neu- tralized, or of some charm which might be broken. They therefore offered Delilah the heavy bribe of eleven hundred shekels of silver from each of their number (amounting altogether to 6S7/.) to discover the secret of his great strength, and tc betray him into their hands, that they might bind and afflict him. Samson amused her by telling her of certain processes whereby the weakness of other men would be brought upon him; but each time the imposition was detected, by her putting the process to the proof. Then she continued to worry him by such trite but always effective reproaches as, " How canst thou say ' I love thee,' when thy heart is not wilii me ? for thou hast deceived me these three times, and hast not told me wherein thy great strength lieth." Thus day by day she pressed him and urged him, until "his soul was vexed unto death," and at last he told the whole truth to her — that he was a iSazarite from his birth, and that if he left that state by cutting off his hair, which had never yet been shorn or shaven, his extraordinary strength would depart from him. Delilah saw by his earnestness that he had this time told her the truth. Accordingly, she sent for a man, who, while the hero slept with his head upon her lap, shaved off the luxuriant tresses of his hair. His strength departed from him: but he knew it not ; and when aroused from his sleep by the approach of the Philistines to seize him, he thought to put forth his wonted power and destroy them all ; but his listless arms refused to render him their wonted service, and he knew, too late, that "Jehovah had departed from him." The Philistines took and bound him ; and, to complete his disablement, put out both his eyes — a mode of rendering a public enemy or offender incapable of further offence, of which this is the first historical instance, but which has ever since been much resorted to in the kingdoms of the East.* They then took him down to Gath, and binding him with fetters of brass, employed him to grind in the prison-house. Nothing could more clearly than this deprivation evince the miraculous nature of the superhuman strength with which Samson had been for special purposes invested. Samson himself had known this before; but now, weak, blind, bound, " disglorified," and degraded to a woman's service,! he had occasion and leisure to feel it ; and in his •' prison-house" he probably learned more of himself than he had known in all his previous life. Nor was this knowledge unprofitable. He felt that although he had begun to deliver Israel, this employment of the gifts confided to him had rather been the incidental effect of his own insensate passions, than the result of those stern and steady purposes which became one who had so solemnly been set apart, even before his birth, to the salvation of his country. Such thoughts as these brought repentance to his soul; and as by this repentance his condition of Nazariteship was in some sort renewed, it pleased God that, along with the growth of his hair, his strength should gradually return to him. Fatally for the Philistines, they took the view that, since the strength of Samson had been the gift of the God of Israel, their triumph over him evinced that their ow r n god, Dagon, was more powerful than Jehovah. This raised the matter from being a case between Samson and the Philistines, to one betAveen Jehovah and Dagon; and it thus became necessary that the divine honor should be vindicated. An occasion for this was soon offered under aggravated circumstances. The Philistines held a feast to Dagon, their god, who, as they supposed, had de- livered their enemy into their hands. In the height of their festivity they thought of ordering Samson himself to be produced, that the people might feed their eyes with the sight, of the degraded condition of one who had not long since been their dread. The assembled multitude greeted his appearance with shouts of triumph, and praised their god who had reduced " the destroyer of their country" to be their bond-siave. After having been for some time exposed to their mockeries and insults, the blind hero desired the lad who led and held him by the hand, to let him rest himself against the pillars which sustained the chief weight of the roof of the tem- ple, upon which no less than three thousand persons had assembled to view the spec- tacle, and celebrate Dagon's sacrifices. Thus placed, Samson breathed the prayer— * This barbarous infliction is, however, now^-under the operation of those humanizing influences whicl arc insensibly pervading the East — in the course of being discontinued. It was formerly more common in I'ursia. than in any other country ; but it became comparatively rare under the late Jang ; and we believ. Uiat no instance has yet occurred in which the present monarch has resorted to it. + Grinding is almost invariably performed by women m lite East HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 245 24G AN ILLUSTRATED u Lord Jehovah, remember me, I pray thee, and strengthen me, I pray thee, o? 9 this once, God, that I may at once be avenged of the Philistines for my two eyes ' Saying this, he grasped the pillars with his mighty arms, and crying, "Let me die with 1 he Philistines !" he bowed himself with such prodigious force that the pillars gave way, and then the roof fell in, destroying Avith one tremendous crash all who were above it and below it. Thus those whom Samson slew at his death w r ere more in number than those he slew in his life. " It is remarkable that the exploits of Samson against the Philistines were per- formed singly, and without any co-operation from his countrymen to vindicate their liberties : whether it was that the arm of the Lord might be the more visibly revealed in him, or that his countrymen were too much depressed by the severity of their ser- vitude to be animated by his example. They seem also to have feared him almost as much as they did the Philistines. Else why should three thousand armed men of Judah have gone to persuade him to surrender himself to the Philistines, when, with such a leader, they might naturally expect to have been invincible ? or why, when he destroyed [routed?] a thousand Philistines with so simple a weapon, did he not join in pursuit of the rest ? So true was the prediction of the angel to his mother, that he should only begin to deliver Israel."* It scarcely appears that Samson exercised any authority in the tribes; but to carry on the historical time, he is counted as one of the judges, and his administration is computed at forty years, ending by his death, in the year 1222 B. C. CHAPTER XY. EM — DEFEAT OF ISRAEL — ADMINISTRATION OF SAMUEL, Samson was the last of the military heroes stirred up to deliver Israel from its oppressors. The two that followed, Eli and Samuel, were men of peace — the one a priest, and the other a Levite. In the absence of a person specially called and appointed to deliver and judge the people, the civil government, by the principles of the theocracy, devolved on the high-priest, as the vizier of the great king, having access to his presence, and beinsf the interpreter of his will. It is not easy to see that Samson exercised the civil government over any of the tribes. And although, therefore, in order to carry on the succession of times, it is convenient to say that at his death the government devolved on the high-priest, yet, in fact, there is little reason to question that the high-priest exercised as much authority before as after. But, in such times as these, that authority was but small, and chiefly, as it would appear, judicial, particularly in adjusting disputes between persons of different tribes. The heads of the several tribes seem to have considered themselves fully competent to manage their internal affairs; and their divided allegiance 'o Jehovah involved the political evil, that the authority of the general government was proportionably weakened, and the cohesion of the tribes in the same degree relaxed. Subject to "this preliminary observation, the high-priest may, for historical convenience, be considered the successor of Samson. It is remarkable that functionaries so important, in the theory of the Hebrew con- stitution, as the high-priests, are scarcely noticed in the history of the Judges. From Phineas, the grandson of Aaron, to Eli^ a high-priest is not mentioned on any occa- sion, nor would even their names be known but for the list in Chronicles (1 Chron. vi. 4-16, 50-52), where the order is thus given: — Abishua, Bukki, Uzzi, Zerahiah, Meraioth. In the person of Eli, a change in the line of succession to this high office took place, as he was the first of the race of Ithamar, the second son of Aaron. But as the line of his elder son Eleazer was not extinct, and as the cause of the change is not assigned, some difficulty has been experienced in accounting for it. The Jews, as we have seen, suppose that it was because the existing pontiff had not taken measures sufficiently active to prevent Jephthah from sacrificing his daughter. But if, in the absence of all positive information, a conjecture might be hazarded, we would suggest the probability that the last pontiff of Eleazer's line died leaving no bon old enough to take the office, and that it then (as aftenvard in the succession to * Hales ii 108. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 247 I he kingdom) devolved on his adult uncle or cousin of the line of Ithamar. Such a course resorted to in temporal successions, to avoid the evils of a minority and regency, must have been much more necessary in the case of the high-priesthood. That the change took place in some such natural and quiet way, seems to afford the most satisfactory explanation of the silence of the record of a matter of such importance. Eli was a good and pious man, estimable in private life for his many virtues and the mildness of his character; but he was greatly wanting in those sterner virtues which became his public station, and which were indeed necessary for die repression of wickedness, and the punishment of the wrong doer. As he grew old, he devolved much of his public duty upon his sons Hophni and Phineas, two evil-disposed men, who possessed the energy their father lacked, without any of his virtues. Even in their sacred ministrations at the tabernacle, their conduct was so shamefully signal- ised by rapacity and licentiousness, that the people, through their misconduct, were led to abhor the offering of Jehovah. All this became known to Eli ; but, instead of taking the immediate and decisive measures which became his station, he contented himself with a mild and ineffective remonstrance. This weakness of Eli was justly counted a sin in that venerable person ; and a prophet was commissioned to warn him of the evil consequences, which were no less than the exclusion of his race from the pontificate to which he had been advanced. But even this could not rouse the old man to the exertion which became his station ; but he seems rather to have acquiesced in this judgment as a thing not to be averted. The next reproof which this remiss judge received was through an unexpected channel. At the tabernacle, in personal attendance upon the high-priest, was a boy, a Levite, who having been the child signally granted in answer to the many prayers of Hannah, his previously barren mother, was by her consecrated from the womb, as a Nazarite, to Jehovah. In consequence of this, combined with his Levitical charac- ter, he had been left at the tabernacle as early as he could be separated from his mother's care, to render such services there as his tender years allowed. His name was Samuel : and as his pious mother came to Shiloh yearly with her husband to celebrate the passover (bringing with her a dress for her son), she had the delight of perceiving that he, growing up under the shadow of the altar, conducted himself with such propriety and discretion, that he stood very high in the favor of God and man. That he was thus, from his very infancy, constantly before the eyes of the people when they attended at the tabernacle, doubtless went far to prepare the way for that influence and station which he ultimately attained. It was the thirty-first year of Eli's administration, when Samuel, then twelve years of age, lay on his bed at night, that he heard a voice calling him by his name. He supposed that it was Eli who had called; he hastened to him, but found that it was not so. This was repeated three times; and at the third time, Eli, concluding that it was ihe Lord who had called the lad, instructed him to answer, " Speak, Lord, for thy servant heareth." Samuel obeyed ; aud the Voice then delivered to him, as an irrevocable doom, the former denunciations against Eli's house, " because his sons had made themselves vile, and he restrained them not ;" declaring that he would " do a thing in Israel at which both the ears of every one that heareth it shall tingle." In the morning, the lad, being pressed by Eli, delivered to him the message he had received. But even this only gave occasion for the further manifestation of the passive virtues of his character. " It is Jehovah," he said ; " let him do what seem- eth to him good." After this, matters went on for some time much as they had done. Eli's sons pur- sued their old courses, making themselves still more vile ; and their father, though now well aware of the doom which hung over himself and them, took no measures in the hope to avert it. But as Samuel grew, the word of the Lord again came to him from time to time, and all Israel knew that he was established to be a prophet )f Jehovah. Thus passed ten years, at the end of which the threatened judgments began to be inflicted upon the house of Eli. At that time the Israelites rashly, and without con- sulting their Divine King, embarked in a war with the Philistines. In the forty years since the death of Samson, this people had recruited their strength, and recov- ered the courage of which they appear to have been for a season deprived by the astounding calamity which swept away so many of their chiefs and nobles. In the 24S AN ILLUSTRATED first engagement the Israelites were defeated, with the loss of four thousand men On this they sent to Shiloh for the ark of the covenant, not doubting of victory undei its protection. The two sons of Eli, Hophni and Phineas, attended it to the camp. On its arrival there, " all Israel shouted with a great shout, so that the earth rang again." On hearing this, and being apprized of its cause, the Philistines were filled with consternation; and the manner in which their alarm was expressed affords a very clear intimation of the effect which had been produced on their minds, by the wonders which Jehovah had wrought for the deliverance and protection of Israel. " Wo unto us !" they cried ; " who shall deliver us out of the hand of these mighty gods ? These are the gods that smote the Egyptians with all the plagues if the wilderness." The procedure itself did not strike them as strange, for it was not unusual among ancient nations to take their gods to their wars ; and the ark, with its cherubim, the Philistines supposed to be the god of the Hebrews. They did noi question the existence of that God, or his special care for his people ; neither did they deny his power, of which, indeed, they were afraid. They allowed Jehovah to be the god of the Hebrews, in the same sense in which they regarded Dagon to be their own god. It was his universal and exclusive power that they denied, or rather did not recognise. Notwithstanding their alarm, the Philistines did not give way to despair ; but like a brave people, which they were always, the imminence of the danger only stimu- lated them to the more strenuous exertions for victory. They cried to one another: " Be strong, and quit vourselves like men, O ye Philistines, that ye become not ser- vants unto the Hebre > r s, as they have been to you ! Quit yourselves like men, and fight !" They fought: and the victory was given to them, to punish the Hebrews for their misdoings, and for having engaged in this war without consulting their King, as well as to teach them that undue confidence in the ark itself was a superstition, if not an idolatry, apart from a due reliance on God himself, whose footstool only the ark was. Thirty thousand men of Israel fell in the battle and pursuit; the guilty sons of Eli were among the slain, and the ark itself was taken. Eli, blind and old, remained at Shiloh, anxiously expecting news from the camp : " for his heart trembled for the ark of God;" and that he might be in the way of receiving the earnest rumors from the war, he sat watching by the wayside. One day he heard an outcry in the town, which had been occasioned by the news brought by one of the fugitives from the battle. This man, with his clothes rent and dust upon his head, soon came before the high-priest and gave to him the tidings, that Israel fled before the Philistines — that there had been a great slaughter — that his two sons, Hophni and Phineas, were slain — and that the ark of God was taken ! No sooner had the last words passed the lips of the messenger, than the high-priest fell backward from off his seat; and being old and heavy, his neck was broken in the fall. Soon after the news of all these calamities was carried to the wife of Phineas ; on hearing which she was taken with the pains of labor, and died, after she had looked upon the son io whom she gave birth, and given him the sad name of Ichabod (Inglorious) ; for she said, " The glory is departed from Israel ; for the ark of Jehovah, the God of Israel, is taken." These incidents serve to evince the depth of that astonishment and grief with which the loss of the ark was regarded. The Philistines soon found that they had small cause to rejoice in the glorious trophy they had won ; and most convincingly was it made known to them that the Israelites had been defeated for the punishment of their sins, which rendered them unworthy of their God's protection, and not through his want of power to save. The Philistines certainly considered that they had taken captive the god of the Hebrews, and could, on the "principles of pagan idolatry, hardly fail to attribute it to the supe- rior power of Dagon, their own god. Yet they still must have had a very salutary dread of the God of Israel ; and while they could not but regard the ark as the Eroudest of their trophies, it was probably more with the view of propitiating him. y associating him with their own god, than by way of insult, that they deposited the conquered ark in the temple of their Dagon at Azotus. But God disdained this dishonoring alliance; and twice the Philistines found their idol overthrown, and the second time broken to pieces, before the ark of God. And further to demonstrate his power in such a w r av as might include a punishment for their idolatry and for the abominations connected with it, the Lord smote the people of the place with HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 249 rfmlak Ethiopian Car drawn by Oxen. Indian Car Drawn by Oxen. 250 AN ILLUSTRATED hemorrhoids, or the piles, with a mortal destruction. The land also swarmed with jerboas, whereby the products of the fields were consumed. Attributing these calamities to the presence of the ark, they sent it to Gath, where it remained until the pressure of the same inflictions compelled them to send it from them. It was taken to Ekron, another of the five metropolitan cities of Philistia. The Ekronites received it with terror, crying, " They have brought round to us the ark of the God of Israel to slay us and our people." They therefore, in an assembly of " the lords of the Philistines," proposed that the ark should be st nt back to its own place in th»* land of Israel. This was determined ; nor was the determination too soon, for already the hand of God was so heavy upon Ekron, that " the cry of the city went up to the heavens." And that it might be sent away with all honor, the diviners, who were consulted as to the best means of giving effect to the intention which had been formed, counselled that five golden hemorrhoids, and five golden mice, one from each of the Philistine states, should be deposited in a coffer beside the ark, as a tres- pass-offering : for even thus early the custom had come into use of making votive offerings representing the instruments of affliction, or of the parts afflicted, to the god to whom the infliction or the cure was attributed. That they might give the glory to the God of Israel, and not harden their hearts as did the Egyptians, and thereby bring upon themselves the punishments of that people, were the reasons by which this course of conduct was enforced. And they are remarkable as showing the effect, even at this remote date, upon the neighboring nations, of the wonders of judgment and deliverance which had been wrought in the land of Egypt. To testify all possible respect, the ark was placed in a new car,* to which were yoked two kine, whose necks had never before been subjected to the yoke. Their calves were tied up at home ; and, by the advice of the priests, it was concluded to leave the cows free to take their own course : if the animals went away from their calves to the land of Israel, it was to be inferred that a right judgment had been formed of the cause from which their calamities proceeded ; but if not, they might conclude that it had been the result of natural causes. From such incidents the heathen were even thus early accustomed to conjecture the will of their gods. In this case, no sooner were the kine set free than they turned their backs upon their young, and took the road toward the town of Bethshemesh in Judaii, being the nearest city of the Levites toward the Philistine frontier. It was the time of the wheat-harvest, when the people of the town were abroad in the valley reaping the fruits of their fields. They beheld the ark advancing with great gladness ; and when the kine stopped of their own accord, near a great stone, in a field belonging to one Joshua, the Levites who were present detached them from the car, and offered them up in sacrifice upon that stone before the ark. And the stone being thus consecrated by sacrifice, the ark was removed from the car and deposited thereon. The five lords of the Philistines, who * Cars drawn by Oxen. — That the Philistines thought of placing the ark on a car, to be drawn by oxen, shows that vehicles drawn by such animals were in use among them, at least in their sacred processions. Tl'^re is nothing of the 'vind am- ng the Egvpti ins. Their religious processions were walking processions, and by water : that is to say. as all their towns were along the Nile, their religious progresses from one place to another were by that nver, the short distances to and from which they walked, beating their arks, their idols, and their implements of religious service. The Jews had no religious, processions after they became a settled people — unless it were in the removals of the ark ; which removals resulted from cir- cumstances, for it was intended to be stationary. It was indeed not unlawful to take the ark to the wars ; but the only instance in which this is recorded to have been done, was when it was taken by the Philistines. In the wilderness the ark was carried on the shoulders of the Levites, as were the other more sacred uten- sils of the tabernacle ; but the fabric itself, and its heavier furniture, were placed on cars or wagons drawn by oxen. The ark itself was never thus conveyed, except on the various stages of its return from the Philistines. For the Israelites, observing that those people had in this manner transported it safely, continued its removal in the same manner, until the consequences that ultimately ensued, reminded them of the moro proper method. Among the Egyptians, horses appear to have been invariably employed for draught, whether in chariots of war or peace. But, although they had not themselves the custom, their sculptures coincide with the scriptures in manifesting the use of oxen or kine for draught by other nations. All our examples adduced to illustrate the subjects of carts, apply to the present, since all the carts there represented, from ancient and modern sources, are drawn by oxen, equally with the more elegant class of vehicles represented in the present instance ; and, taken together, they demonstrate the extensive use of oxen for dranght in both the ancient and modern East. After Solomon, the Hebrews learned from the Egyptians and their nearer neighbors to have chariots of war drawn by horses ; and kings and high military commanders appear to iiave had their private chariots also drawn by horses. To these and agricultural purposes, wheel-carriages seem to have been very much confined ; but, as far as they were used, they appear, except in the cases specified, to have been drawn by oxen. The use of war-chariots has now nearly disappeared in the East, and with it the employment of horses for draught. Oxen are employed everywhere, from the Yellow sea to the Mediterranean. And in our present engravings, the elegance of the vehicles, and the cost and finish of the equipments, show that to ride in a car drawn by oxen is not, nor was, considered a mode of conveyance by any means so rude or ignoble as the illustrations at first sight might have suggested HJSTORV OF THE BIBLE. 251 25U AN ILLUSTRATED had followed the car iu the borders of Bethshemesh (which was twelve miles dis- tant from Ekron), and who had stood witnessing these proceedings, now returned home, well convinced that it was the hand of the God of Israel by which they had been smitten. The ark had been in their hands seven months. The adventures of the ark, and its constant exposure to their sight, begat in the Bethshemitcs a familiarity toward it, inconsistent with the respect due to Jehovah, and which it was highly necessary to repress. When therefore their familiarity went so far that they ventured to raise the cover of the ark, to gratify their curiosity with a view of its contents, sixty of their number — principal persons of the place — were smitten with death. On this the people cried, with great consternation, " Who is able to stand before this holy God, Jehovah? and to whom shall he go from us?" They decided to invite the people of Kirjath-jearim to take the ark away. They did so, and deposited it in the house of Abinadab " upon the hill." This person set apart his son Eleazer to take the charge of it — to preserve it from pollution, and to keep all things clean and orderly about it. Thus it remained about eighty-two years. Why it was not returned to Shiloh does not very clearly appear. Probably no command on the subject was given ; and from the experience which the Israelites now had of the jealousy with which its sanctity was guarded, they were afraid to remove it with- out express orders. Besides, at this time the people were again far gone into idola- trous practices, which made them comparatively indifferent about the ark ; and it is not unlikely that the reaction of the sentiment of astonishment and grief with which its loss had been regarded, did much to impair that veneration of which it had been the object. Add to this that they had been without the ark for seven months, in the course of which they had accustomed their minds to the want of it, and had learned to regard it as less essential to them than it had before seemed. The tabernacle still remained at Shiloh, which continued to be the seat of the appointed ministrations, until it was removed, in the reign of Saul, to Nob, probably in consequence of the destruction of Shiloh in the Philistine war (1 Sam. xiv. 3 ; Jer. vii. 12-14, xxvi. 6-9). For their idolatries and alienation, the Hebrews were punished by twenty years continuance (including the seven months of the ark's absence) of their subjection to the Philistines. It is usually stated that Samuel succeeded Eli. He was then little more than twenty vears of age ; and although, as his years advanced, he doubtless acquired much au- thority among the people from the influence of his character and position, there is no evidence that it was any other than that which prophets usually exercised. It rather appears from the text that it was after the twenty years of further servitude to the Philistines, that Samuel was publicly called to assume the civil government. At the end of these twenty years the people " lamented after the Lord," or repented of the sins by which they had alienated themselves from him, and were disposed to return to their allegiance. Samuel then came forward in his prophetic character, and promised them deliverance from the Philistines, if they would put away the strange gods — the Baals and Ashtaroths (representing the sun and moon), and devote them- selves to the exclusive service of Jehovah. His directions were followed ; and he then convened an assembly of all Israel at Mizpeh, where they held a solemn fast and humiliation for their sins, and poured out water before Jehovah, as expressive of their Jespondency or grief. And to testify their good intentions for the future, the prophet himself was there invested by them with the authority of a "judge." The Philistines took umbrage at this great assembly in Mizpeh, which, they rightly judged, boded no good to the continuance of their dominion. They assembled their forces and marched to that place, to disperse the congregation. The people, not being prepared for war, were filled with alarm on the approach of their enemies, and be- sought Samuel to cry to Jehovah for them, that he might save them from the hand of the Philistines. Samuel did so with great earnestness ; and he was in the act of of- fering up a Iamb as a burnt-offering, when the Philistines drew near to battle. The prayers of the prophet were then answered by a terrible storm of thunder and light- ning, by which the enemy were alarmed and confounded, while the Israelites, recog- nising the sign, were inspired with sudden and indomitable courage. They fell im- petuously upon the force they had so lately dreaded, and slew vast numbers of them, chasing the remainder as far as Betchcar. In memory of this great victory, Samuel set up a memorial-stone, and gave it the name of Ebenezer {the help-stone), saying, 4 Hitherto Jehovah hath helped us." HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 253 This very brilliant victory broke the spirit of the Philistines for many years. They were obliged to restore all "their conquests from the Israelites; and, for many years to come, they kept carefully within their own territories, and abstained from any hostile 1 acts against the Hebrews. Their example was followed by the other neighbors 01 Israel, which hence enjoyed the felicity of a profound peace during the entire period of Samuel's sole administration. This excellent judge administered justice regularly to the tribes in his annual cir- cuit, which he took to the places of sacred stones at Bethel, Oilgal, and Mizpeh, ana constantly at his own place of abode at Ramah, where he built an altar to Jehovah. This was probably by the divine permission or direction, at least for the present, as God had not yet given any declaration where the ark was to be fixed. The sole administration of Samuel lasted twelve years, dating it, as we do, from the end of the Philistine servitude, and not from the death of Eli. Near the close of this period, when the prophet Avas "growing old and gray-headed," being sixty-four years of age, he appointed his sons, Joel and Abiah, to act for him at Bethel and Beer sheba. But they walked not in the steps of their father. " They turned aside aftei lucre, and took bribes, and perverted judgment." This misconduct of his sons, with his own advancing age, and the seemingly un- settled state in which the government would be left at his death, were among the causes which at this time induced the elders of Israel to resort to Samuel at Ramah, and to demand of him that a king should be appointed to reign over them, as in other nations. The causes which we have just stated, together with the regular administration of justice to which Samuel had accustomed them, occasioned the demand, it would seem, at this particular time ; but there were deeper causes which would unquestionably have brought them to this point ere long, if it had not now. These causes have been well discriminated by Jahn. This able writer justly refers the frequent interruptions to the welfare of the He- brew state under the judges to—" 1. The effeminacy and cowardice of the people ; and, 2, to the disunion and jealousy of the tribes, who never assisted each other with the requisite zeal and alacrity. But as this effeminacy arose from the vices of idola- try, and their cowardice from a want of confidence in Jehovah ; so the disunion and ■ealousy of the tribes, though selfishness was the immediate cause, arose from a dis- position to neglect their divine king, and not to consider themselves as the united and only people of Jehovah. This disposition, if it did not originate from, was at least very much heightened by the multiplication of deities. Thus both these causes of their misfortunes owed their origin to idolatry, that great cause of all their calami- ties, so often mentioned in the sanctions of the law. Thus the people, by increasing their gods, enervated themselves, and prepared for themselves those sufferings and chastisements by which they were ag-ain to be brought back to their King, Jehovah." He proceeds to observe that " These causes of national misfortune were all in op- eration at the time of Samuel, and threatened to produce after his death still greater calamities. The tribes beyond the Jordan had formidable enemies in the Ammonites and the southern tribes in the Philistines, while the northern tribes stood aloof from the dangers of their more exposed countrymen. The latter seems to have been the principal reason why the rulers in general assembly requested a king. The tribes in southern Palestine and beyond the Jordan were the most earnest for this change in the government ; they feared that the death of Samuel would leave them without a su- preme magistrate, and that the nation being again disunited, they should be left to their fate. The degeneracy of Samuel's sons, who had been appointed subordinate judges, or deputies, increased their apprehensions. They, therefore, strenuously in- sisted on their demand, " Nay, but we will have a king over us, that we also may be like all the nations." They had reason to hope that a king invested with supreme authority might be able to unite the power of the whole nation and protect each tribe with the collected strength of all ; that under him the affairs of government would be more promptly administered and necessary aid more readily afforded ; that if he were a man devoted to Jehovah, he could more effectually repress or prevent idolatry, and thus place the welfare of the state on a more solid foundation. They might im- agine themselves justified in this request as Moses had taken it for granted that the nation would eventually have a king, and the same thing had been promised to their great progenitor Abraham. It conduces greatly to the honor of the Hebrews thai 254 AN ILLUSTRATED they attempted this change in their constitution, not by their own power, but in ac- cordance with the principles of the theocracy; they requested it of their king, Jeho- vah, by the intervention of a prophet, and they effected it without bloodshed, — a manifest proof that the time of the judges was neither what is usually understood by a ' barbaruus' nor an ' heroic age.' " But as ail the objects which they desired to realise were attainable under the the- ocracy, were they but faithful to its principles and engagements ; and as the unseen king, Jehovah, would necessarily be obscured by a subordinate, visible monarch, he, by means of Samuel, gave the rulers to understand his disapprobation of their request : and at the same time represented to them the burdens they would have to bear undei a king, especially how easily he might be led to imitate other oriental monarchs, and to disregard the law of Jehovah. The picture which was then drawn by Samuel exhibits in a lively manner th( character of the monarchies which at that time existed in the east, and enables us tc ascertain that, whatever changes may have taken place in particular states, the mo- narchical principle as it then existed "has been preserved to this day in its full vigor in the east. This is so true, that there is no royal usage mentioned by Samuel which may not be illustrated and explained from the modern sovereignties of that part of the world. The statement must have seemed the more effective from the implied contrast to the mild and gentle character of that service which the Lord, as king of Israel, had required. Samuel reminded them that their kings would soon fall into the state ol ouier monarchs, to support which the heaviest exactions upon their persons and estates would become necessary. He would take their young men and employ them as charioteers and horsemen, and even (according to the Egyptian custom) as runners before and about his chariot.* A standing army would deprive them of the valuable services of their young men; and if this were not enough, the king of a fu- ture day would " take them to till his ground and to make his instruments of war and the furniture of his chariots. In like manner the daughters of Israel, who should marry and bring up children, would be largely taken to minister to the luxury of the court as " confectioners and bakers." Nor would he much scruple to take the chosen and best of their male and female slaves, as Avell as their laboring cattle, and "put. them to his own work." And then to support his expenses, the heaviest exactions would be necessary ; and although the kingly tenth Avere already appropriated to Je- hovah, the divine king, not the less would their human king exact his kingly dues; thus, in fact, rendering their burdens greater than those of any other nation. A clear intimation was also given them of the danger to which their landed possessions would be ultimately exposed under the form of government which they so much desired. For the expression, " He will take the best of your fields, and of your vineyards, and of your olive-yards, and give them to his servants," manifestly refers to the fact that, inasmuch as their true king, Jehovah, was the sovereign proprietor of the soil, and as such had long before distributed the whole in inalienable estates among the people, whatever human king they might have, would necessarily stand in the, then and there, peculiar position, being only a civil governor, and not, like the neighboring king, also the territorial sovereign ; and that hence, wanting the means of providing for his family and servants which other kings possessed, he would be tempted to avail himself of all kinds of pretences to dispossess them of the lands which they held from their di- vine king. "His servants ye will become," concludes the prophet. " And ye shall cry out in that day because of the king that ye have chosen : but Jehovah will not hear you in that day." The purpose of the people was, however, too firmly fixed to be shaken even by this discouraging representation. An acquiescence in their demand was therefore reluc- tantly conceded, probably, as Jahn conjectures, " because the desired change was requested of the invisible King in a lawful manner, through the mediation of hiy prophet, and because, in the present disposition of the nation, it might be effected without bloodshed. If the remark of Polybius be in all cases true, that ■ all aristoc- racies and democracies terminate at last in monarchy,'! this change must have taken place in some future time, and perhaps might have been attended with civil war. " By this alteration of the constitution the theocracy was indeed thrown somewhat into the shade, as it was no longer so manifest that God was the king of the He- brews. Still however, as the principles of the theocracy were interwoven with the * Spo imsjraving, page 255. t Hist lib. v 6. 7 HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 235 i56 AN ILLUSTRATED fundamental and uncnangeable laws of the state, their influence did not entirely cease, but the elected king was to act as the viceroy and vassal of Jehovah. On this account Moses had already established the following regulations (Deut. xvii. 14-20) : " 1. That the Hebrews, whenever they adopted the monarchical form of govern- ment, should raise only those to the throne who were chosen by Jehovah himself. As monarchs (called kings of kings) were accustomed to appoint sub-kings, or vice- roys, in the several provinces of their dominions, so was the king of the Hebrews to be called to the throne by Jehovah, to receive the kingdom from him, and in all re- spects to consider himself as his representative, viceroy, and vassal. On this occa- sion the will of Jehovah was to be made known by a prophet, or by means of Urim and Thummim, and the viceroy elect was to prove himself an instrument of G-od by protecting the commonwealth against its foes. The succession of the royal housp was to depend on the will of God, to be made known by his prophets. " 2 Moses had likewise ordained that the new king should be a native Israelite. Thus foreigners were excluded from the throne, even though they should be proposed by false prophets; for, being heathens, they might transgress the fundamental law of the state by the introduction of idolatry; or, at least, it might be difficult for them to rule in all respects as the vassals of Jehovah. This regulation had reference merely to free elections, and was by no means to be understood, as it was explained by Judas of Galilee (Acts v. 37) and the Zealots during the last war with the Ro- mans, that the Hebrews were not to submit to these foreign powers, under whose dominion they were brought by an all-directing Providence. On the contrary, Moses himself had predicted such events, and Jeremiah and Ezekiel earnestly exhorted their countrymen to surrender quietly to the Chaldeans." Upon such conditions the choice of a king was permitted, according to law ; and in the year 1110 B. C, 538 years after the exode, the first election took place. Saul, the son of Kish, of the tribe of Benjamin, went forth about this timf with a servant to seek some strayed asses belonging to his father. For three days the search was fruitless; and then finding himself near Ramah, the stated residence of Samuel, he resolved to go and consult him; for it was known to all Israel that noth- ing was hidden from the man of God. According to the still subsisting custom of the East, no one could, with the least propriety, present himself before a man in author- ity, and still less before a person of so sacred a character as Samuel bore, without some present, however small, in token of his respect and homage. But although the toil and travel-stained stranger who appeared before the prophet could only lay before him the worth of seven-pence halfpenny in silver, he was received with particular notice and honor ; for it had been specially revealed to Samuel that on that day and at that hour the destined king of Israel would present himself before him. The prophet assured Saul that his father had found the asses, and began now to be anx- ious about his son. Nevertheless, he urged him to stay with him over the night, and partake of a feast Avhich he had provided ; at the same time conveying to him a flight intimation of the splendid fortunes which were in store for him; to which, with modest self-withdrawment, Saul replied, " Am not I a Benjamite, of the small- est of the tribes of Israel ? and my family the least of all the families of the tribe of Benjamin ? Wherefore then speakest thou so to me ?" Part of this must be attrib- uted to the Oriental forms of self-detraction; for although Benjamin was certainly the smallest of the tribes — as it had not recovered the serious blow inflicted by all the other tribes — it appears from the history that the family of Kish was of some consideration in Benjamin. In consequence of the intimation he had previously received, Samuel had against this time prepared an entertainment, to which thirty principal persons of the place uad been invited. Samuel conducted the stranger to" the room in which these guests were assembled, and led him to the corner-seat of honor; and when the meat was served, directed the most honorable joint — the shoulder — to be set before him. Being summer, the bed for Saul was made on the house-top; and before he la^i down, Samuel communed with him there, probably to ascertain his sentiments and character, and to acquaint him with the true nature of that form of kingly govern- ment whicb he was destined to establish. Earlv in the morning the prophet called Saul to depart, and walked forth with him. After a time Samuel directed the ser vant to pass on before; and then the prophet, desiring Saul to stand still, that he jngh/ show him the purposes of God, produced a vial of oil. and poured it upon his HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 257 258 AM ILLUSTRATED head, thus anointing him " captain over the Lord's inheritance.' He then kissed him. and to confirm his faith, proceeded to tell him all the incidents that would occur to him during his journey home, and to encourage him, under the sense he entertained of his own inferior claims to such a distinction, assured him that on the way, and through the divine influence, the needful qualifications should grow upon him, so that he should seem to receive another* heart and to become another man. On his way home all happened to Saul which the prophet had foreshown ; and some of the incidents are too illustrative of the manners of the time to pass unnoticed. In the plain of Tabor he was met by three men who were proceeding to the place of sacred stones in Bethel, to worship God there. One of them carried three kids, in- tended as a sacrifice for each of their number; another had three loaves of bread; and the third a leather bottle of wine, all evidently intended to be used with the flesh of the kids in an offering-feast. They gave Saul the salutation of peace — such as travellers give each other by the way — probably the usual " Peace be unto thee !" which is no other than the common Sa'lam aleikoom of the modern East ; and they gave him two of the three loaves of bread which they had with them. As Saul went on to G-ibeah in Benjamin, which seems to have been called " the hill of God," either because there was here a "high-place" consecrated to the wor- ship of God, or because it was the seat of a " school of the prophets," or a kind of college where young men were instructed in the duties of religion, in the knowledge of the law, in psalmody, and other religious exercises. Or it may have been so called for both these reasons, for both existed. As Saul drew nigh he perceived a company of these prophets returning from the high-place where they had been to worship"; and as they went they sang the praises of God to the sound of the psaltery, the tabret, the pipe, and the harp. As they drew nigh the Spirit of God came upon him, as Samuel had predicted, and he became as another man. He joined the prophets, and sang the praises of God with them. And when those to whom he was known (for this was in his own tribe and neighborhood) witnessed this sudden endowment of the untaught husbandman they were much astonished, and said one to another, " What is this that is come unto the son of Kish ? Is Saul also among the prophets ?" Whence this last expression passed into a proverb, applied to one found in society with which his previous habits had not prepared him to mingle. It may be seen, however, that this incident would serve in a very conspicuous manner to direct attention to the per- son and character of Saul. Samuel, in parting from Saul, had appointed a future meeting at Gilgal, to which place of sacred stones he convoked all Israel for the election of a king. As on other occasions, the choice of God was to be manifested by lot, which would also tend to prevent jealousies and the suspicion of partiality on the part of Samuel. In the usual manner of successive indications, the tribe of Benjamin was taken by the lot from the several tribes; then the family of Matri from the families of that tribe; then the house of Kish from the family of Matri ; and, lastly, Saul from the household of Kish. But Saul was not to be found. Well assured of the result, he had not formed one in the assembly, but had, from modesty, kept himself apart among the baggage. When his retreat was discovered, he was led forward into the midst of the congrega- tion ; and the mass of the people observed with complacency that the elected king was of most noble presence, in the full prime of life, comely and tall, being higher by the head and shoulders than any of those among whom he stood. On such a man, in a rude age, when personal qualities are the most valued, the suffrages of all men would have centred, regarding him as pointed out by nature for rule and dominion. And so far did this feeling operate even on Samuel, that with evident pride that, since there must be a king, the divine choice had fallen on one who must seem in the eyes of all men so well qualified to dignify his high office, he thus proclaimed him to the people: " See ye him whom Jehovah hath chosen, that there is none like him among all the people." And the people, responding to that feeling, raised at once the shout of recognition, " Long live the king!" In concluding the present chapter, we are reluctant to withhold from the readei the very interesting survey which Jahn has taken of the office of the judges, and of » Another, not new ; a distinction which, from the Scriptural acceptation of the word new, together witl. the after conduct of Saul, it may be important to note. t In this engraving (page 250) ancient musical instruments have been introduced (from Egyptian sources) for the sake of more effective illustration HISTORY OF THE BIBLE 25!) 260 AN ILLUSTRATED the condition of Israel under their administration. This survey is imbodied in tht ensuing paragraphs, but having modified several passages to suit them to the views which we have ourselves developed, we abstain from giving them the form of a direct quotation. From what has been already said respecting the judges and their achievements, we can ascertain, with a tolerable degree of certainty, the nature of their office. Most of them, indeed, had been at the head of armies, and delivered their country from foreign oppression : Eli and Samuel, however, were not military men. Deborah was judge before she planned the war against Jabin; and of Jair, Ibzan, Elon, and Abdon, it is at least uncertain whether they ever held any military command. Judges are mentioned in the Mosaic law, in connexion with the high-priest, as arbiters of civil controversies, without any allusion to war. (Deut. xvii. 9.) In like manner, the judges who were appointed over Tyre after King Baal were certainly not military officers, for the city was at that time tributary to Babylon. The command of the army can therefore be scarcely considered as the peculiar distinction of these magis- trates. But as in ancient times the duties of a judge were reckoned among the first and most important duties of a ruler, so the Hebrew judges appear to have been ap- pointed for the general administration of public affairs, and the command of the army fell to them as the supreme executive officers. In many cases, it is true, military achievements were the means whereby men elevated themselves to the rank of judges ; but our inquiry is, not how the office was obtained, but for what purposes it was instituted. It may, however, be proper to recollect that Jephthah and Sam- uel, and, for aught that appears, Jair, Elon, Ibzan, and Abdon, were raised to this office by the free, unsolicited voice of the people. The office of these judges or regents was held during life, but it was not hereditary, neither could they appoint their successors. This arrangement might seem to be at- tended with the disadvantage that at the death of a judge the supreme executive authority ceased ; but on consideration it will appear that these civil functions de- volved on the high-priest, or rather were inherent to his high office, and Avere called into operation in the absence of any person more especially appointed to exercise them. And, without this, the apparent disadvantage would be more than counter- balanced by its preventing a degenerate heir or successor from giving to idolatry the support of his influence. This authority was limited by the law alone ; and in doubt- ful cases they were directed by the sacred Oracle. (Num. xxvii. 21.) They were not obliged in common cases to ask advice of the ordinary rulers ; it was sufficient that they did not remonstrate against the measures of the judge. In important emergen- cies, however, they convoked a general assembly of the rulers, over which they pre- sided and exerted a powerful influence. They could issue orders, but not enact laws ; they could neither levy taxes nor appoint officers, except perhaps in the army. Their authority extended only over those tribes by whom they had been elected or acknowl- edged; for, as has been before remarked, several of the judges presided over separate tribes. There was no salary attached to their office, nor was there any income appro- priated to them, unless it might be a larger share of the spoils, and those presents which were made to them as testimonials of respect. (Judges viii. 24.) They had no external marks of dignity, and maintained no retinue of courtiers, though some of them were very opulent. They were not only simple in their manners, moderate in their desires, and free from avarice and ambition, but noble and magnanimous men, who felt that whatever they did for their country was above all reward, and could not be recompensed ; who desired merely to promote the public good, and chose rather to deserve well of their country than to be enriched by its wealth. This ex- alted patriotism, like everything else connected with politics in the theocratical state of the Hebrews, was partly of a religious character; and those regents always con- ducted themselves as the officers of God; in all their enterprises they relied upon him, and their only care was that their countrymen should acknowledge the authority of Jehovah, their invisible King. (Judg. viii. 22, et seq. ; comp. Heb. xi.) Still they were not without faults, neither are they so represented by their historians; they re- late, on the contrary, with the utmost frankness, the great sins of which some of them were guilty. They were not merely deliverers of the state from a foreign yoke, but destroyers of idolatry, foes of pagan vices, promoters of the knowledge of God, of religion, and of morality ; restorers of theocracy in the minds of the Hebrews, and powerful instruments of divine Providence in the promotion of the great design of HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 201 preserving the Hebrew constitution, and by that means of rescuing the true religion from destruction. By comparing the periods during which the Hebrews were oppressed by their ene- mies witn those in which they were independent and governed by their own consti- tution, it is apparent that the nation in general experienced much more prosperity than adversity in the time of the judges: their dominion continued four hundred and seventy-two years ; but the whole period of foreign oppression amounts only to one hundred and thirty-one years, scarcely a fourth part of that period. Even during these years of bondage the whole nation was seldom under the yoke at the same time, but, for the most part, separate tribes only were held in servitude; nor were their oppressions always very severe; and all the calamities terminated in the advantage and glory of the people, as soon as they abolished idolatry and returned to their king, Jehovah. Neither was the nation in such a state of anarchy at this time as has gen- erally been supposed. There were regular judicial tribunals at which justice could be obtained ; and when there was no supreme regent, the public welfare was pro- vided for by the high-priest and the ordinary rulers of the tribes. (Ruth iv. 1-11 ; Judg. viii. 22, xi. 1-1 1 ; 1 Sam. iv. 1, vii. 1, 2.) These rulers, it is true, were jealous of each other, and their jealousies not unfrequently broke out into civil war; but the union of the state was never entirely destroyed. They were not always provided with arms (2 Judg. v. S ; 1 Sam. xiii. 19); but yet, when united under" their king, Jehovah, they gained splendid victories. They were not sufficiently careful to re- press idolatry, but they never suffered it to become universally predominant. The sacred tabernacle was never entirely deserted and shut up, nor was it ever polluted by the rites of heathen superstition. These times would certainly not be considered so turbulent as barbarous, much less would they be taken, contrary to the clearest evidence and to the analogy of all history, for an "heroic age,"* if they were viewed without the prejudices of precon- ceived hypothesis. It must never be forgotten that the book of Judges is by no means a complete history. It is, in a manner, a mere register of diseases, from which, how- ever, we have no right to conclude that there were no healthy men, much less (iat there were no healthy seasons; when the book itself, for the most part, mentions only a few tribes in which the epidemic prevailed, and notices long periods during which it had entiiely ceased. Whatever may be the result of more accurate investi- gation, it remains undeniable that the history of the Hebrews during this period per- fectly corresponds throughout to the sanctions of the law ; and they were always prosperous when they complied with the conditions on which prosperity was prom- ised to them; it remains undeniable that the government of God was clearly mani- fested, not only to the Hebrews, but to their heathen neighbors, that the fulfilling of the promises and threatenings of the law were so many sensible proofs of the uni- versal dominion of the divine King of the Hebrews; and, consequently, that all the various fortunes of that nation were so many means of preserving the knowledge of God on the earth. The Hebrews had no sufficient reason to desire a change in their constitution, since all that was necessary was that they should observe the conditions on which national prosperity had been promised to them. CHAPTER XVI. saul's reign — his wars — dayid anointed kino The election of Saul, though generally approved, did not meet with universal ac- ceptance. In one point of view, the choice of a person belonging to a neutral and powerless tribe was calculated to obviate the rivalries of the two great tribes of Ephraim and Judah, who probably both thought that they had the better right to the distinction, but neither of whom were likely to agree that the other should have had il But, on the other hand, Saul himself was not likely to derive the more respect from this neutral and politically insignificant position which prevented the mutual jealousies of these great rivals. But seeing that the tribe of Benjamin was, from its geographical position, closely connected with, and in some degree dependant on thai of Judah, it is more probable that the dissentients, " the children of Belial," who de- spised Saul, and said, "How shall this man save us?" were of the haughty and tur * It is thus characterized by Heeren and other wirttrs. 262 AN ILLUSTRATED bulent tribe of Ephraim. Samuel left it to the people themselves to settle the money price they were to pay for their new luxury; and, although he had foreshown the ex- actions which the regal state would in the end render necessary, it was not his object to give his sanction to that which he had announced as a contingent evil. Besides the external organization of the new government was left to be developed by circum- stances, the prophet having only cared to secure the principles. Saul was left to grow into his position and its privileges, while Samuel continued to administer the civil government : for it is to be borne in mind that Samuel continued to judge Israel all the days of his life, which did not terminate until thirty-eight years after the election of Saul, who himself outlived the prophet but two years. The position of Saul was, therefore, for the greater part of his reign, chiefly that of a military leader, while Samuel continued to discharge the civil part of the regal office, to which it Avas prob- ably obvious that Saul was not competent. The kingdom, properly speaking, was not established, not developed under Saul, but only begun with him. And this it is necessary to understand, if we would clearly apprehend the growth of that monarchi- cal principle which was only planted with Saul. After his election at Gilgal, the king returned to his own home at G-ibeah, where such " presents" were brought him by the people as oriental kings usually receive, and which form no inconsiderable portion of their ordinary revenue. As the product of these offerings was probably more than adequate to the present wants and expecta- tions of the king, who as yet assumed no regal state, the question as to the permanent support of the kingly government was not yet pressed upon the attention of either the people or the king. The discontented parties, however, " brought him no presents." Saul took no notice of their insults, but wisely " held his peace." Very soon after Saul's election, the Ammonites, under their king Nahash, marched into the old disputed territory beyond Jordan, and laid siege to the important city of Jabesh Gilead. The inhabitants, avowing their impotence, offered to submit to the condition of paying tribute to the Ammonites ; but the insulting and barbarous king refused to receive their submission on any other terms than that the right eye of every one of them should be extinguished, that they might remain as so many living mon- uments of his victory. Here again was a barbarity of which the Israelites were never guilty, even in thought. The people of Jabesh Gilead were so distressed that they dared not absolutely refuse even these merciless conditions, but besought a grace of seven days for deliberation. This they did with the hope that the tribes on the other side the river might, in the interval, be roused by the news to appear for their deliv- erance. Nor was their hope in vain. Saul no sooner received the intelligence than he at once and decidedly stood up in his position of a hero and a king, claiming the obedience of the people, whom he summoned to follow him to the deliverance of Ja- besh Gilead. This call was readily obeyed ; for it ran in the names of Saul and Samuel, and was conveyed in that imperative and compulsory form, which it was not, under any circumstances, judged safe to disobey. For he hewed a yoke of oxen in pieces, and sent the pieces by the hands of swift messengers to all Israel, calling them, by all the penalties of that well-known and dreaded sign, to follow him. All Israel obeyed with one consent. All the men, of age to bear arms, quitted their several la- bors, and hastened from all parts to the plain of Bezek, where Saul numbering his army, found it to consist of three hundred and thirty thousand men, of whom thirty thousand were of Judah, which seems rather an inadequate proportion for so large a tribe. It being already the sixth day, Saul sent to apprize the citizens of Jabesh Gil- ead of the help which was preparing for them, and which they might expect to re- ceive on the morrow, being the very day they were to surrender their eyes to the Ammonites. Accordingly, in the morning, the king, having marched all night, appeared before Jabesh, at the head of his army, invested the camp of the Ammonites, and falling upon them on three different sides, overthrew them with a great slaughter. So com- plete was the rout, that those who escaped were so broken and dispersed, that no two could be found together. Saul in this action displayed a large measure of those heroic qualities which the mcient nations most desired their monarchs to possess. Considering all the circum- stances, the promptitude and energy of his decision, the speed with which he collected an immense army and brought it into action, and the skill and good military conduct of the whole transaction, there are probably few operations of the Hebrew history HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 2G3 wnich more recommend themselves to the respect and admiration of a modern sol- dier. Its effect was not lost upon the people, who joyfully recognised in their king the qualities which have generally been held most worthy of rule ; and so much was their enthusiasm excited, that they began to talk of putting to death the small mi- nority who had refused to recognise his sovereignty. But Samuel interposed to pre- vent an act unbecoming a day in which " God had wrought salvation in Israel." So harsh a proceeding would also have been rather likely to provoke than allay the dis- affection of the leading tribes. Samuel then invited the army, which comprehended in fact the effective body of the Hebrew people, to proceed to Gilgal, there solemnly to confirm the kingdom to Saul, seeing that now his claims were undisputed by any portion of the people. This was done with great solemnity, and with abundant sacrifices of peace and joy. But lest this solemnity, which was obviously designed to remind the people of their continued dependance on Jehovah, should be construed into an approbation and sanc- tion of all their proceedings, the prophet took this public occasion of reminding them that their proceeding had been most unpleasing to their Divine King; although, if they maintained their fidelity to him and to the principles of the theocracy, some of the evil consequences might be averted. He also neglected not the opportunity of justifying his own conduct and the purity of his administration. He challenged as- sembled Israel to produce one instance of oppression, fraud, or corruption, on his part, while he had been their sole judge ; and in that vast multitude not one voice was raised to impugn his integrity and uprightness. He then proceeded to remind them of their past transgressions, in forgetting or turning astray from their God, with the punishments which had invariably followed, and the deliverances which their repent- ance had procured ; showing them, by these instances, the sufficiency of their Divine Sovereign to rule them, and to save them from their enemies, without the intervention of an earthly king, whom they had persisted in demanding. And he assured them that, under their regal government, public sins would not come to be visited with pub- lic calamities. To add the greater weight to his words, and to evince the divine dis- pleasure, the commissioned prophet called down thunder and rain from heaven, then at the usual season of wheat harvest, when the air is usually, in that country, serene and cloudless. On this the people were greatly alarmed at the possible consequences of the displeasure they had provoked, and besought Samuel to intercede for them. The prophet kindly encouraged them to hope that if they continued to trust faithfully in God, all would yet be well; and he assured them of continued intercession on their behalf, and of his services as a civil judge or teacher, — for that the omission would be a sin on his own part. Saul, now fully established as king, dismissed his numerous army ; but he retained three thousand of their number, two thousand of which he stationed at Michmash and Bethel, under his own immediate orders, while the other thousand were at Gib- eah of Benjamin, under his eldest son Jonathan. Josephus says that these formed the body-guard of himself and his son. If so, he began very soon to act "like the kings of the nations," and to fulfil one part of the predictions of Samuel as to the course which the kingdom was likely to take. Even supposing (as we rather do) that he re- tained this force to be in readiness for the smaller military operations which he had in view, it is evident that he had already taken the idea of a standing army, the nucleus of which this body of three thousand men may be deemed to have formed. At ail events, it may seem as an early indication of Saul's subsequently besetting public sin, of forgetting his properly vice-regal character, and his subordination to the Divine King. It was assuredly a new thing in Israel, and does savor somewhat of a distrust of God's providence, by which the peculiar people had hitherto been protected and delivered in every time of need ; as well as of an affectation of that independent au- thoritv which " the kings of the nations" took to themselves. However, as the char- acter of Saul seems to be held generally in more disesteem than the writers of his history intended, we shall not impute blame to him where the Scripture does not ; but are ready to allow that, under all the circumstances, the measure was prudent and proper ; "for it appears that an enemy was then actually present in the country, whose expulsion the king had then in view. There were garrisons of the Philistines in the land. How this came to pass is not very clear. It would seem, however, that in re- signing their conquests after their last defeat, they had retained some hill fortresses. from which thev knew the Hebrews would find it difficult to dislodge them : and thai 264 AN ILLUSTRATED when they recovered from the blow which was then inflicted upon their power, they contrived," by the help of this hold which they had in the country, to bring the south- ern tribes (at least those of Judah and Benjamin) under a sort of subjection. Thus when Saul was returning home after having been privately anointed by Samuel at Ramah, and met the sons of the prophets at Gibeah, we learn that at that place was " a garrison of the Philistines." And now we further learn that the Hebrews had in fact been disarmed by that people. According to that jealous policy of which other examples will ultimately be offered, they had even removed all the smiths of Israel, lest they should make weapons of war; in consequence of which the Hebrews were obliged to resort to the Philistines whenever their agricultural implements needed any other sharpening than that which a grindstone could give ; and as this was an un- pleasant alternative, even these important instruments had been suffered to become blunt at the time to which we are now come ; and so strict had been the deprivation of arms that, in the military operations which soon after followed, no one of the Is- raelites, save Saul and his eldest son, was possessed of a spear or sword. This was the state of southern Palestine, where Jonathan, acting doubtless by the orders of his father, attacked and overcame with his thousand men the Philistine garrison in Gibeah. Encouraged by this success, Saul caused open war to be pro- claimed, by sound of trumpet, against the Philistines, and to assert his authority over the tribes beyond Jordan, who were but too apt to regard their interests as separate from those of the other tribes, and who might think themselves exempt from taking part in a war against a people whose oppressions had not extended to themselves, — Saul directed the proclamation to be made not only "throughout all the land," but in a special manner it included " those beyond Jordan." They did not disobey ; but came with other Israelites, from all quarters, to the standard of the king at Gilgal. The people generally, though destitute of proper military weapons, were much in- spirited by the success of Jonathan, and by their confidence in the now tried valor and military conduct of the king. Meanwhile the Philistines were not heedless of this movement among the Israelites. No sooner did they hear of the defeat of their garrison in Gibeah than they assembled a formidable force, which seemed sufficient to overwhelm all opposition. It was com- posed of three thousand chariots of war, six thousand horsemen, and " people as the sand upon the seashore for multitude." The enthusiasm of the disarmed Israelites evaporated in the presence of this powerful force ; and the army of Saul diminished every day, as great numbers of the men stole away to seek refuge in caves, in woods, in rocks, in towers, and in pits. Saul had exhibited his inability of understanding his true position, or his disposition to regard himself as an independent sovereign, by entering upon or provoking this war without consulting, through Samuel or the priest, the divine will. Although not formally so declared, it was the well-understood practice of the Hebrew constitution, that no war against any other than the doomed nations of Canaan would be undertaken without the previous consent and promised assistance of the Great King. Yet Saul, without any such authority, had taken measures which were certain to produce a war with the Philistines. He probably thought that the aggressions of the Philistines, and their existing position as the oppressors of Israel, and their intrusion into the Hebrew territory, made his undertaking so obviously just and patriotic as to render a direct authorization superfluous, as its refusal could not be supposed : nor are we quite sure that in this he was mistaken. Be this as it may, Samuel was not willing that such a precedent should be established ; and therefore he had appointed to meet Saul on a particular day at Gilgal, " to offer burnt-offerings and peace-offerings, and to show him what he should do," that is, both to propitiate the Lord, as on other occasions, and to advise Saul how to act in carrying on the war. On the appointed day Samuel did not arrive as soon as the king expected. The prophet probably delayed his coming on Kurpose to test his fidelity and obedience. Saul failed in this test. Seeing his force ourly diminishing by desertions ; and in the pride of his fancied independence, con- sidering that he had as much right as the Egyptian and other kings to perform the priestly functions, he ordered the victims to be brought, and offered them himself upon the altar. This usurpation of the priestly office by one who had no natural authority as an Aaronite, nor any special authorization as a prophet, was decisive of the char- acter and the fate of Saul. If the principles of the theocracy were to be preserved, and if the political supremacy of Jehovah was at all to be maintained, it was indis HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 2<>n 266 AN ILLUSTRATED pcnsably necessary that the first manifestation by the kings of autocratic dispositions and of self-willed assumption of superiority to the law, should be visited by severe examples of punishment; for if not checked in the beginnings, the growth would have been fatal to the constitution. It will hence appear that the punishments which Saul incurred for this and other acts manifesting the same class of dispositions, were not so disproportioned to his offences, or so uncalled for by the occasions of the state, as some persons have been led to imagine. Saul had scarcely made an end of offering his sacrifices before he was apprized of the approach of Samuel, and went forth to meet him. The apology he made to the prophet for what he had done, — that his force was diminishing, and that he was afraid that if he delayed any longer the Philistines would fall upon him before sacrifices had been offered to Jehovah — showed little of that reliance upon the Divine King, which every Hebrew general was expected to manifest ; and but little anxiety to receive these prophetic counsels which Samuel had promised to deliver. Under nearly simi- lar circumstances, how different was the conduct of Gideon, who gained immortal honor by these theocratic sentiments which enabled him to leave to his successors a memorable example of confidence in God! Samuel saw through the hollowness of Saul's apology, and warned him that by such sentiments as he entertained, and such conduct as he manifested, he was rendering himself unworthy to be the founder of a royal house, inasmuch as he could not become a pattern to his successors ; and that by persevering in such a course he would compel the appointment of one more worthy than himself to reign over Israel, and to be the father of a kingly race. Samuel then retired from Gilgal, leaving Saul to carry on, as he saw best, the war he had under- taken. On numbering his remaining force, Saul found that but six hundred men remained with him. With a less force than this, enemies as formidable as the Philistines had in former times been defeated. But Saul, entirely overlooking, or distrusting, that divine assistance which every Hebrew leader in a just war was entitled to expect, and regarding only the disparity of his force, felt that it would be imprudent to engage or oppose so vast an army with u mere handful of disheartened men. He therefore retired from the field, and threw himself into the reconquered fortress of Gibeah. On discovering his retreat, the Philistines sent three powerful detachments in different directions to ravage the country, while the main body of their army still remained encamped near Mich mash. In this extremity, an entire change was wrought in the aspect of affairs through the daring valor of Jonathan. Accompanied only by his armor-bearer, he withdrew secretly from the camp, and, by climbing, opened himself a passage to one of the outposts of the Philistines, upon the summit of a cliff, deemed inaccessible, and therefore not very strongly guarded ; and penetrating to the enemy by so new and unexpected a path, he killed the advanced piquets, and, supported by his follower, slew all whom his hand encountered, and bore disorder and alarm into the camp of the Philistines, then much weakened by the detachments we have mentioned. The cries which arose from this part of thecamp confounded and terrified the more dis- tant parts ; so that, aware of the presence of an enemy, which yet did not appear to them, they turned their arms against one another, and destroyed themselves with the blind fury of despairing men. The clamor which arose in the Philistine camp was heard by the Israelites. Saul at first was willing to go through the form of consult- ing the Lord by urim; but the confusion increasing in the Philistine camp, he deemed it a time for action rather than counsel; and directing the priest to forbear, he hastened to join his valiant son, whose absence was now known, and to whom this disorder was rightly attributed. The enemy were already flying in all directions, and Saul, with his small band, committed terrible havoc upon the fugitives. While thus engaged, his force increased with still greater rapidity than it had previously dimin- ished : for not only did the Hebrew captives take the opportunity of making their escape and joining their king, but great numbers came forth from their lurking places to join in the pursuit; so that Saul soon found himself at the head of six thousand men. The rash and inconsiderate king, in his determination to make the most of his advantage, laid an interdictive curse upon any of his people who should taste food until the evening. Not only were the pursuers weakened and exhausted by the strict abstinence thus enjoined, but Jonathan, unaware of this interdict, unwittingly transgressed it by tasting a little wild honey which he met with in his way through a forest. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 207 In the evening, the famished people, being then released from the interdict, flew ravenously upon the prey of cattle, and, in their impatience, began to devour the raw and living flesh. This being a transgression of the law which forbade meat not properly exsanguinated to be eaten, Saul, who was really rather zealous to observe the law when it did not interfere with his own objects, interposed, and ordered the meat to be properly and legally slaughtered and prepared for food. The people being now refreshed, Saul proposed to continue the pursuit during the night, but deemed it prudent first to consult the Lord through the priest. No answer was given. This Saul interpreted to intimate that his solemn interdict had been transgressed; and, again unreasoning and rash, he ?\vore that even were the trans^ gressor his own son Jonathan, he should surely be put to death. It was Jonathan : the lot determined this. His father told him he must die; but the people, full of admiration of the young prince, protested that not a hair of his head should suffer damage, and thus saved his life. This campaign, aithougn concluded without a battle, was not the less productive of durable advantage. The glory which Saul acquired by it strengthened his au- thority among his own people, and henceforth no enemy to which he could be opposed seemed invincible to him. We see him, indeed, waging war, in turn, against Moab, Ammon, and Edom, and against the Amalekites and the Philistines ; and in whatever direction he turned his arms, he obtained the victory and honor. Valiant himself, he esteemed valor in others ; and whenever he discovered a man of ability and courage, he endeavored to draw him near to himself, and to attach him to his person. The qualities most prized by Saul were eminently possessed by his own cousin Abner, and he became " captain of the host," or generalissimo of the army of Israel. The several expeditions of Saul against the enemies of Israel took up, at inter- vals, the space of five or six years. During these years, Samuel, without further interference in political affairs, continued to watch the civil interests of the people, and to administer justice between them. The authority which he still preserved in Israel was very great, and probably not considerably less than it had been at any former time. About the tenth or eleventh year of Saul's reign, God made known to the prophet that the iniquity of the Amalekiteshad now reached its height, and that the time was fully come when the old sentence of utter extermination should be executed. Saul was charged with its execution ; and his commission, as delivered to him by Samuel, was expressed in the most absolute terms, and left the king no option to spare aught that breathed. Under this supreme order, the king made a general call upon all the tribes, which brought together an army of two hundred thousand men, among whom there were but ten thousand men of Judah. The deficiency of that tribe in supplying its due proportion is probably not noticed by the historian on this and on a former oc- casion, without some object ; and that object probably was to convey the intimation that since the sceptre had been of old promised to that tribe, it was discontented at the government of Saul, and less hearty than the other tribes in its obedience. The king led his army into the territory of Amalek. There he made the most able disposition of his forces, seized the most f a vr>rable positions, and then turned his ad- vantages against the enemy. A general action followed, in which the Israelites were victorious, and they pursued the Amalekites to their most distant and last retreats. Aga^, the king, was taken alive with all his riches. Blinded by his ambition and his avarice to the danger of acting in defiance of a most positive and public command from God himself, Saul determined to spare the life of Agag, and to preserve the more valuable parts of all the booty from destruction ; but with a most insulting or weak mockery of obedience, " all that was vile and refuse they Utterly destroyed." He then led home his triumphant army, and paused in the land of Eastern Carmel,* where he erected a monument of che most important and distant expedition in which he had hitherto been engaged. He then passed on to Gilgal. Samuel came to him there &oon after his arrival, and at once charged him with his disobedience. Saul behaved with a degree of confusion and meanness which we should scarcely have expected from him, and which the consciousness of wrong-doing only can explain. He affirmed and persisted that he had obeyed the Divine command, when everything before and around him evinced that he had not. In the end he confessed that he had acted * On the southwestern borders of the Dead sea, and which we call "Eastern Carmcl" to distinguish 11 iroia " Mount Carmel," which lies westward, on the Mediterranean. 268 AN ILLUSTRATED wrong ; but then excused himself by laying one part of it on the zeal of the people to sacrifice the best of the cattle to Jehovah, and part to his own fear of restraining them from it. It was a great grief to Samuel to hear the king of Israel betray such meanness of soul, in palliating an unjustifiable action ; and, conceding the truth of the latter statement, he asked with severity, " Hath Jehovah as much delight in burnt- oflerings and in sacrifices as in obedience to his voice ? Behold, to obey is better than sacrifice; and to hearken than the fat of rams." He then continued authoritatively, as a prophet, to announce his rejection from being the founder of a royal house, as the fixed purpose of the Divine King whose imperative commands he had publicly disobeyed, or assumed a power of dispensing with, to such an extent as suited his convenience. It would be wrong to consider this as the sole act or omission for which this rejection was incurred. It was but one of many acts by which he indicated an utter incapability of apprehending his true position, and in consequence manifested dispositions and conduct utterly at variance with the principles of government which the welfare of the state, and, indeed, the very objects of its foundation, made it most essential to maintain. Unless the attempts at absolute independence made by Saul were checked, or visited with some signal mark of the divine displeasure, the prece- dents established by the first king were likely to become the rule to future sovereigns. And hence the necessity, now at the beginning, of peculiar strictness, or even of se- verity, for preventing the establishment of bad rules and precedents for future reigns. Saul at first betrayed more anxiety about present appearances than ultimate results; and he entreated Samuel to remain, and honor him in the sight of the people, by joining with him in an act of worship to Jehovah. Samuel refused ; and as he turned to go away, the king caught hold of the skirt of his robe to detain him, with such force, that the skirt was rent off. " So hath God," said the prophet, " rent from thee, this day, the kingdom of Israel, and given it to thy neighbor who is better than thee. Nor will he who gives victory to Israel lie or repent ; for he is not a man, that he should repent." The expression which we have here particularly indicated was prob- ably intended and understood as a further rebuke for the triumphal monument which Saul had erected in Carmel, and whereby he seemed to claim to himself that honor for the recent victory which, under the principles of the theocracy, was due to God only. Samuel, however, complied with the earnest wish of the king, and returned with him to the camp. There acting on the stern injunction which Saul had neglected, the prophet commanded the king of the Amalekites, by whose sword many mothers in Israel had been made childless, to be put to death. When the prophet and the king separated, the former proceeded to his usual residence at Ramah, and went no more to see Saul to the day of his death. Yet as he had a great regard for a man who, with all his faults, had many good natural qualities which would well have fit- ted him for rule in a simple human monarchy, and who, moreover, was faithful and even zealous for Jehovah, as his God, however deficient in obedience to him as his king, the prophet continued long to mourn greatly for him, and to bewail the doom which it had been his painful duty to declare. Alter fifteen years, the Lord rebuked Samuel for this useless repining, and com- manded him to proceed to Bethlehem, there to anoint the man worthier than Saul, whom he had chosen to fill his forfeited place, and to become the founder of a royal house. This was a delicate mission ; for Samuel knew enough of Saul to fear that he Avould not scruple to put even himself to death if the fact came to his knowledge. He therefore veiled his real object under the form of a public sacrifice, which, in his prophetic character, he had a right to enjoin. That he still retained his authority as civil judge is evinced by the alarm which his unexpected visit occasioned to the elders of Bethlehem, who " trembled" at his coming, for fear it should be not " peaceably," but in judgment. The family to which Samuel was sent was that of Jesse, the grandson of Boaz and Ruth, and, as such, a person of consideration in that place. Jesse was the father of eight sons, all of whom were present in Bethlehem, save the youngest, David by name, who was abroad with his father's flock. The whole family was invited by the prophet to be present at his sacrifice. Samuel knew that the destined king was "to be found among Jesse's sons, but knew not as yet for which oi' them that distinction was intended. Still influenced bv those general prepossessions in favor of such personal qualities as he had formerly beheld in Saul with complacency and admiration, Samuel ao sooner beheld the commanding and stately figure of Jesse's e'dest son, Eliab, thaD HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 2G9 ne concluded that " the Lord's anointed was before him." For this he received the striking rebuke, " Look not on his countenance, or on the height of his stature ; be- cause I have refused him: for Jehovah seeth not as man seeth ; for man looketh on the outward appearance, but Jehovah looketh on the heart." It further appeared that no one of the other sons of Jesse then present was the object of the divine choice. On this, Samuel, with some surprise, asked Jesse whether he had other sons ; and learning that the youngest, a mere youth of fifteen years old, was abroad in the fields, he caused him to be sent for. When he arrived, Samuel was struck by his uncom- monly handsome appearance, especially by a freshness of complexion unusual in that country, and by the singular fire and beauty of his eyes. The divine choice was at once intimated to him, " Arise, anoint him, for this is he !" As in the case of Saul himself, this precious anointing was significant only of the divine intention and choice. As Saul had returned to his fields, so David returned to his flock. The path to the throne was to be opened by circumstances which did not yet appear. The anointing was the sign and seal of an ultimate intention. For the present David was not more a king, nor Saul less one, than before. The doom of exclusion had been pronounced upon Saul at a time when he was daily strengthening himself on the throne, and increasing in power, popularity, and fame ; and when his eldest son, Jonathan, stood, and deserved to stand, so high in the favor of all the people, that no man could, according to human probabilities, look upon any one else as likely to succeed him in the throne. But when the excitement of war and victory had subsided, and the king had leisure to consider and brood over the solemn and declaredly irrevocable sentence which the prophet had pronounced, a very serious effect was gradually produced upon his mind and character; for he was no longer prospered and directed by God, but left a prey to his own gloomy mind. The con- sciousness that he had not met the requirements of the high vocation to Avhich, "when he was little in his own sight," he had been called, together with the threat- ened loss of his dominion and the possible destruction of his house, made him jealous, sanguinary, and irritable, and occasionally threw him into fits of the most profound and morbid melancholy. This is what, in the language of scripture, is called " the evil spirit that troubled him." That it was not a case of demoniacal possession, as some have been led by this form of expression to suppose, is obvious from the effects to which we shall presently advert. Nor was it needful ; for, as acting upon tne char- acter of man, earth contains not a more evil spirit than the guilty or troubled mind abandoned to its own impulses. Not long after David had been anointed by Samuel, the mental malady of Saul gath- ered such strength — the fits of his mad melancholy became so long and frequent, that some remedial measures appeared necessary. Remembering that Saul had always been remarkably sensible to the influence of sweet sounds, it occurred to his frieuds that it might be attended with good effects, were an able musician retained at court, to play before the king, when his fits of gloom and horror came upon him. Saul him- self approved of this advice, and directed that a person with the suitable qualifications should be sought. This reminded one of the courtiers how skilfully and sweetly he had heard the youngest son of Jesse play upon the harp ; and in mentioning this to the king he also took occasion to commend David as a young man of known valor, prudent in conduct, and very comely in his person. From this and other corroborative circumstances, it is easy to perceive that music was now, and much earlier, cultivated by the Hebrews as a private accomplishment and solace. It formed their most usual relaxation, and divided their time with the labors of agriculture and the care of flocks. The report which he had heard engaged Saul to send to Jesse, demanding his son David. The old man accordingly sent him to court, together with such a present to the king as the customs of the; age — and of the east in all ages, required as a homage. It consisted of a quantity of bread, a skin bottle of wine, and a kid. Thus, in the providence of God, an opening was made for David, whereby he might become acquainted with the manners of the court, the business of government, and the affairs and interests of the several tribes, and was put in the way of securing the equally important advantage of becoming extensively known to the people. These were training circumstances for the high destinies which awaited him. Saul himself, ignorant that in him he beheld the " man worthier than himself," on whom the in- heritance of his throne was to devolve, contributed to these preparations. He received tin? youthful minstrel with fervor ; and, Avon by his engaging disposition and the beau- 270 AN ILLUSTRATED lies of his mind and person, not less than by the melody of his harp, became much attached to him. The personal bravery of David, also, did not long remain unnoticed by the veteran hero, who soon elevated him to the honorable and confidential station of his armor-bearer — having obtained Jesse's consent to allow his son to remain in at- tendance upon him. His presence was a great solace and relief to Saul ; for whenever he fell into his fits of melancholy, David played on his harp before him ; and its soft and soothing strains soon calmed his troubled spirit, and brought peace to his soul. In the twenty-six years which had passed since the signal overthrow of the Phil- istines at Michmash, that people had recruited their strength, and at last* deemed themselves able to wipe out the disgrace they then incurred, and to recover their pre- vious superiority over the Israelites. They recommenced the war by invading the ter- ritory of Judah : Saul marched against them ; and the two armies encamped in the face of each other, on the sides of opposite mountains which a valley separated. While thus stationed the Hebrews were astonished and terrified to behold a man of enormous stature, between nine and ten feet high, advance from the camp of the Phil- istines attended by his armor-bearer. His name was Goliah. He was arrayed ir complete mail, and armed with weapons proportioned to his bulk. He stood forth between the hosts, and, as authorized by the Philistines, who were confident that his match could not be found, proposed, with great arrogance of language, that the ques- tion of tribute and servitude should be determined by the result of a single combat between himself and any champion which might be opposed to him. The Israelites were quite as much dismayed at the appearance of Goliah, and at the proposal which he made, as the Philistines could have expected, or as the Philistines themselves would have been under the same circumstances. No heart in Israel was found stout enough to dare the encounter with this dreadful Philistine; nor was any man then present willing to take on his single arm the serious consequences of the possible re- sult. Then finding that no one of riper years or higher pretensions offered himself to the combat, David presented himself before Saul, whom he attended as his armor- bearer, and said, " Let no man's heart fail because of him; thy servant will go and fight with this Philistine." But Saul told him that he was unequal to such a contest, " For thou art but a youth, but he a man of war from his youth." The reply of Da- vid was equally forcible and modest : — " Thy servant tended his father's flock ; and when there came a lion or a bear, and took a lamb out of the flock, then I pursued him and smote him, and snatched it from his mouth ; and if he rose against me, I caught him by the beard, and smote him, and slew him. Both lions and bears hath thy servant smitten, and this uncircumcised Philistine shall be like one of them. Let me go and smite him, and take away the reproach from Israel ; for who is this uncir- cumcised Philistine that he should defy the hosts of the living God ?" He added, " Jehovah who delivered me from the power of lions and bears will deliver me from the hand of this Philistine." Saul had been too little accustomed to this mode of speaking and feeling not to be struck by it. Although he had himself not been prone to exhibit military confidence in God, he perceived that such a confidence now sup- plied the only prospect of success ; he therefore said, " Go; and may Jehovah be with thee !" He would fain have arrayed him in his own complete armor; but David re- jected this as an incumbrance, and stepped lightly forward in his ordinary dress, and without sword or shield, or spear, having only in his right hand a sling — with the use of which early pastoral habits had made him familiar — and in his left a little bag, containing five smooth pebbles picked up from the small brook that then meandered and still meanders through the valley of Elah.f The giant was astonished, and felt insulted that a mere youth should be sent forth to contend with so redoubted a cham- pion as himself; and availing himself of the pause which the ancient champions were wont to take to abuse, threaten, and provoke each other, he cried, " Am I a dog, that thou comest against me with staves ?" He then cursed him by his god, and, like the old Homeric heroes, threatened to give his flesh to the fowls of the air and to the beasts of the field. David's reply, conceived in the finest and truest spirit of the the- * B. C. 1080, five years after the anointing of David. t " We entered the famous Terebinthine vale, renowned for centuries as the field of the victory gained by David ovei the uncircumcised Philistine. Nothing has occurred to alter the face of the country. The very brook out of which David chose the five smooth stones has been noticed by many a thirsty pilgrim journeying from Jaffa to Jerusalem, all of whom must pass it in their way. The ruins of goodly edifices, indeed, attest the religious veneration entertained in later periods for this hallowed spot ; but even these are now become so insignificant that they are scarcely discernible, and nothing can be said to inu «ruyt tl ■ native dignity of this memorable scene." — Clarke. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 271 ncracy, at once satisfies us that we behold in him the man fit to reign over the pecu- liar people. " Thou comest to me with a sword, and with a spear, and with a shield ; but I come to thee in the name of the Lord of hosts, the God of the hosts of Israel, whom thon hast defied. This day will Jehovah deliver thee into my hand ; and I will take thy head from thee, and I will give thy carcass, and the carcasses of the host of the Philistines, this day to the fowls of the air and to the wild beasts of the earth, that the whole earth may know that there is a God in Israel. And all this as- sembly shall know that Jehovah can save without sword or spear ; for the battle is Jehovah's, and he will deliver you into our hands." On this the enraged giant strode forward ; and David hastened to fit a stone to his sling ; and he flung it with so true an aim that it smote the Philistine in the only vulnerable part that was not cased in armor, his forehead, and buried itself deep in his brain. He then ran and cut off the monster's head with his own sword, thus fulfilling the prediction he had just uttered. A few minutes after he had gone forth, he returned, and laid the head and sword of the giant at the feet of Saul. The o\erthrow of their champion struck a panic into the Philistines. They fled, and were pursued, with great slaughter, even to their own country, by the Israelites, who then returned and plundered their camp. The honor which David won by this splendid achievement was too great for his safety. Saul could not but feel that the sort of spirit by which the youthful hero had been "actuated was precisely that which on many preceding occasions he himself ought to have manifested, and for not doing which the doom of exclusion had been pro- nounced against him. The feeling that David was really the hero of the recent fight, was also not pleasant to one so jealous of his military glory. And when the women came forth from their towns to greet the returning conquerors with their instruments of music, and sang re^ponsively to their tabrets and their viols, — '■ Saul has smitten his thousands, But David has his ten thousands slain," the indignation of the king was provoked to the utmost. " To me," he said, " they have ascribed but thousands, and to David tens of thousands : what more can he have but the kingdom?" It would therefore seem that this preference of David to him by the women in their songs first suggested to him the possibility that he was the man, worthier than himself, who was destined to succeed him and to supersede his de- scendants : and the notion having once occurred, he probably made such inquiries as enabled him to conclude or to discover that such was the fact. His knowledge of it appears soon after; and we know that from this time forward David became the ob- ject, not merely of his envy and jealousy, but of his hatred and dislike. Yet he was afraid, if he as yet wished, to do him any open injury; but as he could not bear him any longer in his former close attendance about his person, he threw him more into the public service, intrusting to him the command of a thousand men. From his sub- sequent expressions and conduct, it seems likely that the king expected that the inexperience of youth might lead David into such errors in this responsible public station as would either give him occasion to act against him, or would seriously damage his character with the people. But if such were his views, they were grievously disappointed. In his public station "David behaved himself wisely in all his ways, for Jehovah was with him ;" and the opportunity which was given him only served to evince his talents for business and his attention to it; and, conse- quently, to increase and establish that popularity among the people which his char- acter and exploits had already won. And so it was, that the dislike and apprehen- sions of Saul increased in proportion to the abilities and discretion which David evinced, and to the popularity which he acquired. The king was under the full operation of those feelings, which as yet he durst not avow, when he happened to learn that his daughter Michal had become attached to David. This was far from displeasing him, as he thought it gave him an opportunity of entrapping the son of Jesse to his own destruction. He promised her to him; but on the condition of so difficult an enterprise against the Philistines, as he fully ex- pected would ensure his death. But David, always victorious, returned in a few days with more numerous pledges of his valor than theking had ventured to demand ; and he was then married to Michal, who could not with any decency be refused to him In some subsequent actions against the Philistines, with whom a desultory warlart was still carried on, David displayed such courage and military skill as greatly in- 272 AN ILLUSTRATED creased his renown in Israel, and increased in the same proportion the animosity of Saul. His hate became at last so ungovernable, that he could no longer confine the dark secret to his own bosom, or limit himself to underhand attempts against the life of Jesse's son. He avowed it to his son Jonathan and to his courtiers, charging them to take any favorable opportunity of putting him to death. He knew not yet of the strong attachment Avhich subsisted between Jonathan and David, — that "his noble son, rising far above all selfishness, pride, or envy, loved the son of Jesse even M as his own soul." He heard the command with horror, and apprized David of it, counselling him to hide himself until he should have an opportunity of remonstrating on the subject privately with the king. This he did with such effect, displaying the services and fidelity of David with such force, that the better reason of Saul prevailed for the time, and he solemnly swore to make no further attempt against his life. But not long after, all the evil passions of Saul were again roused by the increased renown which David obtained, by a splendid victory over the Philistines. He had scarce returned to court before he had a narrow escape of being pinned to the wall by a javelin which the king threw at him in one of those fits of phrensied melancholy which the son of Jesse was at that moment endeavoring to sooth by playing on his harp. David then withdrew to his own house. But the king had now committed him- self, and henceforth threw aside all disguise or restraint. He sent some of his attend- ants to watch the house ; and David would undoubtedly have been murdered the next morning, had not his faithful wife managed his escape during the night, by letting him down in a basket through one of the windows. In tne morning, when "the man demanded admittance with the intention of slaying her husband, INIichal told them he was very ill and confined to his bed ; and in proof of it showed them the bed, in which she "had placed a figure made up so as to present the appearance of a body covered with the bedclothes. This news they carried to the king, who sent them back with orders to bring him alive in his bed. By this means JMichal's artifice was discovered, and her father was so enraged, that, for her own safety, she made him believe that it was to save her own life she had consented to it. As the only revenge then in his power, Saul took away Michal, and gave her in marriage to another ; and the story which she had made up, that David had put her in fear of her life, probably precluded her from making that strenuous opposition which she might otherwise have done. David himself escaped to Ramah, where he acquainted Samuel with all the king's behavior to him. Samuel took him to Naioth, which seems to have been a kind of school or college of the prophets, in the neighborhood of Ramah, over which Samuel presided. Saul soon heard where he was; and so reckless was he now become, and so madly bent on his murderous object, that he would not respect even this asylum, but sent messengers to bring David to him. These, when they beheld the company of prophets, with Samuel at their head, "prophesying," or singing hymns, fell into an ecstasy, and " prophesied" in like manner. The same happened to a second and a third party. At last Saul determined to go himself; and in his rage he probably intended to slay Samuel also for sheltering David. Indeed, that the youth had gone to Samuel, and" was sheltered by him, must have confirmed his conviction that David was his appointed successor, if "he did not yet know, as he probably did, that the son of Jesse had actually been anointed by the prophet. But no sooner had the king be- held what had so strongly affected his messengers, than he also, as had happened to him in his happier days, " prophesied," and lay in an ecstatic trance, divested of his outer garment, all that day and night. This gave David an opportunity to leave the neighborhood; and he repaired to Gibeah, where the king resided, and where Jonathan then was, to seek a private in terview with that valuable friend. Jonathan thought himself fully acquainted with all the intentions of his father, and would not believe that he really designed the death of David. But the latter was well assured of it ; and thought that Saul, having become acquainted with their friendship, had concealed his full purpose from Jona- than. It was, however, agreed between them, that the conduct of the king on an approaching occasion should be deemed to determine his ultimate intentions; and that meanwhile David should keep himself concealed. The two friends then walked forth into the fields. Jonathan then avowed to David his conviction that he, and not himself was the destined successor of Saul; and, with rare generosity of spirit and HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 278 Escape from a Window. 18 274 AN ILLUSTRATED fibendonment of self, he expressed his cheerful assent to this, and only desired to ri> reive the pledge of David that, if himself alive when he became King, protectioD should be granted to him from the designs which evil men might entertain ; and that if not himself living, kindness should be extended to his family for his sake. This was a matter in which he might be allowed at this time to feel more than usual anxiety, as it appears, from a comparison of dates, that a son, Mephibosheth, had iately been born to him. Reciprocally, he would pledge himself to protect the life of David, to the extent of his power, from the designs of Saul and his other enemies. These things they swore before God to each other, and entered together into a cove- nant of peace and love. It seems that by this time Saul lived in considerable state. At the recurrence of the new moons, he was accustomed to entertain his principal officers at meat. Such a feast was now near at hand ; and it appears that Saul, who knew that David had returned to Gibeah, expected that, notwithstanding what had passed, he would make his appearance at this feast, as it would seem that non-attendance was regarded as an offensive neglect. Most probably the king thought that David might regard the attempt which had been made upon his life as mere phrenetic impulse, not indicative of any deliberate intention against him. The first day of the feast, the place which belonged to David at the king's table was vacant; but Saul then made no remark, thinking the absence might be accidental. But when the son of Jesse made no ap- pearance on the second day, the king put some questions to Jonathan, who excused David's absence, alleging that it was by his permission and consent. On this Saul broke forth into the grossest abuse of Jonathan, and assuring him that his succession to the throne could never be secure while David lived, concluded with, "Wherefore row send for him ; for he shall surely die." And when Jonathan ventured to remon- strate, "Wherefore shall he be slain? What hath he done?" the maddened king threw his javelin to smite him. That he could thus treat his own son, on whom, in fact, all the hopes that remained to him were centred, lessens our wonder at his be- havior to David, and at the other acts of madness of which he was guilty By this Jonathan «inew that the king really intended to destroy his friend. He therefore took his bow and went forth, attended by a lad, as if to shoot in the field where Da- vid lay nid ; for it had been agreed upon between them that the manner in which the arrows were shot, and the expressions used by the archer to the lad who collected the arrows after they had been discharged, was to be a sign intimating to David the course he was to take; thus preventing the danger which might accrue to both from another interview. But when the unfavorable sign had been given, which he knew would render his friend a fugitive, Jonathan could not resist the desire again to com- mune with him before he departed. He therefore sent away the lad, and as soon as he was gone " David arose out of a place toward the south, and fell on his face toward the ground, and three times did obeisance ; and they kissed each other, and wept one with another, with great lamentation." After taking leave of Jonathan, David took his journey westward, with the inten- tion of putting himself beyond the reach of Saul, by going to the land of the Philis- tines, who were not at that time in actual hostilities with the Israelites, and with whom alone the enmity of Saul was not likely to operate to his disadvantage. In his way, attended by a few young men who were attached to him, he came to the town of Nob, belonging to the priests, about twelve miles from Gibeah, and in the neigh- borhood of Jerusalem and Anathoth. To this place the tabernacle had »t this time been removed. We are not made acquainted with the precise occasion of its removal from Shiloh; but it was probably consequent upon the destruction of that town in the war with the Philistines. At this place he was received, as his rank and renown demanded, by the high-priest Ahimelech, whose surprise at seeing him he thought himself obliged to dispel, by the false and unseemly pretence that he had been sent by the king on private business of importance. But taking notice of the presence of one Doeg, an Edomite, the chief of Saul's shepherds, by whom he doubted not that he should be betrayed, he represented to Ahimelech that his business was urgent, and begged that he would supply some refreshment to himself and his men, after which he would continue his journey. The high-priest had nothing to offer but bread which had lain a week on the table of showbread in the sanctuary; and al- though by the priests only this might lawfully be eaten, he was induced by the 9lle.ged urgency of the occasion to give it to David and his men. David afterward HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 276 276 AN ILLUSTRATED inquired for weapons; and was told there were none but the sword of Goliah, which, us a pious memorial of the victory over that proud blasphemer, had been deposited ;n the tabernacle. This, at his desire, was brought to him, and having girded it on, he took leave of Ahimelech, and continued his journey till he reached^the Philistine city of Gath, where he presented himself or was brought before Achish, the king of that place, or rather of the state of which that place was the denominating metrop- olis. It does not appear that David intended himself to be known ; or if so, antici- pated a more favorable reception : for when he found that he was recognised, and that the courtiers ominously represented him as that David to whom the maidens of Israel had in their songs ascribed the slaughter of tens of thousands of Philistines, and thousands only to Saul, dreading the result of such recollections, David feigned himself mad, with such success that Achish exclaimed, " Lo, ye see the man is mad ; why have ye brought him to me? Have I need of madmen, "that ye have brought this one to play the madman in my presence ? Shall such a one come* into mv house ?" He was therefore allowed to go where he pleased. He delayed not to avail himself of this advantage, and hastened into the territory of his own tribe of Judah, where he found shelter in the cave of Adullam. He was here joined by his parents and family, who probably deemed themselves unsafe in Bethlehem; and as soon as his retreat became known in the neighborhood, his reputation attracted to him a consid- erable number of men hanging loose upon society, as in the somewhat analogous case of Jephthah. To understand some of their future operations imder David, it is quito necessary to give them just that character, and no other, which thev bear in tin Scriptural record, which states that " Every one in distress, every one in debt, and every one discontented, flocked to him ; and' he became chief over them, and there were with him about four hundred men." From Adullam David took an opposite direction to that which he had first followed, and went into the land of Moab. Here he was well received ; for the king consented to take the parents of the outcast under his protection, until the dawning of better days. They therefore remained among the Moabites until the troubles of their son ended with the life of Saul. But, although he might himself have found greater safety in that land, it was important to his future interests that he should return to his own country, that his conduct, adventures, and persecutions, there might keep him aliv in the minds of the people. He did not himself plan anvthing with reference to the destination intended for him ultimately ; but God, who best knew by what agencies to effect his purpose, sent the prophet Gad to command him to return into the land of Judah. He obeyed, and found shelter in the forest of Hareth. Saul soon heard of David's return and the place of his retreat, and was greatly troubled ; for, as his safety could not be the object of this move from the security which Moab afforded, he inferred that he had returned with the intention of acting offensively and vindictively against him when occasion or advantage offered. He therefore called together the officers of his court ; and as there was not, as yet, any building or palace in which such assemblies could be held, the king sat upon a bank, under a tamarisk tree, with a spear in his hand.* It seems that the persons present were chiefly Benjamites ; and Saul, speaking as one distrustful of their fidelity, appealed to their selfish interests, asking on what grounds they, as Benjamites, could hope to be bettered by the son of Jesse ; and complained that there were plots be- tween him and his own son Jonathan, of which they knew, but that they were not sorry for him, nor would give any information to him. On this Doeg, the Edomite, informed him of the assistance which David had received at Nob from the high- priest ; but omitted to state, if he knew, the certainly false grounds on which that assistance had been claimed by David and given by the priest ; and added (which was not true) that Ahimelech had " inquired of God" for him. On hearing this, Saul was highly enraged, and immediately sent for Ahimelech and all the priests of his family that were at Nob. When they arrived, the king fiercely charged him with his participation in what his jealous imagination tortured into a conspiracy of David against him. Ahimelech declared that he had entertained him merely as the king's son-in-law, and one employed on the king's business, and denied that he had consulted the sacred oracle on his behalf; but Saul, without listening to his state- ment, commanded his followers to slay them all. A dead stillness followed this * The spear was obviously used by him not more as a weapon than as a sceptre. As such it is severs! tirres mentioned. The earliest sceptres were, in fact, spears in inauv a.ncient nations. , * HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 277 order; and, finding that no one moved to obey it, the frantic king turned to Doeg and commanded him to fall upon them. The unscrupulous Edomite was ready in his obedience ; and although the Israelites then present had refused to stain their own hands with the blood of the most sacred persons in the land, they had not sufficient spirit or principle to interpose in their behalf, but stood by and saw them slaughtered by Doeg and his myrmidons. Not fewer than eighty-five priests fell in this horrid massacre; and immediately after, Doeg, by Saul's order, of course, proceeded to Nob, and slew all that lived in it — man, woman, child, and beast. This was a further development of that judgment upon the house of Eli which had been pronounced of old ; this was that deed in Israel of which it had been predicted that " both the ears of every one that heareth it shall tingle." The only individual of the family of the high-priest who escaped was Abiathar, one of his sons. This person repaired to David, who was deeply afflicted at the intelligence which he brought, and desired him to remain with him. Soon after this, David heard that a party of Philistines had come up against the border-town of Keilah, with the view of taking away the produce of the harvest which the people of that town had lately gathered in. He greatly desired to march his troop to the relief of that place ; but his men, who, as might be expected from their character, were by no means distinguished for their courage or subordination, declined so bold an enterprise. At last, a distinct promise of victory from the sacred oracle, consulted by Abiathar, who acted as priest, encouraged their obedience. They went and obtained a complete victory over the Philistines, delivering Keilah from the danger by which it was threatened. This and other instances of David's readiness, in his own precarious situation, to employ his resources against the enemies of his country, must have tended much to raise his character among the people, and to keep him before the public eye. He now entered and remained in the town he had relieved, which Saul no sooner understood than he exclaimed, " God hath delivered him into my hand ; for he is shut in by entering into a town that hath gates and bars;" and he delayed not to call together a powerful force, which he marched to besiege that place. But David, being apprized by the oracle that the people of Keilah, unmindful of their obligation to him, would deliver him up to the king if he remained there until his arrival, with- drew from the place at the head of a force now increased to six hundred men. When Saul heard this, he discontinued his march against Keilah. David now sought shelter in the eastern part of Judea, toward the Dead sea. T," ere were strong posts and obscure retreats in that quarter, among the mountains and the woods, to which he successively removed, as the motions of Saul dictated; for the king, now openly bent on his destruction, hasiened to every place to which he heard that the son of Jesse had retreated, hunting him " like a partridge in the mountains." He was for some time in different parts of the wilderness of Ziph. He was sheltered by a wood in that wilderness, when Jonathan, becoming acquainted with his place of retreat, went to him, " to encourage him to trust in God." He said to him, " Fear not, for the hand of Saul my father shall not find thee; and thou shall be king over Israel, and I shall be next thee; and that also Saul my father knoweth." Again the friends renewed their covenant before Jehovah, and parted — to meet no more. There is really nothing in all history finer than this love of Jonathan to David ; it was, as the latter himself found occasion to describe it, " Wonderful, passing the love of women !" It was a noble spirit with which the son of the king held close to his heart, and admitted the superior claims of, the man destined to supersede him and his in the most splendid object of human ambition, which, on ordinary principles, he might have considered his just inheritance. But his were not ordinary principles, such as swayed the mind and determined the conduct of his father. His were the true principles of the iheocracy, whereby he knew lhat Jehovah was the true king of Israel, and cheerfully submitted to his undoubted right to appoint whom he would as his regent, even to his own exclusion ; and, with generous hu- mility, was the first to recognise and admire the superior qualities of the man on whom it was known that his forfeited destinies had fallen. Yet lest, in our admiration of Jonathan's conduct, human virtue should seem too highly exalted, it may be well to remember that the hereditary principle in civil sroverurnent was as yet without pre- cedent among the Hebrews, with whom sons had not yet learned to look to succeed their fathers in their public offices. None of the judges had transmuted their authority 278 AN ILLUSTRATED to their sons or relatives: and the only instance in which an attempt had been made (by Abimelech) to establish this hereditary principle had most miserably failed. But the friendship of Jonathan and David is a passage in the history of the Hebrew king uom from which the mind reluctantly withdraws. If it occurred in a fiction, it would be pointed out as an example of most refined and consummate art, that the author represents to us in such colors of beauty and truth the person he intends to set aside, and allows him so largely to share our sympathies and admiration with the hero of his tale. Not long after this, some inhabitants of Ziph went to Gibeah and acquainted the king with the quarter in which David lay hid. Saul was so transported with joy at the news, that he heartily blessed them as the only people who had compassion upon him in his trouble; for by this time, if not before, it seems that his morbid fancy had fully persuaded him that David was really engaged in a conspiracy to take his life, and place the crown upon his own head. But David had timely intelligence that his retreat was betrayed, and withdrew southward into the wilderness of Moan. But Saul pursued him thither, and, with the design to surround him, was already on one side of the mountain, on the other side of which David lay, when he was providen- tially called off by intelligence of a sudden incursion into the country by the Philis- tines. He went and repulsed them; and then, at the head of three thousand men, returned to follow upon the tracks of Jesse's son — so inveterately was he now bent upon his fell purpose. Meanwhile David had removed to the district of Engedi, toward the southwestern extremity of the Dead sea, the caverns and rocky fastnesses of which offered many secure retreats. Saul pursued him into this region, and one day entered a large cave, to repose himself during the heat of the day. Now it happened that David and his men were already in this cave; but, being in the remote and dark inner extremity, were unperceived by the king; but he, being between them and the light which entered at the cave's mouih, was seen and recognised by them. As he lay asleep, David's men joyfully congratulated him that his enemy was now completely in bis power. But they knew not what manner of spirit was in the son of Jesse. "Jehovah forbid," he said to them, " that I should do this thing to my master, the anointed of Jehovah, to stretch forth my hand against him; for the anointed of Jehovah is he;" and the men were with difficulty restrained by these words from putting the king to death. But that he might know how completely his life had been in the hands of the man whose life he sought, David went and cut off the skirt of his mantle. Saul at length arose, and left the cave, and went his way. David went out and called after him, " My lord, the king !" When Saul turned, David bowed himself reverently toward the earth, and proceeded in the most respectful terms to remonstrate against the injustice with which he had been treated, and the inveteracy with which he was pursued. He charitably imputed the designs laid to his charge to the suggestions of evil-minded men; and, in proof of their utter groundlessness, related what had hap- pened in the cave, and produced the skirt to show how entirely the king's life had been in his power. Saul's naturally good feelings were touched by this generous for- bearance from one who knew that his own life was then sought by him. " Is that thy voice, my son David !" he cried, and his softened heart yielded refreshing tears, such as he had not lately been wont to shed. That which had been in David a for- bearance resulting from the natural and spontaneous impulse of his own feelings, seemed to the king an act of superhuman virtue, which forced upon him the recog- nition that he was indeed that "worthier" man to whom the inheritance of his crown had been prophesied. Rendering good for evil was a new thing to him ; and now. in the regard and admiration which it excited, he freely acknowledged the conviction he entertained, — "And now, behold, I know well that thou wilt surely be king, and that the kingdom of Israel will be established in thy hand. Sw T ear now, therefore, to me, by Jehovah, that thou wilt not cut off my seed after me, and that thou wilt not destroy my name out of my father's house." The anxiety of the king, and even oi Jonathan, on this point, seems to show (what has already appeared in the case oi' Abimelech) that it was even then, as it ever has been until lately, usual for oriental kings to remove by death all those whose claims to the throne might seem superior or equal to their own, or whose presence might offer an alternative to the discon- tented: the intense horror with which the Hebrews regarded the prospect or fear of genealogical extinction, also contributes to explain the anxiety which both Saul and HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 279 Jonathan felt on this point more than on any other. David took the oath required fiom him ; Saul then returned to Gibeah, and David, who had little confidence in the permanency of the impression he had made, remained in his strongholds. Very soon after this, Samuel died, at the advanced age of ninety-two years (B. C. 1072), after he had judged Israel fifty years, that is, twelve years alone, and thirty- eight years jointly with Snul ; for there is no doubt that he retained his authority as civil judge to the end of his life. The death of this good man was lamented as a common calamity by all true Israelites, who assembled in great numbers to honor liis funeral. He was buried in the garden of his own house at Ramah. As David immediately after removed much further southward, even " into the wilderness of Paran," it would seem that, having no confidence in Saul's fits of right feeling, he was fearful of the consequences of the absence of that degree of moral restrain' upon him which had existed while the prophet lived. The southern coun- try offers, in the proper season, excellent pastures, away to which those of Judah, who had "large possessions of cattle," were wont to send their flocks during a part of the year. The advantage offered by the free use of these open pastures was, however, in some degree counterbalanced by the danger from the prowling Arab tribes with which they sometimes came in contact. David probably supported his men during the eight months of his stay in this region by acting against those tribes, and making spoil of their cattle. And as their hand was against every man, it was natural that every man's hand should be against them ; the rather, as we may be sure, from their general conduct, that they lost no occasions of oppressing or plun- dering the people inhabiting, or pasturing their flocks, along or near the southern frontier. Thus the presence of David's troop was, for that reason, a great advantage to the shepherds, as he had by this time secured sufficient control over his men tc oblige them to respect the property of the Israelites. And this was, at least in the feelings of the people, no small thing in a body of men living abroad with swords in their hands, and obliged, as they were, to collect their subsistence in the best way they could. Among those who were advantaged by this, none were more so than the shepherds of Nabal, a man of large possessions in Carmel. When David returned nor.hward, he heard that Nabal was making great preparations for the entertainment of his people during the shearing of his three thousand sheep ; and being then greatly pressed for provisions, he sent some of his young men to this person to salute him respectfully in his name, and to request some small supply out of the abundance he had provided. Now in point of fact, according to all usage, Nabal ought to have anticipated this request, as soon as he learned that one who had protected his property in the wilderness was then in his neighborhood. But Nabal was "churlish and evil in all his manners, and irritable as a dog." This character, his insulting answer to the message fully supported: — "Who is David? and who is the son of Jesse? There be many servanls now-a-days that break away, every man from his master. Shall I then take my bread, and my water, and my flesh, which I have killed for my shearers, and give it to men whom I know not whence they be ?" When this answer was brought back to David, he was highly enraged, and ordered his men to gird on their swords; and, with four hundred of them (leaving two hundred to protect the baggage), he set forth with the rash and cruel purpose of destroying the churl and all that belonged to him. The provocation, although very great, and not likely to be overlooked by a military man, was certainly not such as to justify this barbarous design. Its execution was, however, averted by Abigail, the wife of Nabal, who is described as " a woman of good understanding, and beautiful in form." Those shepherds who had been in the wilderness with the docks, and were sensible of the value of that protection which David's troop had rendered, greatly disapproved of their master's conduct. They therefore reported the whole matter to their mistress, who appears to have had that real authority in the household which a woman of sense always has had in the house of even a brutal fool. She concurred in their apprehensions as to the probable consequences, and witn a promptitude which bears out the character given to her, decided on the proper steps to avert them. While Nabal was eating and drinking, even to drunkenness, at the feast, she made up an elegant and liberal present, consisting of two hundred loaves of bread, two skin- bottles of wine, five measures of parched corn, five sheep ready dressed, two hundred clusten of raisins, and two hundred cakes of figs; and, having placed all this on asses, she set forth with suitable attendance to meet the enraged hero. She soon met him 280 AN ILLUSTRATED and his men, on full march to Carmel ; and after rendering him her most respect- ful homage, she spoke to him with such tine tact and prudence, that his passion grew calm under her hand; and she con- vinced him that the deed which he con- templated would cause the weight of in- nocent blood to lie heavy on his conscience in after days. Being thus made to feel that he had allowed the bitterness of "a blockhead's insult"* to sink too deeply in his soul, he felt really thankful that his fell purpose had been interrupted : — " Blessed be Jehovah, the God of Israel," he said, " who sent thee this day to meet ,me ; and blessed be thy advice, and blessed be thou, who hast kept me this day from coming to shed blood, and from avenging myself with mine own hand." Abigail returned to her husband, and the next day acquainted him with the steps she had taken, and the imminent danger into which his churlishness had brought him and his. The view which was presented to his mind of the evil which had hung over his head struck him with such intense dread and horror, that in a few days he died of a broken heart. When this came to the ears of David, who had been much charmed by the good sense and beauty of Abigail, lie sent to her, and she consented to become his wife. He had previously married Ahinoam of lezreel, after Saul had given Michal to * " Fate never wounds more deep the gen'rous heart Tliau whon a blcc/Juad's innult pointb tlin dart " Johnson : r IbHI HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 281 another. Polygamy was not expressly forbidden by tne iaw; neither did it receive any sanction therefrom. It was a matter of existing usage with which the law did not interfere; although it discouraged the formation, by the kings, of such extensive harems as the kings of the East have been wont to possess : and both David and his son Solomon had ample occasion to lament those besotting passions which led them to neglect this injunction, as well as to learn that there is in this matter an obvious social law which can not with impunity be transgressed. Soon after this David removed to his former place of shelter, in the wilderness of Ziph. While he remained there, Saul justified the doubts which the son of Jesse, who well knew his character, entertained of the continuance of his good resolutions; for he again came to seek him at the head of three thousand men. But this only gave David another opportunity of evincing the true and generous loyalty of his own character. For one night, while the king lay asleep in the midst of his men, with his spear stuck in the ground at his head, to mark the station of the chief, David en- tered his camp, attended by Abishai (brother to the subsequently celebrated Joab), and, without being noticed, penetrated- to the very spot where the king lay. Abishai thought this a fine opportunity of ending all their troubles with the life of their per- secutor ; and begged David to permit him to transfix the sleeping king with his spear. But, to the pious hero, " a divinely appointed king, although his enemy, was a sacred person. To lay violent hands on him, and to open a way to the throne by regicide, was a crime which he justly abhorred. What God had promised him he Avas willing to wait for, till He who had promised should deliver it to him in the ordinary course of his providence."* He therefore checked the misdirected zeal of Abishai, and withdrew with him, taking away the spear which was planted at Saul's head, and the vessel of water which stood there for his use. David then went and stationed himself at the edge of an opposite cliff overlooking the camp of Saul, and calling by name to Abner, the cousin and chief commander of the king, told him he was worthy of death for the careless manner in which he guarded the royal person. As he went on reproaching Abner, Saul, as he expected, recognised his voice, and guessing that he had again been spared when in his power, called out, "Is that thy voice, my son David ?" and was answered, " It is my voice, my lord, O king !" David then pro- ceeded with much energy, but in ihe most respectful language, to remonstrate against the treatment he received, and produced the evidence of the spear and water-jug, as evincing the value of the king's life in his eyes. The result was the same as it had been on a similar occasion before : Saul's heart was touched. He acknowledged that he had "acted foolishly, and erred exceedingly;" and after blessing David, returned to Gibeah. David had before this formed the intention of again withdrawing to the Philistines ; for in his remonstrance with Saul he had laid the responsibility of this measure upon his persecutors : — " If Jehovah hath stirred thee up against me, let him accept an offering; but if they be the children of men, accursed be they before Jehovah, for they now drive me out from abiding in the inheritance of Jehovah." He must not be allowed, however, thus easily to rid himself of the responsibility of so ill-advised and desperate an expedient, in which he neglected to ask counsel of God, but followed the impulse of his own apprehensions ; and from the natural and obvious consequences of which he could only escape by acts of equivocation, hypocrisy, and ingratitude, which do no honor to his name. However, we are to regard David, in all this por- tion of his life, as a learner, as one who was in the course of being trained to rule wisely, by various disciplines, distresses, and errors; — for even the errors of conduct into which men fall, by having placed themselves in a false position through too con- fident a reliance on their own judgment, are not among the least profitable experi- ences which they obtain, and which go toward the ripening of their minds. But, undoubtedly, it had been better for David, and more becoming, had he remained in his own country, relying upon the protection of that good Providence by which he had hitherto been preserved. On reaching Gath, with his six hundred men, David was well received by the king, who appears to have been the same Achish in whose presence he had formerly played the madman. The Hebrew chief soon took occasion to request the Philistine king to assign him some town in which he might reside apart with his people ; ; nd the king, with generous and unsuspecting confidence, made over to him, to hid full ♦ Jahn. i. 103 282 AN ILLUSTRATED and exclusive possession, the small border town of Ziklag, which was situated not far from the brook Besor. Here he resided one year and four months, or until the death of Saul. From this place he undertook excursions against the ancient predatory enemies of Israel, the Amalekites, the Geshurites, and the Gezrites, who roved about in Arabia Petraea, on the seacoast as far as Pelusium, and on the southern frontier of the tribe of Judah. In all these excursions he utterly destroyed man, woman, and child, and took possession of the cattle and apparel, of which their wealtn consisted. The exterminating character which he gave to this warfare was to prevent the Phi- listines from learning that he had been acting against their allies and friends; and he always pretended to .Achish that his expedition had been against the Israelites and their allies, bv which he established himself firmly in the confidence of that king. For the cool manner in which the son of Jesse poured out innocent blood to cover a deliberate and designing falsehood, we have no excuse to offer. He must bear the blame for ever. In those days the Philistine states joined their forces for war against Israel; and David, having by his pretences impressed upon Achish the conviction that he now detested his own people, and was detested by them, was driven to the dreadful alter- native of either taking the field with the Philistines and fighting against his brethren, or else of appearing ungrateful to Achish, and perhaps of occasioning the destruction of" his family and himself. But from this difficulty he was extricated by the not un- reasonable jealousy of the other Philistine princes, who expected he might turn against them in the battle in order to reconcile himself to his master. Achish was much hurt at such suspicions against one on whom he so perfectly relied, but was reluctantly obliged to dismiss him from the expedition. On returning to Ziklag, David found the city pillaged and reduced to ashes. The Amalekites, Geshurites, and Gezrites, had taken the opportunity of his absence in another direction thus to avenge themselves for his former inroads upon them. They did not, however, retaliate to the full extent ; for although " they took the men anil women who were in it captive, they slew not any, either great or small, but carried them away." David's two wives were among the captives. His men were frantic at the loss of their families and substance, and at first talked of stoning their leader whom they regarded as at least the remote cause of this calamity. But they were at last appeased, and set out in pursuit of the spoilers, notwithstanding the fatigue occasioned by their previous march. Two hundred of the men were unable to pro- ceed farther than the brook Besor; and David, leaving them there, continued the pursuit with the remaining four hundred. On their way they fell in with a man half dead with illness, hunger, and thirst. Having refreshed him with food and drink, they learned that he was an Egyptian, a slave to one of the party they pur- sued ; but that having fallen ill three days before, his master had left him — to live or die, as might happen — and that since then no bread or water had passed his lips. He gave an account of the operations of the horde ; and, when pressed, agreed to conduct the Hebrew party to the spot at which he knew that they intended to repose. When that spot was reached, the nomades were enjoying themselves in full security, as they supposed themselves beyond the reach of pursuit, and could not know that David would have returned to Ziklag so soon. They were thus easily overthrown ; and not only did the Hebrews recapture all that they had taken, but gained besides so considerable a booty, that David was enabled to send presents to all the rulers in Judah Avho were favorable to his cause. The four hundred men who had continued the pursuit were unwilling to share the additional spoil with the two hundred who had tarried by the brook Besor, although willing to restore their own property to them. But David took the opportunity of establishing the useful principle that all the persons engaged in an expedition should share equally, whatever part they took in it; or, in other words, that those whose presence protected the baggage should be equally benefited by a victory with those who went to the fight. The present campaign of the Philistines against the Israelites was one of those large operations which nations can in general only undertake after long intervals of rest. There seems, indeed, during the reign of Saul, to have been always a sort of desultory and partial warfare between the two nations; but it had produced no meas- ure comparable to this, which was intended to be decisive, and was calculated to tax 'o the utmost the resources of the belligerents. When Saul surveyed, from the HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. heights of Gilboa, the formidable army which the Philistine had brought into the plain of Esdraelon — that great battle-field of nations — his heart failed him. Presenti- ments of coming events cast deep shadows over his troubled mind. He sought coun- sel of God. But God had forsaken him — left him to his own devices — and answ r ered him not, " either by dreams, or by urim, or by prophets." The crimes of Saul arose from his dis- loyalty to Jehovah, in his reluctance to acknowledge him as the true king of Isra- el. But as his God he worshipped him, and had no tendency toward those idola- tries by which so many subsequent kings were disgraced. All idolatry and idolatrous acts were discouraged and punished by him. In obedience to the law (Deut. xviii. 10, 11), he banished from the land all the diviners and wizards he could find. But now, in his dismay, he directed his attend- ants to find out a woman skilful in necro- mancy, that he might seek through her the information which the Lord refused to give. One was found at Endor, a town not far from the camp in Gilboa ; and to her he repaired by night, disguised, with two attendants, and desired her to evoke the spirit of Samuel, that, in this dread emer- gency, he might ask counsel of him. What- ever might be the nature of the woman's art, and her design in undertaking to fulfil his wish — whether she meant to impose on Saul by getting some accomplice to per- sonate Samuel, who had only been dead two years, and whose person must have Irr.omewell known to the Israelites during *$± AN ILLUSTRATED. tits long administration — or whether she expected a demoniacal spirit to give him an answer, it appears from a close examination of the text, that, to the great astonish- ment of the woman herself, and before she had time to utter any of her incantations, the spirit of Samuel was permitted to appear, in a glorified form, and ominously clad in that mantle in which was the rent that signified the rending of the kingdom from the family of Saul. When the figure appeared, the king knew that it was Samuel, and bowed himself to the ground before him. From that awful and passionless form he heard that the doom declared long since was now to be accomplished; — to-morrow [srael should be given up to the sword of the Philistines — to-morrow Saul and hi? sons should be numbered with the dead. At these heavy tidings the king fell down as one dead, for he had touched no food that night or the preceding day, and was with difficulty restored to his senses, and refreshed by the woman and his at- tendants. The next day all that had been foretold was accomplished. Israel *ied before the Philistine archers ; and Saul and his sons, unable to stem the retreating torrent, fled also. The three sons of the king, Jonathan, Abinadab, and Melchi-shua, were slain. Saul himself was grievously wounded by the archers; and that he might not fall alive into the hands of the Phiiistines, and be subjected to their insults, he desired his armor-bearer to strike him through with his sword; and when that faithful fol- lower refused, he fell upon his own sword : and the example was followed by the armor-bearer, when he beheld his lord lying dead before him. " So Saul died, and his three sons, and his armor-bearer, and all his men, that same day together." The next day, when the Philistines came to collect the spoils of the slain, they found the bodies of Saul and his three sons. The indignity with which they treated the remains of these brave men has no previous example. They cut off their heads, and hung their bodies to the wall of the town of Bethshan, near the Jordan. Their heads and armor they sent into Philistia, as trophies of their triumph, by the hand of the messengers who were despatched to publish it in their temples and their towns. The bodies of Saul and his sons were soon stolen away by night from the wall of Bethshan, by some valiant men of Jabesh, on the opposite side of the river, where a grateful remembrance was cherished of the king's first military exploit, whereby the people of that town were delivered from the loss of their liberty and their eyes. To preclude any attempt at the recovery and continued insult of the bodies, the people burnt them, and buried the collected bones and ashes under a tamarisk-tree. CHAPTER XVII. david's reign — his conquests — purpose to build a temple. On the third day of David's return to Ziklag a man arrived in haste, with his clothes ent, and earth upon his head, and laid at the feet of David the crown and armlet which Saul had worn. He told, truly, that Israel had fled before the Philistines, and that Saul and his sons were slain ; but thinking to win royal rewards from the son of Jesse, he boasted that he had slain Saul with his own hand. The truth was probably that he had found the body of Saul in the night after the battle, and had taken from it the royal insignia which he brought to David. His expectations were grievously disappointed ; for David, believing his statement, caused him to be put to death, as one who had not feared to slay the Lord's anointed. The man was an Amalekite. David mourned and fasted for the desolation of Israel, and he lamented the death of his beloved Jonathan, and even of Saul, in a most affecting and beautiful elegy, which we may here introduce as a specimen of the poetical compositions of one whose rank among the poets of the Hebrews is fully equal to that which he occupies among then iciugs:—* "0. antelope of Israel ! pierced on thy high place ■ How are the mighty fallen ' Tell it not in Gath , Publish it not in the streets of Askelon , I, est the daughters of the Philistines rejoice, Lest the daughters of the uncircumcised triumpn. • The version now uiven is that of Boothroyd, altered in some of the lineB. HTSTORY OF THE BIBLE. 285 Ye mountains of Gilboa, on you be no dew, Nor rain, nor fields of first-fruits ; Since there hath been vilely cast away, The shield of the mighty, the shield of Saul, The armor of him anointed with oil. From the blood of the 6lain, From the fat of the mighty. The bow of Jonathan was not held hack, Nor did the sword of Saul return in vain. Saul and Jonathan I In mutual love were they in life united, And in their death they were not separated, Swifter than eagles, stronger than lions were they I Ye daughters ot Israel weep over Saul, Who clothed you pleasantly in scarlet, And put golden ornaments upon your robes. How are the mighty fallen in the midst of battle I O Jonathan, slain on thy own mountains ! I am grieved for thee, O Jonathan, my brother! Very dear to me wast thou : Wonderful was thy love to me, Surpassing the love of women How are the mighty fallen ! And the weapons of war perished ! That he mourned even fur Saul, will only be attributed to hypocrisy by those who are themselves incapable of such magnanimity, and are determined to forget that Da- vid, during the life of his persecutor, always respected him as a king appointed by God, and twice spared him when he had his life completely in his power. With the approbation of the Lord, whom he consulted, David now removed, with his family and friends, to Hebron, where the rulers of the tribe of Judah, with views altogether theocratical, awarded the sceptre to him, as one whom God had already designated as king. David was at this time thirty years of age. But no other tribe concurred with Judah in this important step. On the contrary, all the other tribes elected Saul's only surviving son, Eshbaal, as he was originally named (1 Chron. xiii. 33, ix. 39), but nicknamed Ishbosheth (a man of shame) from bis weakness and incapacity, which, it would appear, saved his life, by precluding him from being present at the battle in which his brothers perished. This measure was probably promoted by that radical jealousy between the tribes of Judah and Ephraim, which prevented the latter (which took the lead among the other tribes) from con- curring in the appointing a king of the rival tribe, or indeed from heartily sympathizing in any measure which that tribe originated. But the prime agent in this schism was Abner, the commander of the army, who had drawn oft' the remnant of the defeated army to the other side the Jordan, and there, at Mahanaim, proclaimed Ishbosheth king. Abner was a bold and able, but unprincipled man ; and doubtless expected to govern in the name of his feeble nephew. And he did so. For two years no hostile acts between the two kingdoms took place. But war was at length provoked by Abner, who crossed the Jordan with the intention to subdue the tribe of Judah to the authority of Ishbosheth. David sent Joab to meet him ; and the opposing forces met near the pool of Gibeon. But the men on each side felt that they were all Israelites, and were reluctant to fight against each other. The two generals, therefore, thought of a device which has often been employed in the east, and else- where, to excite tribes or nations to battle, when relationship or other causes made them reluctant or wanting in zeal. Twelve men on each side were matched to fight against each other between the two armies ; and so well were they matched that they no sooner came within reach of one another, than each man seized his antagonist by the head and sheathed his sword in his body, so that they were all killed upon the spot. This kindled the opposing forces, and a desperate and most sanguinary battle followed. It ended in the defeat of Abner, who was himself obliged to flee for his life. As he fled he was singled out by Joab's brother Asahel, '* who was as swift of foot as any antelope of the field ;" and he pursued him, without allowing himself to be drawn aside by other objects. He was close at the heels of Abner, when the lat- ter looked back, and finding who it was, he became most anxious to avoid such a blood-feud as would arise between him and Joab, in case he slew his brother, even in his own defence. He therefore entreated Asahel to turn back that he might not be compelled to smite him to the ground. But finding that he was still pursued, and that it was impossible to outstrip his pursuer, he struck at him with the hinder point of 286 AN ILLUSTRATED HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. Tho Pursuer slain his spear,* and with such force that the weapon passed through him and came out behind. The pursuit of Abner and the other fugitives was continued by Joab and his other brother Abishai until sunset, by which time they were got as far as the hill of Ammah. Here the Benjamites (always valiant, and jealously attached to the house of Saul) rallied again under Abner, and posting themselves on the rising of the hm ; stood prepared to make a stout defence; but their general, who was weary of fighting, called to Joab, and begged him to put a stop to the slaughter of his brethren, whose destruction could not but cause bitterness in the end. Al- though Joab had determined to continue the pursuit all night, he had the sense to hearken to his advice, and caused the trumpet to sound a retreat. After this, Abner and his men took the way to Ma- hanaim, and Joab returned to Hebron. Abner lost three hundred and sixty men in this action, while on David's side only nineteen were killed. The war having thus commenced was continued for several y r ears ; but it appears to have been a small irritating warfare, which never came to any important or decisive engagement between the opposing parties. Tt was, however, attended with this result, that the cause of David was gathering strength every day, while the house of Saul daily • The spear is armed at the lower end with a pointed iron, whereby it is stuck into the ground whou tho owner is in repose. ■■mmm. 288 AN ILLUSTRATED became weaker and weaker. Indeed, it seems to have required all the great talentb of Abner to keep the kingdom of Ishbosheth together. Meanwhile David reigned prosperously in Hebron.* He increased the number of his wives to six, bv all of whom sons were born to him in that place. In this small kingdom his good and prosperous government, together with the knowledge that he had been divinely appointed to reign over all Israel, appears insensibly to have in- clined the other tribes toward him, by which, more even than by war, his cause gathered that strength which that of Ishbosheth lost. Abner was fully sensible that without himself the kingdom of his nephew would fall to pieces, or rather pass quietly into tJr: hands of David. He rated his services at their full value ; and although we do not ourselves see cause to suspect, as some have done, that he con- templated taking the crown to himself, it is certain that he was not disposed to con- sider himself responsible to the king for his conduct, or to allow any of his proceed- ings to be questioned by him. Now Ishbosheth had heard that Abner carried on n criminal intercourse with one of Saul's concubines, named Rizpah : and as, according to the usages of the East, the concubines of a deceased sovereign became the property of the successor in so strong and peculiar a sense, that such an act as that imputed to Abner might be interpreted into a design upon the crown,f or at least was an insulting encroachment upon the peculiar rights of royalty, even the timid Ishbosheth was roused to question Abner on the subject. It is not very clear whether the charge was true or false ; but it is clear that this overbearing personage was astonished and disgusted that the king should dare to question any part of his conduct. He rose into a towering passion : " Am I, who, against Judah, have to this day shown kind- ness to the house of Saul, thy father, and to his brethren and to his friends, and have not delivered thee into the hands of David, such a dog's head that thou chargest me to-day with a fault concerning this woman ? God do so to Abner, and more also, if, as Jehovah hath sworn to David, I do not so to him, by transferring the dominion of the house of Saul, and to set up the throne of David over Israel and over Judah, from Dan even to Beersheba." From this it seems that even Abner knew that he had acted against a higher duty, in setting up Ishbosheth in opposition to David ; but this 3an not justify the grounds on which he now declared his intention to act against him. » Hebron is an ancient cify of Palestine, situated in the heart of the hill-country of Judea, about twenty- seven miles southwest from Jerusalem. Originally it was called Kirjath-Arba. or the city of Arba, " which Arba was a great man among the Anakims." (Josh. xiv. 15.) In the vicinity of this place Abraham abode, after he parted with Lot (Gen. xiii. 18), and bought a field with a cave in which to bury his dead. (Gen. xxiii. 3-20.) Besides Abraham and Sarah, his son Isaac, his grandson Jacob, with their wives Rebekah and I/eah, and his grep.t grandson Joseph, were severally interred here. (Gen. xxiii. 19, xxv. 10, xlix. 29-33, t. 12, 13.) When the Hebrews invaded Palestine, Hebron was the residence of a king (Josh. xii. 10) named Hoham, who confederated with four other Canaanitish kings against Israel ; but they were all discomfited and destroyed by Joshua. (Josh. x. 3, 4, 22-27.) After which the city, being taken, was assigned to Caleb (Josh. xix. 6-11) agreeably to a promise given him by Moses. (Numb. xiii. 30-33, xix. 5, 21.) Subsequently it was made a city of refuge, and given to the priests. (Josh. xxi. 11, xx. 7.) Afterward, when David suc- ceeded Saul on the throne of Israel, he selected Hebron for his royal residence, and continued there until Jerusalem was captured from the Jebusites. (2 Sam. ii. 1, v. 4-9. ; I Chron. xii. xiii.) On the division of the kingdom under Rehoboam, Hebron fell to the share of the king of Judah. (2 Chron. xi. 10.) Hebrew, Habroun, or, according to the Arabic orthography followed by the moderns. El Hha'il, is i flourishing town, the fiat-roofed houses of which are closely jammed together. It contains about foi r hundred families of Arabs. The hill above it is composed of limestone rock, partially covered with vines ; and its end is clothed with a wood of olives. The hill beyond the mosque (which edifice forms a prominent cbject in our view) is more barren ; and in the fore-ground there are masses of buildings thrown down and scattered in every direction, this portion of the town having been destroyed a few years since. The inhabitants are engaged in perpetual hostilities with those of Bethlehem, on which account it is less fieqv jntly visited by pilgrims. A splendid church was erected over the graves of the patriarchs by the emperess Helena: it has long been converted into a Turkish mosque. According to Ali Bey, who visited it in 1807, the ascent to it is by a large and fine ? taircase leading to a long gallery, the entrance to which is by a small court. Toward the left is a portico, resting upon square pillars. The vestibule of the temple contains two rooms, one of which is called the tomb of Abraham, the other that of Sarah. In the body of the church, hetween two large pillars on the right, is seen a small recess, in which is the sepulchre of Isaac, and in a similar one upon the left is that of his wife. On the opposite side of the court is another vestibule, which has also two rooms, respectively called the tombs of Jacob and his wife. At the avtremity of the portico, on the right hand, is a door leading to a sort of long gallery, which still serves foi a mosque ; and passing thence, is observed another room, said to contain the ashes of Joseph. All the sepulchres of the patriarchs are covered with rich carpets of green silk, magnificently embroidered with gold ; those of their wives are red, embroidered in like manner. The sultans of Constantinople furnish these carpets, which are renewed from time to time. Ali Bey counted nine, one over the other, upon the sepulchre of Abraham. The rooms also which contain the tombs are covered with rich carpets: the entrance to them is guarded by iron gates, and wooden doors plated with silver, having bolts and padlocks of the same metal. More than a hundred persons are employed in the service of this Mohammedan temple The population of Hebron is considerable : the inhabitants manufacture glass lamps, which are exported to Egypt. Provisions are abundant, and there is a considerable number of shops. * See instances of this in the case ef Absalom (2 Sam xx 23) and Adonijah. 1 Kings, ii. 13-25 HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 2SN What he had said was no vain threat, although he was probably willing afterward that the son of Saul should take it for an unmeaning outbreak of passion. He sent messengers to David to enter into a treaty with him, under which he would engage to use his great influence in bringing all Israel to acknowledge him as king; and after this he found a pretence for going himself unsuspectedly to Hebron to complete the agreement and arrange the steps to be taken. David had sent to Ishbosheth to desire him to restore to him his wife Michal, whom Saul had given to another. He had a perfect right to make this demand, if so inclined, — the rather as she had thus been disposed of against her own wish ; but we may suppose that he was particularly induced to reclaim her at this juncture, in consideration of the satisfaction the measure was likely to give to those attached to the family of Saul. As this claim was doubt- less supported by Abner, it was granted ; and having obtained an order to demand her from her present husband, that personage himself undertook to escort her to David. From this transaction it would seem that the war had latterly been allowed to die away, although without any concession or treaty having been made on either side. That he was escorting the daughter of Saul to David, proved to Abner a favor- able opportunity, on his way, of explaining his present sentiments to the elders of the tribes through which he passed; especially to those of Benjamin, which was natu- rally the most attached to the house of Saul, while his own influence in it was the greatest. He dwelt strongly on the public benefits which might be expected from the government of one who had been expressly nominated by Jehovah to the king- dom ; and such a presentation, coming from such a quarter, coupled with the favor- able dispositions toward David which had grown up during his reign in Hebron, was attended with such effect, that Abner was authorized to make overtures to him in behalf of the tribes which had hitherto adhered to the house of Saul. Abner was received with great distinction and royally feasted by David ; and after the business on which he really came had been settled to his satisfaction, he departed with the intention of inducing the tribes to concur in giving David a public invitation to take the crown of Israel. Joab had been absent from Hebron during this visit of Abner; but he returned im- mediately after Abner had departed, and was deeply displeased when he learned what had occurred. Through the energy of his character, his abilities and experience in the affairs of peace and Avar, his influence and popularity with the army which was under his command, and his unquestioned devotion to the interests of David, this man had great authority with the king. His standing, indeed, in the kingdom of Judah, had much resemblance to that of Abner in the other kingdom; nor Avere their characters altogether unlike. In the points of difference, the advantage was on the side of Abner ; for his experience in military and public affairs was larger, from which, together with his near relationship to Saul and his son, and the high stations he had occupied under them, his influence with the people was far greater than that which Joab or any other man in Israel could pretend to; and hence his greater power at this time of rendering essential services to the king of Judah. Abner and Joab also served very different masters; and thus it happened that while Abner was, in the public eye, ihe greatest man in the kingdom of Israel, Joab was in that of Judah only the greatest man next to David. Upon the whole, Abner was the only man in the country of whom Joab had cause to be afraid, and by whom it was likely that his own influence would be superseded in case the two kingdoms were united through his instrumentality. It was probably more from such considerations than any other that his displeasure at the intercourse between David and Abner arose. He went instantly to the king, and reproached him for allowing himself to be imposed upon by the able uncle of Ishbosheth, declaring his belief that the true object of his visit was to obtain such information concerning his state and resources as he might after- ward employ against him. He then went out and sent a messenger after Abner to call him back in the name of the king. As he returned, Joab took care to meet him near the gate, and drew him aside as if to speak to him privately, and while he was entirely unguarded and unsuspicious, gave him a treacherous stab, of which he instantly died. The history describes this as an act of blood-revenge for the death of his brother Asahel by the hand of Abner; and while allowing him the full benefit of this motive, it is hard to believe that envy and jtalousy sharpened not the dagger of the avenger. It must be conceded, nevertheless, mat tne existence of a blood-feui between them extenuated if it did not justify the act of Joab in the eyes of all Israel 10 290 AN ILLUSTRATED It was, in fact, according to the strict ideas of that barbarous institution, the impera- tive duty of Joab to shed the blood of Abner, who had slain his brother ; and that Abner himself knew that the death of Asahel would be attended with this result, is evinced by his anxiety to avoid the fatal necessity of slaying his pursuer ; for if the man-slayer is known, the avenger is not bound to make any distinction as to the cir- cumstances under which his relative is slain : and at the present day, the one who slays another in battle is pursued by the avenger equally with the murderer. The extent to which the law of Moses had interfered with this custom only provided for the safety of the man-slayer while in a city of refuge. Hebron was a city of refuge ; and if Joab had slain Abner within that city, the law would have allowed David to treat him as a murderer. This Joab knew ; and hence his meeting Abner at the gate, and drawing him aside before he entered the city. These details we judge necessary, to show that those who most suffered from "the death of Abner, and ab- horred the manner in which it was inflicted, knew that his offence was not punish- able by the king or by the law; and hence that it was not merely the rank and influence of Joab which prevented David from calling him to account for this barbarous "•eed. Perhaps he could not have punished Joab in any case; but it is important to b. nv, that in the present case the law, custom, and public opinion, did not require or perii_ : t him to do so. The -esentment of David was nevertheless very great. Like other eastern sover- eigns, he must have been impressed with the evils of this custom of blood-revenge, and the extent to which it interfered with good government ; nor was he insensible to the insult offered to himself, in the present and other instances, by " the sons of Zeruiah," Joab and Abishai, and the high hand with which they wrought their own will. " I am this day weak," he said, " though an anointed king ; and these men, the sons of Zeruiah, are too stubborn for me. Jehovah will reward the evil-doer according to his evil deeds." As it was of the highest importance to him that he should be clear of any suspicion of having had any part in the death of Abner, he publicly, " before Jehovah," declared himself guiltless of the blood which had been shed, and invoked the full burden of that blood on Joab and on his house. He ordered a public act of solemn mourning, in which he himself took a prominent part: and at the funeral he followed the body, as chief mourner, to the grave, where he stood weeping, and where he lamented, in elegiac verse, over the prince and great man who had that day fallen in Israel. This conduct of David tended still further to satisfy and conciliate the tribes at- tached to the house of Saul ; and by them the murder of Abner was never imputed to him. Indeed, the event must, at the time, have seemed to himself and others anything but advantageous for his cause. But we, wtio nave his whole history be- fore us, can see that the manner in which he ultimately became king over all Israel, by the free and unsolicited choice of the tribes, was more honorable and safe to him, and more becoming his divine appointment, than the same result brought about through the exertions of Abner, whose conduct, as between David and Ishbosheth, must have seemed very equivocal, and could, at the best, have been but " traitorously honest."* When Ishbosheth heard of Abner's death (without being aware of the plot in which he was engaged), he felt that the right arm of his kingdom's strength was broken. Others felt this also: and the conviction that the son of Saul could not gov- ern the troubled kingdom without Abner, grew stronger every day among the tribes, and directed their eyes to David as the only person under whom they could expect to realize the benefits the nation had expected to enjoy under a regal government. This feeling, this tendency of the nation toward David, was perceived, even in the court of Ishbosheth; and two of his officers, brothers, determined to anticipate the course which events were taking, by the assassination of their master, expecting by this act to deserve high rewards and honors from the king of Judah. Accordingly, they stole into his chamber, while, according to the universal custom of the East, he slept there during the mid-day heat. They pierced him as he slept, and then took off his head, with which they escaped unperceived, as at that time of the day most of the people were asleep. The murderers sped to Hebron, and laid the head of Saul's son at the feet of David, with the words, "Behold the head of Ishbosheth. the son of Saul thine enemy, who sought thy life. Jehovah hath this day avenged my * Bishop KaJl. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 291 lord the king of Saul and of his seed." Astounding to them was the answer — " A> Jehovah liveth, who hath redeemed my soul out of every distress ! if, when one told me, saying, Behold, Saul is dead, thinking that he brought good tidings, I took hold of him and slew him at Ziklag, when he expected that I should have given him a reward for his tidings; — how much more when wicked men have slain a just person in his own house, upon his own bed, shall I not now require his blood from your hand, and destroy you from the earth ?" And with these words he commanded his attendants to remove them to an ignominious death. The head of Ishbosheth he ordered to be deposited in the sepulchre of Abner. The kingdom of Israel was now without even the appearance of a head, nor was there any remaining member of the family of Saul whom the most zealous adherents of that fallen house could dream of supporting in opposition to David, Saul had in- deed left some sons by concubines, but they were living in obscurity, and even their existence was scarcely known to the people. Jonathan also had left one son, but he was a mere boy and lame. He was five years old when Saul and his sons perished in the battle of Gilboa, and he became lame from a fall which he received when his nurse fled with him, as soon as the tidings of that overthrow were brought to the house of Saul and Jonathan. His name was Mephibosheth. David had reigned seven years and a half in Hebron, when, after the deaths of Abner and Ishbosheth, the crown of all Israel seemed to devolve upon him, as natu- rally as by an act of succession. It was probably the result of a unanimous decision in a great council of the eleven tribes, that those tribes sent an embassy to David in Hebron to invite him to assume the general government of the nation. This they did on the grounds of, 1, his military claim, as one who had often led them to victory in the days of Saul; and, 2, of his theocratical claim, as one who had been expressly nominated by God to govern Israel. By this we see that the people were on this oc- casion careful to recognise the theocracy, since they rested their preference of him on his having been nominated to the kingdom by Jehovah, and having proved himself worthy of it during the reign of Saul. The studious avoidance of all notice of the seven years in which the tribes had been separately ruled seems to intimate a desire that this measure should be formally regarded as following the death of Saul. David intimated his readiness to receive the honor designed for him, and to accede to the conditions on which the crown was to be held. The rulers of the eleven tribes, there- fore, at the head of large bodies of the best trained men in the several tribes, described as " men that could keep rank," who were chosen to represent the whole of their several tribes in the great national act of inauguration, repaired to Hebron to make David king. The number amounted to not less than three hundred and forty thou- sand, and the enumeration in the book of Chronicles (1 Chron. xii. 23, ad Jin.) is ac- companied with several remarks, which the scantiness of our information concerning the distinctive character of the tribes makes interesting. It appears that many mem- bers of the tribe of Judah had adhered to the house of Saul, and abode within its do- minions ; for, on the present occasion, six thousand eight hundred men of that tribe armed with shield and spear, came with the others to submit to David. There wert seven thousand one hundred Simeonites of valor. The Levites sent four thousand six hundred; and there were three thousand seven hundred priests, headed by Je- hoiada, the son of Benaiah; besides whom came Zadok at the head of twenty-two chiefs of his father's house. This Zadok, of the old pontifical line of Eleazer, is the same who was long after made sole high-priest by Solomon, to the final exclusion of the house of En; but, on the present occasion, he is particularly noticed as "a young man, mighty in valor," which shows — as indeed appears in "the history — that the pursuits of the Levites, and even of the Aaronites, were not exclusively of an eccle- siastical and civil nature. From Benjamin came three thousand men ; but the greater part of this tribe held back, still cherishing a lingering and futile attachment to the house of Saul, the rule of which had given to the tribe a flattering pre-eminence, which it was unwilling to relinquish. The half-tribe of Manasseh on this side the Jordan sent eighteen thousand men ; and the proud tribe of Ephraim testified its concurrence by sending twenty-eight thousand. From Issachar came only two hun- dred men ; but these were the chief persons in the tribe, the whole of which was at their beck, and would have been in attendance if required. To them is given the marked character of being men of political prudence and sagacity, who knew better than most men how Israel ought to act under the present and other circumstances; 292 AN ILLUSTRATED and whose support was therefore of great value to David. From Zebulon came not fewer than fifty thousand men, skilled in the use of all warlike weapons, and "not double-hearted," with respect to the object for which they came. Naphtali furnished one thousand captains, and with them thirty-seven thousand men, armed with shield and spear. Dan supplied twenty-eight thousand six hundred able warriors, and Asher forty thousand. The tribes beyond Jordan, Reuben, Gad, and the half-tribe of Manasseh, sent, collectively, one hundred and twenty thousand warlike men. One obvious remark, arising from the survey of these numbers, is the comparative large- ness of the proportions furnished by the remoter tribes, to the north and beyond Jor- dan This is, perhaps, explained by the absence in those tribes of any pretensions for themselves, and of any strong attachment for the house of Saul, which could in- terfere with the heartiness of their recognition of the claims of David; together with the operation of the principles which gives to a prophet and great man the least de- gree of honor in and near his own home.* With this vast body, the flower of the Hebrew nation, and representing the whole of it, " David made a league before the Lord," which can be construed to have no other meaning than that which has already been indicated in the case of Saul, that he bound himself by oath to observe the conditions on which he received the sceptre, which are now unknown. He was then anointed king, and received the homage of his new subjects; and the whole was terminated by a feast to all the multitude as- sembled at Hebron, supplies for which were liberally sent in by all the neighboring tribes, " on asses, on camels, on mules, and on oxen," and consisted of meat, meal, ligs, raisins, wine, oil, oxen, and sheep, in great abundance. "For there was great joy in Israel." The first act of David's reign was to undertake the reduction of the fortress of Je- bus, on Mount Zion, which had remained in the hands of the natives ever since the days of Joshua, and which, as Joseph us reports,! had been, from its situation and its fortifications, hitherto deemed impregnable. The Jebusites, therefore, ridiculed the attempt, and appear to have placed the lame and the blind on the walls, in derision, as fully sufficient to keep him out. But from the lower city, which was already in the possession of the Israelites, there was "a gutter," or subterraneous communica- tion, with the fortress, by which David introduced a party of men and took " the stronghold of Zion." In the operations of this seige such ability and conduct were displayed by Joab, that he was appointed to the same chief command of the armies of Israel which he had previously held in the separate kingdom of Judah. The fact that his rule was likely, under all circumstances, to find the most zealous supporters in his own tribe of Judah, probably disinclined him to remove from its borders; and he determined to make his new conquest the metropolis of his empire. A more cen- trical situation, with respect to all the tribes, would have placed him in the hands of the Ephraimites, whose cordiality toward a Judahite king might well be suspected, and in whom little confidence could be placed in times of danger and difficulty. Sim- ilar considerations have dictated the choice of a very inconveniently situated capital to the reigning dynasty of Persia. But although better sites for a metropolitan city might have been found in the largest extent of Palestine, there were not better within the limits to which, for the reasons indicated, the choice of David was confined. That the site is overlooked from the Mount of Olives, although a great disadvantage in the eyes of modern military engineers, was of little consequence under the ancient systems of warfare, and could not countervail the peculiar advantages which it offered in being enclosed on three sides by a natural fosse of ravines and deep valleys, and terminating in an eminence, which, while strong in its defences from without, com- manded the town within, and was capable of being strongly fortified. The united in- fluence of all these considerations appears to have determined the preference of David * Of this Fuller seems to have given a satisfactory explanation. "How this comes to pass let others largely dispute. We may, in brief, conclude, it is partly because their cradles can be remembered, and those swaddling-clothes once used about them, to strengthen them while infants, are afterward abused against them, to disgrace them when men, and all the passages of their youth repeated to their disparage- ment ; partly because all the faults of their family (which must be many in a numerous alliance) are charged on the prophet's account. Wherefore that prophet who comes at the first in his full growth from a far for- eign place (not improving himself among them from a small spark to a fire, to a flame, but, sun-like, arising in perfect lustre), gains the greatest reputation among the people. Because, in some respects, he is like Melchisedek, 'without father, without mother, without descent,' while the admiring vulgar, transported witli his preaching, and ignorant of his extraction on earth, will charitably presume his pedigree Irorn heaven, and his breeding as well as calling to be divine." » Antiq. v 2 Josh. xv. 63. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 293 for a site which was open to the serious objection, among others, of being so remote from the northern tribes as to render the legal obligation of resort to it three limes every year a more burdensome matter to them than it need have been had a mure centrical situation been chosen. It is supposed that David first gave the name of Jerusalem (" the possession ot peace") to the city, but this is not quite certain. On Mount Zion he fixed his resi- dence, and erected a palace and other buildings, and it was on this account called " the city of David." This strong part of the whole metropolis ever after remained what may be called the royal quarter of the town. The Philistines had good reason to dread the consequences of the consolidation of all the power of the Hebrew tribes in hands of such tried vigor as those of David, and they deemed it prudent to set upon him before he had time to establish himself firmly in his kingdom. Their measures were so well planned, and so secretly exe- cuted, that they appeared suddenly, in great force, in the heart of Judea, and took the king's native town of Bethlehem before he was able to make any resistance. In- deed, the danger of his position was so urgent, that he was obliged to withdraw, for present safety, with some attached followers, to his old retreat in the cave of Adul- lam. It was here that he happened to express a longing desire for a drink of water from that well of his native town at which the thirst of his younger days had often been assuaged. Hearing this, three of his most valiant and devoted men, Joab, Jashobeam, and Eleazer, secretly departed, and, breaking through the host of the Philistines, which was encamped along the valley of Rephaim, brought him the precious fluid for which they had perilled their lives. But when the king received it he would not drink, but poured it out as a libation to Jehovah. Soon after this, David, encouraged by a favorable answer from God, fell upon the Philistines, and so effectually discomfited them in two different onsets, that they were never after able to make head against him or any of his successors. Thus was one of the most irritating thorns in the side of Israel most effectually removed. And now, when David had a respite from war, about the tenth year of his reign,* he thought of the ark of God, which had so long remained in the house of Abinadab, at Kirjath-jearim. and contemplated its removal to Jerusalem, that the place which had now become the capital of the human kingdom, might also become the capital of the invisible King. The design being received with approbation by the elders and chiefs of Israel whom he consulted, the king prepared for its execution, by despatch- ing messengers throughout all Israel, to summon all the priests and Levites, and to invite as many of the people as were so disposed to attend the solemnity. He also prepared a tabernaclef to receive the ark on its arrival. Accordingly, at the appointed time, the ark was removed from the house of Abinadab, upon a new cart, attended by David and his court, by a large body of priests and Levites, who sang and played on various instruments of music, and by a numerous concourse of people from all parts of the kingdom. On the irregularity of removing it on a cart, we have already had occasion to remark. This irregularity gave occasion to an accident, attended with such fatal consequences as threw an effectual damp upon the joy of the solem- nity: for the cart being at one place much shaken by the osen, the officious U2Zah, the son or grandson of Abinadab, was struck dead upon the spot for putting forth his hand to stay the ark, none but the priests beino- warranted to touch it under pain of death. (Num. iv. 15.) This event struck David and the people with such consterna- tion, that the intention of taking the ark to Jerusalem was relinquished, and it was left in the house of a Levite named Obed-edom, near which the circumstance occurred. But about three months after, hearing that the blessing of Jehovah had very evidently rested on the house in which the ark lay, the king hastened to complete his design. He perceived the former improprieties, and directed that the priests should now bear the ark upon their shoulders; and the whole solemnity was placed under the direc- tion of Chenaniah, the chief of the Levites, who was found to be best acquainted with the proper observances. This was a great day in Israel. Nothing was omitted by which the occasion could be honored. In the presence of that sacred symbol of * Counting from his first becoming king over Judah only. t The old tabernacle, made in the wilderness, with the altar, and all the sacred utensils, were, as it ap- pears, at Gibeon; why David erected a new tabernacle, instead of removing the former, does not cleaily appear ; but it is probable that it was too large for the place within his new palace, which, for the presein he intended it to occupy. 294 AN ILLUSTRATED the Divine King, David laid aside his royal mantle, and appeared in such a garb as the Levites wore, with and before whom he went, as one of them; and as they sang and played the triumphant song which he had composed for the occasion, he accom- panied them with his renowned harp, and danced to the joyful sounds it gave forth. Michal, the daughter of Saul, beheld this from a window, when the procession was approaching its destination ; and she, imbued with some of the royal notions which had been fatal to her father and his house, despised him in heart for acting so far beneath what she conceived to be the dignity of the king of Israel : and when he came home, she could not refrain from allowing vent to this feeling. The reply of David was spirited and proper, declaring that it was before Jehovah, the true king of Israel, that he had laid aside the king, and made himself one with the people. And if this were to be vile, as she deemed, " I will yet be more vile than thus, and will be base in mine own sight." David now instituted a regular and orderly attendance upon the ark and its taber- nacle. But the regular services of religion were still performed at Gibeon, where the old tabernacle and altar remained, and which was still therefore the place of concourse to the nation at their great festivals. Here the priests rendered their ser- vices, under Zadok. The solemn removal of the ark, and its dignified repose in the city of David, were well calculated to make an impression upon the multitudes who were present on that occasion, and awaken their slumbering zeal for Jehovah. These favorable and becoming dispositions the king wished to confirm and strengthen, and for that end made suitable regulations in the services of the priests and Levites, and this especially by animating and instructive psalms, which were composed partly by himself, and "partly by other gifted persons. They were sung not only by the Levites at all the sacrifices, but also by the people while on their way to the national altar, to attend the feasts. A very precious collection of these compositions has been pre- served to our own day in the book of Psalms, which has in all subsequent ages min- istered much edification and comfort to a large portion of mankind. By such instruc- tive means David, without coercive measures, brought the whole nation to forget their idols, and to worship Jehovah alone ; and thus also their religion became hon- orable, even in the eyes of foreigners, and acceptable to many of them. The above is the first occasion on which Zadok is mentioned as high-priest. But after this, throughout the reign of David, he and Abiathar are often named separately or to- gether, as both bearing that character — a singular innovation, resulting probably from circumstances over which the king had little control. It seems likely that after Saul had slain the priests of Ithamar's line at Nob he restored the pontificate to the line of Eleazer, in the person of Zadok; while David and his people, during his wander- ing and his reign in Judah, had been accustomed to look to Abiathar, the escaped son of Ahimelech, as the high-priest; and that, on his accession to the throne of Israel, he found the people so accustomed to regard Zadok as high-priest, that he thought it proper and prudent to recognise him in that character, without depriving Abiathar of the consideration he had previously enjoyed. If this explanation be correct, Zadok would have had this advantage over Abiathar, that he had actually discharged the regular functions of the high-priesthood at the tabernacle, which the other had never an opportunity of doing. It is probably on this account, that wherever the two names occur together, that of Zadok is placed first. About five years after this, and the fifteenth of David's reiw to perceive the turn which the king's feelings were HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 303 mwmm taking, and was desirous of bringing about a reconciliation between David and Absalom ; but not daring to speak openly to the king himself, in the first instance, he engaged a shrewd woman of Tekoah to come before the king with a fictitious tale of distress, which, as in the case of Nathan's story, might be made instructively applicable to the circumstances. The woman played her part to admiration ; but when she began to make her application, the king at once guessed that she had been prompted by Joab; and this being admitted by the woman, the king turned to that personage, who was present all the time; and, glad that what was secretly his own desire was thus made to appear a concession to the ur- gent request of that powerful servant, he said, "Behold, now, I grant this request; go, then, and bring back the young man Absalom." He accordingly came back to Jerusalem , but his father declined to see him on his return ; and he remained two years in Jerusa- lem without appearing before the king. At the end of that time, Absalom was again, through the interference of Joab, admit- ted to the presence of his father, who embraced him and was reconciled to him. It would seem that during his retirement Absalom had formed those designs, for the ultimate execution of which he soon after began to prepare the way : this was no less than to deprive his father of his crown. As David was already old, Absalom would probably have been content to await his death, but for peculiar circumstances. If David properly discharged his duty, he must have led his sons to understand, that although the succession to the throne had been assured to his family, the ordinary rules of succession were not to be considered obligatory or binding, inasmuch as the Supreme King pos- sessed and would exercise the right of appointing the particular person who might be acceptable to him. In the absence of any contrary intimation, the ordinary rules might be observed ; but, according to the principles of the theocratical government, no such rules uld be of force when a special appointment intervened. It was already known to David, and could not but be known or suspected by Absalom, that not only he but some other of the king's sons were to be passed over by such an appointment, in favor of Solomon, to [Flight of the kings sons.] 304 AN ILLUSTRATED whom, by this time, the king probably began to pay attention as his successor. Th«r fact that even the ordinary law of primogeniture, as applied to the government, had not yet been exemplified among the Hebrews, must have tended to increase Absa- lom's uncertainty of his own succession to his father. Besides, in contending for the crown while his father lived, he had but one competitor, and that one fondly attached to him; w^hereas, if he waited until his faiher's death, he might have many vigorous competitors in his brothers. These, or some of them, were probably the considera- tions in which the designs of Absalom originated. But these designs were not merely culpable as against his own father, but as an act of rebellion against the ordinations of the theocracy, since they involved an attempt to appropriate by force that which God had otherwise destinated, or which at least was to be left for his free appointment. The ultimate success of Absalom would, therefore, have utterly subverted the theocratical principle which still remained in the constitution of the Hebrew state. At the first view, such an enterprise, against such a man as David, and by his own son, must have seemed wild and hopeless. But in the contest between youth and age — between novelty and habit — between the dignity and authority of an old king, and the ease and freedom of one who has only popularity to seek, the advantages are not all in favor of the old governor. Besides, it seems that there was much latent dis- content among the people, arising in a considerable degree from that very confidence in the justice and wisdom of the king by which his throne ought to have been secured. It is the duty of an oriental king to administer justice in his own person, and that duty is not seldom among the heaviest of those w T hich devolve upon hirn. This grew in time to be so sensibly felt, that ultimately among the Hebrews, as in some oriental and more European states, the king only undertook to attend to appeals from the ordinary tribunals. But under the former state of things, the people w r ill rather bring their causes before a just and popular king than to the ordinary judges ; and he in consequence is so overwhelmed with judicial business, that there remain only two alternatives — either to give up all his time to these matters, to the neglect of the general affairs of the nation, or else to risk his popularity by fixing a certain time every day for the hearing of causes, whereby some of the suiters must often wait many days before their causes can be brought under his notice. This hinderance to bringing a case immediately before the king is calculated to relieve him by inducing the people to resort to the inferior judges, from whom prompt justice might be ob- tained ; but, on the other hand, it is well calculated to endanger his popularity with the unthinking multitude, who deem their own affairs of the highest importance, and attribute to his neglect or indolence the delay and difficulty which they expe- rience. David made choice of the latter alternative, and suffered the inevitable consequences. Absalom was not slow to perceive the advantage this was to him, or to neglect the use which might be made of it. He had other advantages: he was an exceedingly fine young man, admired by all Israel for his beauty, and particularly celebrated for the richness and luxuriance of his hair. This was no small matter among a people so open as were the Hebrews to receive impressions from the beauty, or tallness, or strength of their public men. It was also, probably, a great advantage to Absalom, as against David, and which would have availed him against any of his brothers, had any of them been older than himself, that he was maternally descended from a race of kings. When, even in our own day, we see the conventional rights of primogeni- ture set aside, in the East, in favor of the son of a nobly-descended mother,* we can not suppose this consideration without weight among the Israelites in the time of David. Soon after the reconciliation with his father, Absalom be^an to live with great ostentation, taking upon him much more state than his station as the eldest son of the crown required, and more probably than his father exhibited as king. He had chariots, and a guard of horsemen, and never appeared in public but attended by fifty men. This, by contrast, the more enhanced the condescension and affability ./hich his purposes required him to exemplify. It was his wont to make his appearance very early in the morning, in the way that led to the palace gate ; and when any * In Persia, Abbas Meerza, the father of the king, was, on account of the noble descent of his mother, nominated by his father to succeed him in the throne, in preference to an elder son whose Diot^er was n merchant's daughter. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 305 man who had a lawsuit came to the king for judgment, Absalom would call to him and inquire with much apparent interest from what town he came, and the nature of his suit before the king ; he would then condole with him on the state of affairs which made it so difficult to obtain redress and justice, and would wind up with the passionate exclamation, " Oh that / were made judge in the land, that every man who hath any suit or cause might come unto me, and / would do him justice !" And then when any man passing by came to make his obeisance to the king's son, Absalom would put forth his arms, and take hold of him, and embrace him like a brother. "And after this manner," says the narrative, " did Absalom to all Israel who came to the king for judgment: thus Absalom stole away the hearts of the men of Israel.' 1 '' And it is important to note, that the men whose hearts he thus " stole away," were inhabitants of all the different parts of the land, who would afterward carry to their several homes the impressions they had received. At last, four years after his reconciliation to his father, Absalom judged his plans ripe for execution ; he therefore obtained the king's permission to go to Hebron, under the pretence of offering there a sacrifice which he had vowed during his residence at Geshur. At this place he had appointed the chiefs of his party to meet him, while others, who were dispersed through all the tribes, were ordered to proclaim him king, as soon as they heard the signal given by the sound of the trumpet. At his arrival in Hebron, he sent for Ahithophel,* who readily came; and the defection of that great politician, who had been the chief of David's counsellors, and whose repu- tation for wisdom was so great that his opinion on most subjects was respected as that of an oracle, gave much strength to the cause of Absalom, and attracted to Hebron numbers of influential men from all quarters of the land. Alarmed at this formidable rebellion so close to him, David hastily took flight with his family and servants, leaving ten of his concubine-wives in charge of the palace. He paused outside the town to survey the faithful few who were prepared to follow his fortunes. Among them were the high-priests, Zadok and Abiathar, with the priests and Levites bearing the ark. These David directed to return with ihe ark into the city: " If I shall find favor in the eyes of Jehovah, he will bring me back, and show me both it and his habitation. But if he thus say, ' I have no delight in thee,' behold, here am I, let him do to me as seemeth good unto him," From this and other expressions, similarly humbled and resigned to the dispensations of Provi- dence, it appears that he recognised in this unnatural conspiracy against him a por- tion of the judgments which the prophet had been authorized to denounce against him for his iniquities in the matter of Uriah and Bathsheba. David also pointed out to the high-priests that they might render him much service by remaining in the city, from which they might secretly transmit intelligence and advice to him through their sons, Ahimaaz and Jonathan. The whole of the two corps of body-guards (the Cherethites and Pelethites), as well as the six hundred Gathites, were ready to attend the king. The last-named body appear to have been native Philistines of Gath, whom David had attached to his service after the conquest of their country, and who had perhaps become proselytes.f The king attempted to dissuade Ittai, their leader, from attending him with his men, apparently feeling that, as foreigners and mercenaries, they might be rather expected to attach themselves to the rising fortunes of Absalom. But the answer of Ittai was decisive : " As Jehovah liveth, and as my lord the king liveth, surely in what place my lord shall be, whether in death or life, there also will thy servant be." Having taken this melancholy review of his followers, the king went on, " by the ascent of Mount Olivet, and wept as he went up, barefoot, and with his head covered ; and all the people that were with him covered every man his head, weeping as they went up," in token of extreme sorrow and humiliation. They had scarcely reached the summit before David was joined by an old and attached friend named Hushai, * The Jews suppose that Ahithophel was the grandfather of Bathsheba, and that he had been alienated from David by his conduct toward her, and by the murder of her husband. But this is doubtful. t Some, however, think it was a band of native Israelites, called Gathites in memory of the six hundred men who composed the band of followers who accompanied him when he sought refuge the second time in Gath and in which indeed the members of that body had been incorporated, and were replaced as they died off. But there is no good reason why such a body should be named from Gath rather than from other places or circumstance in which their history connected them with David. Besides, he obviously speaks to Ittai, their leader, as to a foreigner, who, with " his brethren," could hardly be expected to incui distress lor his sake. 20 306 AN ILLUSTRATED who had been one of his council, and who came with his clothes lent and dust upon his head, resolved to share in the misfortunes of his king. But David, well con- vinced of his attachment, did not think it fit to take him with his train, but rather begged him to go and join himself to Absalom, where he might render much better service by thwarting the counsels of Ahithophel (of whose defection he had just heard), and by conveying to him, through the two high-priests, information of what- ever resolutions the revolters might take. Hushai readily accepted this office, and acquitted himself in it with such consummate tact and zeal, as not a little contrib- uted to the final overthrow of Absalom and his party. In his further progress David was joined by Ziba, the steward of Mephibosheth, who brought with him some necessary refreshments, and falsely and treacherously reported that his master remained behind, in the expectation that the turn which affairs were taking might result in the restoration of the house of Saul in his person. David, sensibly hurt at this treatment from one who owed so much to his kindness and gratitude, hastily told Ziba henceforth to regard as his own property the lands he had hitherto managed for Mephibosheth. Immediately after, an incident occurred to confirm the impression he had thus received ; for near Bahurim, a village not far on the eastern side of Olivet, he was encountered by one of Saul's family, named Shimei, who dared to throw at him and his people volleys of stones, accompanied by the grossest abuse and bitterest imprecations against David as the author of all the wrongs and misfortunes of the house of Saul, which he said were now in the course of being avenged. All this unexpected insult David bore with meekness and patience ; for when Abishai desired permission to punish the man on the spot, the king refused: " Behold," he said, " my son, that came forth out of mine own bow- els, seeketh my life, how much more now this Benjamite ? Let him alone, and let him curse ; for Jehovah hath bidden him It may be that Jehovah will look upon mine affliction, and requite me good for his cursing this day." Absalom delayed not to march to Jerusalem. He was surprised and gratified to find there Hushai, the old friend of his father, and gave him a place in his council, tn that council the voice of Ahithophel was still paramount and decisive. Perceiving that many held back or wavered from the apprehension that Absalom would hardly go to the last extremities against his father, and that possibly they might become the victims of another reconciliation between David and his son, this wily and unprin- cipled statesman advised that Absalom should not delay to remove this apprehension by such an act as would, in the sight of all the people, commit him beyond all hope of a pardon or reconciliation to the bad cause in which he was engaged. This was, that he should rear a pavilion on the top of the palace (to render it conspicuous from afar), into which he should, "in the sight of all Israel," enter to the concubine-wives whom David had left in charge of the palace. This atrocious counsel was followed by Absalom, who thus unintentionally accomplished Nathan's prophecy. The next advice of Ahithophel was that not a moment should be lost in crowning the success of the rebellion by the death of the king, without allowing him time to bring his resources into action. To this end he offered himself to pursue him at the head of twelve thousand men: " And I shall come upon him while he is weary and weak-handed, and terrify him ; and while all the people who are with him flee, I will smite the king only. And I will bring back all the people unto thee, as a bride is brought to her husband (for only one man's life thou seekest) ; and the whole people shall have peace." This really sagacious advice was much approved by Absalom, who perhaps considered that the guilt would rest upon Ahithophel ; and to the other counsellors it also seemed good. Hushai was absent : and as a high opinion of his prudence was entertained, Absalom sent for him, and then told him what Ahithophel had advised, and asked whether he thought that advice good. Hushai at once saw that David was lost, if this plan were not frustrated. He therefore, with great presence of mind, adduced several specious arguments against it, and in favor of delay; dwelling upon the known valor of David and his friends, and the serious consequence of any check or failure in the first attack. The least repulse at such a juncture might be fatal to the cause of Absalom. The awe in which they all stood of the military talents and courage of the old king gave such effect to these suggestions, that the counsel of Hushai was preferred to that of Ahithophel. Of all this Hushai apprized the high-priests, and desired them to convey the information to David through their sons, together with his advice that not a moment should be lost HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. so; Absalom's Sepulchre. 308 AN ILLUSTRATED in passing to the country beyond Jordan. This message was conveyed to David wilh some danger and difficulty by Jonathan and Ahimaaz, who had remained in conceal- menr at A in Rogel, outside the city. Neither the information nor advice was lost upon the king, who instantly marched to the Jordan, and passed over with all his people, so that by the morning light not one was left in the plain of Jericho. The far-seeing Ahithophel deemed the cause of Absalom to be lost, when he knew that the counsel of Hushai was to be followed. His pride also could little brook the neglect of the advice which he had given, and which he had been used to see so reverently regarded. On both accounts, he abandoned the cause. He went to his own home ; and while he was still wise enough to set his affairs in order, was mad enough to hang himself. David established himself at the town of Mahanaim, which, it will be remember- ed, had been the royal seat of Ishbosheth, and which appears to have been chosen by him, and now by David, on account of the strength of its fortifications. To that place several principal persons of the country, who were well affected to the cause of Da- vid, brought a timely supply of provisions for himself and his men, together with tents, beds, and other necessary utensils. An aged person of Gilead, named Barzillai, particularly distinguished himself by his liberality on this occasion to the exiled king. When Absalom heard that his father was at Mahanaim, he crossed the Jordan with an army, and encamped in the land of Gilead. His army was under the command of Amasa, his cousin.* David, on his part, reviewed his force, which was but a handful of men as compared with the large host which Absalom brought into the field. He divided it into three battalions, the command of which he gave to Joab, Abishai, and Ittai the Gathite, in- tending himself to command the whole in person. But his people, aware that his valued life was principally sought, would not hear of it, but insisted on his remaining behind at Mahanaim, with a small reserved force. As the rest of his adherents marched out at the gate, David, who stood there, failed not to charge the command- ers, in the hearing of the men, for his sake to respect the life of Absalom. A most sanguinary action was soon after fought in the forest of Ephraim, wherein the rebel army was defeated, with the loss of twenty thousand men, slain in the bat- tle-field, besides a great number of others who perished in the wood and in their flight. Absalom himself, mounted upon a mule,t was obliged to flee from a party of David's men toward the wood, where the boughs of a thick oak having taken hold of his bushy hair, in which he took so much pride, the mule continuing its speed, left him suspended in the air. The pursuing soldiers, seeing him in this state, respected the order of the king, and furbore to smite him ; but Joab, who happened to learn what had occurred, ran and struck three darts through his body. " Whatever were Joab's crimes, among them disloyalty was not to be reckoned. And now he gave the most unequivocal proof of his unshaken fidelity, in knowingly incurring the king's displeas- ure, to rid him of an obstinate rebel against his own father, whom no forgiveness could soften and no favors could bind, for whom Joab himself had so successfully in- terceded, and was likely therefore to have been otherwise well disposed toward Ab- salom from the mere circumstance of having served him."! As the death of Absalom ended the cause of war, Joab caused the trumpet to sound a retreat, to stop the carnage. The body of Absalom was taken down, and cast into a large pit, and covered with a heap of stones. This was not the end or the sepul- chre expected by this ambitious man, when he reared for himself a fair monument " in the king's dale," supposed the valley of Jehoshaphat, to keep his name in re- membrance, because he had no sons, and therefore called it by his own name. In what manner we may venture to connect with Absalom the monument which now appears in the valley of Jehoshaphat bearing his name, is a matter on which a few words may be said in a note to this page.|| * Zeruiah, the mother of Joab and Abishai, was a sister of David; Abigail, the mother of Amasa, was another sister. Whence Joab, Abishai, and Amasa, were all nephews of David, and cousins of Absalom • whence also it happened that commanders of the opposite armies were sisters' sons. See 1 Cliron. ii. 10, 17. But 2 Sam. xvii. 25, makes Abigail the grandmother of Amasa. t As he had for civil state plenty of horses and chariots, this shows that the Hebrews had not yet come to use either in war. X Hales, ii. 349. II Absalom's Sepulchre, see p. 307.— Of the monument represented in the engraving, a very g:ood and satisfactory account has been given oy Mr. Wilde, whose description we shall here transcribe :- - •'Descending to Gethsemane, we continued our course through the valley of Jehoshaphat by those re markablo monuments denominated the sepulchres of the patriarchs, which hav»» been described, as well as HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 809 310 AN ILLUSTRATED The partisans of Absalom were no sooner acquainted with the death of their pop- ular chief than they fled, every man to his own home. Ahimaaz, the son of Zadok the high-priest, besought Joab to be allowed to bear the tidings of the victory to the king. But as Joab knew that David would regard as evil any tidings that included the death of his son, he, out of regard to Ahimaaz, re- fused his permission, but sent Cushi with the news. The other, afterward persisting in his request, was allowed to go also ; and he went with such speed that he outran Cushi, and was first to appear before the king, who sat at the gate of Mahanaim, anxiously awaiting tidings from the battle. The king and the father had struggled hard within him; the father conquered ; and now his absorbing desire was to know that Absalom was safe. Aware of this feeling, Ahimaaz contented himself with re porting the victory, leaving to Cushi the less pleasant news; and he, when plainly asked, " Is the young man Absalom safe ?" answered, with much discretion, " The enemies of my lord the king, and all that rise against thee to do thee evil, be as that young man is." On hearing this, " the king was much moved, and went up to the chamber over the gate ; and as he went, thus he said, * my son Absalom ! my son, my son Absalom ! would to God I had died for thee, Absalom, my son, my son !' " And thus he remained in the chamber over the gate, with his head covered like a mourner, wailing for his son, and oblivious to all things else. His faithful adherents, who, by venturing their lives foi him against fearful odds, had that day restored him to his throne, returning weary to the city, where they de- served to be greeted with thanks and praises, and triumphal songs, were quite con- founded to learn this conduct of the king, and slunk into the town like guilty people — even like defeated men rather than conquerors. As very serious consequences might arise from this state of feeling, Joab went in to the king, and reproved him very sharply for his unkingly conduct and untimely wailing, so calculated to discourage his truest friends, and insisted that he should go forth and show himself to the people, and speak kindly to them; "For," said he, " if thou go not forth, not a man will re- main with thee this night; and this will be worse to thee than any evil that hath be- fallen thee from thy youth until now." The king could see the prudence of this counsel ; and, therefore, curbing his strong emotion, he went down to the gate and sat there ; on hearing which the people hastened to present themselves before him, and all was well. It might seem the obvious consequence of his victory, that David should repass the drawn with great accuracy by most writers on Palestine. They are placed on the eastern side of Kedron, nearly opposite the southern angle cf the present wall, and are some of the rarest and most extraordinary specimens of sepulchral architecture in existence. They are hewn out of the solid rock, with temple-like fronts. Some of them are enormous masses separated from the rest of the rock, and left standing like so many monolithic temples — monuments that record as well (if not more so) the labor and ingenuity of their constructors as those to whose memory they have been erected. The names assigned to these tombs are Jehoshaphat, James, Zechariah, and Absalom. This latter is the most elegant and tasteful piece of archi- tecture in Judea, indeed, 1 might almost add, in the East, and viewed from the valley beneath, it is one of the most beautiful tombs that I have ever seen in any country. It consists of a mass of rock twenty-four feet square, separated from the rest, and standing in a small enclosure that surrounds three of its sides it has lour pilasters with Ionic capitals on each front, the two outer ones being flat, while those in the cen tre are semicircular ; the frieze is ornamented with triglyphs. The upper part is composed of several pieces, and surmounted by a small spire terminating in a bunch of leaves. There is a hole in the back immedi- ately beneath the architrave through which I was enabled to climb into its interior. As the door by which it was entered was concealed, this opening was formed, in all piobability, for the purpose of rifling the sep- ulchre of its contents. Within, it presents the usual form of eastern tombs, having niches at the sides for bodies. The general opinion of antiquaries is, that the Grecian architecture exhibited on the exterior of this rock is no test of the date of its construction ; and, that it was added in later times, and a similar workmanship is visible in the other neighboring tombs. To it may be referred that rebuke of our Lord to the Pharisees, regarding their garnishing the sepulchres of the prophets. The tradition is, that this pillar, 3f which we have an account in the book of Samuel, was erected by Absalom. ' Now Absalom in his life- *ime had taken and reared up for himself a pillar, which is in the king's dale ; for he said, I have no son to Keep my name in remembrance ; and he called the pillar after his own name ; and it is called unto this day Absalom's Place.' Josephus also informs us that ' Absalom had erected for himself a stone marble pilla* : ji the king's dale, two furlongs distant from Jerusalem, which he named Absalom's Stand, saying, that il nis children were killed, his name would remain by that pillar.' I see no reason to doubt the tradition re garding this monument, although the historian has stated it to be a greater distance from the city than we now find it ; but this is an error into which he often falls. In confirmation of its supposed origin I may add that it has ever been a place of detestation to the Hebrews ; and every Jew who passes it by throws a stone at it to this day, so that a large cairn has formed round its base. " The style of the whole of these four sepulchres, but especially the two I have more particularly noticed, is very peculiar, and is totally different from other tombs in this neighborhood. An inspection ol them would lead us to believe that, at the time of erection, the Hebrews had not quite forgot the lessons on architecture which their forefathers had learned in Egypt. Around these mausolei *pon the sides of the rocks, and the slopes of Mount Olivet, there are hundreds of plain flat gravestones belonging to the Jews. ■Vll these hare Hebrew inscriptions, some of which a Hebrew scholar resident in the city informed m* were dated a short time subsequent to the Christian era." — Wilde's " Narrative of a Voyage." p. 325-'*2?. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 311 Jordan at the head of his conquering army, and resume his throne at Jerusalem. Bui the mass of the people had chosen another for their king, and by that act had virtu- ally, to the extent oi their power, deposed himself; and in such a case it would ap- pear that the civil principles of the constitution required that he should, in a certain sense, be re-elected to the crown by the people, before he was entitled to regard him- self as king over any but such as had continued to recognise him in that character. He therefore remained beyond Jordan until the tribes should decide to recall him. It seems there was a general disposition among the people to do this ; they blamed one another for their rebellion against the king, and their remissness in recalling him; but all seemed to shrink from taking the first step in the matter. Judah, from its more intimate relations with David, might be expected to give the example; but Judah had oeen the headquarters of the rebellion ; and it appears that Jerusalem was in the oc- cupation of Amasa, who, from the extent to which he had committed himself in Ab- salom's rebellion, might judge his case desperate, and hence use all his influence to prevent the king's return. This state of affairs being understood by David, he sent to the high-priests, who were still in Jerusalem, charging them to remind the elders of Judah of the obligation which seemed peculiarly to devolve upon them, and also to gain over Amasa by the offer to make him captain of the host in the place of Joab. This was attended with the desired result ; and the elders of Judah sent back the an- swer, "Return thou, and all thy servants." On receiving this invitation, the king marched to the Jordan ; and the men of Judah, on their part, assembled at Gilgal, to assist him over the river, and to receive him on his arrival. Among these, and fore- most among them, were a thonsand men of Benjamin, headed by Shimei, and including Ziba with his fifteen sons and twenty servants. No sooner had the king passed the river in a ferry-boat,* than Shimei threw himself at his feet, acknowledged his former crime, but trusted that it would be forgiven in consideration of his being the first in all Israel (except Judah) to come forward with a powerful party, to promote his resto- ration. In consideration of this circumstance, and, what was a greater merit and ben- efit — that his party was from the tribe of Benjamin — it would have been a most un- gracious act had the king been inexorable. He therefore pardoned him freely, although some of his officers were for putting him to death. For the like reason, probably, — that is, for fear of disgusting the valuable party to which he belonged, and in which he had much influence, — the king dared not entirely recall from Ziba the grant, of Mephibosheth's lands which he had hastily made to him. When the son of Jonathan came to the Jordan to meet the king, he made it clear to him that he had been slan- dered by his steward, who had purposely neglected to provide him with the means of escape from Jerusalem when he purposed to join the king in his exile; so that, incon- sequence of his lameness, he had been obliged to remain behind ; but, during his stay, nad remained in retirement, and, as a mourner, had neither dressed his feet, trimmed his beard, nor changed his cloihes. Under the circumstances, the king could only say, " Thou and Ziba divide the land ;" to which the reply of Mephibosheth was worthy of the son of the generous Jonathan, " Yea, let him take all, since my lord the king is come again to his own house in peace." The rich old man of Gilead, Barzillai, who had so liberally ministered to the wants of David during his exile, came down to the Jordan to see him over. The king would fain have persuaded him to accompany him to Jerusalem, that he might have an op- portunity of rewarding his services ; but Barzillai returned the touching reply, " How long have I to live that I should go up with the king to Jerusalem ? I am this day eighty years old, and can I discern between good and evil ? Can thy servant taste what I eat, or what I drink ? Can I hear any more the voice of singing-men and singing-women ? Why then should thy servant be yet a burden to my lord the king? Let thy servant just go over Jordan with the king ; and then let thy servant, I pray thee, return, that I may die in my own city, near the grave of my father and my mo- ther." He, however, recommended the fortunes of his son Chimham to the care of the king, who accordingly took that person with him to Jerusalem. From the result, we may doubt the wisdom of the separate appeal which David * The first and only time we ever read of a ferry-boat on the Jordan. The interpretation is, however, rather doubtful. Some make it a bridge of boats. Many interpreters prefer the sense of the Septuagint and Syriac, which, inst2ad of, "And there went over a ferry-boat to carry over the king's household, and to dc what he thought good," read, "And these (the men of Judah and Benjamin) went over the Jordan before the king, and performed the service of bringing over the king's household, and in doing what he thought tjood. SI 2 AN ILLUSTRATED had made to his own tribe of Judah, inasmuch as his more intimate connexion with that tribe, by birth and by having reigned over it separately for seven years, required the most cautious policy on his side, to prevent his appearing to the other tribes as the king of a party. Now, when he had crossed the Jordan, people from all the tribes (locked to him to join in the act of recall and restoration. But when they came to consider of it, the other tribes were not willing to forgive Judah for having been be- forehand with them; or, in other words, that, instead of inviting them to join with themselves in the act of recall, the elders of Judah, by acting independently had en- abled themselves to exhibit the appearance of more alacrity and zeal in the king's be- half, putting the other tribes in an unfavorable position by comparison. They alleged also their claim to be considered, on the ground that the ten tribes had tenfold the in- terest in the kingdom to that which the single tribe of Judah could claim. The an- swer of that tribe was the most impolitic and provoking that could be made. They alleged that seeing the king was of their own tribe, " their bone and their flesh," they had a right to take a peculiar and exclusive interest in his recall. This quarrel grew so hot, as to strengthen the natural disposition of the tribes to regard David as the king of the Judahites ; and but a slight impulse was wanting to induce them to leave him to his own party. This impulse was supplied by one Sheba, of the discontented tribe of Benjamin, who, perceiving the state of feeling, blew the trumpet, and gave forth the Hebrew watchword of revolt, " To your tents, Israel !" and, in the name of the tribes, disclaimed all further interest in David, and bade defiance to Kis adhe- rents. The effect of this move, perhaps, exceeded his expectation. On a sudden he saw himself at the head of all the tribes, except that of Judah, which had occasioned this defection, and which was left almost alone to conduct the king from the Jordan to Jerusalem. This circumstance, perhaps, supplied to David an additional motive for performing his secret promise of making Amasa captain of the host ; as that person appears to have been high in favor with the tribes. But most readers will feel displeased that Joab should at this juncture — after the brilliant displays which he had so lately af- forded of his loyalty, courage, and prudence — be displaced in favor of the rebel leader ; and even if judged by the principles of the East, that every stroke of policy by which something may be gained, is a good stroke, whatever interests or honor it sacrifices, — even judged by this rule, the policy of this operation may very much be doubted, as, indeed, David himself had soon occasion to suspect. In fact, we agree with Hales, that in this David " seems to have acted rather ungratefully and unwisely, justifying Joab's reproach (on a former occasion), ' thou lovest thine' enemies and hatest thy friends.' But the old grudge and jealousy which he entertained against ' the sons of Zeruiah,' who were above his control, and too powerful to be punished, as in Abner's case, combined with Joab's disobedience of orders in killing Absalom, which he could never forget, nor forgive, to the day of his death, seem to have got the better of his usual temporizing caution and political prudence." Amasa, the new captain of the host, failed to assemble the forces of Judah, to act against Sheba, within the time which the king had appointed. Whether this arose from want of zeal or ability in him, or from the disgust of the Judahites at the re- moval of Joab from an office which he had filled with great distinction for tTTenty- seven years, we know not. The king was in consequence obliged to order Joab's brother, Abishai, to take the command of the royal guards, and pursue Sheba without delay, before he could get into the fenced cities ; for that otherwise he might raise a rebellion more dangerous than Absalom's. On this occasion Joab went with Abishai as a volunteer, followed by the company which formed his private command, for his zeal for his king and country rose paramount above his sense of the disgrace which had recently been inflicted on him. But when Amasa, with the force he had collected, joined them at Gibeon to take the command, Joab, under the pretext of saluting him as his "brother" slew him, just as in a former time he had slain Abner. He then took the command himself, causing proclamation to be made, — " He that favoreth Joab, and he that is for David, let him follow Joab." He then pursued Sheba, be- sieged him in a town to which he had fled, demanded his head from the inhabitants, and crushed the rebellion. He then returned triumphant to Jerusalem, self-reinstated in his former station, of which David dared no more to deprive him. About the thirty-fourth year of David's reign* commenced a grievous famine, which * So Hales ; but some think that although the history relates the event in this place, it actually occurred hi the early part of David's reign. And there are some very probable reasons for this conclusion. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 313 rontinued for three successive rears. When the sacred oracle was consulted, it de- clared that this was on account of the unatoned blood of the Gibeonites, whom Saul. in despite of the ancient treaty between that people and the Israelites, had cut off. This circumstance is not mentioned in the history of Saul; hut, from the circum- stances, it may perhaps be collected that Saul, finding the difficulty, to which we have adverted more than once, of forming a landed property for his family, where the land was already inalienably parcelled out among the people, had, under pretence of zeal for the interests of his own people, formed the design of utterly destroying the Gib- eonites, and, as far as he was able, executed that design, giving their lands and wealth to his relatives, by the survivors of whom they were still possessed. As it therefore- appeared that the calamity which punished this breach of national faith could only be averted through satisfaction being rendered to the remnant of the Gibeonites, Da- vid sent to learn what satisfaction they required. They, actuated by the powerful principles of revenge for blood, to which we had such frequent occasion to advert, re- fused to take "silver or gold," that is, a blood-fine, from the house of Saul, but de- manded that execution should be performed upon seven members of that house. Seven members of Saul's family were accordingly sought out and given up to them. These were, two sons of Saul by his concubine Rizpah,and five grandsons by his eld- est daughter Merab ; Mephibosheth (who appears to have been the only other mem- ber of the family) was held back by David, on account of the covenant between him and Jonathan. The Gibeonites took these persons, and, after having slain them, hanged up their bodies upon a hill. This was against the law, which forbids that a body should be kept hanging after the going down of the sun on the first day. How long they thus remained, is not stated ; but the famine had been occasioned by drought, and they hung there until the rains of heaven fell upon them. It was then made known to David that Rizpah, the mother of two of them, had spread sackcloth foi herself upon the rock, and had there remained to protect the bodies from the birds of the air and the beasts of the field. Touched by this striking instance of the tender- ness of maternal affection, David not only directed the bodies of these persons to be taken down, but he went (or sent) to Jabesh Gilead, to remove from under the oak in that place, the bones of Saul and Jonathan, and deposite them, with all respect, in the family sepulchre at Kelah in Benjamin, together with the remains of these unhappy members of their house. David has been censured by some writers for consenting to the demand of the Gibeonites ; but the reader must perceive that the demand of the Gibeonites was one which the king could not refuse. They might have accepted the blood-fine ; but this was optional with them, and they were perfectly entitled to refuse it, and to de- mand blood for blood. That the persons who were slain had themselves no hand in the crime for which they were punished, is more than we know ; it is most likely that they were active parties in it, and still more that they reaped the profits of it. But even were this not the case, it is a well-known principle of blood-avengemen; that the heirs and relatives of the blood-shedder are responsible for the blood in theii own persons, in case the avenger is not able to reach the actual perpetrator. That David had any interest in getting rid of these persons is equally absurd and untrue, for they made no pretensions to the crown themselves, nor did others make such pretensions for them. Even w T hen the cause of Saul's house was most in want of a head, none of these persons appeared to advance their claims, nor did the warmest partisans of the cause dream of producing any of them in opposition to David. Now that the Israelites had been weakened by two rebellions and three years of famine, the Philistines deemed the opportunity favorable for an attempt to shake off their yoke. They therefore rpnewed the war about the thirty-seventh year of Da- vid's reign, but were defeated in tour engagements, and finally subdued. In all these engagements the Philistines exhibited their old passion for Winging gigantic cham- pions into the field. In the first of these engagements, David himself, notwithstand- ing his years, shrunk not from the combat with the gian^ Izbi-benob ; hut he waxed faint, and was in danger of being slain, had not the brave and trusty Abishai hastened to his relief, and killed the gigantic Philistine. After this the people would no more allow David to go forth in person to battle, "lest he should quench the light of Is- rael." This war completely extinguished the gigantic race to which Goliah had belonged. The numbering of the people was one of the last and most reprehensible acts of the 314 AN ILLUSTRATED Feign of David. In itself, an enumeration of the population might be not only inno- eent but useful ; it was the motive by which the deed was rendered evil. This mo- tive, so offensive to God, was obviously supplied by the design of forcing all the Is- raelites into military service, with a view to foreign conquests ; a design not only pitiable in so old a man, but in every way repugnant to both the internal and exter- nal polity of the theocratical government. That the census was not, as in former times, taken through the priests and magistrates, but byJoab, as commander-in-chief, assisted by the other military chiefs, sufficiently indicates the military object of the census; and if they were accompanied by the regular troops under their command, as the mention of their "encamping" leads one to suspect, it may seem that the ob- ject was known to and disliked by the people, and that the census could only be taken in the presence of a military force. Indeed the measure was repugnant to the wishes of the military commanders themselves, and was in a peculiar degree abhorrent to Joab, who saw the danger to the liberties of the people, and gave it all the opposition in his power, and undertook it reluctantly, when he found the king adhered to his purpose with the obstinacy of age. At the end of nine months and twenty days, Joab brought to the king the return of the adult male population, which was 900,000 men in the ten tribes of Israel, and 400,000, in round numbers, in the tribe of Judah alone ; being, together, 1,300,000. But the tribes of Levi and Benjamin were not included in this account; for Joab did not finish the enumeration, probably in consequence of some indications of the Divine displeasure in the course of it. According to usual proportions, the entire population of Israel at this time (without including these two tribes) could not well have been less than 5,200,000. The same marks of the Divine displeasure which prevented the completion of the census were probably those which awakened the slumbering con- science of David when the return was presented to him. He confessed before God fhat he had sinned, and prayed to be forgiven. The next morning it was made known to him, through the prophet Gad, that he had sinned indeed, and that his sin was not of such a nature as, with a due regard to the public principles of the govern- ment, could be allowed to pass without signal punishment. The choice of punish- ment was offered to him : seven years of famine, three months to be pursued by his enemies, or three days of pestilence. The humbled monarch confessed the choice to be hard, but fixed on the latter alternative, as the more equal punishment, and such as seemed more immediately under the direction of Heaven. Accordingly, Jehovah sent a pestilence, which in the course of two days destroyed 70,000 men, from Dan to Beersheba. It was then beginning to visit Jerusalem, when God was pleased to put a stop to it, at the earnest prayer of David. He beheld the commissioned angel stand in the thrashing-floor of Araunah, a chief person among the Jebusites, as one preparing to destroy. And then he and the elders of Israel, all clad in sackcloth, fell upon their faces, and the king cried — " Is it not I that commanded the people to be numbered ? Even I it is that have sinned and done evil indeed ; but as for these sheep, what have they done? Let thy hand, I pray thee, O Jehovah, my God, be on me, and on my father's house ; but not on thy people that they should be plagued." This noble prayer was granted as soon as uttered. Through the prophet Gad, he was commanded to erect an altar, and offer sacrifices on that spot of ground where he had seen the destroying angel stand. The king accordingly bought the thrashing- floor from Araunah (who would willingly have given it free of cost) for fifty shekels of silver.* He then hastened to erect an altar, and to offer thereon burnt-offerings, and peace-offerings ; and a miraculous fire which descended from the heavens and eonsumed the victims gave manifest proof of the Divine complacency, and so sanc- tified the spot as to point it out for the site of the future temple. The plague was stayed. David was now advancing toward seventy years of age, and it appeared, from the declining state of his health, that his latter end could not be far off. This made * As this was little more than thirty dollars of our money, and paid not only for the thrashing-floor, but for all that was upon it— cattle and implements— it seems to show that the value of the precious metals among the Hebrews at this time was much higher than it is now with us. It is, however, possible that Araunah merely set a nominal price to satisfy the delicacy of the king, who would not sacrifice to God at the cost of other people. There is an apparent contradiction between the account in 2 Sam. xxiv. 24, and 1 Chron. xxi. 25, which says that David gave Araunah 600 shekels of gold by weight (whicli would be no less than $6,000 of our money) ; but this may be removed by the very probable supposition that after Da- vid knew, by the acceptance of the altar erected on the spot, that the temple was to be bui t in this place, be made a further purchase of a sufficient site for the additional and much larger sum just named HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 315 Adonijah, his eldest surviving son, determine to take measures to secure the throne, which, had it been hereditary, would naturally have devolved to him. He doubtless knew that the crown had been assigned to his younger brother Solomon, and felt that this was perhaps his only opportunity of asserting what he conceived to be his natu- ral rio-hts. Adonijah was a very handsome man, and he had not at any time been balked or contradicted by his father, many of whose sorrows arose from his exces- sive indulgence of his children. He now, in apparent imitation of Absalom, set up a splendid'retinue, and courted popularity among the people ; and he succeeded m drawing over to his party Joab, who now at last forsook his old master, and Abiathar the high-priest, who had shared all his fortunes. One day, when matters seemed ripe for the further development of his designs, he made a grand enter'ainment at A in Rogel, the fountain in the king's garden, to which he invited all the king's sons, with the significant exception of Solomon, and the principal persons in the state, with the exception of those who were known to be in Solomon's interest. There he was proclaimed king in the usual form—" Long live the king Adonijah !"— by the powerful party assembled. „'",,, . e u In this important emergency, Nathan the prophet sent Bathsheba to mlorm the king of these proceedings, and afterward came in himself and confirmed her account. Bv both he was reminded of his previous declarations that Solomon was to be his successor in the throne. The old king was roused to his wonted energy by this in- telligence. He instantly appointed Nathan the prophet, Zadok the priest, Benaiah, ana his own guards the Cherithites and Pelethites, who continued faithful, to take Solomon, and conduct him, mounted on the king's own mule, to the fountain of Gi- hon, and there to anoint and proclaim him king. The ceremony was thus attended with every circumstance which could give it authority in the eyes of the people, as indicating the intention of the king, which, it was now well known, Avas according to the will of God. There was the mule, which none but David had ever been seen to ride, and which, he having habitually ridden, none but a king might ride; there was the prophet who could only sanction that which he knew to be the will of God ; there was Zadok, with the holy anointing oil from the tabernacle ; and there were the guards, whom the people had been accustomed to see in attendance only on the king. The whole ceremony was also directed to take place on one of the most public and frequented roads leading from Jerusalem. The people were adequately impressed by all these considerations and circumstances; they heartily shouted, "Long live Kino- Solomon !" The earth was, as it were, rent with the rejoicing clamor, mixed with the sounds of trumpets and of pipes. The party of Adonijah heard the noise ; and when informed of the cause, they were all so struck with consternation at the promptitude and effect of this counter-move, that they dispersed immediately, and slunk away every man to his own house. Adonijah, seeing himself thus forsaken, and dreading nothing less than immediate death, fled to the refuge of the altar (erected on the tharshing-floor of Araunah). Solomon, being informed of this, sent to tell him that, if by his future conduct he proved himself a worthy man, he would not hurt a hair of his head, but at the same time assured him that any future instance of a disloyal intention would be fatal to him. On leaving the altar, Adonijah went and rendered his homage to the new king ; after which he was ordered to retire to his own house. The waning spark of David's life gleamed up once again before it finally expired. He availed himself of this to call a general assembly of the nation to ratify the coro- nation of Solomon, and to receive the declaration of his views and designs. The ao-ed king was able to stand up on his feet as he addressed the assembly at consider- able length. Perceiving from the revolts of Absalom and Adonijah, into which last some oAiis own stanchest friends had been drawn, that the principle of primogeni- ture was likely to interfere very seriously with the true doctrine of the theocracy, he was careful to point out how the sceptre had been assigned to Judah, not the first- born of Jacob ; and in the tribe of Judah, to the family of Jesse, not the first or most powerful of that tribe ; and of the eight sons of Jesse, to David the youngest ; and of the sons of David, to Solomon, at a time when there were living three (if not four*) older than he. He then proceeded to state the reasons which had prevented him from bmilding to the Lord that temple which he had designed ; and since this •Teat work had been reserved for the peaceable reign of his son, he solemnly ex * Chileab, the son of Abigail, is not historically named. The probability is that he died early. 316 AN ILLUSTRATED horted him and the nation 1c erect that temple according to the model whici he had himself supplied, and to contribute liberally themselves toward it, iu addition to the ample stores and materials which in the course of his reign he had been enabled to provide. He concluded with a most noble and devout thanksgiving to the Lord for all the mercies which he had shown to himself and to his people: and this, with the rest of his conduct on this occasion, shows that, whatever were now the bodily infir- mities of the aged king, his better faculties were still in their prime. Solomon was now again anointed king in the presence, and with the sanction of the assembly, by Zadok, who himself was now declared and recognised as sole high- priest, Abiathar being deposed from his participation in that dignity on account of his having gone over to Adonijah. It is impossible not to see in all this a strenuous as- sertion by David of the theocratical principles of the constitution, which rendered conclusive and final anv appointment which the Divine King had made, or might make ; and for this he deserves the more honor, as there is good reason to think that, for himself merely, as a father, he would quite as soon have seen Absalom or Adoni- jah on the throne as Solomon. Of Abiathar it was quite necessary to make an ex- ample; for, as high-priest, he of all men ought to have been sensible of the obligation of the divine appointment, the maintenance of which had now become one of the most rrarked and grand prerogatives of Jehovah as king of the Hebrews, and the one which was calculated to keep his superiority present to the minds of the people. 11 this prerogative were allowed to be contemned by the high-priest, who should be its most strenuous supporter, the people would not be likely to hold it in much respect. The enthusiasm manifested by the king for the object which for many years pasi he had so much at heart, kindled a corresponding zeal in the people, who presented liberal offerings for the great work which Solomon was destined to execute. The following day was spent as a high festival. Holocausts of numerous steers, and rams, and lambs, were offered to Jehovah, and also abundant peace-offerings, on which the people feasted with great gladness, before they departed to their homes. This was, in fact, the coronation-feast of Solomon. He, being now twice anointed, and formally recognised by the people, mounted the throne of his father, and admin- istered the government while David still lived. It was not, however, long before David felt that his last hour approached. He then sent for his son, to give to him his last counsels. He first of all recapitulated the gra- cious promises which God had made to him and his posterity, and then reminded Solomon that these promises were only, in their first and obvious sense, to be under- stood as conditional, and depending upon their observance of the divine law; so that they might expect their prosperity to rise and fall in proportion to their obedience. He then proceeded to advise him as to the course he should take with reference tc certain persons whom his own history has brought conspicuously under the notice of the reader. The predominating influence of the sons of Zeruiah had, throughout his reign, been very galling to himself, and he advised his son not to incur the samp grievance, or to submit to it. As to Joab, he had, through policy, been pardoned for his part in Adonijah's rebellion, as David himself had, from like reasons, been com- pelled to overlook the crimes of which he had been guilty — such as the murders of Abner and Amasa ; yet, should he again offend, Solomon was advised to bring him to condign punishment, by which he would strike terror into evil doers, and, more than by any other act, evince the strength and firmness of his government. The pardon which Shimei had asked, beside the Jordan, with a thousand men at his back, could not well have been refused, and David had no wish to annul it ; but, aware of the character of this disaffected and dangerous Benjamite, he cautioned Solomon against him, and advised to keep him under his eye in Jerusalem, and watch him well that he might have no opportunity of stirring up seditions among the tribes ; and should his conduct again offer occasion, David counselled the young king not to spare him, but at once rid his kingdom of so suspicious and malevolent a char- acter. David appears to have survived the coronation of Solomon about six months; for, although he reigned seven years and six months over Judah, and thirty-three years over all Israel, yet the whole duration is reckoned only forty years in 2 Sam. v. 4, 5; 1 Chron. xxix. 27. The interval he seems to have employed in the development, for the benefit of his son, of those plans and regulations which had long before been HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 317 formed and considered in his own mind, and to which the due effect was afterward given by his son. These are fully stated in the first five chapters of the second book of Chronicles. David was seventy years of age when " he slept with his fathers." At that time certainly the period of human life was reduced to the present standard ; for, in re- cording his death at this age, the historian says, " He died in a good old age, full of days, riches, and honor." He was buried in a stately tomb, which, according to a touching custom, still prevalent in the East, he had prepared for himself, in that part of the city (on Mount Zion) which he had covered with buildings, and which was called after him, " the city of David." CHAPTER XVIII. SOLOMON'S ACCESSION — BUILDS THE TEMPLE — HIS COMMERCE. On the death of David, his son Solomon, who had been declared by him king of Israel, with the divine approbation, succeeded to the throne, to the universal satis- faction of the people. This event took place when he was about twenty years of age, and in the year 1030 B. C. Never monarch ascended the throne with greater advantages, or knew better how to secure and improve them. Under David the kingdom had been much extended, and brought under good regulations. The arms of the Hebrews had for so many years been feared by all the neighboring nations, so that the habit of respect and obedience on their part offered to the new king the reasonable prospect, confirmed by a divine promise, that his reign should be one of peace. Now, the predominant tribe of Judah lay as a lion and as a lioness, which no nation ventured to rouse up. (Gen. xlix. 9; Num. xxiii. 24, xxiv. 9.) The Hebrews were the ruling people, and their empire the principal monarchy of Western Asia. From the Mediterranean sea and the Phoenicians to the Euphrates, in its nearer and remoter bounds — from the river of Egypt and the Elanilic gulf to Berytus, Hamath, and Thapsacus, all were subject to the dominion of Solomon ; nor were the tribes* which wander in northern Arabia, eastward to the Persian gulf, unconscious of his rule. At home the Canaanites had not, as we have seen, been either entirely ex- pelled or annihilated; but they had become obedient and peaceable subjects, and, which was of importance to an eastern king, liable to services which no king dared to impose upjn the Israelites themselves. Jahn calculates that their whole number may have been about four or five hundred thousand, since ultimately one hundred fifty-three thousand were able to render soccage to the king. The warlike and civ- ilized Philistines, the Edomites, Moabites, and Ammonites, the Syrians of Damascus, and some tribes of the nomadic Arabians of the desert, were all tributary to him. The revenues derived from the subject states were large ; and the wealth in the royal treasures great beyond calculation: and the king had the enterprise and talent to open new sources through which riches were poured into the country from distant lands. Nor were the prospects and promises with which this reign opened frustrated in its continuance. "Peace gave to all his subjects prosperity; the trade which he introduced brought wealth into the country, and promoted the sciences and arts, which there found an active protector in the king, who was himself 4istinguished for his learning. The building of the temple and of several palaces introduced foreign artists, by whom the Hebrews were instructed. Many foreigners, ana even sovereign princes, were attracted to Jerusalem, in order to see and converse with the prosperous royal sage. The regular progress of all business, the arrangements for security from foreign and domestic enemies, the army, the cavalry, the armories, the chariots, the palaces, the royal household, the good order in the administration, and in the service of the court, excited as much admiration as the wisdom and learning of the viceroy of Jehovah. So much was effected by the single influence of David, because he scru- pulously conformed himself to the theocracy of the Hebrew state."* Such is the argument to the history of Solomon's reign, to the details of which we now proceed. Although Solomon was not the first-born, nor even the eldest living son of David, but succeeded to the throne through the special appointment of the Supreme King. * Jahn, b. iv. sect. 33. 318 AN ILLUSTRATED Jehovah, there was one circumstance which, from the usual notions of the Orientals, could not but be highly favorable to him, even had all his elder brothers been alive. Amnon had been bom before his father became king, and Absalom and Adonijah while he was king of Judah only ; while Solomon was bora when his father was king over all Israel, and lord over many neighboring states. And in the East there is a strong prejudice in favor of him who is the son of the king and of the kingdom, that is, who is bora while his father actually reigns over the states which he leave* at his death. Thus, therefore, if at the death of David, Amnon and Absalom had been alive, as well as Adonijah and Solomon, there might have been a contest among them on these grounds: — Amnon would have claimed as the eldest son of David; Absalom would probably have disputed this claim on the ground, first, that he was the first-born after David became a king ; and, secondly, on the ground that his mother was of a royal house : this claim could not have been disputed by Adonijah ; but he would have considered his own claim good as against Amnon, on the one hand, and as against Solomon on the other. But Solomon might have claimed on the same ground as the others against Amnon; and against Absalom and Adonijah, on the ground that their father was only king of Judah when they were born, but king of all Israel at the time of his own birth. And this claim would, in fact, have been but a carrying out of the principle on which Absalom and Adonijah are supposed to op- pose Amnon; and in this claim there would have seemed so much reason to an Ori- ental, that, apart from all other considerations, we doubt not it would have found many adherents in Israel ; and we have no doubt that it did operate in producing a more cheerful acquiescence in the preference given to Solomon. Soon after the death of his father, Solomon discovered a new plot of Adonijah's, so deeply laid and carefully veiled, that he even ventured to make the king's own mother, Bathsheba, an acting though unconscious party in it. And here it may be proper to observe, that in eastern countries, where polygamy is allowed, or not for- bidden, by the law, and where the kings have numerous wives and concubines, there is no dignity analogous to that which the sole wife of a sovereign occupies in Europe. In fact, there is no queen, in the proper sense of the word, as applied to the consort of a king. But the mother of the king (and, next to her, or instead of her, the mother of the heir apparent) is the woman of the greatest influence and highest station in the state, and the one whose condition is the most queenly of any which the East affords. According to this view, Bathsheba — during the latter part of David's reign, as mother of the heir apparent, and during at least the early portion of Solomon's reign, as mother of the king — was, in fact, queen of Israel ; whence in both periods we find her taking a part in public affairs, which, however slight, is such as none but a woman so placed could have taken. The first manifestation of Adonijah's design was to endeavor to procure permission to espouse Abishag, one of the wives of his father, whom he had taken in his last days and had left a virgin. He had the address to interest Bathsheba m his object, anil to get her to propose the subject to the king, although part of what he said to her as an inducement was well calculated to awaken her suspicions: " Thou know- est," said he, " that the kingdom was mine, and that all Israel set their faces on me, that I should reign; howbeit, the kingdom is turned about, and is become my brother's, for it was his from the Lord." The king was seated on his throne when Bathsheba appeared before him to urge the suit of Adonijah. He rose when he beheld her, and bowed to her; after which he caused a seat to be brought and placed at his right hand for her. She then made " the one small petition" with which she was charged. The king instantly saw through the whole ; and knew enough of the several parties to feel assured (or actu- ally knew) that the measure had been prompted by Joab and Abiathar, or that at least they were parties to the ulterior design. According to what we have already stated respecting the widows of a deceased king, it is obvious that Solomon recog- nised in this insidious demand a plan formed to accredit the former pretensions of Aaonijah. He therefore answered warmly, "And why dost thou ask Abishag, the Shunammite, for Adonijah ? Ask for him the kingdom also ; for he is mine elder brother, even for him, and for Abiathar the priest, and for Joab the son of Ze- ruiah." By this he clearly intimated that he considered Joab and Abiathar as par- ties in this new plot, and, as such, liable to the punishments which he proceeded to inflict. Adonijah he ordered to be put to death, as one whom it was no longer safe HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 311* Great Mogul on his Throne. Howdah of an Indian Prince. 320 AN ILLUSTRATED to pardon. On receiving this news, Joab justified the suspicions (li not morej of the king, by iieeing for refuge to the sanctuary of the altar — a plain act of a guilty con- science. When this was told to Solomon, he ordered Benaiah to go and put him to death. Benaiah went, and ordered him, in the king's name, to come forth. This he refused, saying, " Nay, but I will die here !" either in the hope that Solomon would so far regard the altar as not to slay him, or that he would die there in the hope that God, Avhose altar it was, would be gracious to him. This being a new case, in which Benaiah liked not to act on his own responsibility, he returned to report the matter to the king, who, with great firmness, and with a freedom from superstition which shows how well he understood the letter and spirit of the law, said, " Do as he hath said, and slay him there, and bury him, that thou mayest take away the in- nocent blood, which Joab shed, from me and from the house of my father." "So Joab was slain at the altar, and buried in the garden of his own house in the. wilderness. Benaiah, who had been his executioner, Avas made commander-in-chief in his room. It appears that in the Hebrew kingdom, as in some other ancient and in some modern states, it was the duty of the king's chief officer to execute his sentence upon high Defenders. As to Abiathar, who had before joined Adonijah, and was no stranger to the more Fecent intrigue, he had shared the fate of Joab, if the king had not been mindful of his early and long-continued attachment to David, and respected the sacred character he bore. He was commanded to withdraw to his estate in Anathoth, and no longer presume to exercise his sacerdotal functions. Thus was the house of Eli finally de- graded in the person of Abiathar, and the house of Eleazer completely restored in the person of Zadok. This affair reminded Solomon of the necessity of keeping watch over another dis- affected person, Shimei, as counselled by David. He therefore ordered him to fix his residence in Jerusalem, which he engaged him by oath not to leave, forewarning him thai the breach of this engagement would be at the expense of his life. Of this Shimei was properly mindful for two years; but then he was induced to leave the city, and went as far as Gath (a suspicious quarter) in pursuit of two runaway slaves He was therefore, on his return, consigned to the sword of Benaiah. By the removal of these dangerous persons, Solomon felt his throne secured to him. He then sought an alliance worthy of the rank to which his kingdom had at- tained. The nearest power, from an alliance with which even he might derive honor, was that of Egypt. He therefore demanded and received the daughter of the reigning Pharaoh in marriage. His new spouse was received by the king of Israel with great magnificence, and was lodged in " the city of David," until the new and splendid palace, which he had already commenced, should be completed. That Sol- omon should thus contract an alliance, on equal terms, with the reigning family of that great nation which had formerly held the Israelites in bondage, w r as, in the or- dinary point of view, a great thing for him, and shows the relative importance into which the Hebrew kingdom had now risen. The king is in no part of Scripture blamed for this alliance, even in places where it seems unlikely that blame would nave been spared had he been considered blameworthy ; and as we know that the Egyptians were idolaters, this absence of blame may intimate that Solomon stipulated that the Egyptian princess should abandon the worship of her own gods, and conform to the Jewish law. This at least was what would be required by the law of Moses, which the king was not likely (at least, at this time of his life) to neglect. Nor need we suppose that the royal family of Egypt would make much difficulty in this; for, except among the Israelites, the religion of a woman has never in the East been con- sidered of much consequence. Solomon, soon after, sought by his example to restore the proper order of public worship. At Gibeon was the tabernacle and altar of Moses, and there, notwithstand- ing the absence of the ark, the symbol of the divine presence, the Shechinah, still abode. This therefore was, according to the law, the only proper seat of public worship, and the place to which the tribes should resort to render homage to the Great King. Therefore, at one of the religious festivals, the king repaired to Gibeon, accompanied by all his court, the officers of his army, and the chiefs and elders of his people, with a vast multitude of the people. There, in the midst of all the state and ceremony of the holy solemnities, the king presented, to be offered on the brazen altar, a thousand beasts, as a holocaust. This solemn act of homage from the youns HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 321 u I iqgffi^&V S22 AN ILLUSTRATED king was acceptable to God, who in the following night manifested himself to him in a dream, and promised to satisfy whatever wish he might then form. Instead of expressing the usual desires which animate kings, as well as others, for wealth, and glory, and length of days, Solomon expressed his sense of the difficulties, to one so young, of the high station to which he had been called; and, humbly conscious of his lack of the experience required to conduct well the affairs of his large empire and numerous people, he prayed for wisdom— nothing but wisdom : " I am but a youth : I know not how to go or to come in. And thy servant is in the midst of thy people, whom thou hast chosen, a great people, that can not be numbered nor counted for multitude. Give, therefore, thy servant an understanding heart to judge thy peo- ple, that I may discern between good and evil : for who is able to judge this thy so great a people" ?" This request which Solomon had made was highly pleasing to God. That which he had asked was promised to him in abounding measure— wis- dom such as none before him had ever possessed, or should possess in future times: and since he had made so excellent a choice, that which he had not asked should also be given to him — riches and honors beyond all the kings of his time, and, beside this, length of days, if he continued in obedience. Solomon awoke ; and feeling within himself that illumination of mind and spirit which assured him that his dream had indeed been oracular and divine, he returned with great joy to Jeru- salem. Soon after this, the discharge of those judicial duties which engage so much of the attention of eastern kings, gave him an opportunity of displaying so much discern- ment as satisfied the people of his uncommon endowments, and his eminent qualifi- cations for his high place. This was his celebrated judgment between the two har- lots who both claimed a living child, and both disclaimed one that had died ; in which he discovered the rightful owner of the living child by calling forth that self-denying tenderness which always reigns in a mother's heart.* This produced the very best effect among all the people ; for, generally, nothing is better understood and appre- ciated, popularly, than an acute and able judicial decision of some difficult point in a case easily understood, and by which the sympathies are much engaged. The preparations for the temple had from the first engaged the attention of Solo- mon. Among the first who sent to congratulate him on his succession was Hiram, kiag of Tyre, who has already been named as an attached friend and ally of David. The value of the friendship offered by this monarch was fully appreciated by Solo- mon, Avho returned the embassy with a letter, in which he opened the noble design he entertained, and solicited the same sort of assistance in the furtherance of it, a& the same king had rendered to his father David, when building his palace. Hiram assented with great willingness, and performed the required services with such fidel- ity and zeal, as laid the foundation of a lasting friendship between the kings, and to the formation of other mutually beneficial connexions between them. The forests of the Lebanon mouniains only could supply the timber required for this great work. Such of these forests as lay nearest the sea were in the possession of the Phoenicians . among whom timber was in such constant demand that they had acquired great and acknowledged skill in the felling and transportation thereof, and hence it was of much importance that Hiram consented to employ large bodies of men in Lebanon to hew timber, as well as others to perform the service of bringing it down to the seaside, whence it was to be taken along the coast in floats to the port of Joppa, from which olace it could be easily taken across the country to Jerusalem. This portion of the assistance rendered by Hiram was of the utmost value and importance. If he had declined Solomon's proposals, all else that he wanted might have been obtained from Egypt. But that country was so far from being able to supply timber, that it wanted it more than almost any nation. Solomon also desired that Phoenician artificers of all descriptions should be sent to Jerusalem, particularly such as excelled in the arts of design, and in the working of gold, silver, and other metals, as well as precious stones; nor was h° insensible of the value and beauty of those scarlet, purple, and other fine dyes, in the preparation and application of which the Tyrians excelled. Men skilled in all these branches of art were largely supplied by Hiram. He sent also a person of his own name, a Tyr- iau by birth, who seems to have been a second Bezaleel ; for his abilities were so c;roat, and his attainments so extensive and various, that he was skilled not only in * See the oiiginal nanative in I Kings iii. 16-28 HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 323 the working of metals, but in all kinds of works in wood and stone, and even in em- broidery, in tapestry, in dyes, and the manufacture of all sorts of fine cloth. And not only this, but his general attainments in art, and his inventive powers, enabled him to devise the means of executing, and to execute, whatever work in art might be proposed to him. This man was a treasure to Solomon, who made h ; m overseer not only of the men whom the king of Tyre now sent, but of his own workmen, and those whom David had formerly engaged and retained in his employment. In return for all these advantages, Solomon engaged on his part to furnish the king of Tyre yearly with 2,500 quarters of wheat, and 150,000 gallons of pure olive oil, for his own use, beside furnishing the men employed in Lebanon with the same corn quantities, respectively, of wheat and barley, and the same liquid quantities of wine and oil. Josephus informs us that the correspondence on this subject between Solomon and Hiram, copies of which are given by him as well as in the books of Kings and Chron- icles, were in his time still preserved in the archives of Tyre. Three years were spent in preparation ; but at last all was ready, and the founda- tion of this famous temple was laid in the fourth year of Solomon's reign (1027 B. C), in the second month, and finished in the eleventh year and eighth month; being a space of seven years and six months. Many elaborate treatises have been written on this magnificent structure, but no satisfactory result has been obtained therefrom. This may arise from a mistaken reference to classical ideas and models, and from the scanty knowledge we possess of ancient and modern oriental architecture. Hence it is that modern commentators and illustrators of Scripture have generally shrunk from the subject ; and hence the many conjectural plans which have been exhibited as illustrative of this far-famed building, must be looked upon as inconclusive. The only safe ground we have to go upon is Scripture, whence our account shall be derived, and, for the most part, in the sacred historian's own language. We learn, from the history of David, that when he was raised to the throne of Israel, he piously resolved to erect a temple to the honor of Jehovah. Thus, in one of his beautiful psalms, he says: "Lord, remember David, and all his afflictions ■ how he sware unto the Lord, and vowed unto the mighty God of Jacob ; surely I will not come into the tabernacle of my house, nor go up into my bed; I will not give sleep to mine eyes, or slumber to mine eyelids, until I find out a place for the Lord, a habitation for the mighty God of Jacob," Psa. cxxxii. 1-5. Because, however, Da- vid was a man of war, God, by his prophet Nathan, intimated to him that while he approved of his design, he nevertheless should not be permitted to build him a house; but, at the same time, he gave him a promise that his son and successor should fulfil his pious intention : see 1 Chron. xvii. The good monarch acquiesced in the Divine will ; and, to enable his son to perform so glorious a work, he himself commenced preparations, and we find him, in his last moments, instructing Solomon in God's promises, and in his duty in building the temple, at the conclusion of which he states what material he had prepared for the undertaking : " Now, behold, in my trouble I have prepared for the house of the Lord a hundred thousand talents of gold, and a thousand thousand talents of silver; and of brass and iron without weight, for it is in abundance : timber also and stone have I prepared ; and thou mayest add thereto. Moreover there are workmen with thee in abundance, hewers and workers of stone and timber, and all manner of cunning men for every manner of work. Of the gold, the silver, and the brass, and the iron, there is no number. Arise, therefore, and be doing, and the Lord be with thee." — 1 Chron. xxii. 14-16. David, moreover, gave to Solomon " the pattern of the porch, and of the houses thereof, and of the treasuries thereof, and of the upper chambers thereof, and of the inner parlors thereof, and of the place of the mercy- seat, and the pattern of all that he had by the spirit, of the courts of the house of the Lord, and of all the chambers round about, of the treasuries of the house of God, and of the treasuries of the dedicated things ; also for tiie courses of the priests and the Levites, and for all the work of the service of the house of the Lord, and for all the vessels of service in the house of the Lord. He gave of gold bv weight for things of gold, for all instruments of all manner of service ; silver also for all instruments of silver by weight, for all instruments of every kind of service : even the weight for the candlesticks of gold, and for their lamps of gold, by weight foi 324 AN ILLUSTRATED every candlestick, and for the lamps thereof: and for the candlesticks of silver by weight, both for the candlestick, and also for the lamps thereof, according to the use of every candlestick. And by weight he gave gold for the tables of showbread, for every table ; and likewise silver for the tables of silver : also pure gold for the flesh- hooks, and the Dowls, and the cups ; and for the golden basins he gave gold by weight for every basin; and likewise silver by weight for every basin of silver: and for the altar of incense refined gold by weight ; and gold fur the pattern of the chariot of the cherubim, that spread out their -wings, and covered the ark of the covenant of the Lord. All this, said David, the Lord made me to understand in writing by his hand upon me, even all the works of this pattern. And David said to Solomon his son, Be strong and of good courage, and do it : fear not, nor be dismayed, for the Lord God, even my God, will be with thee ; he will not fail thee, nor forsake thee, until thou hast finished all the work for the service of the house of the Lord. And, behold, the courses of the priests and the Levites, even they shall be with thee for all the ser- vice of the house of God : and there shall be with thee for all manner of workman- ship every willing skilful man, for any manner cf service : also the princes and all the people will be wholly at thy commandment." 1 Chron. xxviii. 11-21. The youthful monarch was not unmindful of his royal parent's charge. No sooner was he seated peaceably on his throne, than we find him addressing Hiram king of Tyre in these words : *• Thou knowest how that David my father could not build a house unto the name of the Lord his God for the wars which were about him on ev- ery side, until the Lord put them under the soles of his feet. But now the Lord my God hath given me rest on every side, so that there is neither adversary nor evil occurrent. And, behold, I purpose to build a house unto the name of the Lord my God, as the Lord spake unto David my father, saying, Thy son whom I will set upon thy throne in thy room, he shall build a house unto my name. Now therefore com- mand thou that they hew me cedar-trees out of Lebanon ; and my servants shall be with thy servants : and unto thee will I give hire for thy servants according to all that thou shalt appoint : for thou knowest that there is not among us any that can skill to hew timber like unto the Sidonians." 1 Kings v. 3-6. In this request, as we have already stated, Hiram, who was the friend of Solomon, complied, and the building was commenced, in the four hundred and eighteenth ytar after the children of Israel were come out of the land of Egypt. There were em- ployed, in the construction of this building, one hundred and eighty-three thousand men, including Hebrews and Canaanites ; and though everything was made rea ly ere it came to the spot, so that, in the language of Holy Writ, " there was neither hammer nor axe nor any tool of iron heard in the house, while it was in building ." L Kings vi. 7. The site on which the temple was built was Mount Moriah, " where the Lord ap- peared unto David his father, in the place that David had prepared in the threshk^- floor of Oman the Jebusite." 2 Chron. ii. 1. The description which the sacred historian gives of the building is as follows : " And the house which King Solomon built for the Lord, the length thereof was threescore cubits, and the breadth thereof twenty cubits, and the height thereof thirty cubits. And the porch before the temple of the house, twenty cubits was the length thereof, according to the breadth of the house ; and ten cubits was the breadth there- of before the house. And for the house he made windows of narrow lights" (or windows broad within and narrow without). " And against the wall of the house he built chambers round about, against the walls of the house round about, both of the temple and of the oracle : and he made chambers round about : the nethermost chamber was five cubits broad, and the middle was six cubits broad, and the third was seven cubits broad : for without in the wall of the house he made narrowed rests round about, that the beams should not be fastened in the walls of the house. The door for the middle chamber was in the right side of the house: and they went up with winding stairs into the middle chamber, and out of the middle into the third. So he built the hjuse and finished it ; and covered the house with beams and boards of cedar. And then he built chambers against all the house, five cubits high : and they rested on the house with timber of cedar. And he built the walls of the house within with boards of cedar, both the floor of the house, and the walls of the ceiling: and he covered them on the inside with wood, and covered the floor of the house with planks of fir. And he built twenty cubits on the sides of the house, both the floor HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 325 and the walls with boards of cedar: he even built them for it within, even for the oracle, even for the most holy place. And the house, that is the temple before it, was forty cubits long. And the cedar of the house within was carved with knops [gourds] and open flowers : all was cedar ; there was no stone seen. And the oracle he prepared in the house within, to set there the ark of the covenant of the Lord. And the oracle in the forepart was twenty cubits in length, and twenty cubits in breadth, and twenty cubits in the height thereof: and he overlaid it with pure gold; and so covered the altar which was of cedar. So Solomon overlaid the house within with pure gold : and he made a partition by the chains of gold before the oracle; and he overlaid it with gold. And the whole house he overlaid with gold, until he had finished all the house ; also the whole altar that was by the oracle he overlaid with gold. And within the oracle he made two cherubim of olive-tree, each ten cubits high. And five cubits was the one wing of the cherub, and five cubits the other wing of the cherub : from the uttermost part of the one wing unto the utter- most part of the other were ten cubits. And the other cherub was ten cubits : both the cherubim were of one measure and one size. The height of the one cherub was ten cubits, and so was it of the other cherub. And he set the cherubim within the inner house : and they stretched forth the wings of the cherubim, so that the wing of the one touched the one Avail, and the wing of the other cherub touched the other wall ; and their wings touched one another in the midst of the house. And he over- laid the cherubim with gold. And he carved all the walls of the house round about with carved figures of cherubim and palm-trees and open flowers within and without, knd the floor of the house he overlaid with gold, within and without. And for the entering of the oracle he made doors of olive-tree: the lintel and side-posts were a fifth part of the wail. The two doors also were of olive-tree ; and he carved upon them carvings of cherubim and palm-trees and open flowers, and overlaid them with gold, and spread gold upon the cherubim, and upon the palm-trees. So also made he for the door of the temple-posts of olive-tree, a fourth part of the wall. And the two doors were of fir-tree : the two leaves of the one door were folding, and the two leaves of the other door were folding. And he carved thereon cherubim and palm-trees, and open flowers : and covered them with gold fitted upon the carved work. And he built the inner court with three rows of hewed stone, and a row of cedar-beams." 1 Kings vi. In the next chapter we read of two remarkable pillars connected with the porch. Speaking of Hiram, whom Solomon had caused to be fetched from Tyre, to aid in the erection of the temple, the sacred historian says : " He was a widow's son of the tribe of Naphtali, and his father was a man of Tyre, a worker in brass; and he was filled with wisdom, and understanding, and cunning, to work all works in brass. And he came to King Solomon, and wrought all his work. For he cast two pillars of brass, of eighteen cubits high apiece ; and a line of twelve cubits did compass either of them about. And he made two chapiters of molten brass, to set upon the tops of the pillars : the height of the one chapiter was five cubits, and the height of the other chapiter was five cubits : and nets of checkerwork and wreaths of chain- work, for the chapiters which were upon the top of the pillars ; seven for the one chapiter, and seven for the other chapiter. And he made the pillars, and two rows round about upon the one network, to cover the chapiters that were upon the top, with pomegranates : and so did he for the other chapiter. And the chapiters that were upon the top of the pillars were of lily-work in the porch four cubits. And the chapiters upon the two pillars had pomegranates also above, over against the belly which was by the network : and the pomegranates were two hundred in rows round about upon the other chapiter. And he set up the .pillars in the porch of the tem- ple: and he set up the right pillar, and called the name thereof Jachin" (which may be read, "it shall stand") ; "and he set up the left pillar, and called the name there- of Boaz" (which may be read, " in strength," thus forming a kind of sentence, " It shall stand in strength"). 1 Kings vii. 14-21. The reader will find other interesting details concerning the temple in the concluding verses of this chapter, and in the parallel chapters, 2 Chron. iii.-vi. ; 1 Chron. xxii.-xxix. ; and 1 Kings vii., viii. The temple, with all things destined for its service, and every arrangement con- nected with it, being completed, its dedication was celebrated the year after, with a magnificence worthy of the object and the occasion. All the chief men in Israel were present — the heads of tribes, and paternal chiefs, together with multitudes of S26 AN ILLUSTRATED people from all parts of the land. The priests, if not the Levites, e rnind to receive. These, however, consist chiefly of numerous limestone columns, still standing, on the upper part of the hill, but without their capitals. Hardy counted eighty that were standing, besides many that lay prostral i Ti : ere are also some remains of fortifications ; but the most conspicuous ruin is that whicli appears in the cut on page 315. Th:s was a large church, attributed to the Emperess Helena, and said to have been built over the dungeon in which John the Baptist was confined and afterward beheaded by order of Herod. This cave or dungeon is still pointed out : besides which there are under the church several vaults, which probably opened fnto the sides of the hill. The building itself is in a very elaborate but fantas:: : style of architecture ; the columns used in which are of no known order, although the capitals approach nearer to the Corinthian than to any other. The east end, with its pentagonal projection, is nearly perfect, con- firming a remark of Maund'rell. that if any portion of a church is let* standing in these parts'it is sure to h* Lc pastpni riid HISTORY OF THE BIBL 345 ;U6 AN ILLUSTRATED which apj ears never to have been founded on very strong principles, gave way. It was not king before the acts which stained the later years of his father were more than equalled by him. Not only was idolatry openly tolerated and practised, but also the abominable acts, outrageous even to the mere instincts of morality, which some of these idolatries sanctioned or required. Thus the abominations" of Judah very soon exceeded those of Israel. And we shall, throughout the historical period en which we have entered, observe one very important distinction in the religious (which, according to the spirit of the Hebrew institutions, means also the political) condition of the two kingdoms. Israel rested with tolerable uniformity in a sort of intermediate system between the true religion and idolatry, with enough of elementary truth to preserve some show of fidelity to the system, and enough of idolatry and human invention to satisfy the corrupt tendencies of the age and country. Hence, while on the one hand it never, under its best kings, reached that purity of adherence to the Mosaical system which was sometimes exemplified in the sister kingdom, so, on the other, it never, or very rarely, fell to those depths of iniquity to which Judah sometimes sunk under its more wicked, and weak kings. For Judah, resting on no such intermediate point as had been found in Israel, was in a state of constant oscil lation between the extremes of good and evil. In the case of Rehoboam, the loose principles which prevailed at the latter end of his father's reign, together with the fact that the mother, from whom his first ideas had been imbibed, was an Ammonitess, may partly account for the extreme facility of his fall. Indeed, with reference to the latter fact, it may be observed that among the kings there is scarcely one known to he the son of a foreign and consequently idolatrous mother, who did not fall into idolatry; a circumstance which is sufficient alone to explain and justify the policy by which such connexions were forbidden. The chastisement of Rehoboam and his people was not Jong delayed. It was inflicted by the Egyptians, who, in the fifth year of Rehoboam, invaded the land under Shishak their king, in such strong force as intimated the expectation of a more formidable resistance than was encountered; or rather, perhaps, was designed to shorten the war by overawing opposition. There were twelve hundred chariots, sixty thousand horsemen, and a vast body of infantry, the latter composed chiefly from the subject nations of Lybia and Ethiopia. Shishak took with ease the fenced cities on which Rehoboam had placed so much reliance ; and when he appeared before Jerusalem, that city appears to have opened its gates to him. Here he reaped the first-fruits of that rich spoil, from the gold of the temple and of the palace, which supplied so many subsequent demands. In the extremity of distress, while the city was in the hands of an insulting conqueror, who stripped the most sacred places of their costly ornaments and wealth, the king of Judah and his people turned repent- ingly to God, and implored deliverance from his hand. He heard them, and inclined Shishak to withdraw with the rich spoil he had gained, without attempting to retain permanent possession of his conquest. Astonished himself at the facility with which that conquest had been made, this king despised the people who had submitted so unresistingly to his arms, and, according to the testimony of Herodotus,* cited by Josephus himself, he erected, at different points on his march home, triumphal columns, charged Avith emblems very little to the honor of the nation which had not opposed him. Although it is difficult to assign a specific reason, beyond a conqueror's thirst for spoil, for this invasion of the dominions cf the son by a power which had been so friendly to the father, it does not strike us, as it does some writers, that the difficulty is increased by the fact of the matrimonial alliance which Solomon had formed with the royal family of Egypt. Rehoboam was born before that alliance was contracted, and he and his'motherwere not likely to be regarded with much favor by the Egyp- tian princess or her family. Indeed it would seem that she had died, or her influence had declined, or her friends deemed her wrong, before the latter end of Solomon's reign ; for it i evident that the king of Egypt, this very Shishak, was not on the most friendly terms with. Solomon, since he granted his favor and protection to the t'us-itive Jeroboam, whose prospective pretensions to divide the kingdom with the son of "Solomon forms the only apparent ground of the distinction with which he iva> treated. This circumstance may direct attention to what appears to us the great ei * Hen dolus,!, ms. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 347 probability, thai the expedition was undertaken at the suggestion of Jeroboam, who had much cause to be alarmed at the defection of his subjects to Rehoboam, and at the diligence which that king employed in strengthening his kingdom. The rich plunder which was to be obtained would, when pointed out, be an adequate induce- ment to the enterprise. The severe lesson administered by this invasion to Rehoboam and his people was not in vain, for we read no more of idolatrous abominations during the eleven remain- ing years of this reign. In consequence, these were rather prosperous years for the kingdom ; and, save a few skirmishes with the king of Israel, we learn of no troubles by which it was, during these years, disturbed. But, like his father, Rehoboam " de- sired many wives." His harem contained eighteen wives and sixty concubines,- a number which, we can not doubt, was much opposed to the notions of the Hebrew people, although it seems rather moderate as compared with the establishment ot Solomon, or those which we still find among the kings of the East. Of all his wives, the one Rehoboam loved the most was Maachah, a daughter (or grand-daughter*) of Absalom. Her son, Abijah, he designed for his successor in the throne : to ensure which object, he made adequate provision for his other sons while he lived, and pru- dently separated them from each other, by dispersing them through his dominions as governors of the principal towns. This policy was successful ; for although this king had twenty-eight sons, besides three-score daughters, his settlement of the crown was not disputed at his death. This event took place in the year 973 B. C, in the eigh- teenth year of his reign. Abijah, otherwise called Abijam, succeeded his father, and the first public act of his short reign appears to justify the preference which had been given to him. Jeroboam, whose policy it was to harass and weaken the house of David, and to render the two kingdoms as inimical to each other as possible, thought the succession of the new king, young and inexperienced, a favorable opportunity for an aggressive movement. He seems therefore to have made a general military levy, which amounted to the pro- digious number of eight hundred thousand men. Abijah when he heard of this for- midable muster was not discouraged, but, although he could raise only half the number of men, took the field against his opponent. They met near Mount Zemarim, on the borders of Ephraim. The armies were drawn out in battle array, when Abijah, who was posted on an elevated spot, finding the opportunity favorable, beckoned with his hand, and began to harangue Jeroboam and the hostile army. His speech was good, and to the purpose ; hut it does not seem to us entitled to the unqualified praise which it has generally received. He began with affirming the divine right of the house of David to reign over all Israel, by virtue of the immutable covenant by which Jehovah had promised to David that his posterity should reign for ever. Consequently he treated the secession of the ten tribes as an unprincipled act of rebellion against the royal dynasty of David, and against God — an act whereby the crafty Jeroboam, with a number of vain and lawless associates, had availed themselves of the weakness and inexperience of Rehoboam to deprive the chosen house of its just rights. This state- ment doubtless imbodies the view which the house of David, and the party attached to its interests, took of the recent event. They regarded as a rebellion what was truly a revolution ; and which, although, like other revolutions, it had its secret springs (as in the jealousy between the tribes of Ephraim and Judah), was not only justifiable in its abstract principles, but on the peculiar theory of the Hebrew constitution : for it had the previous sanction and appointment of Jehovah, as declared to both parties; and, in its immediate cause, sprung from a most insulting refusal of the representative of the dynasty to concede that redress of grievances which ten twelfths of the whole nation demanded, and which it had a right to demand and obtain before it recognised him as king. However, a king of Judah could not well be expected to take any other than a dynastic and party view of this great question : and that such, necessarily, was the view of Abijah is what we have desired to explain, as the generally good spirit * This lady is mentioned in three places, and m all of them the name of her father is differently given- In 1 Kings xv. 2, it is " Maachah, the daughter of Abishalom ;" in 2 Chron. xi. 20, "Maachah, the daug-htei ?f Absalom ;" and in 2 Chron. xiii., " Michaiah, the daughter of Uriel of Gibeah." The Jews believe that Absalom the son of David is intended. This does not appear quite certain ; but if so we may take their explanation that Maachah was the daughter of Tamar, the daughter of Absalom ; in which case, the com- parison of texts will intimate that Uriel married Tamar, and Maachah was their daughter, which conse- quently makes her the grand-daughter of Absalom and daughter of Uriel. This, upon the whole, seems more probable than that the several names, Abishalom. Absalom, and Uriel, all point to the same person a9 the father of Maachah. 3-45 AN ILLUSTRATED of his harangue has disposed hasty thinkers to take the impression which he intended to convey. With more justice, Abijah proceeded to animadvert on the measures — the corrup- tions and arbitrary changes — by which Jeroboam had endeavored to secure his king- dom : and, with becoming pride, contrasted this with the beautiful order in which, according to the law of Moses, and the institutions of David and Solomon, the worship of Jehovah was conducted by the Levitical priesthood in that "holy and beautiful house" which the Great King honored with the visible symbol of his inhabitance. He concluded : " We keep the charge of Jehovah our God ; but ye have forsaken him. And, behold, God himself is with us for our captain, and his priests with sounding trumpets to cry alarm against you. children of Israel, fight not against Jehovah the God of your fathers ; for ye shall not prosper." (2 Chron. xiii. 11, 12.) By Jeroboam this harangue was only viewed as an opportunity for executing a really clever military operation. He secretly ordered a body of men to file round the hill, and attack the Judahites in the rear, while he assailed them in front. This manoeuvre was so well executed, that Abijah, by the time he had finished his speech, perceived that he was surrounded by the enemy. The army of Judah raised a cry of astonish- ment and alarm, and a universal panic would in all likelihood have ensued. But the priests at that instant sounded their silver trumpets, at which well-known and inspir- iting signal the more stout-hearted raised a cry for help to Jehovah, and rushed upon the enemy ; and their spirited example raised the courage and faith of the more timid enid wavering. The host of Israel could not withstand the force which this divine impulse gave to the arm of Judah. Their dense mass was broken and fled, and of the whole number it is said not fewer than five hundred thousand were slain, — a slaughter, as Josephus (Antiq. viii. 2, 3) remarks, such as never occurred in any other war, whether it were of the Greeks or the barbarians.* This would still be true il the number had been much smaller. " In numbers so large," Jahn (book v., sect. 36 j remarks, " there may be some error of the transcribers ; but it is certain that after this defeat the kingdom of Israel was considerably weakened, while that of Judah made constant, progress in power and importance. We must here mention, once for all, that, owing to the mistakes of transcribers in copying numerals, Ave can not answer for the correctness of the great numbers of men which are mentioned here and in the sequel When there are no means of rectifying these numbers, we set them down as they occur m the books.'''' Such also is our own practice. This great victory was pursued by Abijah, in the re-taking and annexation to his dominion of some border towns and districts, some of which had originally belonged to Judah and Benjamin, but which the Israelites had found means to include in their portion of the divided kingdom. Among these towns was Bethel ; and this being the seat of one of the golden calves, the loss of it must have been a matter of peculiar mortification to Jeroboam, and of triumph to Abijah. The reign of Abijah was not by any means answerable to the expectations which his speech and his victory are calculated to excite. We are told that "he walked in all the sins of his father," and that " his heart was not perfect with Jehovah his God ;" by which it would appear that he did not take sufficient heed to avoid and remove the idolatries and abominations which Solomon and Rehoboam had introduced or tolerated. He died in 970 B. C, after a reign of three years, leaving behind him twenty-two sons , and sixteen daughters, whom he had by fourteen wives. The son who succeeded him was named Asa. He was still very young, and the affairs of the kingdom appear for sometime to have been administered by his grand- mother, Maachah, whose name has already been mentioned. Asa, for his virtues, hi«< fidelity to the principles of the theocracy, and the prosperity and victorv with which he was in consequence favored, takes place in the first rank of the kings of Judah. He enjoys the high character that " his heart was perfect with Jehovah all his days : and he did that which was right with Jehovah, as did his father David.' His first cares were directed toward the utter uprooting of the idolatries and abomina- * With reference to the high numbers which occur here, Dr. Hales observes : " The numbers in this won- derful battle are probably corrupt, and should be reduced to forty thousand, eighty thousand, and fifty thou- sand (slain), as in the Latin Vulgate of Sixtus Quintus, and many earlier editions, and in the old* Latin translation of Josephus ; and that such were the readings in the Greek text of that author originally, Vig- noles judiciously collects from Abarbanel's charge against Josephus of having maae Jeroboam's loss nc r».ore than fifty thousand men. contrary to the Hebrew text." See Kennicott's " Dissertations.'' vol. i.. p. 533. •ind vol. ii., p. 201, &c, 564. To this we mav add the remaik of Jahn. in which we more entirely concur HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 349 lions which had been suffered to creep in during the preceding reigns. He drove from his states the corrupters of youth, and with an unsparing hand he purged Jerusalem of the infamies which had long harbored there. The idols were overthrown and broken in pieces, and the groves which had sheltered the dark abominations of idol- atry were cut down: even his grandmother, Maachah, he deprived of the authority — removing her from being queen — which she had abused to the encouragement of idol- atry ; and the idols which she had set up he utterly destroyed. By thus clearing them from defiling admixtures, the pure and grand doctrines and practices of the Mosaical system shone forth with a lustre that seemed new in that corrupt age. Again the priests of Jehovah were held in honor by the people ; and again the temple, its past losses being in part repaired by the royal munificence, was provided with all that suited the dignity of the splendid ritual service there rendered to God ; for Asa was enabled to replace with silver and gold a portion of the precious things which Shishak had taken from the temple, and which Rehoboam had supplied with brass. Ten years of prosperity and peace rewarded the pious zeal of the king of Judah. In these years much was done by him to strengthen and improve his kingdom, espe- cially in repairing and strengthening the fortified, towns, and in surrounding with strong walls and towers many which had not previously been fortified. We are also informed that " Asa had an army of three hundred thousand out of Judah, who bore shields and spears ; and of two hundred and eighty thousand out of Benjamin, who bore shields and spears : all these were men of valor." This and other passages of tht same nature, describing the immense military force of the small kingdoms of Judah and Israel (even setting aside those which labor under the suspicion of having been altered by the copyists), appear to intimate that the general enrolment for military service which David contemplated, but was prevented from completely executing, was accomplished by later kings. It is always important to remember, however, that the modern European sense of the word army, as applied to a body of men exclusively devoted to a military profession, is unknown to the history of this period ; and in thf statement before us we are to see no more t-han that the men thus numbered wert provided with weapons (or that the king had weapons to arm them), and were, the whole or any part of them, bound to obey any call from the king into actual service An occasion for such a call occurred to Asa after ten years of prosperity and peace. His dominions were then exposed to a most formidable invasion from " Zerah the Cushite," Avith a million of men and three hundred chariots.* It is beyond the range of probability, from the state of Egypt at this time, in the reign of Osorkon I.,j- who succeeded Sheshonk (or Shishak), that an army under Zerah should have marched through Egypt from the Ethiopia south of the cataracts of the Nile. It must there- fore be concluded that the army was composed of the Cushites (or Ethiopians) of Arabia, the original seat of all the Cushites ; and as the army was partly composed of Lybians, who, if this supposition be correct, could not well have passed "from Africa through the breadth of Egypt on this occasion, it may, with very sufficient probability, be conjectured that they formed a portion of the Libyan auxiliaries in the army with which Shishak invaded Palestine, twenty-five years before, and who, instead of re- turning to their own deserts, deemed it quite as well to remain in those of Arabia Petrsea, and in the country between Egypt and Palestine. And this explanation seems to be confirmed by the fact, which appears in the sequel, that they held some border towns (such as Gerar) in this district. The flocks and herds, and the tents of the in- vading host, sufficiently intimate the nomade character of the invasion. This emergency was met by Asa in the true spirit of the theocracy. Fully con- scious of the physical inadequacy of his force to meet the enemy, he nevertheless went forth boldly to give them battle, trusting in Jehovah, who had so often given hi' ■* Josephus gives nine hundred thousand infantry and one hundred thousand cavalry, which some wou> . reduce by striking off a cipher from each number. A merely conjectural emendation is, however, so diffi- cult and hazardous, that it is better to retain the original numbers, even when doubtful. In the presen instance we may refer to what has just been said as to the distinction between the armies of that time and our own. And if A.sa in his contracted territory was able to call out above five hundred thousand men. there is no solid reason why it should be impossible to the Oushite nomades, among whom every man was able to use arms, to bring double that number together. There must always be a vast difference in num- bers between the army that must be kept and paid permanently, and that which may be raised by a genera! call upon the adult male population to a warlike enterprise, and only for the time of that enterprise. The army of Tamerlane (as we call him) is said to have amounted to one million six hundred thousand men ind that of his antagonist Bajazet to one million four hundred thousand. Laonic. Chalcocond. de rrbus Turc 1. iii. p. 98, 102. i His name is so given in the monuments, but in ancient writers it is Osorthon 350 AN ILLUSTRATED people the victory against far greater odds, and to whom he made the public and be coming appeal: — "0 Jehovah, it is nothing with thee to help, whether with many or with them that have no power: Help us, Jehovah, our God ; for we rest on thee, and in thy name we go against this multitude. Jehovah, thou art our God ; let not man prevail against thee." The consequence of this proper manifestation of reliance upon their Omnipotent King was a very splendid victory over the Cushites. They were defeated in the great battle of Mareshah,* in the valley of Zephathah, and fled before the army of Judah, which commenced a vigorous pursuit, attended with great slaughter. The Ethiopians and Lybians fled toward their tents and to Gerar and other towns, which some of them (we have supposed the Lybians) occupied on the border land toward Philistia. Here the conquerors found a rich spoil of cattle from the camps of the nomades, and of goods from the towns. On their triumphal return, they were met by the prophet Obed, who excited the piety and gratitude of the king and his army by reminding them to whom the victory was really due, even to Jehovah ; and he called to their remembrance the privilege they enjoyed, as contrasted with the kingdom of Israel, in the marked and beneficent protection and care of their Great King, and hinted at the duties which resulted from the enjoyment of such privileges. This was attended with very good effects ; and in the warmth of his gratitude for the deliver- ance with which he had been favored, Asa prosecuted his reforms with new vigor. He rooted out every remnant of idolatry, and engaged the whole people to renew their covenant with Jehovah. It appears that the effect of the manifest tokens of the diviue favor which Asa re- ceived, especially in the great victory over Zerah, was felt in the neighboring kingdom, and induced large numbers of the subjects of Baasha to migrate into his dominions. A constant and large accession of men, induced by such considerations, and by revived attachment to the theocracy, was calculated to give, and did give, a vast superiority of moral character to the kingdom of Judah. It was probably, as intimated in the last chapter, this tendency of his most valuable subjects to migrate into Judah, which induced Baasha to take the town of Ramah, and fortify it for a frontier barrier. The measure which Asa took on this occasion, of hiring the king of Syria to forego his previous alliance with Baasha, and cause a diversion in his own favor by invading the king-dom of Israel, was effectual as to the recovery of Ramah ; for the death of Baasha, the following year, prevented him from resuming his designs. Asa availed himself of the materials which Baasha had brought together for the fortification of Ramah, to fortify the towns of Geba and Mizpeh. This advantage was, however, dearly pur- chased by the treasure of the temple and the palace which he was obliged to squan- der, to secure the assistance of the Syrians ; and still more, by the displeasure of God, who denounced this proceeding as not only wrong in itself, but as indicating a want of that confidence in him through which he had been enabled to overthrow the vast host which the Cushites brought against him. This intimation of the Divine dis- pleasure was conveyed to the king by the prophet Hanani, and was received by Asa with such resentment that he put the messenger in prison. Indeed, he appears to have grown increasingly irritable in the later years of his reign, in consequence of which he was led to commit many acts of severity and injustice. But for this some allowance may be made in consideration of his sufferings from a disease in his feet, which appears to have been the gout. With reference to this disease, Asa incurs some blame in the Scriptural narrative for his resort to " the physicians instead of relying upon God ;" the cause of which rather extraordinary censure is probably to be found in the fact that those physicians who were not priests or Levites (in whose hands the medical science of the Hebrews chiefly rested) were foreigners and idola- ters, who trusted more to superstitious rites and incantations than to the simple remedies which nature offered. With all these defects, for which much allowance may be made, Asa bears a good character in the Scriptural narrative, on account of the general rectitude of his conduct, and of his zealous services in upholding the great principles of the theocracy. Asa died in the year 929 B. ft, in the second year of Ahab,king of Israel, and after a long and, upon the whole, prosperous reign of forty-one years. He was sincerely lamented by all his subjects, who, according to their mode of testifying their final approbation, honored his remains with a magnificent funeral. His body, laid on a bed of state, was burned with vast quantities of aromatic substances : and the ashes, ■ 'this was a town fortified by Rehoboam (2 Chron. xi. 8). It was tne birthplace of the prophet Micali. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 351 collected with care, were afterward deposited in the sepulchre which he had pre- pared for himself on Mount Zion. The burning of the dead, as a rite of stpulture. had originally been regarded with dislike by the Hebrews. But a change of feeling in this matter had by this time taken place; for the practice is not now mentioned as a new thing, and had probably been some time previously introduced. Afterward burning was considered the most distinguished honor which could be rendered to the dead, and the omission of it, in the case of royal personages, a disgrace. (See 2 Chron. xvi. 14, xxi. 19; Jer. xxxiv. 5; Amos vi. 10.) But in later days the Jews conceived a dislike to this rite ; and their doctors endeavored, in consequence, to per- vert the passages of Scripture which refer to it, so as to induce a belief that the aromatic substances alone, and not the body, were burnt. ISRAEL, from b. c. 931 to b. c. 895. Ahab, the son of Omri, mounted the throne of Israel in the year 931 B. C, being the thirty-eighth year of Asa, king of Judah. This king was, throughout his reign of twenty-two years, entirely under the influence of his idolatrous and unprincipled wife, Jezebel, a daughter of Ethbaal, or Ithobalus, king of Tyre. Hitherto the irreg- ularities connected with the service before the golden calves, as symbols of Jehovah, had formed the chief offence of Israel. But now Ahab and Jezebel united their authority to introduce the gods of other nations. The king built a temple in Samaria, erected an image, and consecrated a grove to Baal, the god of the Sidonians. Jeze- bel, earnest in promoting the worship of her own god, maintained a multitude of priests and prophets of Baal. In a few years idolatry became the predominant re- ligion of the land ; and Jehovah, and the golden calves as representations of him, were viewed with no more reverence than Baal and his image. It now appeared as if the knowledge of the true God was for ever lost to the Israelites; but Elijah the prophet boldly stood up, and opposed himself to the authority of the king, and suc- ceeded in retaining many of his countrymen in the worship of Jehovah. The greater the power was which supported idolatry, so much the more striking were the prophe- cies and miracles which directed the attention of the Israelites to Jehovah, and brought disgrace upon the idols, and confusion on their worshippers. The history of this great and memorable struggle gives to the narrative of Ahab's reign an unusual prominence and extent in the Hebrew annals ; and although a writer studious of brevity might at the first view be disposed to omit, as episodical, much of the history of Elijah the Tishbite,* a little reflection will render it manifest that the prominence given to the history of this illustrious champion for the truth, was a designed and necessary result from the fact that the history of the Hebrew nation is the history of a church ; and that although the history of this great controversy might be omitted or overlooked by those who erroneously regard the history of the Hebrews merely as a political history, in the other point of view it becomes of the most vital im- portance. The first appearance of Elijah is with great abruptness to announce a drought, and consequent famine, for the punishment of the idolatry into which the nation had fallen; and that this calamity should only be removed at his own intercession. He apprehended that the iniquities of the land would bring down upon it destruction from God ; and he therefore prayed for this lesser visitation, which might possibly bring the king and people to repentance. After such a denunciation, it was necessary that the prophet should withdraw nimself from the presence and solicitations of the king, when the drought should commence, which it did, probably about the sixth year of Ahab. Accordingly, obeying the directions of the divine oracle, he withdrew to his native district beyond Jordan, and hid himself in a cave by the brook Cherith ; where the providence of God secured his support by putting it into the hearts of the Arabs encamped in the neighborhood, to send him bread and meat every morning and evening; and the brook furnished him with drink, until "the end of the year," or beginning of spring, vvhen it was dried up from the continued drought. It was probably under the irritation produced by the first pressure of the calamity, that Jezebel induced the king to issue orders for the destruction of all the prophets * He is introduced as " Elijah the Tishbite, of the inhabitants of Gilead." It is probable therefore tli.it the designation of " Tishbite" is from some town in Gilead, which can not now be e'ear'y ascertained. 352 AN ILLUSTRATED of Jehovah. I\lany of them perished: but a good and devout man, even in tin palace of Ahab, — Obadiah, the steward of his household, — managed to save a hundred of the number by sheltering them in caverns, where he provided for their maintenance until, probably, an opportunity was found for their escape into the kingdom of Judah. When the brook of Cherith was dried up, the prophet was then directed by the Divine Voice to proceed westward to Sarepta, a town of Sidon, under the dominion of Jezebel's father; where he lodged with a poor widow, and was miraculously sup- ported with her and her family for a considerable time, according to his own predic- tion — " that her single barrel of meal should not waste, nor her single cruse of oil fail, until that day when Jehovah should send rain upon the earth." While he re- mained at this place, the prophet, by his prayers to God, restored to life the son of the widow with whom he lodged. Here he stayed until the end of three years from the commencement of the drought, when he was commanded to go and show him- self to Ahab. That king had meanwhile caused the most diligent search to be made for him in every quarter, doubtless with the view of inducing him to offer up those intercessions through which alone the present grievous calamity could terminate. But at this time, having probably relinquished this search as hopeless, the attention of the king was directed to the discovery of any remaining supplies of water which might still exist in the land. He had, therefore, for the purposes of this exploration, divided the country between himself and Obadiah; and both proceeded personally to visit all the brooks and fountains of the land. Obadiah was journeying on this mis- sion, when Elijah, who was returning from Sarepta, met him, and commissioned him to announce his arrival to Ahab. The king, when he saw the prophet, reproached him as the cause of the national calamities — "Art thou he that troubleth Israel ?" But the prophet boldly retorted the charge upon himself and his father's house, be- cause they had forsaken Jehovah and followed Baal. He then secured the attention of the king by intimating an intention of interceding for rain ; and required him to call a general assembly of all the people at Mount Carmel, and also to bring all the prophets or priests of Baal,* and of the groves. There, in the audience of that vast assembly, Elijah reproached the people with the destruction of the prophets of Jehovah, of whom, he alleged, that he alone re- mained, while the prophets of Baal alone were four hundred and fifty, fed at the ta- ble of Jezebel ; and then he called them to account for their divided worship — " How long halt ye between two opinions ? If Jehovah be the God, follow him ; but if Baal, then follow him." The people intimated their uncertainty by their silence to this appeal ; on which the prophet, fully conscious of his unlimited commission, pro- posed a solemn sacrifice to each, and " the God that answereth by fire (to consume his sacrifice) let him be the God." As this was a fair trial of Baal's supposed power in his own element, the most zealous of his worshippers could make no objection to it, and the proposal was approved by all the people. Accordingly, when Baal an- swered not the earnest and ultimately maddened invocations of his prophets — but Jehovah instantly answered the prayer of Elijah, by sending fire (as on former occa- sions) to consume the victim on the altar, although it had previously been inundated with water by the direction of the prophet — then the people, yielding to one mighty impulse of conviction, fell upon their faces, and cried, "Jehovah, he is the God! Jehovah, he is the God !" — thus also expressing that Baal was not the God, and re- jecting him. To ratify this abjuration of Baal, Elijah commanded them to destroy his priests; and this, in the enthusiasm of their re-kindled zeal for Jehovah, they im- mediately did, at the brook Kishon, which had been the scene of Barak's victory over the Canaanitcs. Immediately after this sublime national act of acknowledgment of Jehovah and re jection of Baal, the prophet went up to tne top of Carmel, and prayed fervently foi rain seven times; the promise of which (speedily followed by fulfilment) at last ap- peared in the form of " a little cloud like a man's hand," rising out of the Mediter- ranean sea — a phenomenon which, in warm maritime climates, is not the unusun! harbinger of rain. This remarkable transaction may be ascribed to the tenth year of Ahab's reign. Elijah was now compelled to fly for his life, to avoid the threatened vengeance ol Jezebel for the destruction of her prophets. He fled southward, and when he had * Baal was the supreme male divinity of the Phoenician and Canaanitish nations. The plural, Baalim, is frequently found in' the Old Testament. The word in Hebrew means Master, Owner, Possessor. The worship of shis idol was practiced from a very remote antiquity among the Moabites and Midianites, and through the influence of these nations the Israelites were seduced to tne worship of this god, which became extensively prevalent in the times of the kings. — Ed. HlSTOR* Ob THE BIBLE. 353 travelled nearly 100 miles, from Samaria to Beersheba, he left his servant and went alone a day's journey into the wilderness. There he sat, for rest and shelter, under the scanty shade which a broom-tree offered, the mighty spirit by which he had hitherto been sustained, gave way, and he prayed for death to end his troubles. " It is enough :" he cried, " now, Jehovah, take away my life ; for I am not better than my fathers !" To strengthen his now sinking faith, and reward his sufferings in the cause of the God of Israel, whose honor he had so zealously vindicated, the prophet was encouraged by an angel to undertake a long journey to " the mount of God," Horeb, where the Divine presence had been manifested to Moses, the founder of the law; and of which a further manifestation was now probably promised to this great champion and restorer of the same law. On this mysterious occasion the angel touched him twice, to rouse him from his sleep, and twice made him eat of food which he found prepared for him. In the strength which that food gave, the prophet journeyed (doubtless by a circuitous route) forty days, until he came, it is supposed, to the cave where Moses was stationed, when he saw the glory of Jehovah in " tli€ cleft of the rock." There he heard the voice of Jehovah calling to him, " What doest thou here, Eli- jah ?" The prophet, evidently recognising that voice, said, " I have been very zealous tor Jehovah, the God of Hosts ; for the children of Israel have forsaken thy covenant, thrown down thy altars, and slain thy prophets with the sword, and I only am left ; and they seek my life to take it away." Then the voice commanded him to go forth, for Jehovah was about to pass by. The first harbinger of the Divine presence was a great and strong wind, which rent the mountain and brake the rock in pieces ; but Je- hovah was not in that wind. Then followed an earthquake ; but Jehovah was not in the earthquake. This was succeeded by a fire ; but Jehovah was not in the fire. After this, came " a still, small Voice ;" and when the prophet heard it, he knew the Voice of God, and, reverently hiding his face in his mantle, he stood forth in the entrance of the cave. The Voice repeated the former question, " What doest thou here, Elijah ?" to which the same answer as before was returned. The Voice, in re- ply, gently rebuked the prophet for his crimination of the whole people of Israel, and his discouraging representation of himself as the only prophet left. " I have yet left to me seven thousand men, in Israel, who have not bowed the knee to Baal." He was further instructed to return by a different route, by the way of Damascus ; and, oy the way to anoint or appoint Elisha to be his own successor, and (either by him- self or Elisha), Hazael to be king of Damascene-Syria, and Jehu to be king of Israel — as the chosen ministers of Divine vengeance upon the house and people of Ahab. Of the three, Elisha was the only one to whom Elijah himself made known this appointment. Elisha was the son of Shaphat, an opulent man of Abel-maholah, in the half-tribe of Manasseh, west of the Jordan. The prophet found him ploughing with twelve yoke of oxen, when, by a significant action, still well understood in the East, that of throwing his own mantle upon him, he conveyed the intimation of his prophetic call. That call was understood and obeyed by Elisha ; and after having, with the prophet's permission, taken leave of his parents, he hastened to follow Eli- jah, to whom he ever after remained attached. It is singular that the first formal alliance between the kingdoms of Israel and Judah took place during the reigns of two princes of such opposite characters as Ahab in Israel, and Jehoshaphat in Judah. But it was so : and in forming it, and in cementing it by the marriage of his eldest son Jehoram to Athaliah the daughter of Ahab and Jezebel, he doubtless acted from very ill-considered policy, and laid in a great store of disasters for himself and his house. It is unfortunate that we are un- acquainted with the motives which led to this most unhappy connexion. A close and intimate union between the two kingdoms could not but be, in itself, a political good ; and the error of Jehoshaphat probably lay in considering this fact by itself, without taking due account of that evil character of Ahab and his house, and that alienation of his people from God, which were calculated to neutralize, and actually did far more than neutralize, the natural advantages of such alliance. The marriage took place in the fifteenth year of Ahab's, and the thirteenth of Jehoshaphat's reign. Not long after this, Ahab had cause to be alarmed at the designs of Ben-hadad, the king of Damascene-Syria, which kingdom had been gathering such strength, while that of the Hebrews had been weakened by divisions and by misconduct, that ever, the subjugation of Israel did not seem to Ben-hadad an enterprise to which his am- 23 351 AN ILLUSTRATED bition might not aspire. To this end he made immense preparations : he claimed the united aid of all his tributary princes, thirty-two in number, and ultimately ap- peared with all his forces before Samaria, to which he laid seige. He first summon- ed Ahab to deliver up all his most precious things ; and, compelled by dire necessity, the king of Israel consented. But Ben-hadad was only induced by this readiness of yielding, to enhance his terms, and sent further demands, which were so very hard and insulting, that the spirit of Ahab was at last roused, and, supported by the "advice of his council, he determined to act on the defensive. Soon after a prophet came with the promise of victory over the vast host of the Syrians, by means of a mere hand- ful of spirited young men who were particularly indicated. The confidence of the Syrians was so great that they led a careless and jovial life, thinking of little but of indulgence in wine and good cheer, of which the king him- self set the example. In the midst of these feasts, a body of two hundred and thirty- two men was seen to leave the city, and advance toward the camp. Ben-hadad, when he heard of it, quietly ordered them to be taken alive, whether they came for peace or for war. But suddenly these men fell upon the advanced sentinels, and upon all who were near them ; and the cries and confusion of so many persons, taken as it were by surprise, were instrumental in creating a general panic among the vast Syrian host. Drawn himself by the irresistible movement, Ben-hadad fled on horse- back, with all his army ; and the troops of Israel (7,000 in number), which attended the motions and watched the effect of the sally of the brave two hundred and thirty- two, closely pursued the flying Syrians, and rendered the victory complete. The prophet who foretold this victory now apprized Ahab that Ben-hadad would renew his attempt the ensuing year. This took place accordingly. The Syrians came in equal force as before, and, as they thought, with wiser counsels. The king dom of Damascene-Syria was mostly a plain ; whereas the kingdom of Israel, and the site of Samaria, in particular, was mountainous. Rightly attributing their defeat to the God (or, as they chose in their idolatrous ignorance, to say the gods) of Israel, they reasoned that he was a god of the hills, and therefore among the hills more powerful than their gods, who Avere gods of the valleys and the plains. Instead therefore of going among the hills as before, they would now fight in the plains, where they could not doubt of success. This reasoning, however absurd it now seems to us and did then seem (such were their privileges) to all enlightened Israelites, was in strict and philosophical accordance with the first principles of idolatry- and the general system of national and local deities. But such a view being taken by them it became necessary to Jehovah to vindicate his own honor and assert his omnipo- tence by their overthrow. For this reason he delivered this vast host that covered the land into the hands of the comparatively small and feeble host of Israel. The Syrians were cut in pieces; 100,000 of their number were left dead upon the field oi battle, and the rest were entirely dispersed. Ben-hadad, with a large number of the fugitives, sought refuge in Aphek ; but by the sudden fall of the wall of that fortified town, 27,000 of his men were crushed to death, and the place was rendered defence- less. Nothing was now left to him but to yield himself up to Ahab. That monarch, weak and criminal by turns, received the Syrian king into his friendship, and formed an impious alliance with him, regardless not only of the law, but of the honor of God, who had given him the victory, and had delivered for punishment into bis hands this blasphemer and enemy of his Great Name. For this he was, in the name of Je- hovah, severely rebuked and threatened by one of " the sons of the prophets," by the way-side ; "in consequence he withdrew to his palace " heavy and displeased." The history of Ahab affords one more, and the last, interview between him and Elijah. This was about nine years after the grand solemnity at Mount Carmel, and the nineteenth of Ahab's reign. At that time the king took a fancy to enlarge his own garden by taking into it an adjoining vineyard which formed part of the patrimonial estate of a person named Naboth. He made him the fair offer of its value in money, or to give him some other piece of land of equal value. But Naboth, considering it a religious duty to preserve " the inheritance of his fathers," declined on any terms to alienate it. The reason was good, and ought to have satisfied the king. Bat he received the refusal like a spoiled child ; he lay down upon his bed, and turned away his face to the Avail, and refused to take his food. When his wife heard this she came to him, and hav- ing learned the cause of his grief, she said indignantly, " Dost thou not now govern tho HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 355 1 S5G AN ILLUSTRATED kingdom of Israel ; Arise, eat food, and let thine heart be cheerful ; the vineyard ol Naboth, the Jezreelite, I will give to thee." Accordingly, she procured Naboth to be put to death under the form of law. At a public feast he was accused by suborned witnesses of blasphemy, for which he was stoned to death, and his estates confisca- ted to the king. Jezebel then went to Ahab, apprized him of what had happened, and told him to go down and take possession of the vineyard. It is clear that if he did not suggest, he approved of the crime, and proceeded with joy to reap the fruits of it. But in the vineyard of Naboth, the unexpected and unwelcome sight of Eli- jah the prophet met his view. Struck by his own conscience, he cried, " Hast thou found me, O mine enemy ?" To which Elijah replied, " I have found thee, because thou hast sold thyself to work evil in the eyes of Jehovah." He then proceeded to denounce the doom of utter extermination upon himself and his house for his mani- fold iniquities ; and then, with reference to the immediate offence, he said, " Hast thou slain and also taken possession ? Thus saith Jehovah, In whatsoever place the dogs licked up the blood of Naboth, shall dogs lick up thy blood, even thine. And concerning Jezebel, Jehovah hath also spoken, saying, The dogs shall eat Jeze- bel under the wall of Jezreel. Him who dieth of Ahab in the city shall the dogs eat ; and him that dieth in the fields shall the fowls of the air eat." We are imme- diately reminded, however, that this terrible doom, although now denounced, as fol- lowing this crowning deed of guilt, was really a consequence of this and all the other iniquities of Ahab's reign ; for it is added, "Now there had been none like to Ahab, who, stirred up by Jezebel his wife, sold himself to work wickedness in the eyes of Jehovah. And he committed great abominations by going after vile idols, according to all that the Amorites did, whom Jehovah cast out before the Israelites." When Ahab heard the heavy doom pronounced against him by the prophet, " he rent his clothes (in token cf extreme grief), and put sackcloth upon his flesh, and fasted, and lay in sackcloth, and went mournfully." This conduct found some accept- ance with God, who said to Elijan, Seest thou how Ahab humbleth himself before me ? Because he humbleth himself before me, I will not bring the evil in his days, but in his son's days Avill I bring this evil upon his house." From the judicial sen- tence specially applicable to the case of Naboth, there was, however, no dispensa- tion; as it behooved the Divine king to demonstrate that he still possessed and exer- cised the authority of supreme civil governor, and that the kings were responsible to him and punishable by him. This was signally shown in the sequel. Israel was now at peace with Syria, but it had not recovered possession of all the places which had at different times been lost to that power. Of these, Ramoth Gilead, beyond Jordan, was one which, from its proximity and importance, Ahab was partic- ularly anxious to regain possession. He therefore resolved to expel the Syrian gar- rison from that place ; and as he was aware that the attempt would be opposed by the whole power of the Syrian kingdom, he claimed the assistance of Jehoshaphat, the king of Judah, which that prince, with the facility of disposition which formed the chief defect of his excellent character, very readily granted. Nevertheless, when the preparations were completed, Jehoshaphat, unsatisfied by the assurances of suc- cess which Ahab's own " prophets" had given, desired that some other prophet of Jehovah should be consulted. This request was more distasteful to Ahab than he liked to avow. " There is yet one man," he said, " Micaiah,* the son of Imlah, but him I hate, because he prophesieth not good concerning me, but evil." He was, however, sent for; and although the messenger had strongly inculcated upon him the necessity of making his counsel conformable to the wishes ol the king and the pre- dictions of his own prophets, the undaunted Micaiah boldly foretold the fatal result of the expedition. At this the king was so much enraged, that he ordered him to be kept in confinement, and fed with the bread and the water of affliction until he re- turned in peace. " If thou return at all in peace," rejoined the faithful prophet, " then Jehovah hath not spoken by me." Ben-hadad, the king of Syria, repaid the misplaced kindness of Ahab by the most bitter enmity against his person; and he gave strict orders to his troops" that theii principal object should be his destruction. Ahab seems to have had some private in- formation of this ; for he went, himself, disguised to the battle, and treacherously' persuaded Jehoshaphat to appear in all the ensigns of his high rank.f In consequence ol * Josephus and other ancient Jews understood that this Micaiah was the same prophet who had rebuked A.hab for Ins alliarrce with Ben-hadad. t Josephus, supported by the Septuagint. says he wore the royal robes of Ahab. HISTORY OF THE BIBLE. 357 .nis the king of Judah was nearly slain, being surrounded by the Syrians, who press- ed toward the point in which one royally arrayed appeared. But they discovered i heir mistake in time, and turned their attention in another direction. Ahab, with all his contrivance, could not avoid his doom. A Syrian archer* sent forth from his bow an arrow at random. Guided by the unseen Power which had numbered the days of Ahab, that arrow found the disguised king, penetrated between the joints of his strong armor, and gave him his death- wound, lie directed his charioteer to drive him out of the battle ; but perceiving that a general action was coming on, he remained, and was held up in his chariot until the evening, animating his friends by lus voice and presence. After the fall of night had terminated the combat, the king died, and the army was directed to disperse. The- body of Ahab was taken to Samaria, to be de- posited in the family sepulchre ; and to mark the literal fulfilment of Elijah's prophecy, the historian acquaints us that his chariot was washed, and his armor rinsed in the pool of Samaria, where the dogs licked up the blood that he had lost. Thus signal- ly, in the mysterious dispensations of Divine providence, were reconciled the seem- ingly discordant declarations of the two prophets, one of whom had foretold his death at Ramoth Gilead, and the other that dogs should claim his blood in Samaria. The history of Ahab is almost exclusively occupied with the record of his guilt, and we are referred for information concerning his other public acts to a chronicle which no longer exists. But it transpires that he built several cities in Israel, and also a palace, which, from the quantities of ivory with which it was ornamented, was distinguished as " the ivory palace." Ahab's death took place in the year 909 B. C, after a reign of twenty-two years. He was succeeded in his throne and in his sin by his son Ahaziah. The chief event of his short reign was the revolt of the Moabites, who, since their subjection by David, had continued to supply Israel with a rich tribute of flocks and fleeces.f Ahaziah himself having received serious injuries by a fall through a lattice in an up- per chamber of his palace, sent messengers into the land of the Philistines, to con- sult Baal-zebub, the fly-god of Ekron, whether he should recover. But they were met on the way by the prophet Elijah, who sent them back to the king with a de- nunciation of death, for his impiety in forsaking the God of Israel and resorting to strange gods. The messengers knew not the prophet ; but when they described him to the king as a man clad with a hairy garment, and with a leathern girdle about his loins, he recognised Elijah, and sent an officer with fifty men to apprehend him. But the prophet, whom they found sitting upon a hill, called down fire from heaven, which consumed this party, and also a second; but he went voluntarily with the third, the officer in command of which humbled himself before him, and besought him. The prophet confirmed to the king himself his former denunciation of speedy death ; and, accordingly, Ahaziah died, after a short reign of two years, leaving no son to succeed him. This king maintained the alliance which his father had estab- lished with King Jehoshaphat, and even persuaded that monarch to admit him to share in his contemplated maritime expedition to the regions of Ophir, of which there will be occasion to speak in the next chapter. Ahaziah was succeeded by his brother Jehoraiu. This king, like his predecessors, " did evil in the sight of Jehovah," yet not to the same extent of enormity as they ; for although the loose and irregular service of the golden calves was maintained by him, he overthrew the images of Baal, and discouraged the grosser idolatries which his father and brother had introduced. The first and most urgent care of the new king was to reduce to obedience the Moabites, who, as just mentioned, had revolted on the death of Ahab. As the king of Judah had himself been troubled by the Moabites-, he readily undertook to take n very prominent part in this enterprise, to which he also brought the support of his own tributary, the king of Edom. The plan of the campaign was, that the allied army should invade the land of Moab in its least defensible quarter, by going round by "the wilderness of Edom," southward of the Dead sea; which also offered the advantage that the forces of the king of Israel could be successively joined by those of the kings of Judah and Edom on the march. This circuitous march occupied seven days; and toward the end of it the army and the horses suffered greatly from * Josephus says this was Naaman, who will soon come ajrain before us. t The p.i.oual tribute rendered by the Moabites had been 100,000 iambs and 100.000 wethers, with Ihrlr « -xt). 358 AX ILLUSTRATED thirst, probably occasioned by the failure of the wells and brooks, from which ar adequate supply of water had' been expected. Much loss had already been incurred through this unexpected drought, and nothing less than utter ruin seemed to impend over the allies when they lay on the borders of Aloab, within view of the enemy. which had advanced to meet them. In this emergency the very proper course oc- curred to Jehoshaphat of consulting a prophet of Jehovah. On inquiry it was discovered that Elisha, is who had poured water on the hands of Elijah" — a proverbial expression from the most conspicuous act of service in a personal attendant — was the only prophet to be found in that neighborhood. Full of the faith of his illustrious master, this faithful disciple of Elijah had beheld the Jordan divide before that prophet, and had been with him when, upborne by the whirlwind, he was taken gloriously away from the earth, in the chariot and horses which glowed like fire, and who had substituted himself in his mission to work marvels and reprove kings in the name of Jehovah. Already had the " spirit and power of Elias," which abode in him, been manifested to all Israel by the prodigies he had wrought. The waters of the Jordan had di- vided before him, the second time, when smote by the fallen mantle of Elijah; — the bad waters of Jericho had become permanently wholesome at his word; — and to evince the power of his curse, bears from the woods had destroyed fort} - - two young men belonging to idolatrous Bethel, who, joining unbelief to insult, had bade him, in terms of mockery and derision, — " Go up, thou bald head ! Go up, thou bald head !" — ascend after his master. The prophet, thus already distinguished, was sought m his retreat by the three kings. His greeting of Jehoram was severe, "What have I to do with thee ? Get thee to the prophets of thy father and to the prophets of thy mother." Nevertheless, but avowedly on the sole account of the good Jehoshaphat, he interested himself for the salvation of the army, which was in such imminent danger : and, having con- sulted the Lord, he promised that on the morrow there should be such an abundance of water, that the bed of the torrent, near which the army was encamped, should not be able to contain it; and, more than this, he also indicated that this should be but the prelude of a signal victory over and complete ruin of the enemy. All things happened as he had said. In the morning, at the time of offering sacrifice, the waters descended in such full-Hood from the heights of Edom, that the camp would have been submerged, had not the army, by the direction of the prophet, previously dug large ditches to receive the redundant waters. All this was unknown to the ^Ioabites, who, when they arose in the morning, and, on looking toward the camp of the allies, beheld the lurid rays of the rising sun reflected from the waters, which now covered the arid sands of yesterday, doubted not that it was blood which they saw, and formed the not by any means improbable conclusion that the armies of Israel and Judah had quarrelled with and destroyed each other. They therefore rushed without the least care or order to the pillage of the camp; but so far from finding it deserted, they were surrounded and cut in pieces by the armed and now invigorated allies. The remnant of the army was pursued into the interior of the country by the conquerors, whose course was blackened by the fire and crimsoned by the sword. Ultimately they invested the metropolitan city of Kir-haraseth,* iii which the king, Alesha', had "taken refuge. One part of the walls had already been destroyed, and the king, seeing he could no longer defend the place, attempted to break through the besieging host at the head of seven hundred swordsmen. But tailing in this desperate effort, he sought to propitiate his cruel gods by offering up the frightful sacrifice of his eldest son, the heir of his throne, in the breach. Seized with horror at this spectacle, the conquering kings abandoned the siege, withdrew from the country, and returned to their own states. In taking this step they did not consider, or, perhaps, not care, that they gave to the horrible act of the AToabite the very effect which he desired, and enabled him to delude himself with the persuasion that his sacrifice had been successful, and well-pleasing to the powers of Heaven. In the remainmg history of Jehoram's reign, the prophet Elisha occupies nearly as conspicuous a place as Elijah did in that of Ahab. The wonders wrought by his ha ids w T ere numerous ; but they were less signal, and less attended with public and important results — less designed to effect public objects, than those of his master. Indeed his national acts were less considerable than those of Elijah ; and although he possessed great influence, and was undoubtedly the foremost man of his age, he * The same place which is otherwise called Rabbath-Moab, and, classically, Areop